summaryrefslogtreecommitdiff
diff options
context:
space:
mode:
-rw-r--r--.gitattributes4
-rw-r--r--LICENSE.txt11
-rw-r--r--README.md2
-rw-r--r--old/66382-0.txt10803
-rw-r--r--old/66382-0.zipbin199448 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/66382-h.zipbin3925252 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/66382-h/66382-h.htm13799
-rw-r--r--old/66382-h/images/colophon.pngbin131346 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/66382-h/images/cover.jpgbin259176 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/66382-h/images/drop-h.pngbin25104 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/66382-h/images/i-002.pngbin190728 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/66382-h/images/i-009.pngbin55099 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/66382-h/images/i-058.pngbin185732 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/66382-h/images/i-091.pngbin191113 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/66382-h/images/i-197.pngbin187180 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/66382-h/images/i-269.pngbin174843 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/66382-h/images/i-283.pngbin185997 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/66382-h/images/i-c01.pngbin167463 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/66382-h/images/i-c03.pngbin216090 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/66382-h/images/i-c05.pngbin242828 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/66382-h/images/i-c06.pngbin210651 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/66382-h/images/i-c10.pngbin246850 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/66382-h/images/i-c15.pngbin174884 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/66382-h/images/i-c23.pngbin193336 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/66382-h/images/i-c25.pngbin224159 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/66382-h/images/i-c27.pngbin218477 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/66382-h/images/i-c31.pngbin230537 -> 0 bytes
27 files changed, 17 insertions, 24602 deletions
diff --git a/.gitattributes b/.gitattributes
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..d7b82bc
--- /dev/null
+++ b/.gitattributes
@@ -0,0 +1,4 @@
+*.txt text eol=lf
+*.htm text eol=lf
+*.html text eol=lf
+*.md text eol=lf
diff --git a/LICENSE.txt b/LICENSE.txt
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..6312041
--- /dev/null
+++ b/LICENSE.txt
@@ -0,0 +1,11 @@
+This eBook, including all associated images, markup, improvements,
+metadata, and any other content or labor, has been confirmed to be
+in the PUBLIC DOMAIN IN THE UNITED STATES.
+
+Procedures for determining public domain status are described in
+the "Copyright How-To" at https://www.gutenberg.org.
+
+No investigation has been made concerning possible copyrights in
+jurisdictions other than the United States. Anyone seeking to utilize
+this eBook outside of the United States should confirm copyright
+status under the laws that apply to them.
diff --git a/README.md b/README.md
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..ce67229
--- /dev/null
+++ b/README.md
@@ -0,0 +1,2 @@
+Project Gutenberg (https://www.gutenberg.org) public repository for
+eBook #66382 (https://www.gutenberg.org/ebooks/66382)
diff --git a/old/66382-0.txt b/old/66382-0.txt
deleted file mode 100644
index 462f603..0000000
--- a/old/66382-0.txt
+++ /dev/null
@@ -1,10803 +0,0 @@
-The Project Gutenberg eBook of A Girl of To-day, by Ellinor Davenport
-Adams
-
-This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and
-most other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no restrictions
-whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it under the terms
-of the Project Gutenberg License included with this eBook or online at
-www.gutenberg.org. If you are not located in the United States, you
-will have to check the laws of the country where you are located before
-using this eBook.
-
-Title: A Girl of To-day
-
-Author: Ellinor Davenport Adams
-
-Illustrator: Gertrude Demain Hammond
-
-Release Date: September 25, 2021 [eBook #66382]
-
-Language: English
-
-Produced by: Juliet Sutherland, SF2001, and the Online Distributed
- Proofreading Team at https://www.pgdp.net
-
-*** START OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK A GIRL OF TO-DAY ***
-
-
-
-
-
-[Illustration:
-
-M432
-
-“FRANCES CAUGHT SIGHT OF A DARK FIGURE ADVANCING.”]
-
-
-
-
- A GIRL OF TO-DAY
- BY
- ELLINOR DAVENPORT ADAMS
-
- Author of “Miss Secretary Ethel”, “Comrades True”,
- “Colonel Russell’s Baby”, “May, Guy, and Jim”, &c.
-
-
- _WITH SIX ILLUSTRATIONS BY GERTRUDE DEMAIN HAMMOND, R.I._
-
-[Illustration]
-
-
- LONDON
- BLACKIE & SON, Limited, 50 OLD BAILEY, E.C.
- GLASGOW AND DUBLIN
- 1899
-
-
-
-
- CONTENTS.
-
-
- Chap. Page
- I. Brother and Sister, 9
- II. Boys and Girls together, 24
- III. Adventurers Four, 36
- IV. Rowdon Smithy, 53
- V. Doctor Max, 65
- VI. Music and Mumming, 82
- VII. Photographers Abroad, 103
- VIII. Jim East, 124
- IX. Frances Falters, 150
- X. Trouble at Elveley, 165
- XI. The Head of the House, 186
- XII. A Gentleman-Blacksmith, 209
- XIII. “Missy”, 222
- XIV. Mrs. Holland’s Trio, 239
- XV. Polly’s Deliverer, 256
- XVI. Wanted--A Nice Somebody, 269
- XVII. Lessing of Lessing’s Creek, 274
- XVIII. To the Far South, 283
-
-
-
-
-ILLUSTRATIONS.
-
-
- Page
-
-“Frances caught sight of a dark figure advancing”, _Frontis._ 123
-
-“The old man leaned forward suddenly to scan the speaker’s face”, 58
-
-“A story we bring you from Faëry Land”, 91
-
-“Nay, Elizabeth,” said Jim kindly, “there’s no need for locking up”, 197
-
-“The figure moved, rose, came forward with the painful caution of
-dreary suspense”, 269
-
-“Ah! but you would make such a mistake if you thought we would let
-you go”, 283
-
-
-
-
-[Illustration]
-
-
-
-
-A GIRL OF TO-DAY.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER I.
-
-BROTHER AND SISTER.
-
-
-“Here you are, then, Sis! Here you are--at last!”
-
-The final words, spoken in a tone of complete satisfaction, accompanied
-a daring dive of hand and arm through the open window of the still
-moving railway-carriage.
-
-“You ridiculous boy! We are only five minutes behind time!” Frances
-seized the intruding hand in a firm grip; and, as the train stopped,
-leaned out of the window to bestow a sisterly hug. “Its good to see
-you, dear! How brown and jolly you look! The country agrees with you,
-Austin; I thought it would.”
-
-“Well, I don’t know. It was fearfully slow here at first, after
-Allerton. Of course, now--. Oh, come along, Frances! I’ve heaps to
-tell you, once we’re on the road. I wouldn’t bring the trap, because
-I wanted time for a good talk all to ourselves; and I knew the mile
-walk from the station to Woodend wouldn’t frighten you. Toss out the
-parcels! I suppose you’ve a few dozen. What, only one? Hallo! they’ve
-taught you something at school.”
-
-Frances nodded her head reflectively. “Much you know about that yet, my
-son. Wait awhile, and I’ll enlighten you!”
-
-Delivering herself of this promise,--which was received by the boy with
-an impudent little shrug,--the girl sprang to the platform in a style
-strongly suggestive of past triumphs in her school gymnasium, and then
-proceeded to catch her brother by the shoulders and give him what she
-called “a proper look-over”.
-
-Austin stood the examination well. Though slightly built, he was broad
-of chest and straight of limb; his blue eyes were bright and clear;
-and the weakness of his mouth was usually discounted by the sunny
-smile which readily parted his lips. Nearly three years younger than
-his sister, and accustomed to look to her for companionship, guidance,
-and encouragement, Austin had found the months of their separation so
-real a trial that his joy in their present meeting was particularly
-demonstrative. He remembered in a flash of thought half a score of
-promising projects which had been allowed to lapse until Frances
-should come home from Haversfield College. And now Frances was here in
-front of him, and surveying him with the steady gray eyes he knew and
-truly loved--Frances herself, no whit spoiled by her two terms at the
-famous school for girls, though in Austin’s mind there had lurked some
-fears of long skirts, hair “done up”, and--worse than all!--airs of
-condescending superiority and adult wisdom.
-
-Frances did not look at all grown-up. She was just a healthy, happy
-lass of barely fourteen years; frankly preferring short frocks to long
-ones, and in no haste for the time when hair-dressing should become
-a troublesome solemnity. So far, life had made small demands on her
-individuality. At home, she had known no special duty except the care
-of Austin, who had been rather delicate in early childhood; at school,
-she had been one of many, fairly successful in her work, more than
-fairly successful at games and bodily exercises, and perhaps showing
-promise chiefly in a susceptibility to all those influences which tend
-to widen a young girl’s sympathies and draw out her intelligence.
-Frances had been fortunate in her recent experience--Haversfield
-is an excellent nursery for the best kind of girlhood. Its many
-house-mistresses are chosen by the Principal with extreme care;
-and Frances had been under the charge of Miss Cliveden, a clever,
-cultivated, and liberal-minded woman, whose training was quite as
-valuable for heart as for head. The brightest-witted, most thoughtful,
-and most generous pupils of Haversfield were proud to call themselves
-“Miss Cliveden’s girls”.
-
-“Is Mamma all right?” inquired Frances, releasing her brother after a
-little satisfied shake.
-
-“Right as she can be. Ten deep in tea-drinkings, and particular
-friends with all the world. No, not with all the world--with the most
-particular world of Woodend. She’s ‘At Home’ this afternoon, you know.
-First and third Thursdays, and all that twaddle--”
-
-“Austin!” laughed Frances, faintly reproachful.
-
-“Well, it is! Fancy a lot of women staring at each other over tea-cups
-and cake, and two odd men tripping about among the crew and wishing
-themselves at Kamschatka!”
-
-“Who are the two?”
-
-“Any tame sparrows caught in the trap.”
-
-“You ought to watch them, and learn what you’ve to grow up to.”
-
-“Catch me!”
-
-“But Mamma is well?” persisted Frances. “And she likes Woodend, and her
-new house--you’re sure?”
-
-“Oh, I suppose so!” exclaimed Austin, showing signs of impatience.
-
-“She left Allerton for your sake, and I think you ought to remember
-that.”
-
-“Don’t preach!”
-
-“Don’t you be ridiculous,” said Frances sharply. “I’ve no patience with
-boys who call every sensible word ‘preaching’.”
-
-“I’ve no patience with girls who are everlastingly ‘sensible’.”
-
-Frances’s frowns vanished, and smiles came instead. Her sisterly
-prerogative of “preaching” was so seldom exercised that Austin usually
-took her mild rebukes like a lamb. His laugh echoed hers just now, and
-he gave an affectionate hug to the arm he clung to. Brother and sister
-were walking at a good pace along the straggling white road to the
-village.
-
-“Never mind, Sis. You shall preach as much as you like--to-day. And
-Mater is really all right--she must be. She has loads of friends
-already.”
-
-“Loads! In a tiny place like this!” commented Frances, gazing about
-her. On either hand stretched the green meadows, watered by brooks
-filled with recent rain; in front, the country spread smiling and
-serene under the brilliant sun of late July. Immediately before them,
-the road dipped into a shallow wooded valley, studded on both sides
-with houses of every degree. Farther off, above the trees of Fencourt
-Park (the home of Woodend’s chief landlord), could be descried the
-broken ridges of Rowdon Common. All these interesting facts were
-duly pointed out by Austin, with the justifiable airs and pride of
-a resident; while Frances, as a new-comer, merely listened or asked
-sagacious questions.
-
-“That’s where we hang out,” remarked the boy elegantly, while waving
-his hand towards a long, picturesquely-built house on the opposite side
-of the valley. “It’s a tidy crib, with lots of room.”
-
-“A crib--with lots of room! A pretty confusion of terms, young man.”
-
-“I’ve bagged a jolly place for larks,” continued Austin eagerly.
-“There’s a stove in it and a splendid big table, and a bath-room next
-door, which will just do for our photography.”
-
-The boy’s face, uplifted to his sister’s, was full of the happy
-enthusiasm which feels itself secure of sympathy; and Frances’s heart
-beat high with pleasure because her welcome home was of this joyful
-sort. For the absent school-girl, like her brother, had known some
-fears--lest the six months’ parting should have taught Austin to do
-without her. The boy had proved a poor correspondent; and it was not
-easy for Frances with her warm, unselfish temperament, to realize that
-unanswered letters did not necessarily signify failing affection.
-
-“That’s the church--it’s splendid for photographing, if only one could
-get the lines of the tower straight. And there’s the rectory alongside.
-The Rector’s very old; but a good sort, like the curate.”
-
-“The curate is Mr. Carlyon, your tutor, isn’t he? Oh, Austin, do you
-like having lessons with him?” asked Frances, with intense interest.
-Her reverence for knowledge had grown of late, and she wanted, not
-unnaturally, to find out whether in this direction Austin’s steps had
-progressed with her own.
-
-“I like it well enough. You see,” he added awkwardly, “I’m not exactly
-a grind; one must use one’s wits, but I think mine go best with my
-hands. Only, Carlyon was a swell at Oxford, and he’s got a way of
-making one think one wouldn’t mind being a swell too.”
-
-Frances looked relieved and quite contented.
-
-“Then he knows a straight ball when he sees one,” Austin continued,
-“and he’s a crack with his bat. Then when lessons are on, he doesn’t
-drone away everlastingly about dead-and-gone chaps. There’s one of his
-cranks we all approve of, somehow.”
-
-“What is it?”
-
-“We’ve half an hour every day for what he chooses to call ‘current
-events’. Carlyon tells us what’s going on in the world, reads bits
-out of papers and talks them over, and gives marks to the fellows who
-remember best.”
-
-“Oh, Austin! I hope you get most marks!” interrupted Frances, with the
-utterly unreasonable ambition of a sister. Austin felt that he was
-wanting, and replied grumpily:
-
-“Hang it, I’d like to know what chance I have! The other chaps hear
-things at home. Mater won’t let me look at a paper, and never talks to
-me about what she reads herself.”
-
-“Never mind,” said Frances, “I’ll hunt out the news for you, and read
-the things up, and send you off all ready crammed. I shall like doing
-it.”
-
-“I know you will,” groaned Austin. “I say, Frances, you’ll shine like
-the sun at our ‘symposia’--I hope you like that pretty word, Ma’am!”
-
-“What are your symposia?” chuckled Frances, beginning to think Woodend
-couldn’t be so much behind Haversfield itself.
-
-“Why, on Saturday mornings Carlyon takes his boys, and his sister takes
-her girls, and we’ve a meeting in the big rectory dining-room. Then
-the lot of us talk like fits about those blessed ‘current events’ our
-respected teachers have been driving into us all the week. It’s prime
-fun, once we get started. Carlyon and his sister do the starting.
-When they’re on opposite sides, we’ve rare larks; for they pitch
-into one another like mad--quite civilly, you know. Then we chaps
-and Miss Carlyon’s crew follow suit, and go for one another in fine
-style. Gracious! You should have heard Max Brenton and Florry Fane
-last Saturday! It was our breaking-up day, and we had an extra grand
-symposium. Max and Florry are no end good at argufying.”
-
-Frances heard the names of these friends of Austin with the pleasant
-anticipations natural to a sociable girl just about to make trial of
-a new home, new surroundings, new companions. She hoped this “Max and
-Florry” would be “good” for something besides “argufying”--good for
-comradeship of the only kind possible to a nature whose characteristics
-were deep-rooted and strong. Half-hearted alliances were outside
-Frances’s comprehension; her love and trust must be given freely and
-fully, or not at all.
-
-“In her last letter Mamma told me I was to be one of Miss Carlyon’s
-girls after the holidays. That will seem funny at first, now that I
-have got used to a big school. It was nice at Haversfield, Austin. I
-want to stay with Mamma and you, of course, else I should like to go
-back. Miss Cliveden--my house-mistress--was so jolly. She used to make
-one feel as if one wanted to be of some good, if one could.”
-
-“You can be of lots of good here,” said Austin comfortably. “It’s no
-sense a fellow having a sister if she’s away at school. Max says if he
-had a sister he’d think himself lucky, for she would be able to teach
-him how to make a bed properly. That’s a thing he often needs to do for
-his worst cases, and he does not quite understand it.”
-
-“What do you mean?”
-
-Austin declined to explain. At the moment he was too much occupied with
-his own affairs to have leisure for Max’s. He was eager to convince
-Frances that she could be of supreme use to him personally; and
-Frances, before whose eyes had lately gleamed a vision of a wider range
-for her girlish energies, listened, and sympathized, and promised,
-as only the best of sisters could. She was quite sure that Austin
-wanted her most of all. He always had wanted her, and she never had
-disappointed him.
-
-They had been brought up together, and educated by the same governesses
-and tutors until a few months before this story opens. Then Austin’s
-childish delicacy had for the first time threatened to become serious,
-and his mother had carried him off to London for distinguished medical
-advice. For years Mrs. Morland’s home had been in Allerton, a large
-provincial town to which she had first been attracted because it was
-the dwelling-place of an old friend, who had since passed away. The
-London doctors recommended a country life for Austin; and, after some
-weeks of search for a suitable spot, Mrs. Morland fixed on Woodend, a
-village which had everything desirable in the way of soil, air, and
-scenery. Her household gods were removed from Allerton to Woodend in
-the course of a bright April, and she and her son settled down in the
-pretty home she had bought and furnished.
-
-During all this time of unrest, Frances had been quietly at work at
-Haversfield, where she had been sent in order that her education might
-not be interrupted. She had spent the Easter holidays with a school
-friend, because at the time her mother was superintending the removal
-to Woodend, and Austin was paying a visit to a Scotch cousin.
-
-If Mrs. Morland had guessed under what influences her daughter would
-come, she certainly would not have sent her to Haversfield. Not only
-had she no regard for the “learned lady”, but she set no value at all
-upon the womanly accomplishments which were unable to secure social
-prestige. Miss Cliveden’s definition of “society” would have astonished
-Mrs. Morland; and her gospel of labour, preached with her lips and
-in her life, would have seemed to Frances’s mother uniquely dull and
-quixotic.
-
-Miss Cliveden taught her girls to love work, to love it best when
-done for others, and to reverence all work truly and faithfully
-accomplished. The nobility of honest labour was her favourite theme,
-and the allurements of altruistic toil the highest attraction she could
-hold out to her young scholars. As her pupils were all in the upper
-forms of the college, Frances was one of the youngest of them, and
-Miss Cliveden took a great liking for the frank-hearted, winning lass.
-Thrown chiefly among the elder girls, Frances soon caught their spirit
-and shared their ambitions, while remaining in ways and thoughts a
-thorough child.
-
-By the time Mrs. Morland was comfortably settled in Woodend, she began
-to grow tired of petting and coddling a wayward, restless boy. Scotland
-and the country air had brought Austin back to fair health, and his
-bright eyes and rosy cheeks assured his mother that her sacrifice had
-not been in vain. Mrs. Morland loved ease of mind and body. She thought
-it time her boy should return to his lesson-books, and that Frances--so
-soon as her second term at Haversfield should be over--should come home
-to help him.
-
-The terms of his father’s will had decreed that Austin should be
-educated privately. Mr. Morland had disliked public schools. His
-wife regretted the social disadvantage, but could not overrule her
-husband’s decision; and she began to face the trouble of looking out
-for a new tutor. Before she had looked long, she discovered that Mr.
-Carlyon, the young curate of Woodend church, took pupils; and Austin
-became one of them for the greater part of the summer term.
-
-“What sort of place is Woodend?” asked Frances.
-
-“Oh, well--nice enough. Some jolly fellows among the boys, and plenty
-of girls to match. I dare say you’ll like Florry Fane, anyhow. She has
-lots of pluck, and doesn’t bounce, though she’s no end clever. Then
-there’s roly-poly Betty Turner--and May Gordon--and the First Violin.”
-
-“Who’s the First Violin?”
-
-“We’ve a boys’ and girls’ band, and she’s the leader. Everybody calls
-her the First Violin. She hardly moves without her fiddle; and she
-_can_ play.”
-
-“What about your fiddle? Haven’t you joined the band, lazy imp?”
-
-“Had to; Miss Carlyon wouldn’t let me off. Besides, it’s good fun.
-We’ve a master to train us, and he gives me lessons alone as well. I
-practise sometimes,” added Austin hastily, “so you needn’t worry.”
-
-Frances felt on this golden afternoon even less inclined than usual to
-“preach”, so she let the fiddle pass.
-
-“Are there any poor folks in the village?” she inquired.
-
-“Crowds!--at least, Max says so. He’s always abusing Sir Arthur
-Fenn--chap who lives at Fencourt, the biggest place about. That’s to
-say, Fencourt and most of Woodend belong to him; but he’s hardly ever
-here. He’s got a grander place somewhere, and that’s why he doesn’t
-care much about this one, and won’t do much for the people.”
-
-“What a shame!”
-
-“I don’t know,--they’re such a rough lot, no decent folk would want to
-go near them.”
-
-“I should!” declared Frances warmly. “I’d love to try to help people
-who were very poor and miserable.”
-
-“Gracious!” cried Austin, laughing merrily. “I declare, you’re as bad
-as Max. He’ll show you the way about, if you want to be mixed up in
-charity soup and blankets!”
-
-“Why!--what should a boy know about such things?” said Frances,
-laughing too.
-
-“Max isn’t _a_ boy, as you’ll soon discover. He’s _the_ boy. The one
-and only Max Brenton. My grammar doesn’t amount to much, but I know Max
-is of the singular number.”
-
-“Who is he?”
-
-“He’s the son of Doctor Brenton--the one and only son of the one and
-only doctor!”
-
-“Is Dr. Brenton as singular as Max?”
-
-“More so, my dear!--yes, if possible, more so!” returned Austin,
-grimacing expressively. “You see, they’ve brought each other up, and
-it’s sort of mixed which is which. So they’re ‘the old Doc’ and ‘the
-young Doc’ to all Woodend,--and a jolly good sort they both are!”
-continued the boy heartily. “If Max weren’t always so fearfully busy,
-he’d be the chummiest chum a fellow could want.”
-
-“What is he so busy about?” asked Frances, enjoying the description of
-this mysterious Max.
-
-“Why--soup and blankets!”
-
-“Nonsense!”
-
-“Fact.”
-
-“You are a provoking scamp!”
-
-“Respected student of distinguished Haversfield (as Florry would say),
-if you put me on to construe for an hour I couldn’t ‘render into
-tolerable English’ the sayings and doings of Max Brenton--the one and
-only Max Brenton! He’s not to be understood. You must just take him as
-you find him; and if you don’t meet him to-day, hope you’ll come across
-him to-morrow. And now, don’t you want to know if the tennis-court is
-in good order, and if you’re going to have cake for tea?”
-
-Frances laughed, and yielded herself up to home matters. For a time the
-brother and sister exchanged question and answer at a great rate, and
-held a lively discussion as to the possibilities of Elveley. Austin was
-full of talk about his chosen playroom and its entrancing conveniences.
-Frances planned the arrangement of cunning nooks for her personal
-possessions, and promised to give her whole mind to the study of
-photography, until she had solved the problems presented by the camera
-which had been a present to Austin from the Scotch cousin.
-
-The young pair chuckled and chattered like magpies, and were so deep in
-their concerns that a boy, coming at full speed round a corner from the
-village, almost ran into them before he attracted their attention.
-
-“Hallo!” cried Austin, “there’s Max!”
-
-“The one and only Max?”
-
-“No other. What’s in the wind now? Small-pox or scarlet-fever?”
-
-“How fast he runs!”
-
-“Max hardly ever walks--he hasn’t time. Hi! Hallo!”
-
-Austin slipped his hand from Frances’s arm, dived adroitly on one side,
-and managed to catch his friend in headlong course.
-
-“Hallo!” panted Max, in return. “So sorry, old chap; I didn’t see it
-was you.” He disengaged himself and stepped with outstretched hand
-towards Austin’s sister. “And this is Miss Frances?” he continued,
-smiling frankly.
-
-“Rather!” remarked Austin, with a certain gracious condescension,
-as becomes one whose sister is of the right sort to make sisterless
-fellows envious. “I’ve been telling her what a singular number you are;
-and she wants to go shares in your soup-and-blanket business.”
-
-“It’s awfully jolly of her,” said Max, who had meanwhile exchanged with
-Frances a comrade’s grasp. “We wanted some more girls badly in Woodend.”
-
-“Humph!” said Austin slyly.
-
-“At all events, we wanted _a_ girl,” insisted Max.
-
-“Frances isn’t _a_ girl, she’s _the_ girl; the one and only Frances,
-who will soon be the sworn ally of the one and only Max.”
-
-“All the better for me!” laughed Max. “Will you really, though, Miss
-Frances?”
-
-“I’d like to,” replied the girl, smiling at this busy boy’s pleasant,
-eager face.
-
-“I’ll hold you to it,” declared Max. “I must say good-bye, for see
-here!”
-
-Laughing heartily, Max tapped his bulging pockets.
-
-“What is it?” inquired Frances.
-
-“Pills and potions!--so I must cut!” He lifted his cap, sang out a gay
-farewell, and was off at his former excellent pace.
-
-“What a nice boy!” exclaimed Frances, still beaming. “At least, of
-course I don’t know much about him yet, but he looks nice.”
-
-“He’s a good sort,” said Austin again, with emphasis.
-
-“Why does he carry his father’s medicines? Hasn’t Dr. Brenton a proper
-person--?”
-
-“Max thinks he is a proper person.”
-
-“What does he do about them when he’s at school?”
-
-“He doesn’t come to school, except for a few hours in the week. He
-learns classics and mathematics with us--his father has taught him the
-rest. Dr. Brenton couldn’t possibly get on all day without Max. You’ll
-soon understand why. Now, Frances, we’ll be in Woodend directly. I hate
-crawling down a hill when I’m hot, so I’m going full pelt till I get to
-the bottom of this one. Don’t you hurry. I’ll wait for you there.”
-
-“Will you, though?” demanded Frances with scorn. And Austin’s last
-fears about the effects of Haversfield vanished when his sister darted
-forward, overtook him easily, passed him triumphantly, and made her
-entry into Woodend at a speed which showed no concern either for her
-sailor-hat or her dignity.
-
-“I said she was _the_ Frances!” murmured Austin, as with a great
-affectation of indifference he jogged along behind.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER II.
-
-BOYS AND GIRLS TOGETHER.
-
-
-Though he counted the Doctor’s son as first and chief, Austin
-undoubtedly had plenty of friends; and since the time of his coming
-to Woodend he had done his best to prepare the way for Frances by
-industriously singing her praises. The young people who had managed
-hitherto to exist in the village without either Austin or Frances
-might have been severely bored but for the agreeable curiosity roused
-by Austin’s descriptions of his absent sister. The Woodend boys were
-really anxious to make the acquaintance of so remarkable a girl. The
-Woodend lassies, having a good opinion of Austin, were willing to
-expect great things of Austin’s sister. Both boys and girls indulged
-the hope that the new-comer into their little world might rouse in it
-some pleasant stir.
-
-They knew that they needed badly a stimulus of some sort to give fresh
-energy to their rather monotonous lives. They had their games and
-pastimes, like other youngsters; but these suffered in attraction for
-want of competition. The cricket-team and tennis-club rarely found
-rivals with whom they might contend in honourable warfare. Woodend was
-not exactly remote; but it had a special population of upper-class
-residents, who loved its pure air and fine scenery, and had no
-neighbours of like tastes and habits in the villages near at hand. The
-young folks played and worked contentedly enough among themselves as
-a rule; but they were growing just a little tired of each other, and
-there was nobody to lead.
-
-The girls--poor things!--were in worst case. The boys, when they had
-turned fourteen or fifteen, were usually sent to a public school. The
-girls remained at home, with so much time on their hands that they
-could not even enjoy the luxury of being idle--it was too common an
-experience.
-
-The Carlyons--Edward and Muriel--were working, in part, a reformation.
-Edward Carlyon, Master of Arts of Oxford University, had established
-a small private school for boys; Muriel Carlyon, sometime student of
-Girton College, and graduate of London, had done as much for the girls.
-The Woodend youngsters of good degree flocked to Wood Bank,--formerly
-the home of an artist,--where Edward taught his boys in the big,
-dismantled studio, and Muriel consecrated a couple of fair-sized rooms
-to her girls. The coming of Austin Morland, who, though only in his
-twelfth year, had a certain talent for leadership, had waked up the
-boys’ schoolroom, and plans for the summer holidays had been more
-ambitious than usual.
-
-Frances could not do anything striking for the girls’ schoolrooms at
-present, since they were shut, and their presiding genius was away from
-home. But Austin’s sister, finding herself welcomed in a fashion which
-showed how unstinted had been Austin’s recommendations, was determined
-to do her best to justify his loyalty. She was soon the happy potentate
-of an acquiescent kingdom, and honestly anxious to make good use of
-her unexpected influence. Besides being the leader in every frolic,
-she tried to interest herself in everybody’s hobbies and everybody’s
-fancies.
-
-Most of her new friends belonged to one or other of the many juvenile
-organizations which now make a real effort--whose value may be
-appreciated by social economists of a later date--to concern themselves
-in the welfare of the poor and suffering. Frances had caught from her
-elder comrades at Haversfield a girlish enthusiasm for this kind of
-toil. She threw herself warmly into the diversions of Florry Fane’s
-set--who could understand poetry, dabble in oil and water colours, and
-write stories. She dressed dolls for Betty Turner’s hospital box, she
-collected butterflies and beetles with Guy Gordon, she studied rabbits
-with Frank Temple, she joined the Children’s Orchestra and was a great
-admirer of the First Violin.
-
-But the best of Frances’s heart went into her promised alliance with
-Max Brenton. Max was the blithest boy in all Woodend, by far the
-busiest and the most popular. Even Austin Morland, bright of face and
-gay of manner as was the lad, could not, and would not, have stepped
-into the place filled by Max. Meet the Doctor’s son when and where you
-might, you were bound to feel happier for having done so.
-
-Elveley was the largest house in Woodend proper; it possessed ample
-garden ground, and neat outbuildings in the rear. Its possessor had
-usually been the person of most importance in the village, and thus
-the coming of the new owner had been awaited with curiosity. Mrs.
-Morland had been at some pains to send in advance her credentials as
-to family and position. She was a woman who placed extravagant value
-on social esteem, and she had voluntarily stunted her intelligence and
-narrowed her views for fear of perilling her own prestige by shocking
-any antique prejudice in her neighbours. She had not much sympathy with
-the special affairs of childhood; but when she turned aside from her
-individual interests to see how matters went with her boy and girl, she
-generally found reason for complacency.
-
-Now that she had settled in Woodend, it was in harmony with her wishes
-and instincts that Frances should be to the girls such a leader as
-Mrs. Morland had become to their elders, and that Austin’s careless
-good-humour should assure his popularity. If her children had been
-dull and commonplace, she would have felt herself an injured person.
-Because they were neither, she was ready to be indulgent and compliant.
-They had plenty of pocket-money, and were seldom refused a petition;
-and though they rarely spent with their mother more than an hour or
-so in the day, their food and clothing were carefully attended to by
-responsible people, and their education was the best within reach.
-Frances and Austin were not aware that they missed anything; and they
-nourished for their mother a love which, if it depended rather on
-tradition than on fact, was sufficiently real to make their home dear
-and fairly bright.
-
-The big playroom in Mrs. Morland’s delightful old house soon became
-the headquarters of every juvenile institution. Cricket, football, and
-tennis clubs kept their archives in its table-drawers; its shelves
-harboured a choice lending-library, contributed to by every owner of a
-story-book; its corners saw the hatching of every plot, harmless or
-mischievous. Further, it was within its walls that Frances--intent at
-first only on aiding Max, but with wider ambition by and by--founded
-and maintained her prosperous club, the Woodend Society of Altruists.
-
-“I hope the name is fine enough,” remarked Austin critically.
-
-“You don’t think it sounds priggish?” inquired Frances in alarm. “It’s
-what the Haversfield girls called their club, and I thought we might
-just copy.”
-
-“Of course, it’s a first-rate name,” declared Max kindly.
-
-“What are Altruists?” asked in humble tones a small and rosy-cheeked
-boy.
-
-“They are only people who try to help others,” replied Frances; and
-this simple explanation, given with a gentle sincerity of voice and
-manner, seemed to satisfy everybody. Indeed, everybody present at a
-fairly representative meeting of the Woodend young folks became an
-Altruist on the spot.
-
-“What have we got to do?” said the rosy-cheeked boy anxiously.
-
-“Sign our names in the book of the Society and keep the rules,” said
-Florry Fane. “Frances must sign hers first, because she’s the founder
-of the club.”
-
-“Florry and I have written down the rules we thought might do,” said
-Frances modestly, “Florry is going to read them out, and then if any
-boy or girl will suggest improvements we shall be very much obliged.”
-
-But nobody wished to improve the excellent rules drawn up by Frances
-and Florry. The words in which the Altruist Code was expressed were
-few, and so well chosen that no careless member could pretend either to
-have forgotten or to have misunderstood.
-
-In becoming an Altruist everybody undertook to do his or her very
-best to lighten the loads of dwellers within or without the gates of
-happy Woodend homes. This was an ambitiously comprehensive scheme,
-but nothing less thorough would suit Frances and her allies. Nor did
-they intend that their new club should exist only on paper; and so
-their rules provided that by appropriate deeds alone could a continued
-membership be ensured.
-
-The boys and girls were so truly in want of a fresh sensation to give
-zest to their holiday hours that they were in some danger of riding
-their new hobby-horse to death. The Altruists grew in number and
-flourished exceedingly. They found their parents ready with approval
-and support; and when they had passed through an embryo stage of rash
-philanthropic excitement, they settled down into a capital club, whose
-motto of “Help Others” was something more than a vain boast. Of course
-the new Society must have funds--how otherwise provide for necessary
-outlay? Members loyally sacrificed a percentage of pocket-money, which
-was liberally reinforced--at the instigation of Mrs. Morland--by adult
-subscriptions. The mothers of young Altruists searched their cupboards
-for old linen, blankets, and clothing, wherewith to start the Society’s
-stores. The fathers promised that appeals for fruit and flowers should
-have their best consideration. Dr. Brenton sent word through Max that
-he would accept as a “gratis” patient any sick person tended and
-cared for by an Altruist. Mrs. Morland, well pleased that Frances
-should enjoy the prestige owing to a founder, sent for a carpenter, and
-desired him to make any alterations the children might order, with the
-view of rendering their playroom satisfactory Headquarters for their
-club.
-
-As soon as the Carlyons came home, Muriel was waited on by a deputation
-of her girls, who wanted her to be Honorary President of the Altruists.
-Miss Carlyon was very ready to agree, and to give Frances credit for a
-really bright idea.
-
-“I don’t see why your club shouldn’t do ever such great things for the
-Woodend poor folk,” declared Muriel warmly. “I shall be proud to be one
-of you, and so will my brother; and you must count on us for all the
-help we can give.”
-
-“Oh, Miss Carlyon!” said Frances shyly, “we thought perhaps we might
-just help _you_--a little.”
-
-“We’ll help each other, dear. And then we shall be Altruists among
-ourselves. I can assure you, I think, besides being useful, we shall be
-very jolly.”
-
-And so it proved. None of the club meetings were more spirited or
-more mirthful than those at which the Honorary President made her
-appearance; and the frequent presence of Edward Carlyon encouraged
-his boys to stand firmly by the Society, and to lose all fear that
-they were “benevolent prigs”, as they had been called by Jack Shorter.
-Jack was the only one of Carlyon’s boys who had possessed sufficient
-unamiability to remain outside the club. At last, finding himself
-sent to Coventry, Jack repented and became an embarrassingly active
-Altruist.
-
-When the Wood Bank schoolrooms opened their doors for the autumn
-term, it was discovered that the Carlyons intended their support to
-be anything but “honorary”. They had fitted up a large basement room
-as a workshop for various handicrafts, and there the boys and girls
-learned to make all sorts of things for the Society’s stores. Out of
-doors, a shed held all kinds of necessary tools, and the young folks
-studied practical gardening, with intent to aid such villagers as might
-own neglected plots. Sewing-meetings produced a wonderful collection
-of garments, new and renovated, which helped to fill Frances’s
-clothing-cupboard. The juvenile choir and orchestra made free offers
-of their services; and lads and lassies with a talent for “reading and
-recitation” were in enormous request.
-
-Frances’s days were busy and happy. She enjoyed her school-work
-with Muriel Carlyon, a teacher of the class to which she had grown
-accustomed at Haversfield. Muriel’s system of teaching was not without
-originality; and her love of outdoor occupations hindered her from
-possessing the traditional characteristics of a blue-stocking. Her
-brother Edward was a muscular, well-built young Englishman, whose
-college triumphs had not prevented respectable attainments with scull
-and bat. The Carlyons took a lively interest in their pupils, whom they
-treated and trained with a success which would have astonished primmer
-pedagogues. Their boys and girls trooped to school together, and often
-measured wits or muscles in their class-rooms or their play-grounds.
-Thus their friendships were closer and more sympathetic than those of
-lads and lassies usually are. They learned to appreciate one another’s
-tastes and dispositions, and to sacrifice individual whims to the
-common good.
-
-Autumn drifted into winter with the coming of a bleak November.
-Football and hockey were in full swing in the playing-fields. The
-little ones had built their first snow-man; and the rubbing and oiling
-of skates followed careful studies of the barometer. The youngsters
-were now in some danger of forgetting the duties of their Society.
-Their time had suddenly assumed an incalculable value.
-
-It was at this stage of affairs that Max Brenton one day made his
-appearance at the door of the club-room, wherein sat Frances busily
-posting up the Society’s accounts.
-
-“If you please,” began Max in a great hurry, “may I have a blanket, two
-flannel petticoats, a three-year-old frock, and a pair of very large
-old boots?”
-
-Frances wrinkled her forehead. “I’m sorry we have no flannel petticoats
-left, owing to a great demand. I can manage the other things, except
-the boots. We are quite out of very large boots. Couldn’t one of you
-boys learn shoemaking?”
-
-“I fancy that would be a little rough on the village cobbler.”
-
-“But the cobbler will do nothing he is not paid for; and poor folks
-cannot always pay. It would be very useful to have a shoemaker of our
-very own. We could buy our leather and make it into enormous boots.
-Gentleman-boots are really hardly any good to us.”
-
-“That’s true. But, please, may I have the things? And I will try my
-best to persuade somebody to learn shoemaking.”
-
-Frances rose, and stepped thoughtfully towards her cupboard. Thence,
-after some searching, she extracted a tiny garment of crimson serge,
-warmly lined and neatly finished. To this she added two pairs of
-knitted socks of the same cheerful hue.
-
-“Oh, I say!” exclaimed Max, radiant. “May I really have these awfully
-swell things? You girls are bricks!”
-
-“You boys helped to buy the stuff. I’m glad you like the colour,”
-continued Frances graciously, “because at the last sewing-meeting of
-our Society we decided that for the future all the clothing we make
-shall be scarlet or crimson, if it can be. It was Florry Fane’s idea.
-She said it would be ‘the badge of all our tribe’. We shall be able to
-tell our pensioners the moment we see them. For instance, next time I
-meet the little child who is to have this frock, I shall think, ‘There
-goes an Altruist baby!’”
-
-“I see. And next time I come across a hoary old chap to whom you’ve
-given a crimson comforter, I shall say, ‘There goes an Altruist
-antediluvian!’”
-
-“Well,” laughed Frances, “suppose you do? You’ll allow that our colour
-is becoming. It’s bright and picturesque; and by and by, when we’ve
-given away lots of crimson things, think how gay Woodend will look.”
-
-“Oh, it will! As soon as a visitor reaches the favoured spot, he’ll
-cry, ‘Hullo! here’s an Altruist village!’”
-
-“I hope he may. Now, tell me whom these things are for, because I must
-put the names down in our clothing book.”
-
-Max, remembering certain private labours of his own, gazed in
-admiration at Frances’s neat records.
-
-“The frock is for Polly Baker, child of Joseph Baker, a dweller in
-Lumber’s Yard, and sometime a tiller of the fields.”
-
-Frances paused, her pen uplifted, and a serious expression on her face.
-
-“But, Max, Miss Carlyon says the Altruists oughtn’t to help people
-who won’t help themselves. That Joseph Baker is a lazy, selfish,
-good-for-nothing.”
-
-“I know the gentleman. You’ve described him mildly.”
-
-“And Mr. Carlyon has got him work over and over again, but he always
-loses it.”
-
-“No wonder, the drunken scamp!” muttered Max under his breath.
-
-“He is as bad as he can be.”
-
-“True, dear Madam Altruist. But that isn’t the fault of his daughter
-Polly, aged three.”
-
-“Still, if Baker finds he can get his children fed and clothed for
-nothing, he will go on spending all his money in that dreadful inn in
-Lumber’s Yard.”
-
-“He will go on doing that anyhow. Mr. Carlyon isn’t easily beaten, but
-he has given up Joseph Baker, Esquire. Meanwhile, Baker’s children
-would starve if it were not for charity. Frances, Polly is such a game
-little thing! You wouldn’t believe how she stands up to her brute of a
-father when she sees him ill-treat her mother. I’ve delivered her out
-of Baker’s clutches more than once.”
-
-Frances gazed at the speaker, her eyes widely-opened and horrified.
-
-“Max! You don’t mean he would hurt that baby?”
-
-“Wouldn’t he? Doesn’t he, if he gets the chance? He’s a--a--beast! Beg
-pardon!”
-
-“It’s fearful!” sighed Frances, pausing perforce on the threshold
-of the social problem which had risen before her. “He ought to be
-punished.”
-
-“He will be, when I’m big enough to thrash him,” murmured Max; and
-Frances turned a face flushed with sympathy to this chivalrous lad.
-“But don’t let us punish our Altruist baby.”
-
-“Oh, Max! When you wheedle--,” said the Altruist secretary, shaking
-her head. “Here are your things, and you must be responsible. Now, in
-return for your pleasant news about Baker, I’ll tell you something
-really nice. I have added up our funds, and I find we have quite a lot
-of money; so I am getting ready a list of ‘wants’, and to-morrow we
-will have a shopping expedition. We girls shall need large supplies
-of scarlet flannel and crimson serge to make into clothing for our
-Christmas presents. You boys are sure to require things for your
-workshops. We will take the pony-carriage and drive into Exham. As
-to-morrow will be Saturday, not many Altruists will care to leave the
-playing-fields; but you will come, won’t you, Max?”
-
-“If Dad doesn’t want me.”
-
-“And there will be Austin and Florry--four of us. You and Austin can
-get the things for your own work while Florry and I buy yards and yards
-of flannel and serge and calico.”
-
-“Will there be room for us boys in the trap coming home?” inquired Max
-meekly. “I’d like to know whether, if the cargo weighs down the pony,
-you mean to sacrifice us or the flannel?”
-
-“You, of course!”
-
-“Then I’d better bring provisions for camping out. There’s a fall of
-the barometer, and all the village weather-prophets tell me we are to
-have snow; besides, there’s some rough road between here and Exham.
-Look out for storms to-morrow, Frances! Now, I’ll be off with my booty.
-Baker sold to a fellow-cad the last frock I begged for Polly; but I’ll
-dare him to touch this beauty. Keep your eyes open, and they’ll be
-gladdened by the sight of the Altruist baby!”
-
-Max went away happy. All his father’s poor patients enjoyed his
-personal attentions, and not a few considered the Doctor’s son as good
-an adviser as the Doctor himself. Max tried to be discreet, but his
-boyish habit of telling the unvarnished truth to any village sneak or
-bully sometimes brought him into awkward predicaments.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER III.
-
-ADVENTURERS FOUR.
-
-
-Surely only youth and health would look forward with glorious
-anticipations to a five-mile drive on a bitter winter day, in a little
-open carriage!
-
-The four adventurous Altruists were certain they were going to enjoy
-themselves, and no sooner were they fairly on their way than they began
-to justify their own predictions. For the sake of extra excitement,
-they took it in turns to drive; but it was impossible for them to take
-it in turns to talk, so they all chattered at once. This did not help
-the driving, which was mixed in character. Nobody could quite tell, as
-the ribbons changed hands, what might be the next diversion; and, of
-course, this uncertainty was the best part of the fun. At last the pony
-settled, under the capable guidance of Florry, into a steady trot; and
-the Altruists settled, at the same propitious moment, into a steady
-discussion of their proposed Christmas feast for the Woodend villagers.
-
-This feast had been for some weeks under consideration at the Society’s
-meetings, and the arrangement of its details was far advanced. The
-Altruists intended that it should be a grand manifesto of their
-good-will to all the working-folk.
-
-“We are to have a present for everybody,” declared Austin loudly, “and
-we boys must do our share. I am making my third stool. No one can say
-that stools are not useful things in cottages.”
-
-“But they will not furnish a house,” objected Max; “and I want very
-badly a complete rig-out for a two-roomed shanty. I have a man on my
-list who was sold up last week by his Jew of a landlord--old Fenn. Poor
-Johnson was a decent chap, but when they turned him out he just went to
-the bad.”
-
-“He can’t have gone very far in a week,” remarked Austin, who had not
-taken kindly the allusion to his handiwork.
-
-“He went to Fenn’s Home Farm, and tried to burn the ricks. Fortunately
-he didn’t succeed; and when Dad heard he was to be taken up, we went
-and begged Johnson off. We’re going bail for him, that if they’ll let
-him alone he’ll keep straight; and Dad has got him some rough work in
-the gardens. But his wife and child had to go to the workhouse; and now
-the idea is to start them all afresh in one of Ventnor’s little places.
-They’ll want only a few things to begin with. What do you say, Frances?
-Shall we give him one of Austin’s stools for a Christmas-box?”
-
-“Something else as well,” said Frances, beaming on her ally.
-
-“I don’t mind making him an extra big stool, which might do for a
-table,” said Austin graciously.
-
-“Guy is mending-up some old chairs,” said Frances.
-
-“Mamma will let me have one of her patchwork-carpets,” said Florry.
-“She makes them out of odd pieces begged from friends, and they are
-quite warm and cheerful.”
-
-“Mrs. Temple offered me an old bedstead and bedding only the other
-day,” cried Frances. “How fortunate for poor Johnson! I’ll ask Mamma
-for a chest of drawers.”
-
-“And the Altruists as a body can easily produce a ‘harlequin’ set of
-plates and cups and dishes,” said Florry.
-
-“I have some spare pots and pans in my stores,” added Frances proudly.
-“I declare, Max, your friend sha’n’t wait till Christmas to set up
-housekeeping!”
-
-“You are all awfully kind,” said Max gratefully. The boy’s eyes were
-actually moist, and he hung his head; but in a moment had recovered
-sufficiently to shout in vigorous crescendo:
-
-“Your reins are crossed, Florry! Mercy on us, we’re in the ditch!”
-
-They were not quite there, thanks to the pony’s objections to lead the
-way. Rough pulled his head free indignantly, and was allowed to steer
-his own course in peace.
-
-The Altruist quartette presently arrived safely in Exham. Max, who was
-then the whip, made for a respectable inn, where the travellers left
-the much-enduring Rough to take a rest, while they attended to business.
-
-“Ladies, do we have the honour of accompanying you?” asked Austin, with
-a grand bow; “or do we go off on our own hook?”
-
-“As though we would take you two imps into shops with us!” said
-Frances. “Go and buy your things and we’ll get ours, then we can meet
-at Thorn’s and have tea. Thorn is our confectioner, and Mamma said we
-might order what we liked.”
-
-“Good for Mater,” chuckled Austin. “But in the meantime, can you girls
-really do without us?”
-
-“We’ll try to,” said Frances severely; “and mind you scamps keep out of
-mischief. Come on, Florry.”
-
-The girls linked arms and marched off, affecting the superior and
-independent airs so tantalizing to the best of boys. Max and Austin
-watched their departure with mischievous eyes.
-
-“They’re too cocky for anything,” declared Austin.
-
-“I believe they’ll buy up all the red stuff in Exham,” said Max.
-“Observe the lofty tilt of Florry’s head. Mark the aggressive decision
-of Frances’s step. They’ll conquer or die!”
-
-“I say, Max,” giggled irreverent Austin, “let’s tag on to them a bit.
-Our shopping won’t be a scrap of fun. We’ve just to leave an order at
-the timber-yard, and call in at the ironmonger’s for nails and screws
-and a few other things. Frances has disappeared into that big draper’s,
-and there goes Florry after her. Let’s get through our timber business,
-and then have a lark with the girls. We’ll make the counter-Johnnies
-sit up.”
-
-“Won’t Frances be wild?”
-
-“Not she!--come on, Max!” Away went the pair, arm in arm, with the
-mincing steps they intended as an imitation of their comrades’ sedate
-town manners.
-
-Frances could bear a good deal, but her soul quailed when her eyes
-lighted on the figures of the two boys stealing up the shop in
-the wake of a frock-coated person, of whom they had just inquired
-where they should discover “the young ladies who were buying up the
-establishment’s entire stock of red flannel”.
-
-“We have not yet finished our business,” remarked Austin, while he
-seated himself with easy grace on an offered chair; “but we could not
-resist peeping in as we passed to see how you girls were getting on.”
-
-“We have not finished either,” said Frances, regarding her brother’s
-demure face uneasily. “We have bought our crimson serge and our calico,
-but we still want scarlet flannel and red knitting-wool. Also tapes,
-buttons, hooks, cottons, and needles.”
-
-“I have bought a bradawl and a pound of French nails,” said Austin
-gravely. “I am yet in need of a yard-measure, a few miles of string,
-some boot-buttons, a shaving-strop, and a packet of tin-tacks.”
-
-“For my part,” said Max, “I require a lawn-mower, a type-writer, a
-bottle of blacking, and a pork-pie.”
-
-“With these few necessaries,” added Austin, “we hope to complete the
-persecuted Johnson’s start in housekeeping. And--Timbuctoo! I’d nearly
-forgotten his wife’s mangle!”
-
-“A stool and a blanket to be thrown in promiscuous,” said Max; “and a
-few yards of crimson stuff for a table-cover would be received with
-thanks. Ah! and we have secured a very nice jam-pot for an ink-bottle.
-Further suggestions gratefully acknowledged.”
-
-“When you boys try to be funny the result is sad,” said Frances,
-feeling her dignity compromised by the mirth on the cadaverous
-countenance of the shop-assistant, who had left off serving her in
-order to appreciate the young gentlemen’s sallies. “Come, Florry,”
-continued the ruffled damsel, “let’s try Mason’s for the flannel: Miss
-Carlyon said it was good there.”
-
-The petrified assistant, seeing that the stern eyes of a superior
-hard-by were fixed on him, glanced appealingly at the boys, but Miss
-Morland kept sedately on her path to the door.
-
-“Won’t he get a wigging!” laughed unrepentant Austin, following humbly
-in the rear. “I say, Max, this establishment will lose the Altruist
-custom. I back Mason’s for scarlet flannel!”
-
-But Max was inclined to think the joke weak, and positively refused to
-peril the receipts of the draper across the road. Instead, he dragged
-off Austin to transact legitimate business; and the ironmonger had the
-benefit of their wit and wisdom for the next few minutes.
-
-The girls were chattering briskly as they came out of Mason’s.
-
-“It was a splendid bargain,” declared Frances, who, as an administrator
-of charity funds, had taken her first lessons in economy. “Fifty yards
-of scarlet flannel for fifty shillings! Did you see what a heap more
-they had of it? The man said it was ‘a manufacturer’s stock’.”
-
-“I love manufacturers’ stocks!” ejaculated Florry.
-
-“So do I, when they’re Altruist flannel,” said Frances fervently. “Now
-we had better go to meet the boys at Thorn’s. Poor boys! they have had
-no delicious bargains. Perhaps it is a little dull buying nails. I wish
-I hadn’t been huffy with Austin; boys hate prim, fussy sisters. I’ll
-tell you what, Florry, we’ll make it up to the poor things. We shall
-get first to Thorn’s, and we’ll order all the goodies they like best.
-Max prefers jam-sandwiches, and Austin likes méringues; and they’re
-both fearfully fond of very plummy cake. Thorn’s cake is capital.”
-
-The girls walked on rapidly, and made, as they went, plans for the
-sumptuous entertainment of the boys.
-
-“We’ll heap coals of fire on their heads,” said Florry. “They will be
-torn by an anguished repentance. Here we are. Look at those lovely
-chocolates in the window!”
-
-“Let’s have loads of chocolates.”
-
-“I like chocolate-almonds the best,” said Florry pensively; “they are
-superb.”
-
-“The boys like toffy and hardbake and Turkish-delight. Do you know,
-Florry, I read in a tiresome book that the real Turkish-delight isn’t
-a bit like the English one! Wasn’t it horrid of the author to say so?
-I’ve never really enjoyed it since.”
-
-“It was cruel.”
-
-“And both Max and Austin love Scotch shortbread.”
-
-“Perhaps Scotch shortbread isn’t a bit like the English.”
-
-“It isn’t,” said Frances contemptuously; “but you can get the real
-thing at Thorn’s. Let’s go in. I don’t see the boys anywhere, so we
-shall have time to order a beautiful tea for them--jam-sandwiches, and
-méringues, and plummy cake, and shortbread, and toffy, and hardbake,
-and Turkish-delight. Oh! and Bath-buns and gingerbread. I should like a
-little bread-and-butter. The boys think it is not worth while to have
-any bread-and-butter when they are out for a lark.”
-
-Frances pushed open the glass door and entered. “Florry,” she
-whispered, “do make haste into the side-room and secure the nicest
-table. Stay! I’ll come too; and if we lay a few parcels down nobody
-will steal our chairs. We must have the table next the window, it’s
-such fun watching the carriages and people in the street. We can come
-back to do our ordering.”
-
-The girls advanced boldly to take by storm (if necessary) the chosen
-spot.
-
-“Oh! I say! What--!”
-
-The most popular table in Thorn’s private tea-room was already
-occupied. On two of the four chairs in front of it sat Max and Austin,
-bolt upright, their countenances wearing an expression of almost
-seraphic calm. The table was covered with good things. The girls
-looked, and saw jam-sandwiches, méringues, plum-cake, shortbread,
-Bath-buns, gingerbread, and a little--a very little--bread-and-butter.
-Glass sweetmeat dishes contained chocolate-creams, chocolate-almonds,
-toffy, hardbake, and Turkish-delight. Max mounted guard over a laden
-tea-tray.
-
-No sooner did they behold the astonished faces of their comrades than
-the boys rose, and with their finest company manners offered the best
-places to the girls.
-
-“Ladies,” said Austin, “we hurried here that we might have time to
-order a most beautiful tea for you. We have done our utmost. You
-see before you all the goodies you like best; and we have not even
-forgotten that Frances has a weakness for bread-and-butter.”
-
-“Or that Florry adores chocolate-almonds.”
-
-“We wished to show you,” said Austin, “that we bear no malice.”
-
-“We wished,” said Max, “to heap coals of fire on your heads.”
-
- * * * * *
-
-The November day had drawn on to dusk before Frances could persuade
-herself and the others that it was time to start for home. The boys
-were despatched to fetch the pony-carriage, and requested to call on
-their way back for the biggest parcels, which would be awaiting them
-at the drapers’ shops. Frances and Florry summoned a smiling waitress,
-and asked her to fill some bags with the numerous goodies left from the
-feast.
-
-“For the boys are sure to be hungry again before we reach home,” said
-Frances. “Snow has been falling for the last hour; and we shall have to
-drive cautiously along the country lanes, they are so dark. And poor
-Rough is not properly shod for the snow yet.”
-
-The girls, with their bags and parcels, were standing ready at the door
-of the confectioners, and looking out with amused and interested faces
-as the boys drove up.
-
-“I say,” cried Max, “it’s a good thing we brought lots of rugs and
-wraps--we’re in for a storm.”
-
-“Really a storm, Max?” inquired Frances, feeling that she ought to
-provide prudence for the party. “Do you think we shall get home all
-right with just Rough? Oughtn’t we to leave him here and hire a proper
-horse and carriage from the hotel?”
-
-“It might be safer,” admitted Max, “but it would be awfully slow.”
-
-“I’m going to drive Rough,” said Austin promptly, “come with me who
-will.”
-
-“I will,” cried Florry, whose eyes sparkled at the prospect of the
-mildest adventure.
-
-“I’ll go with Frances,” said Max quietly.
-
-“We’ll all go together,” decided Frances, satisfied with her virtuous
-suggestion. “Max had better drive, though; he knows the roads so well.”
-
-The four packed themselves and their parcels tightly into the trap.
-Rough was already tossing his head in disgust with the rapidly-falling
-snow-flakes, which were driven by a bitter north wind into his eyes and
-ears, half-blinding him, and tickling him unpleasantly. The boys had
-proposed that the girls should take the front seat, because they would
-then have the wind behind them; but Frances insisted on giving her
-place to Austin, who was subject, when he caught cold, to a bad kind of
-sore throat.
-
-The snow, which in the streets of Exham partially melted on the ground,
-already lay thickly on the country roads, where it froze as it fell.
-The pony-carriage had hardly turned into the narrow lanes leading in
-the direction of Woodend before the youngsters found that the storm,
-prophesied by Max, was on them. The snow was hurled at their heads by a
-cutting blast, which flung the heavy white flakes into deep drifts at
-the sides of the roads most exposed to it. The pace had to be very slow
-and the driving very careful; but Max’s attention was lured from his
-duty as charioteer when the merry talk of his companions invited him to
-join their discussions. The quartette were still warm and cosy among
-their rugs, and they were enjoying the faint trace of danger which gave
-zest to their adventurous journey.
-
-Rough was not enjoying himself at all. The boys had strapped a small
-blanket over him, but this was not much of a protection from a winter
-storm. At length he came to a full stop at the foot of a hill, which he
-greatly objected to tackle with a carriage-load behind him. The young
-people took the hint, and sprang out. They were in a sheltered road,
-with trees overhead; but half-way up the hill some branches, brittle
-with frost, were snapped by the gale and blown down into the lane. One
-of the boughs struck Frances, another fell on Rough. Neither girl nor
-pony was hurt, but both might have been.
-
-“Hallo!” called out Max, “that was no joke! I have known serious
-accidents from falling branches. We had better avoid these lanes
-bordered by great trees, and choose the more open roads. You know there
-are two ways to Woodend. The one by Rowdon Common is a little further
-round, but it will be safer both for Rough and for us.”
-
-“Then we’ll take it,” said Frances; “for though you might get on all
-right without me if another bough came in my direction, I don’t know
-how you would manage without Rough.”
-
-They climbed the rest of the hill, and then again settled themselves
-in the trap. A little further on, Max took the turning whence he could
-guide Rough home by the longer route. And now troubles began to descend
-on our Altruists. First, Rough turned sulky, and tried to loiter,
-refusing to respond heartily even when the whole quartette shouted
-encouragement; because he knew very well the quickest route to Woodend.
-Next, the carriage-candles began to flicker in a manner promising
-speedy extinction.
-
-“Goodness!” murmured Austin, when this second fact was obvious to the
-party. “The stable-boy told me the candles were very short, and wanted
-to put in new ones; but I was in such a hurry, I said they would just
-do.”
-
-There was a chorus of reproachful groans.
-
-“Suppose we put out one of the lights?” suggested sensible Florry. “If
-we burn the two separately, they’ll last longer.”
-
-Even this ingenious resource did not greatly prolong the time during
-which the pony and Max were able to see their way. When the second
-candle failed him, the driver pulled up, and peered forward into the
-darkness.
-
-“If you could see me, my friends,” he remarked ruefully, “you would
-notice that I am looking serious.”
-
-“Then perhaps it’s just as well that the light of your countenance has
-gone out with the candles, Max,” said Florry. “If you could see us, you
-would know that we are not particularly cheerful.”
-
-“Oh, come!” cried Austin, “let’s keep up our spirits somehow. What are
-you going to do, Max?”
-
-“Lead Rough!” laughed the other boy. “I ought to know ‘every foot
-of the ground’, as people say; but it’s only when folks are out in
-a blinding snowstorm on a pitch-dark evening that they discover the
-shakiness of their geography. However, I know we must soon turn to the
-right, and then keep on straight up another hill to Rowdon Common. Our
-road borders the Common for half a mile, and then branches off downhill
-again. Once we are clear of the Common, we shall be all right.”
-
-They were not to reach that condition very easily. Max led Rough
-onward, and found the necessary turning to the right; and along the
-uphill road the youngsters all walked, to lighten the pony’s burden,
-until Frances took alarm on Austin’s account. After much persuasion
-she induced the boy to get back into the trap, and Florry to go with
-him to spare his pride. She and Max trudged on side by side. Presently
-both observed that Rough showed signs of distress. Though close to
-the little animal they could hardly see him, but they could hear his
-laboured breathing.
-
-“Hallo! he is going rather lame,” said Max. “Surely he can’t have had
-a stone in his shoe all this time? We’ll stop and find out.... Why!
-this is worse than a stone--he has lost a shoe!”
-
-There was nothing to be done now, except to let the pony go at his own
-pace, and keep him to the side of the road where the snow lay thinnest.
-At a very leisurely rate the party journeyed up the remainder of the
-hill, Rough stumbling badly every now and then.
-
-“Here we are, at last!” sighed Max, as the road again became level, and
-the increased severity of the storm, reaching them across the high,
-open country, told the travellers that they were on the edge of Rowdon
-Common. “We have a rough stone wall on one side of us now, and a pretty
-wide ditch on the other; so we must jog along carefully.”
-
-Max and Frances both decided to go on walking; and Florry, after
-whispering persuasions to Austin, joined them, in order to relieve
-Rough a little more.
-
-Poor Austin’s temper suffered from his indignation at this attempt
-on the girls’ part to “coddle” him. The liveliest recollections of
-his latest bad throat never sufficed to keep him out of danger if
-he possibly could get into it. Max and his companions just then
-halted for a moment under lee of the wall, intending to give Rough a
-breathing-time; and Austin, in a fit of impatience, seized the reins as
-they hung loose, and tugged them heedlessly.
-
-The culprit’s ill-temper vanished as he and the trap and the pony
-swerved all together and turned clean over into the ditch, now
-half-covered by a deep drift. Frances and the others, in the better
-light of the open ground, saw the rapid movement of the little
-carriage, and for an instant held their breath; then peals of laughter
-from Austin assured them that he was safe, and the three rushed to the
-rescue.
-
-Austin pulled himself out of the snow, and wriggled from Frances’s
-grasp.
-
-“I’m all right, Sis; don’t worry! Damp? Oh, well, not particularly. I’m
-going to help Max to get Rough on his legs. This is rough on Rough,
-isn’t it? Ho, ho!”
-
-But Frances, who knew that her brother was something more than “damp”,
-could hardly speak. Her sufferings were far greater than the patient’s
-when Austin had quinsy; and she blamed herself bitterly for not
-insisting on the obviously prudent course she had suggested in Exham.
-A strong carriage and sturdy horse would long ago have conveyed the
-quartette safely to Woodend; and now here they were, up on the Common,
-exposed to the force of the storm, and with no prospect of speedy
-escape. Austin would be certain to take cold if his damp clothes were
-not soon dried. The poor pony, after his fall and fright, would surely
-be quite disabled.
-
-Indeed, Rough, when again on his feet, stood shivering and snorting,
-and positively refused to move further.
-
-“I’m afraid he’s used up,” said Max anxiously; “and I think--really I
-do--that we shall be in the same plight if we try to struggle against
-the storm. The wind is a perfect hurricane up here, and freezingly
-cold. Girls, I believe we had better spread our macintoshes on the
-snow, roll up in our rugs, and bivouac in the shelter of the wall. It
-is so low it will not protect us unless we squat on the ground.”
-
-The youngsters were all in agreement, and at once set to work to carry
-out Max’s plan. The macintoshes were spread, the carriage-cushions
-fetched to provide seats, the parcels were ranged to act as “cover” on
-the exposed side, rugs and wraps were dealt out to everybody, and the
-bags of “goodies” were thankfully seized. While Austin and the girls
-finished the camp, Max laid the thick skin carriage-mat along Rough’s
-back, fastened it round him with his own blanket, and led the pony
-close up to the wall.
-
-The buns and cakes were distributed by Frances, who had no heart to
-eat, but knew that moaning over Austin would not help him. He was
-wedged in tightly between the girls, and submitted like a lamb to be
-enveloped in wraps. Max took the outside place, and fed Rough with
-biscuits.
-
-In spite of all precautions, the little group grew colder and damper;
-in spite of the most energetic attempts at cheerfulness, their spirits
-sank lower. The storm showed no signs of abating. While the youngsters
-were slowly being forced to recognize that their position was not only
-uncomfortable but perilous, a strong though flickering light, as of a
-powerful lantern swayed by the wind, was seen approaching them along
-the road from the direction of Woodend. The four watched it with keen
-eagerness. It came nearer--came close. It was a lantern, indeed, fixed
-to the front of a great hooded waggon drawn by two powerful horses.
-
-The pony-carriage still lay half in, half out of the ditch. Max sprang
-to his feet and ran forward to warn the waggoner, who, having caught
-sight of the obstructions in his path, was already drawing up by the
-wall. The man was known to Max as a servant employed by a big farmer of
-the neighbourhood, and the boy lost no time in shouting to the amazed
-driver a cheery greeting and a peremptory demand for help out of his
-own dilemma. Not many words were needed. Job Benson recognized Max, and
-was quite willing to aid him and his companions.
-
-Max rushed back to the others.
-
-“Hurry, Austin! Up with you, girls! Here’s relief for the garrison at
-last! This waggoner is going to Rowdon Smithy before turning across
-country to his master’s farm; and he says he will take us as far as the
-smithy, where we shall get safe shelter until we’ve a chance to make
-our way home. We’ll tether Rough to the waggon, and the sight of his
-fellow-gees will encourage him to follow them. We must leave the trap
-in the ditch till to-morrow. Now let’s make haste, or the horses won’t
-stand.”
-
-Rugs and shawls and bundles were grasped by the willing hands of the
-rescued travellers. Into the great waggon and its welcome shelter
-climbed the girls and boys as best they could, while the good-natured
-driver offered everybody a helping hand and heartily bade the whole
-troop welcome.
-
-“I know the old man at the smithy,” said Max to his comrades, “and I’m
-sure he’ll give us a rest and a warm. Dad’s attending him just now;
-nothing much wrong but old age, you know. His name is William East, and
-he has a grandson, Jim, who is no end of a nice chap.”
-
-The waggon followed a road across the Common for a time, and then,
-turning down a lane to lower ground, touched one of the country roads
-to Exham. Standing level with the road, a little back among a group of
-trees, were the cottage and outbuildings of Rowdon Smithy.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER IV.
-
-ROWDON SMITHY.
-
-
-Though the four youngsters fancied that they had been wandering for
-hours in the cold and darkness, the time of their relief was early in
-the evening. Work was not yet over for somebody at the smithy. The
-forge was set up in a large building, which looked a sort of superior
-shed, open on the side next to the road, and with a paved court, worn
-by the tread of many horses, in front of it. Gazing across the unwalled
-court to the open shed, Frances saw in the brilliant light of the
-smithy fire a young man busily engaged with hammer and anvil; his tall,
-slight figure, in rough working dress, bent and raised with almost
-mechanical precision as his supple right arm swung its ponderous tool.
-When the lumbering waggon halted before the court, the worker paused in
-his labour, throwing back his head and screening his eyes with his free
-left hand, to gain a better view of the arrival. The waggoner called
-out a hasty summons, and the young smith left his forge and quickly
-crossed the yard.
-
-“Anything wrong, Job?”
-
-The lad’s voice was clear and soft, and his speech, though rustic in
-expression, conveyed no trace of dialect; while his face, now plainly
-visible in the lantern’s glow, appeared a singularly pleasant one. Its
-attraction increased when Max’s lively countenance was thrust forward
-by its owner, and when Max shouted a gay greeting.
-
-“Hallo, Jim!--Jim East! Look out for a sensation! Here’s a snowed-up
-party of four humans and one animal come to beg help and shelter!”
-
-Max had jumped down and was pouring out explanations in a moment. The
-young smith listened and looked, and shyly doffed his cap, standing
-bare-headed in the driving snow while his eyes rested in astonishment
-on the figures of the two girls.
-
-“The little ladies!” murmured Jim; “they’ve never been with you, Master
-Brenton?”
-
-“Haven’t they, though! They’ve found out what a snowstorm on Rowdon
-Common means, I can tell you. But I’m afraid they are very cold and
-tired,” added Max seriously. “I was beginning to think it was all up
-with us when I first caught sight of Job. Well, Jim, will you help us?”
-
-“Surely!” exclaimed the lad.
-
-Though evidently bashful, Jim East had nothing clownish about him.
-His manner showed a simple courtesy which pleased and reassured the
-girl-travellers, as he stepped close to the waggon and held up his
-strong, lithe arms.
-
-“Come, Missies, let me lift you down, and show you the way to
-grandfather’s cottage. ’Tis but a step; and our old Elizabeth, if she’s
-there, shall wait on you. You’ll be sorely stiff with the terrible
-cold.”
-
-The girls willingly accepted the young smith’s offered aid, and were
-placed with gentle care at Max’s side.
-
-“Young master too?” suggested Jim, seeing Austin still above him.
-
-“Oh, I can get down all right,” said Austin, not too civilly. Austin
-did not appear to advantage when brought by circumstances into contact
-with the class he chose to term “cads”. “Here, you chap, just catch
-this baggage, will you? We’ve no end of traps. I’ll throw them down.”
-
-Frances blushed with sisterly mortification--why would Austin be so
-rude and snobbish to this worthy young artisan? Surely Jim East was
-a type of those whose humble toil was the crown of honest manhood.
-Certainly Austin was not a model member of the Woodend Society of
-Altruists. But glancing apprehensively at young East, lest her
-brother’s imperious commands should make him surly and indignant,
-Frances saw that the lad’s countenance revealed nothing but frank
-good-nature. He gave Austin a smiling reply, and would have obeyed him
-without question, had not Max laid a hand on his arm.
-
-“Not a bit, Jim! I’ll see to the baggage. Do you get the girls under
-cover as quickly as you can, there’s a good fellow.”
-
-Jim turned to Frances and Florry.
-
-“You’ll come with me, then, Missies? Master Brenton knows the way.”
-
-A few paces along the road a low hedge began. This bordered a long,
-narrow, old-fashioned garden, cut vertically in precise halves by a
-flagged pathway reached through a small green gate. Jim opened the
-gate for the girls, and led them towards a cottage lying back from the
-road at the end of the garden.
-
-Frances, with Florry immediately behind her, stepped gladly into the
-light and shelter of a long passage with a door at either end. Another
-door, in the wall on their right, was pushed open by the young smith,
-whose dark eyes glowed with pleasure as he spoke softly to someone
-within:
-
-“Grandfather, here’s little ladies for you--two little ladies! They’ve
-been like to have lost themselves in the storm, so Master Brenton’s
-been telling me. They’ll be best to come in here--eh, grandfather? And
-maybe they’ll warm themselves with you, till I fetch Elizabeth to wait
-on them.”
-
-Jim stood on one side, his happy excitement controlled by an
-instinctive wish to be quiet and unobtrusive in the company of young
-gentlefolk. The two girls, with ready thanks on their lips, passed
-by their conductor into a fair-sized room furnished with much homely
-comfort, and saw in an arm-chair by the fire an old man, whose fine
-head, with its massive forehead, keen eyes, and firm mouth, denoted
-strength of will and individual character. William East’s silvery locks
-were quick to command the respect of the two girls, who stepped slowly
-towards their aged host.
-
-“Elizabeth has gone home, grandson,” said East, speaking in a quavering
-voice which still retained a note of decision and authority, as
-towards one who had been taught prompt obedience. “So you will wait on
-the little ladies yourself. Chairs to the fire for them, Jim,--and
-off with their boots. Then you’ll make some hot, strong coffee, and
-see you’re quick with it. These are not the kind as needs to lose
-themselves in snowstorms.” East turned his face to the girls, and
-it softened wonderfully, while he addressed them in very different
-tones: “Come near to the fire, Missies, and tell me all about it. Why,
-you both look fairly spent. There, there, dearies--the recklessness
-one sees in young folk! But sit you down, and be sure you’re kindly
-welcome.”
-
-“You’re very good,” said Frances gratefully. “I don’t know why you
-should be troubled with all of us boys and girls. There are four of us,
-Mr. East,--and a pony. We’ve left the carriage somewhere in the snow.
-I’m afraid we’re a great bother, but you must please try not to let us
-worry you;--Max Brenton has been telling us that you aren’t very well
-just now, and I’m so sorry.”
-
-Frances’s sympathy was sure of appreciation--it was so earnest and
-sincere, and expressed with the simplest good-will. Old East greeted it
-with many nods and smiles, and beckoned Frances to the chair nearest to
-himself. Indeed, he was amazingly pleased to see this bright young lady
-by his side.
-
-Jim waited deftly on both the girls, taking off their wet boots and
-coats, and trying to rub some feeling back into their half-frozen feet.
-Next he went away with the boots into the kitchen, and set about making
-coffee in his best style.
-
-Meanwhile Frances and Florry made great friends with the ailing
-grandsire.
-
-“I must tell you our names,” said Frances presently, when the boys
-had joined the group in the cottage parlour. “Of course you know the
-Doctor’s son--everybody knows Doctor Max.”
-
-“Ay, he’s his father’s son truly--I can’t say better for him than that.”
-
-“And the boy beside him is my brother Austin. Then this is Miss Florry
-Fane, the best of girls; and I am Frances Morland.”
-
-The old man leaned forward suddenly, and seemed to scan the speaker’s
-face with a curious intentness.
-
-“Morland, did you say, my dear? Ah! once I knew someone with that name.
-Does your father live here-abouts?”
-
-“My father is dead. Austin and I live with our mother in Woodend; but
-we have not been here long--only since the spring.”
-
-Frances talked on easily and quietly, fearing to disturb East, who,
-with his face turned from her, gazed into the fire. One hand he
-held across his eyes; the other, which rested on his knee, trembled
-a little. For a time he sat thus, hardly speaking, yet evidently
-listening with interest and pleasure to all the young girl cared to
-tell him. When she did hear his voice, it addressed her in quavering
-gentleness:
-
-“And you’ve come to see me, Missy,--you, so blithe and bonnie! The
-Lord Himself sent you this night to gladden my old eyes. Ah! but I’m
-thankful--I’m thankful! Will you remember, little Missy, when I’m gone
-hence, as your coming brought a blessing with it to Rowdon Cottage?”
-
-[Illustration:
-
-M432
-
-“THE OLD MAN LEANED FORWARD SUDDENLY TO SCAN THE SPEAKER’S FACE.”]
-
-Frances, moved by this appeal, and somewhat shy--for the aged face
-near her was quivering, and the aged voice faltered and broke--put her
-small hand trustfully on East’s wasted fingers.
-
-“I am glad we came; and you are very kind. Mayn’t I come and see you
-sometimes, with Max?”
-
-“Rarely welcome would you be, little Missy,” said the old man,
-brightening. “And there’s something I’d say. If ever my Jim needs
-kindness, as like enough he may, will you try to be good to him?”
-
-“Oh yes, I will,” said Frances soberly, knowing that East’s thoughts
-were anticipating his nearing end and his grandson’s consequent
-loneliness.
-
-“Jim’s one to think much of kindness from little ladies,” continued the
-grandfather wistfully. “I fancy, maybe, as I’ve not done well by him.
-’Twas my wish to bring him up strong and sturdy and independent; for,
-as a wean even, the boy was gentle and soft, and fond of daintiness.
-That’s why I made him a smith by trade. Thought I, ‘He’ll learn
-hardness as he stands by the forge and bends the iron to his will’. But
-no, Jim’s craft will never make a man of him.”
-
-“That’s a pity,” said the consoling voice of Max, who had drawn near.
-“A fellow ought to match his trade. My trade’s doctoring,--at least
-it’s going to be; so I don’t miss a chance of practice. It’s not often
-I get a really good thing, though. Still, all my chums have promised
-that if they break an arm they’ll let me set it.”
-
-Max, with his cheery laugh, could dispel most shadows, but East’s
-thoughtful gravity did not disappear. Frances was drawn across the room
-by the fragments she caught of a conversation between her brother and
-the young blacksmith, and East’s eyes followed her and watched all her
-movements.
-
-Jim was begging Austin to come to the kitchen and be swathed in
-blankets while his clothes were drying. Not that the working lad would
-have thought much of being in a yet damper condition than was his
-boy-guest, but he had heard Frances confide to his grandfather her
-fears for her brother.
-
-“Do now, young master, do!”
-
-“Catch me!” retorted Austin, more bored than angry; “I’m not such a
-soft. Clear off, I say, Jim East. I tell you, I won’t be coddled.”
-
-“Better take a bit of care than lie abed,” argued Jim sensibly. “And
-Missy’s feared for you, sir.”
-
-“Girls always fuss,” muttered the boy, growing cross. He pushed aside,
-with unmannerly roughness, young East’s detaining hand, and was making
-for the fireside when Frances intercepted him.
-
-“Oh, Austin, how can you be so rude?” whispered the girl reproachfully.
-“Do go with this good-natured lad,” she pleaded. “You know how dreadful
-it is when you get a bad throat.”
-
-“As though I’d loaf about his dirty old kitchen and be rolled up in
-smithy blankets!” said Austin, in extreme disgust.
-
-He spoke low, but Frances knew that Jim must hear, and she coloured
-deeply in her distress. Her brother’s over-fastidiousness on some
-points always made her impatient, but now she felt that he was both
-foolish and ungrateful in repelling kindly advances. She allowed Austin
-to pass, and throw himself on the rug before the fire at Florry’s feet;
-then she turned to Jim, again apprehensive that his feelings might
-have been hurt by his guest’s unmannerly words and ungracious bearing.
-
-Jim’s eyes were on Austin; Jim’s lips smiled as, without a touch of
-jealousy, he recognized in the handsome, attractive boy the evidence of
-the better training and opportunities denied to himself.
-
-“Boys are always so tiresome, aren’t they?” said Frances, seeing with
-relief that Jim’s face betrayed no sense of injury. “My brother won’t
-be taken care of, you see; though I’m sure if he does have a sore
-throat, he won’t like it.”
-
-“Oh, I hope he won’t be ill, Missy,” said Jim. “He looks so--so game,
-and happy-like. I’d think it wasn’t easy to coddle him.”
-
-“It isn’t,” said Frances soberly; “and I don’t want him to be a
-molly--only I wouldn’t like him to be ill again. I’m ever so much
-obliged to you for offering to help him.”
-
-“You’ve no call to thank me, Missy. It wouldn’t have been much to do.
-The pony’s safe in the shed,” added the young smith shyly; “I’ll give
-him a rub down and a feed by and by.”
-
-“You are good,” said Frances. “Oh, do you think there’s any chance of
-getting home to-night? All our friends will be so anxious if we don’t
-return till morning, though it’s very kind of your grandfather to say
-we may camp here.”
-
-“Indeed and you mustn’t worry, Missy,” said Jim. “Sometimes there’s
-folks passes here much later than this; and if you’d not mind mounting
-into a waggon again--”
-
-“We wouldn’t mind a bit. I can’t think what Mamma will do if she hears
-nothing about us till morning.”
-
-Jim’s young face looked very serious, but he offered no further
-comfort; and Frances, feeling that her low spirits might become
-infectious, tried to divert her mind by asking leave to look at a
-book-case against the wall near at hand. While she looked, and wondered
-a little at the class of books she found on the shelves, Jim fetched
-her a cup of hot coffee and placed it on a small table by her side.
-Frances was used to the companionship and natural attentions of
-well-bred lads, but it struck her that none of her boy-friends could
-have shown her more courteous respect than she was now receiving from
-this pleasant young rustic.
-
-“Jim,” said the voice of the old grandfather, “fetch your fiddle, lad.
-Maybe the young folks might like to hear a tune.”
-
-Austin grimaced expressively behind his hands, but only Max saw, and
-Max joined the girls in polite invitations to blushing Jim. The fiddle
-was brought from another room, and its owner, seating himself modestly
-in a dark corner, begged to know what tune the little ladies would like
-best. Florry, guessing that the performer’s repertory might be limited,
-suggested “Home, Sweet Home”.
-
-Then Jim surprised his audience, for though his rendering was entirely
-simple, it showed an ear for rhythm, a taste for expression, and an
-unerring correctness of pitch.
-
-“He does play in tune,” murmured Austin the critic, while the other
-children thanked the fiddler heartily.
-
-Jim coloured with gratification to find himself approved, and willingly
-obliged his guests with all their favourite popular airs. By the time
-he had satisfied everybody the evening had worn far on; and Jim,
-yielding his fiddle into the hands of Austin, who longed to finger
-the instrument of his fellow-musician, went to hold a low-voiced
-consultation with his grandfather.
-
-The result of this talk was the summoning of Frances to consider a plan
-of action, as proposed by the Easts.
-
-“My grandson fears there’s no chance now of a way home for you
-to-night, Missy. The snow is too deep for any wise man to take a
-beast into without necessity. I’m thinking ’twere best if you settled
-yourselves down quiet-like, took a bit of supper, and made the best of
-what I can give you. There’ll be a tidy room upstairs for the missies,
-and the young masters will sleep soundly on yonder big couch. ’Tis all
-I can do.”
-
-“Indeed, you are very kind,” said Frances. “Of course we shall do
-splendidly. It’s only because of our friends that we mind. My mother is
-all alone--except for servants,--and she will be so frightened. Then
-there are Florry’s parents, and the Doctor.”
-
-“You’re right to think of them, Missy,” said the old man, whose eyes
-seemed to shine with a sort of solemn joy when they rested on Frances.
-“And ’twould never do to let them go in fear all night. They’d be out
-scouring the country, like as not. There’s Jim will set out for Woodend
-just as soon as he can get ready; and he’ll let your friends know
-you’re safe and well, and waiting here till sent for.”
-
-“Jim cross the Common to-night!” cried Max, coming forward as
-spokesman for the visitors. “Oh, I say, Mr. East! How could he?”
-
-“We mustn’t let him,” said Frances. “I’m sure we oughtn’t to.”
-
-“I could go myself rather,” went on Max seriously. “It isn’t fair that
-Jim should suffer for my foolery. I ought to have backed up Frances
-when she wanted to hire a trap in Exham.”
-
-“That’s over and done with, master,” said East, “and it’s no use to
-spend your time blaming yourself for what was just a bit of a frolic.
-Jim will go, he’s tall and strong and hardy.”
-
-Frances looked at the grandson’s slight figure and sensitive face. Jim
-was healthily spare and wiry, but hardly robust. And he must be all
-in all to his grandfather--the prop of the little home. Her sense of
-justice made her beg hard that the venturesome journey to Woodend might
-not be made; but both the Easts, though they tried to reassure their
-anxious young guests, had evidently made up their minds.
-
-“Elizabeth--our old housekeeper--lives quite close at hand,” said Jim
-to the girls. “I shall pass her cottage, and I’ll bid her come to you,
-Missies, and see to your comfort as well as she can.”
-
-The girls insisted that they needed no waiting-woman, but Jim smiled in
-respectful disagreement while he wished them good-night. The room door
-closed softly behind him, and the grandfather, pitying the disturbed
-young faces, told their owners not to fret, for Jim would surely come
-safely back from Woodend, though not till long after they were a-bed
-and asleep.
-
-The snowstorm which had brought with it to our youngsters so great an
-adventure was the talk of the countryside for many a week. The roads
-about Exham were impassable for some days, except to sturdy rustics or
-stout farm-horses. Dr. Brenton came to the smithy next day in a great
-waggon (just like Job Benson’s rescuing ark), which he had borrowed
-from a Woodend farmer; and with hearty thanks to the Easts, and warm
-acknowledgments of Jim’s pluck and consideration, carried off the
-wanderers to their homes.
-
-“We should like to come again, if we may,” said Frances, lingering by
-the old grandfather for a second farewell.
-
-“Ay,” he returned, pressing the girl’s kind little hand. “I’m glad I’ve
-seen you, Missy. Come again.”
-
-“Please!” added Jim from the background. “We’ll be proud to have you,
-Missy. Come again.”
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER V.
-
-DOCTOR MAX.
-
-
-The Society of the Altruists was very busy indeed. The Christmas
-entertainment to which allusion has been made was a project of Frances
-Morland’s, who, among her other qualifications for the public service,
-possessed the gift of diplomacy. She was sincerely anxious to help
-others, and to enlist her friends in the generous enterprise; but she
-knew that the boys and girls of Woodend were no different from their
-fellows, and therefore liable to sink gradually into a condition of
-lukewarmness about any scheme which did not make a constant appeal to
-their active interest. The lack of some fillip to stir up the young
-people’s energies had already brought about the destruction of numerous
-undertakings in Woodend which had made a gallant start, and Frances was
-determined to save her Society from such an untimely fate.
-
-Everybody was pleased with the prospect of giving an entertainment in
-which everybody might play some part. The guests were to be the poor of
-Woodend, and the festivity was to take place two days before Christmas.
-Frances suggested this date as best suited to the guests, who would
-doubtless like to parade some, at least, of the Altruist presents at
-their own home-gatherings of Christmas-day. Christmas-eve was not a
-possible feast-day, because the Carlyons liked their pupils to join in
-the carol-singing after the evening service, and the service itself was
-one which the young people seldom cared to miss. Then there was so much
-to be done at home in the way of decorations and private plans.
-
-Therefore, many dwellers in the cottages of Woodend were looking
-forward expectantly to the twenty-third of December. Their excitement,
-however, was as nothing in comparison with that of the Altruists.
-Frances had made skilful division of her forces. Some were to act in a
-fairy play, written for the occasion by Florry Fane, who intended one
-day to astonish the world of literature; some were painting scenery,
-preparing “properties”, or making dresses for use in the play; some
-were practising solos, duets, and part-songs for the concert which was
-to precede the play in the evening’s programme. Then there were those
-whose souls inclined not to literature, drama, or music: to them fell
-the task of arranging the commissariat department, and the means of
-distributing gifts so as to please everyone.
-
-It was Saturday evening, in the second week of December. Up the
-straggling village road came, whistling cheerily, Max Brenton,--the
-“man of affairs”, as Florry had dubbed him. Max’s well-worn coat was
-buttoned closely, and his crimson comforter had been tied, with utter
-disregard for appearances, over his cap, so as to shield his ears.
-A bitter east wind blew about him, and as he went he swung his arms
-vigorously to aid his progress, and stamped his feet to resist the
-clinging snow.
-
-“Hope Dad has got home,” thought the boy fervently. “Old Carrots
-isn’t too lively, and this is a regular mucky night. Ugh, what slush!
-Freezing hard, too, now. I said that sudden thaw wouldn’t hold. Well,
-anything’s better than slush--for us. I’m afraid the ninety-year-olds
-and the babies will suffer.”
-
-The Doctor’s son trudged soberly on. He was fresh from the
-playing-fields, tired, cold, and hungry for the tea which ought to be
-waiting him. As he trudged, he hoped many things. That Janet had not
-forgotten to order Dad’s steak. That the dining-room lamp would not
-have gone out for the third time that week. That the fire would not
-have gone out to keep the lamp company. Janet was eccentric in her
-dealings with lamps and fires, and had a sort of general idea that
-Saturday was sacred to the service of the kitchen, and not to be wasted
-over trifling matters belonging to “the family’s” part of the dwelling.
-The Doctor and Max had been for a dozen years “the family” to whom
-Janet had consecrated her faithful labours. She had been already old
-when the Doctor had found her seated in dry-eyed despair beside the bed
-of her dead husband, and had forthwith bidden her to his home, whence
-the sole servant had departed to face the wedded life just over for
-Janet.
-
-Max had always taken Janet for granted, and had ceased to wonder
-why she never mended the holes in his stockings all at once. Janet
-preferred doing repairs in instalments.
-
-“For there may be a toe out here and there, and there may not, Master
-Max,” she would observe; “and small odds is it about maybe a toe. But
-it’s heels I was at last mending-night, and it’s heels you’ll find
-darned solid.”
-
-Much anxious study of the mystery which doth hedge a needle made Max at
-last independent of Janet’s darning. Not to vex the poor old lady, he
-quietly supplemented her labours with personal industry; and when Janet
-did heels he did toes. Buttons he regarded as a trifle, and even a
-patch--if no longer to be avoided by care and ingenuity--was not beyond
-his utmost skill.
-
-Max had graver anxieties than darning. There were, for instance, the
-money-box and the account-books.
-
-The Doctor’s income was not to be accurately anticipated, but its
-highest possible total never cost Max much labour in the way of
-sending in bills. There were so many “gratis” patients. Some were too
-poor to pay save in thanks; some were old friends, whom the Doctor
-could not endure to serve except for love alone. When those patients
-who could pay remembered to do so, the Doctor cashed their cheques and
-put the change into the money-box--leaving out only a fixed sum, which
-went to a fund called by Max “Examinations”, and intended to provide
-for his medical studies by and by. It was a great grief to the Doctor,
-and therefore to Max, when inroads had to be made into this fund in
-order to pay the tradesmen’s weekly books. Dread of such a necessity
-made the darkest hour of Saturday that which Max gave to the family
-exchequer. His face always wore a portentous solemnity when he raised
-the lid of the money-box.
-
-The Doctor’s home was an odd little crib standing far back from the
-road at the very top of a long garden. Alongside of the house was a
-one-stalled stable and coach-house combined, with a paved square before
-it and a side-door opening into a lane. Carrots, the Doctor’s ancient
-steed, was of the nondescript red colour which had suggested to Max
-his name, and consequently might be seen afar off; a fact that added
-greatly to his popularity with poor patients anxiously on the look-out
-for the Doctor. For years the Doctor had trudged afoot on his messages
-of healing; but a small legacy from a wealthy cousin had sufficed for
-the building of the stables and for the purchase of Carrots and the
-trap. The Doctor had friends in Woodend who gladly would have made him
-the owner of a thoroughbred, a brougham, and a palatial coach-house;
-but there were limits beyond which a poor man’s pride permitted not the
-dearest friends to go.
-
-As Max neared his home he put his best foot forward--stepped more
-sturdily, whistled more cheerily. The lights he watched for had just
-come into view, when he caught the sound of a child’s sobbing somewhere
-in the darkness beyond.
-
-“Hallo! who’s there?--Hold hard, don’t run away! Why, Polly, it isn’t
-you?”
-
-A very tiny, choked voice replied:
-
-“’Es, Mas’r Max.”
-
-“Gracious! Fancy your mother letting a mite like you be out this
-weather! What are you doing, Polly?”
-
-“Please, Muvver’s felled into the fire and frizzed--”
-
-“What?”
-
-Polly repeated her news among louder sobs.
-
-“And Muvver said: ‘You go find Dokker’, and I comed.”
-
-“You brave little thing!” cried Max; and, stooping, he lifted the
-baby-girl into his arms. “‘Dokker’s’ out, Polly,--at least, I’m afraid
-he is.” Max had missed the light from the Doctor’s sanctum. “But come
-on, and we’ll see.”
-
-Max held Polly close, and ran, wondering meanwhile what tragedy
-had taken place in Lumber’s Yard. The yard was the poorest part of
-Woodend--a cluster of wretched cottages, the property, like most of the
-village, of Sir Arthur Fenn of Fencourt, the absentee lord of the manor.
-
-“How did Mother get hurt?” inquired Max.
-
-This query drew forth a rigmarole in baby-English, whence, by careful
-reasoning and shrewd deduction, Max gathered that Polly’s mother had
-rushed to the soothing of her youngest son, aged six months, had fallen
-across the wooden cradle and dropped against the grate. Whether or not
-the hurts were serious, of course the boy could not guess; but he knew
-the necessity for the speedy dressing of burns, and hurried on at his
-best pace.
-
-To save time, Max avoided the front door, and darted round to the
-back--a region where Janet reigned supreme. The kitchen door opened
-right into the yard, and at the door stood Janet, scolding Tim the
-stable-boy, who ought to have been out with the Doctor. Tim played
-truant occasionally--just by way of remembering that he was a boy. At
-the workhouse, where he had been brought up, he never had attempted to
-be anything but elderly.
-
-“Ah, Master Max,” cried Janet, “here you are, sir!--and here’s this
-young vagabond come back from his spree, which I’d make him pay dear
-for, if I’d my way--but there, the master--”
-
-“Never mind Tim just now, there’s a good soul. Is Dad back? Ah! I
-thought he wasn’t. Well, Janet, just take care of Polly for a bit, will
-you? I’ll have to snatch up a few things and go myself. I’m afraid Dad
-has been kept somewhere, or perhaps Carrots can’t get along. Goodness
-knows!”
-
-Max ran through the house to the surgery, shouting explanations while
-he went, while Janet packed Tim off in disgrace to the stables, and
-proceeded to bestow on Polly a share of her own tea. Presently Max came
-flying back with a small bag in one hand.
-
-“Keep Polly here for an hour, Janet,” the boy called out. “I’ll be back
-by then, and Tim can carry her home.”
-
-But the hour passed by and Max did not return.
-
-Down in Lumber’s Yard reigned a degree of excitement which seemed
-keenly enjoyed by the sharers in it. The news that Bell Baker had been
-burned to death was the first rumour, but this gradually modified
-itself into something approaching fact. Mrs. Baker was a decent woman,
-whom a bad husband kept in a condition of miserable poverty. It was on
-behalf of her little Polly that Max, some weeks earlier, had begged
-from Frances a “three-year-old frock”.
-
-The entry to Lumber’s Yard was by a narrow foot-path, and this Max
-found blocked up by a gesticulating group of women. The men were
-congregated in the yard itself--a three-sided court with tumble-down
-cottages round it.
-
-“’Ere’s Master Max!” was the general cry, as the boy ran up the path.
-
-“Out of the way, good folks,” cried Max authoritatively, and the women
-parted to let him through, then closed their ranks and followed in a
-body to the Bakers’ door. This Max unceremoniously pushed open,--and
-then as coolly shut and locked in the face of the would-be busybodies.
-He had seen that the one respectable neighbour Mrs. Baker possessed
-was already by the poor woman’s side, and that thus he was secure of
-necessary aid.
-
-The boy’s manner changed when he was fairly in possession of the place.
-He went across to the truckle-bed on which the sufferer lay, and,
-bending over her, asked softly if he could do anything for her relief.
-The pity of the tender-hearted was in his eyes, the skill of the expert
-in his hands, while he gently cut away burned clothing and applied
-proper dressing to the cruel hurts. Max had been thoroughly trained by
-his father in the application of first aid to cases of accident, and
-had found plenty of opportunities to make his knowledge of practical
-use.
-
-No more urgent need than that of Mrs. Baker had yet presented itself to
-his personal care, and after a moment’s thought he determined to take a
-further responsibility on his boyish shoulders.
-
-“Where’s Baker?” he asked of the friendly neighbour.
-
-“No need to ask, sir. Where he allus is o’ Saturday nights.”
-
-“Well, he mustn’t be allowed to come in here unless he’s sober. See?”
-
-“Who’s to keep him out, Master Max? Baker’s a bad sort when he’s the
-worse o’ liquor.”
-
-“Can’t you lock the door and stand a siege?” demanded the boy, his
-eyes sparkling in prospect of such a diversion. “But no,” he added,
-professional prudence conquering pugnacious instincts, “that would
-worry and frighten Mrs. Baker.” Max looked down thoughtfully on his
-poor patient, who lay moaning in semi-unconsciousness. “I’ll do what I
-can,” he finished, “and you will help me, won’t you, Mrs. Lane?”
-
-“Sure an’ I will, sir,” said the good woman heartily.
-
-“Then stay here till my father comes. He’ll tackle Joe Baker, if I
-don’t succeed.”
-
-Max paused only to speak a few words of sympathy to Mrs. Baker, and
-then packed his traps and started off.
-
-At the further end of Lumber’s Yard stood a fair-sized inn, the “Jolly
-Dog”, much frequented by the lowest class of the male population. It
-was rented by a man named Daniel Luss, whose license had more than once
-been jeopardized by the scenes of rioting and drunkenness his premises
-had witnessed. But Luss’s landlord was Sir Arthur Fenn, and Sir
-Arthur’s county influence was great. Luss willingly paid a high rent,
-and the administrators of law and order let him alone.
-
-Max ran across the snow-covered yard straight to the “Jolly Dog”. There
-was only one outer door. It led to the bar, and to the inn-parlour,
-where the more truculent spirits of Woodend congregated to discuss
-village politics and abuse those neighbours who struggled after
-respectability. Max knocked loudly on the open door, but no one
-appeared. At last, taking his courage in his hands, he stepped within.
-For the time the bar was empty, its servitors being busy in the kitchen
-behind, where they enjoyed black tea and bloaters and toast to an
-accompaniment of unparliamentary language from the adjacent parlour.
-
-Max hesitated a minute, and his heart beat faster. He knew that the men
-he was going to face were rough and lawless--often savage and cruel.
-One of the worst was Joseph Baker. But the boy recalling the face of
-Baker’s suffering wife, went boldly up to the parlour door, pushed
-it open and walked in. There was no surprise for Max in the scene
-before him--groups of sodden men looming through a thick cloud of
-tobacco-smoke, some already in quarrelsome mood, some making the roof
-ring with mirthless laughter. The surprise was on the side of the men,
-when, a note of exclamation passing from one to the other, they turned
-their heavy eyes upon the boyish figure by the door.
-
-“It’s the young Doc’,” grunted a fellow who had entered recently, and
-was therefore in possession of his faculties. “Got ’is tools with ’im
-too, ain’t he?”
-
-There was a roar of appreciation, and the speaker leaned back in his
-chair to think out another sally.
-
-Max knew that what he wanted to say must be said quickly, and, stepping
-forward, raised his clear treble to a tone which he hoped might pierce
-the dullest ears.
-
-“Men, listen to me a moment, will you? I’ve come to tell you something
-you mayn’t have heard. I’m telling it especially to one of you--Joseph
-Baker. Baker is here, isn’t he?”
-
-Max had decided wisely not to heed interruptions, but he saw a couple
-of hands stretched out to drag a man from a distant corner, and guessed
-that the half-obscured, tottering figure was that of Baker.
-
-“Yes, there he is. Well then, Baker, and all of you--I’m sorry to say
-there’s been a dreadful accident, and Baker’s wife is badly hurt. She’s
-suffering fearfully, but I think she’ll live, with care. Without care
-she won’t live, and you know she has a little baby and three other
-children. Now, I want Baker to promise me he’ll do what he can to keep
-her quiet and comfortable to-night, either by keeping quiet himself
-when he gets home, or else by spending the night elsewhere and leaving
-his wife to Mrs. Lane’s care.”
-
-“What’s wrong wi’ Bell?” inquired Baker thickly as he stumbled out from
-his corner. “If it’s some o’ her bloomin’ nonsense, I’ll make her pay.
-I’ll--”
-
-Max broke in and explained clearly the manner of the woman’s injury.
-
-“So she’s gone and half-killed herself, has she?” cried the husband
-savagely. “Jist let me git her, an’ I’ll finish the job. Who’s goin’
-to cook my wittles, I’d like to know, wi’ her a-shamming in bed? Here,
-mates, I’m off home, but I’ll not be long. Wait till I git back, and
-I’ll tell ye how I’ve settled Bell.”
-
-Max looked at the wretch with scorn and loathing, and involuntarily
-stretched out his arms to bar access to the door behind him. Several
-of Baker’s associates grunted applause at the husband’s valorous
-determination; but the majority of the room’s occupants were not yet
-in a state to be without some feeling of humanity, and these raised
-a murmur of shame, of which Max took quick advantage. It had become
-evident to the boy that his visit to the “Jolly Dog” on behalf of Bell
-would do more harm than good if it sent Baker to her side while she lay
-unprotected.
-
-“Yes,” cried Max, taking the word from a stout, good-natured looking
-man near to him, “it would be a shame, wouldn’t it, not to do all one
-could for poor Mrs. Baker? You know how a burn hurts, even a little
-one; so you can guess how she feels now.” The boy paused, longing
-for some inspiration which might serve to delay Joe’s departure. Dr.
-Brenton might be home by now--would be sure, at the earliest moment,
-to hasten after his son. If only Max could hinder Baker from leaving
-the “Jolly Dog” until such time as he might be pretty sure of finding
-his wife protected by the Doctor’s presence!
-
-“You’ve been ’elping ’er yerself, master, maybe?” asked the stout man,
-pointing to Max’s bag of “tools”.
-
-“I’ve tried,” said Max briefly.
-
-“Then I say as you’re a rare sort for a bit of a younker. Ain’t ’e now,
-mates?”
-
-Max was surprised, and a little relieved, to hear a chorus of
-approbation.
-
-“An’ I’m blest if we don’t drink yer ’ealth wi’ three times three.
-’Ere, ’Arry, set the young Doc’ in the middle o’ the table there, an’
-fill ’im a mug to ’isself.”
-
-In a moment Max, lifted like a feather by ’Arry, the giant of Woodend,
-found himself on the table, and raised above the heads of the village
-revellers. A foaming mug was offered to him by the stout man, whom the
-others called Jack.
-
-“Thanks,” said the boy, taking a drink, and handing back the mug; “I
-was thirsty. You’ve reminded me that I’ve missed my tea, but it will
-come just as handy later. Before I go, let’s have a lark together. Make
-Baker sit down, some of you; and I’ll call on Hal Tatton for a song.”
-
-Baker was dragged back to his corner by half a dozen hands, and the
-men gazed curiously at the brave, boyish figure standing erect and
-masterful on the big deal table. He was so far removed from themselves
-in person, in bearing, in habit; his voice echoed with so plucky a
-note, and his eyes met theirs with so bright an intelligence. What
-manner of converse could they hold with a lad like this?
-
-“Now, Hal,” called out Max imperatively, “you’re a good hand at a
-lively ditty--let’s have ‘The Boys of England’ without ado. I’ll give
-you your key.”
-
-And Max, not entirely unappreciative of his position, started the first
-verse of the latest popular melody--a “patriotic” song, reeking of
-battle, and defiance, and general jingoism. Hal caught up the air, and
-Max subsided until the correct moment, when he demanded a “jolly good
-chorus”.
-
-The song ended, Hal retired to his seat amid loud plaudits, and Max
-racked his brains for ideas. His glance was on an old clock ticking on
-the mantel-shelf. A quarter to eight! Another half-hour and he surely
-might reckon safely on his father’s return home as an accomplished fact.
-
-“And then,” concluded the boy in rapid thought, “if he hadn’t got
-to Baker’s cottage, I could fetch him before Joe had done any harm.
-I’m sure that stout chap would keep him here a bit if I asked him.
-The thing is, to hold on a while, and then leave this lively crew in
-first-rate temper.”
-
-Max made the best of matters, and, following impulse, addressed the
-company.
-
-“That was a right good song, men, and we’re all obliged to Hal for it.
-Aren’t we? Yes, that’s the way to say ‘Thank you’. Well now, what for a
-change before I go? If you like, I’ll tell you a story I read somewhere
-the other day. It’s not long, and it’s no end exciting.”
-
-Max told his story accordingly; and if he were at first gratified
-by comparative silence and a fair amount of attention from his
-rough audience, he was none the less aware of a beating heart as he
-approached his climax. For Max’s tale was a true one, and its chief
-incident--exciting, as he had promised--was the rescue of an injured
-wife from her husband’s brutality by a band of chivalrous and pitiful
-rustics. Max almost held his breath as he concluded. He had played for
-high stakes, and might have lost everything.
-
-When the boy’s voice ceased, there was absolute silence; his hearers
-had been following him closely. Suddenly Baker started from his corner
-with a savage growl.
-
-“’E’s lettin’ on at me, that’s wot ’e is! Do you ’ear me, I say? ’E’s
-told that ’ere story agin me; and ’anged if I don’t take it out o’ ’im
-instead o’ Bell! No! I’ll git ’im first, an’ Bell arter!”
-
-Baker threw himself furiously towards the table, where Max stood, quiet
-and watchful. He knew that he would be helpless in Joe’s clutches, if
-no one took his part.
-
-Then Harry uprose, and stepped carelessly to Baker, whom he cast to the
-floor with one well-directed push.
-
-“You’re a plucked ’un,” said the giant, surveying Max grimly; “an’
-look ’ere, you’re a proper Doc’ an’ you’ve arned your pay. My mates
-an’ me”--Harry glanced rapidly round--“we’ll keep that tale o’ yourn
-in our ’eads to-night. We’ll take turns to watch Bell’s door, and--my
-word on’t,”--he thumped his great fist on the table,--“that skunk Joe
-sha’n’t set ’is foot inside till you give ’im leave.”
-
-A roar of confirmation from Harry’s mates set Max’s mind at rest.
-
-“Ah, thank you, Harry!” said Max in real gratitude; “I thought you’d
-want to help poor Mrs. Baker. And thank you all,” added the boy
-merrily, “for being so kind to me. We had a jolly song, hadn’t we? I
-shall call on Hal Tatton for another next time I see him.”
-
-“You’ll get it so soon as ye asks, master,” returned the grinning
-Tatton. “I’m not forgetting the way ye cured that sprained wrist o’
-mine--I’ll stand by Bell.”
-
-“And me!” “And me!” shouted the voices of many rough fellows who had
-met with kindness from the good Doctor or his son.
-
-“Then thank you all again, and good-bye!” cried Max. The men stood
-silent, watching him as he went. He had brought with him into the
-wretched place a glimpse of brightness, and the loafers of Lumber’s
-Yard were sorry to see him go.
-
-Harry the giant kept his word, and told off his retainers to mount
-guard by turns over the cottage where Bell lay moaning. By and by he
-found it simpler to lock Joe Baker into a shed behind his cottage,
-giving him plenty of sacks to keep him warm, and a liberal supply of
-food, collected from the neighbours. In this fashion Joe was kept out
-of mischief until Bell was up and about again; when Harry’s elementary
-sense of justice assured him that he had kept his bond with Max and had
-no further right to interfere for the present in the marital affairs of
-the Bakers.
-
-During the long hours of his imprisonment, Joe’s memory of Max’s
-successful plan stirred the drunken scamp to bitter hatred and a
-passionate desire for revenge. But he knew that to raise a finger
-against “the young Doc’” would be to set the whole village in a fury;
-and dread for the results on his own person made him sulk and scowl in
-secret.
-
-Max, on that eventful evening, went from the “Jolly Dog” straight back
-to the Bakers’ cottage. There, as he had hoped, he found his father,
-and the pair walked home in company.
-
-First, the Doctor bestowed a little judicious professional praise on
-his son’s surgical handiwork, and made a few comments for Max’s future
-guidance. Next, he turned to a fresh topic--one which, as might easily
-be seen, was at the time very seriously in his thoughts.
-
-“I have been to Rowdon to-night, Max.”
-
-“To the smithy, Dad?” asked Max, glancing up quickly. “Is old East any
-better?”
-
-“He never could have been better,” said the Doctor quietly; “now he
-never will be worse. I was in time, Max, to see the end. It was very
-peaceful--just the sleep of old age. There was really no disease.
-Nature had worn herself out.”
-
-“Oh, Dad! Poor Jim! Is he all alone?”
-
-“He has his old servant Elizabeth and her crippled husband. But
-the lad’s sensitiveness shrinks instinctively from the sort of
-condolence people of that class usually offer. You know what I
-mean, Max,” continued Dr. Brenton hastily. “I don’t mean that the
-sorrow or the sympathy of poor folks is less real than that of their
-betters as the world counts degree. But they have different modes of
-expression--and--well, Jim is not of Elizabeth’s order. I wondered
-why, until to-night. Old East, before he died, solved the mystery for
-me.”
-
-“How, Dad?” asked Max in surprise.
-
-“You’ll know some day, sonny. I may tell you only that East didn’t want
-me to-night as a medicine man. He knew I could do nothing for him. Now,
-Max, I should like you to go to the smithy early to-morrow, and see
-what you can do for Jim.”
-
-“I will, of course, Dad.”
-
-“Take him out for a walk--encourage him to speak his heart to you.
-’Twill do him good--poor boy! poor boy! I see trials in store for Jim.”
-
-“Perhaps Frances might go with me? She’s the best sympathizer I know
-of. And she liked old East, and has seen him several times since the
-night we lost ourselves in the snow. Couldn’t I tell her?”
-
-“Her mother would not let her go, Max,” interrupted the Doctor; “I’m
-quite sure of it. And perhaps, for many reasons, it’s better she
-shouldn’t. But by all means tell her of Jim’s loss. Later on it may be
-her lot to console him. Meanwhile, we blundering males can but do our
-best.”
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER VI.
-
-MUSIC AND MUMMING.
-
-
-It was December the twenty-third, and two o’clock in the afternoon.
-Frances and Austin had finished their early dinner at their mother’s
-luncheon-table, and were hurrying down the road to the school-house,
-where, by grace of the Rector, the Altruists’ entertainment was to be
-given.
-
-“We still have plenty to do,” exclaimed Frances a little breathlessly,
-for the brother and sister were walking at a rapid pace. “The benches
-have to be arranged, and the tables laid, and I have one more wig to
-make for the ‘Ten Little Niggers’.”
-
-“Gramercy!” exclaimed Austin; “did I not count ten heads, and ten wigs
-on the heads, at the dress rehearsal yesterday?”
-
-“Teddy’s was not a proper wig,” sighed Frances. “You know Teddy has not
-a mother--or even an aunt, or a cousin, or an old nurse--to do anything
-of that sort for him. His father’s housekeeper is a horrid cross old
-thing, who would not have let Teddy act at all if she could have helped
-it. So I waylaid Mr. Bevers, and made him promise that Teddy should do
-anything I liked; and then Florry and I saw to his dresses between us.
-That is how Teddy comes to be a little nigger, and a baker-boy, and a
-fairy-page. He is such a darling, and he sings like a cherub. We wanted
-him ever so badly.”
-
-“Girls always contrive to get what they want. They just peg away till
-they do. I will say, though, Frances, that they don’t mind going to any
-amount of trouble about it. Fancy making three dresses for one little
-shaver!”
-
-“The baker-boy dress isn’t much--just a cap and apron,--and the little
-nigger was easy. The pink satin fairy-page was different, of course.
-Teddy and Gus, in pink and blue, look sweet.”
-
-“They are rather fetching,” condescended Austin. “And Max’s idea of
-letting Teddy and Lilla sing the opening duet was a jolly good one. I’m
-not gone on babies, but Lilla’s a picture in that old-world thing her
-mother has dressed her up in.”
-
-“She’s a picture as a fairy too,” said Frances; “though I think the
-minuet will be the most picturesque bit of the play. Florry is a lovely
-fairy god-mother, isn’t she? I do think she’s clever enough to act at
-the Lyceum!”
-
-“The play’s the thing, undoubtedly, as Mr. Hamlet of Denmark remarked.
-Just wait till you see our Travesty, though. I flatter myself we’ll
-make Woodendites sit up. Max and I have worked out a splendid
-blood-curdling duel, with that drop-lunge Mr. Carlyon taught us for a
-finish. You didn’t see it at rehearsal yesterday?”
-
-“No, I was called away; but I’m sure it will be capital. Max is funny,
-as _Laertes_. And Frank Temple is a fine _King_. How lucky it is he had
-that lovely dress of red velvet and ermine!”
-
-“It is a real stage-dress. Frank had an uncle who went on the stage and
-became a famous actor. The regal robes belonged to him.”
-
-“Fancy! That is interesting. I wonder what he would say if he knew they
-were going to be worn in the Hamlet Travesty.”
-
-“He’d think it jolly cheek.”
-
-“We never could have done the Travesty without Mr. Carlyon. Of course,
-it was his plan that we should act it; so I suppose that’s why he has
-been so much interested in it. And Miss Carlyon has stage-managed
-Florry’s play for us: she said it was her duty as president of the
-Altruists.--There’s Betty Turner, Austin. Make haste, and we’ll catch
-her up.”
-
-The active pair soon caught up Betty, who was exceedingly plump, and
-was never seen in a hurry. She looked at her friends in mild amazement
-as they pelted down the hill and pulled up one on each side of her.
-
-“How you two do excite yourselves!” she observed languidly. “Francy’s
-cheeks are as red as beet-root, and Austin will have no breath left for
-his song.”
-
-“We shouldn’t enjoy anything if we didn’t get enthusiastic!” laughed
-Frances. “And isn’t this the great occasion--the Altruists’ field-day?”
-
-“I shall have to leave the club, you make me so hot!” chuckled Betty.
-“I feel like building a snow-man when I look at you. At least, somebody
-else might build him for me, while I watched. The sensation would be
-equally cooling.”
-
-“And not nearly so fatiguing,” said Austin. “Won’t you enjoy filling a
-hundred tea-cups twice over, Betty?”
-
-“Catch me, indeed! I sha’n’t do the pouring out--that’s for May and
-Violet. They like it. Especially May. She has a genius for mathematics,
-and will be able to solve the problem of how many spoonfuls of tea to
-the pot, and how many pots to the tea-tableful of old women.”
-
-“Give ’em plenty,” urged Austin. “Tibby Prout told me she hadn’t tasted
-tea this winter.”
-
-“Tibby Prout!” repeated Betty meditatively. “I’ll keep my eye on Tibby:
-she shall have six cups. Just write her name here, Austin.” Betty
-pulled a notebook and pencil from her pocket. “It is so tiring to
-remember names.”
-
-“You’ll have to remember to look in your notebook; and then you’ll have
-to remember why the name of Tibby Prout is written there; and then
-you’ll have to remember why I, and not you, have written it.”
-
-“So I shall!” agreed Betty mournfully; and with an air of great
-depression she turned in at the school-house gate.
-
-“‘A plump and pleasing person’,” whispered Austin mischievously in his
-sister’s ear. “It’s a good thing she’s amiable, as there’s so much of
-her!”
-
-The boy ran off, laughing, to greet Max, who was just coming up to the
-gate. In his company came “Harry” the giant, a broad grin on his stolid
-face.
-
-“See whom I’ve brought!” exclaimed Max, when greetings and confidences
-had passed between the chums. “You needn’t worry any longer about the
-benches, Frances. Harry has promised to arrange them all, just as you
-like.”
-
-“That is kind of you, Harry,” said the girl, looking at the rustic with
-the frank kindliness which acted like a charm on her poorer neighbours,
-and made them her faithful allies. “I just wanted somebody very strong
-and rather patient. It will take a good while to move the benches, but
-it would have taken the boys twice as long as it will take you.”
-
-“Never fear, Miss,” said the giant heartily; “I’ll turn this ’ere place
-upside-down in ’arf an hour, if so be as you want it.”
-
-Then they all set busily to work. The school-house contained one large
-room, of which the upper part possessed a platform which was used
-for all sorts of village entertainments, such as penny-readings and
-magic-lantern shows. The young Altruist carpenters had rigged-up a
-plain screen of wood above and at the sides of the platform, and this,
-when hung with drapery, took the place of a proscenium, and was fitted
-with a curtain which would draw up and down. There were two entrances,
-right and left of the stage, and simple appliances to hold the simple
-scenery. Not much scope was given, perhaps, for elaborate effects; but
-Miss Carlyon as stage-manager, and Florry as dramatist, had used their
-wits, and some of their contrivances were wonderfully ingenious. They
-had availed themselves, too, of such opportunities as were offered by
-the command of a passage running from one stage-door to the other,
-outside the room. Here they marshalled their processions, and assembled
-their hidden choir, and even found room for one or two members of the
-orchestra when these were wanted to discourse music at moving moments
-of the performances.
-
-Owing to the length of the programme, the proceedings were to begin at
-four o’clock, with a generous tea. Before the hour arrived the Carlyons
-made their appearance, and were immediately in the thick of everything.
-Edward, his long coat flying behind him, dashed hither and thither in
-response to agonized calls from boys in difficulties; while Muriel
-gave helping hands to her girls, until the preparations for tea were
-complete.
-
-Every Altruist wore a crimson badge, and a similar one was presented
-to every guest on entrance. The stage-hangings were crimson; the
-Christmas greetings hung up on the walls were fashioned in crimson
-letters on a white ground. Of course the room was prettily decorated
-with green-stuffs and berries, and the long tables grouped in the
-background were ornamented with lovely flowers. Altogether, the aspect
-of the room was distinctly festive when, as the clock struck four, the
-doors were thrown open and the guests began to pour in. Men, women, and
-children--all had been invited; and for once the denizens of Lumber’s
-Yard mingled with the better-class cottagers. Bell Baker, still pale,
-and poorly-clad, was brought under the care of the Doctor himself, who
-had borrowed a bath-chair, and packed his suffering charge into it.
-With Bell came her three eldest children; the baby was being cared
-for by an enterprising cottage-woman, who had decided to stay at home
-from the Altruist Feast and “take in” babies at a penny the head! The
-resulting fortune in shillings was a satisfactory consolation to her
-for the loss of her treat.
-
-The Altruist fund might have fallen short of the demands made on
-it for the expenses of the grand entertainment, had it not been
-amply supplemented by those well-to-do inhabitants of Woodend who
-were interested in the undertaking. The feasts proper--both tea and
-supper--were “entirely provided by voluntary contributions”, as Frances
-had proudly announced at the last meeting of the Society. The rector
-offered fifty pounds of beef; Miss Carlyon’s cookery-class made a score
-of plum-puddings and a hundred mince-pies, the materials coming from
-the kitchens of Altruists’ mothers; the oranges and apples and almonds
-and raisins, with such trifles as bon-bons and sweets, were sent in
-by various Altruists’ fathers. Mrs. Morland promised fifty pounds of
-cake, and as Austin was allowed to do the ordering it was as plummy as
-Christmas cake knows how to be. In this way gifts rapidly mounted up;
-and by the time it became necessary to reckon up the funds, Frances
-found that she had only sugar to provide!
-
-This was very cheering to the young leader of the Altruists, who had
-dreaded having to check the bounding ambition of her associates.
-The sewing-meetings had done great things with scarlet flannel and
-crimson wool; but in this direction, also, the grown-ups were kind.
-Mrs. Morland, who had quietly assumed the headship of Woodend society,
-dropped polite hints at dinner-parties and distributed confidences at
-“At Homes”. It became generally understood that all contributions of
-new and useful clothing would be thankfully received in the club-room.
-Perhaps Mrs. Morland’s patronage did less for the cause than did the
-popularity of her daughter. Frances was everybody’s favourite; and the
-pleasure of receiving her earnest thanks, and seeing the joyful light
-in her grave gray eyes, sent many a Woodend matron and maid to the
-making of shirts.
-
-The Carlyons had determined privately to run no risk of usurping the
-credit which belonged of right to the originators of the entertainment;
-and they kept very much behind the scenes during the evening, except
-when sharing the labours of the party told off to preserve order and
-see that all the guests were comfortably placed. Tea over, and the
-tables cleared, the orchestra struck up a lively medley of popular
-tunes, while the company were ranged on the benches that Harry had set
-in two rows, facing the stage, in the upper part of the long room.
-Behind these benches was a small space, and then a few rows of chairs
-for the families and friends of the Altruists, who were to be permitted
-to view the performances in consideration of their liberal help.
-
-When all were seated, and quiet reigned in the neighbourhood of the
-empty tea-tables, the orchestra ceased to make melody, and Miss
-Carlyon, slipping round from the back, took her place before the
-piano, the fifteen-year-old Pianist of the band retiring modestly to
-a three-legged stool that she shared with the fourteen-year-old First
-Violin. The footlights were turned up, the gas in the auditorium was
-turned down; on the whole audience fell the hush of expectancy. Miss
-Carlyon played a few bars of a simple children’s song; then the curtain
-swayed backward a little to allow two performers to step before it.
-
-[Illustration:
-
-M432
-
-“A STORY WE BRING YOU FROM FAËRY LAND.”]
-
-First came Teddy Bevers, beautiful to behold in his pink satin tunic
-trimmed with swansdown, lace ruffles, pink silk stockings, and buckled
-shoes. His dark curls bobbed merrily all over his little head, as,
-holding his pink hat with its white plume behind him, he bowed low
-to another small figure tripping after him. Lilla Turner was a tiny,
-slender maiden, just the opposite of plump Betty, her sister and slave;
-she wore a short petticoat of quilted white satin, and a Watteau bodice
-and panier of white and gold brocade. Lilla returned Teddy’s bow with
-a sweeping curtsey, then took his offered hand, and the little pair
-paced solemnly to the front and made a profound salute to the
-audience. Both sang prettily; and Miss Carlyon’s careful teaching had
-given them a clear enunciation, which made the words of their prologue
-audible throughout the room:
-
- “A story we bring you from Faëry Land,
- A story of gallant, and maiden, and sprite;
- And we ask you to lend us a favouring hand,
- While we tell it, and sing it, and act it to-night.
- List, list to our story of maiden and fay,
- Of prince, knight, and peasant; oh, listen, we pray!”
-
-Teddy and Lilla continued, through three verses, to entreat the
-indulgence of an audience already disposed to be more than kind; then
-the salutes were sedately repeated, and the little couple vanished
-amid enraptured applause. The beauty and grace of the small actors
-had warmed the hearts of the workaday folk to whom they sang, and the
-Woodend villagers demanded an encore with all their hands and tongues.
-
-The programme was long enough already; and, besides, Florry’s sense
-of dramatic fitness made her look on a repetition of her prologue as
-something like barbarism. So Teddy and Lilla were told to go on again
-and bow their acknowledgments; which they did, kissing their hands ere
-they finally retired.
-
-They had paved the way admirably for the others, and the fairy play was
-throughout a brilliant success. The curtain was rung down on a most
-picturesque tableau, while Max burned red fire at the wings, and the
-orchestra discoursed sweet music. Three times the curtain was raised
-before the audience would be satisfied; and even then there were calls
-for the “author”, and Florry was pulled on to the stage by a group of
-enthusiastic little fairies.
-
-A big sigh of satisfaction seemed to come from everybody; and the
-onlookers were still assuring each other that nothing could beat the
-fairy play, when the orchestra struck up a familiar melody. All the
-boys on the benches began to hum appreciatively; and the curtain slowly
-rose, while across the stage in a couple of bounds sprang the First
-Little Nigger. His age was twelve, his face and hands were sooty-black;
-he wore a costume of scarlet-and-white striped cotton jacket, green
-knickerbockers, one scarlet and one white stocking, a white collar of
-enormous proportions, and a lovely horse-hair wig. After him came his
-nine brothers, in similar raiment, and in gradations of size, which
-ended in Teddy Bevers, who informed his hearers that he was the “Tenth
-Little Nigger Boy!”
-
-Mr. Carlyon had written a new version of the historic ditty--a version
-strictly topical, and full of harmless local allusions, which won peals
-of laughter from the benches. The actors had been taught some amusing
-by-play; and their antics drew shrieks of delight from small boys
-and girls, who had gaped in uncomprehending wonderment at the Fairy
-Godmother. It was of no use to try to refuse an encore for the Ten
-Little Niggers, so Mr. Carlyon sent them on again to repeat their fun
-and frolic for the benefit of the little ones in front.
-
-The niggers had brought the younger portion of the audience into such
-an uproarious condition that the feelings of the First Violin were
-sadly tried by the hubbub amid which she stepped on to the platform.
-But now, if ever, Woodend was on its good behaviour; and, as the
-elders wanted to “hear the music”, they coaxed and scolded the juniors
-into a restless silence. However, the melting strains of Raff’s
-“Cavatina” were not beyond the appreciation of anybody; and those
-who did not admire her plaintive performance for its own sake, were
-full of wonder at the skill of the First Violin. The next item on the
-programme was a vocal duet by Frances and her brother. Austin sang well
-in a charmingly fresh treble, with which his sister’s alto blended
-very prettily; and the pair had practised most conscientiously. This
-was the only number of the programme in which Frances’s name appeared.
-The girl had declined to be put down for anything which would give her
-prominence, because she knew her mother would prefer to see Austin to
-the fore, and Frances had a delicate instinct which warned her not to
-court jealousy by claiming too much for the Morland family. Austin had
-played one of the best parts in the fairy piece, was to play _Hamlet_
-in some scenes selected by Mr. Carlyon from Poole’s “Travesty”, and
-besides his duet with Frances, had a solo to sing. Nobody grudged the
-bright, good-natured boy his many appearances, but Frances felt that
-they ought to suffice for both.
-
-The concert swung gaily on its way. The First Little Nigger, still
-sooty of face and brilliant of attire, sang _Hard times come again no
-more_ to his own banjo accompaniment, and was rewarded by the sight
-of many pocket-handkerchiefs surreptitiously drawn forth. There was
-a flute solo from Guy Gordon, a musician whose fancy usually hovered
-between the jew’s-harp and the concertina; but on this occasion he
-gave a “Romance” for his more classical instrument, and moved to
-emulation every rustic owner of a penny whistle. Three little lads,
-dressed as sailor-boys, were immensely popular in a nautical ditty,
-which cast a general defiance at everybody who might presume to dispute
-the sovereignty of _The Mistress of the Sea_; and three little girls
-with three little brooms joined in a _Housemaid’s Complaint_, which set
-forth in touching terms the sufferings of domestics who were compelled
-to be up by ten, and to dine on cold mutton and fried potatoes. Songs,
-humorous and pathetic, filled up the concert programme, until it
-terminated in a costume chorus, _How to make a Cake_.
-
-This item was an exemplification of the picturesque possibilities
-of familiar things. A table in the middle of the stage was presided
-over by Betty, attired in print frock, cap, and apron. In front of
-her on the table stood a big basin. To her entered a train of boy and
-girl cooks, carrying aloft bags and plates containing materials for
-cake-making. A lively song, descriptive of the action, accompanied
-Betty’s demonstration of the results of her cookery studies; the cake
-was mixed, kneaded, disposed of in a tin, and proudly borne off to an
-imaginary stove by Guy Gordon, the biggest baker. The song continued,
-descriptive of the delightful anticipations of the cake-makers; and
-when Guy returned carrying a huge plum-cake, this was promptly cut into
-slices by Betty and distributed among her helpers, who, munching under
-difficulties, marched round the stage to a triumphant chorus of “_We’ll
-show you how to eat it!_”
-
-Max was to appear as _Laertes_ in the Travesty, and had hitherto taken
-no more distinguished part in the entertainment than the playing of
-what it pleased him to call “twentieth fiddle” in the orchestra.
-But he now found greatness thrust upon him. No sooner had the cooks
-acknowledged their call and vanished, than Harry the giant uprose in
-his place, and boldly addressed Mr. Carlyon.
-
-“Axing parding, sir, if I may make so bold, there’s some of us ’ere--me
-and my mates--wot knows as ’ow the young Doc’ can sing a rare good
-song. And we takes the liberty of askin’ Master Max to favour us.”
-
-Harry’s speech created an immediate sensation; but his sentiments
-were upheld by prolonged applause from his “mates” and the audience
-generally.
-
-Edward Carlyon successfully maintained a strict impartiality in his
-dealings with his pupils; but in his heart of hearts he kept a special
-corner for Max Brenton. Well pleased with Harry’s request, he leant
-towards the “twentieth fiddle”, and said:
-
-“You hear, Max? You’re honoured by a distinct invitation; so up with
-you to the platform and let’s hear what you can do!”
-
-Max, covered with blushes, was pushed forward by the entire orchestra,
-while Carlyon seated himself in front of the piano.
-
-“What shall it be, lad?--_The Old Brigade_, I think. Muriel, will you
-tell the boys and girls behind to provide Max with a chorus?”
-
-Max plucked up courage, and obeyed. His slight figure, in its trim Eton
-suit, stood out bravely on the platform, reminding Harry and one or
-two others of another evening when the boy had sung “against time” to
-save a woman from suffering.
-
-All the Altruists knew _The Old Brigade_, and had chimed in with a
-chorus many a time when the Carlyons’ young choristers had held their
-merry practices in the boys’ school-room. So the gallant song went
-with splendid spirit, and when it reached its last verse the chorus
-was reinforced by the greater number of the audience, who proceeded
-rapturously to encore themselves.
-
-Max’s song was an excellent finish to the concert; and then the
-onlookers were allowed a few minutes to recover their breath and
-discuss the performance, while the stage was made ready for the
-Travesty.
-
-In front reigned mirth, satisfaction, and pleasing hopes of more good
-things to come. Behind, the aspect of affairs had changed suddenly. At
-the end of Max’s song a letter was handed to Carlyon, whose face, as he
-read, became a proclamation of disaster. He was in the little room at
-the end of the passage, which had been made ready for the use of the
-performers when off the platform; and round him had gathered the boys
-and girls who were to figure in the Travesty.
-
-“Bad news, youngsters,” said Carlyon dismally. “The first hitch in
-our evening’s entertainment. I wondered why Frank Temple was so late
-in arriving. This letter--which evidently ought to have reached me
-before--is to tell me that Mr. and Mrs. Temple have been summoned by
-telegram to Mr. Temple’s home, where his father is lying dangerously
-ill. The boy was named in the telegram--his grandfather had asked
-for him; so of course he has gone with his parents. Now,” continued
-Carlyon, looking at the blank faces before him, “I know that all of you
-will feel very much for Frank; but just at present we must think also
-of the poor folk in the school-room, who are waiting patiently for your
-appearance. What shall we do? Shall we give up the Travesty? Or will
-someone go on and read the part of the _King_?”
-
-“Oh, don’t stop the play! Let’s act!” cried some.
-
-“Max and Austin’s fencing-match is so funny!” cried others.
-
-“Well, I think myself we ought to proceed, and do our best. The
-question is, who can read the _King_? It must be someone who knows
-something about the piece--”
-
-“Frances!” exclaimed Max immediately. “Frances has been at all the
-rehearsals; and she has often read the _King’s_ part when she was
-hearing Austin and me say ours!”
-
-Frances at first held back; but when she saw that she was really the
-best person to fill the breach, she made no more ado, but began to look
-about for a costume.
-
-“If only Frank had thought of sending his,” said Max, regretful of
-the crimson velvet and ermine. “It would have done quite nicely for
-Frances. The tunic would have covered her frock.”
-
-“We can hardly borrow it without leave, though. Well, I must let you
-settle the knotty point of costume for yourselves, youngsters, while I
-help my sister with the stage.”
-
-Carlyon rushed off, nodding encouragingly to Frances, who had her eyes
-on the play-book and on every corner of the room in turn. Suddenly she
-darted over to a table covered by a crimson cloth.
-
-“Hurrah!” she cried. “Here’s my tunic. A little ingenuity will soon
-drape it gracefully about my kingly person.”
-
-Frances had seized the table-cover; and now, amid peals of laughter,
-she began, with Austin’s assistance, to pin herself into it. Max
-vanished from the room, returning in three minutes with two articles
-borrowed from friends among the Altruists’ relations in the audience.
-
-“See, Frances! This fur-lined cape will make you a lovely cloak, and
-this fur tippet, put on back to front, will be your regal collar. About
-your neck and waist we will dispose the fairy prince’s gold chains, and
-he shall lend you his sword, likewise his cap.”
-
-“Not his cap,” amended Austin, who was dancing a triumphant jig round
-his sister. “Frank left his crown here yesterday after rehearsal, and
-Frances can wear that.”
-
-“And her sleeves will look all right. What a good thing your frock is
-of black velvet, Frances!”
-
-By the time the young costumiers had finished they had turned out quite
-an effective _King_. Frances’s dark hair, waving to her shoulders, was
-pronounced “a first-rate wig” when the regal crown had been fitted
-on. The Carlyons declared the new _King_ to be admirably attired; and
-Frances, relieved of anxiety about her costume, entered fully into the
-fun.
-
-“I’m a ‘king of shreds and patches’ like Shakespeare’s man,” she
-chuckled; “but so long as my various garments hold together, I don’t
-mind! Max, if I could get a few minutes to look through this long
-speech, I believe I could manage without the book. I’ve heard Frank say
-his part ever so often.”
-
-“You’ve helped everybody, Frances,” said Max, remembering gratefully
-his own indebtedness, “and now you’re going to shine yourself. You’ll
-have time to read up your part before you go on.”
-
-The spirit of true burlesque is rare among amateurs; but youngsters who
-act for the fun of the thing, and not merely to “show off”, are often
-capable of excellent comedy. Carlyon had chosen with care the boys
-and girls who were to perform in the Travesty, and had trained them
-sufficiently but not too much. Entering completely into the humour of
-parody, one and all acted with plenty of vigour and without a trace
-of self-consciousness. Max and Austin had arranged a serio-comic
-fencing-match, which was brought to a melodramatic finish by a clever
-rapier trick. Frances’s play with the poisoned cup sent Betty, the
-lackadaisical _Queen_, into a series of private giggles, which she
-was compelled to conceal by an unexpectedly rapid demise. At last the
-curtain rang down on Austin’s farewell speech.
-
-The boys and girls who during the long evening had figured on the
-platform assembled in the green-room for a brief chatter over their
-experiences. They were in high spirits and honestly happy; for they
-felt that they had done their best, and that their best had given
-several bright and pleasant hours to folks whose lives were but dull
-and gray.
-
-Buns, sandwiches, and lemonade provided the Altruists’ modest
-refreshment. They had thoroughly earned their supper, but they hurried
-through it in order to make an appearance at the feast-tables of their
-guests. There was neither time nor place for change of dress; so the
-actors in their motley garb now mingled with their audience, greatly
-to the latter’s delight. Sweets and bon-bons tasted twice as good when
-handed round by Teddy in pink satin, and Lilla in white; and a whole
-troop of little fairies dispensed almonds and raisins at a lavish
-rate. The movement of the guests to the supper-tables at the end of
-the room was the signal for the retirement of upper-class Woodend to
-the neighbourhood of the platform, whence it watched its young people
-justifying their motto, “Help Others”.
-
-“Austin,” whispered Frances, “aren’t you sorry poor Jim isn’t here?”
-
-“Jim?” questioned her brother. “Why, wouldn’t he have been a cut above
-these good folk?”
-
-“Oh, yes, of course. He wouldn’t need anyone to give him supper or a
-woollen comforter, I suppose. But he could have seen the acting, and he
-would have helped us.”
-
-“Really, Frances, you are ridiculous. You have such a fancy for Jim--as
-though we could have had a fellow like that tagging on to us all the
-evening.”
-
-“I could have put up with him very well,” returned Frances calmly; “and
-he would have been very useful. Don’t _you_ be ridiculous, Austin.”
-
-Austin muttered something about not wanting “loafing cads” in his
-vicinity; and was called so severely to task for his unmannerly epithet
-that he retired to grumble mildly in Max’s ear. But Max, too, liked
-Jim, and regretted the lad’s absence and the cause of it. He was sure
-that Frances was thinking pitifully of Jim’s lonely Christmas, and his
-sympathy was with Frances, not with her brother. Austin saw that his
-grumble must seek another sympathizer, and while looking for one, he
-noticed an old man’s empty plate, and flew to fulfil the duty of an
-Altruist host.
-
-Supper was followed by a distribution of gifts. The presents numbered
-two for each person, and the ambition of the society had decreed that
-they should be strictly useful and of a kind to give some real comfort
-to the recipients. Thus, flannel shirts, knitted vests and socks, and
-cardigan jackets were handed to the men; while the women received
-warm skirts, bodices, and petticoats, “overall” aprons, and woollen
-shawls. Crimson was the hue of most of the clothing, and Max’s prophecy
-concerning the Altruist village seemed on the way to fulfilment. Thanks
-came heartily and in full measure from the delighted guests; and when
-their best spokesman had been put forward to offer the gratitude of
-the poor of Woodend to “the young ladies and gentlemen what had shown
-them a kindness they’d never forget”, good-byes became general, the
-village-folk trooped out, and the happy evening was really over.
-
- * * * * *
-
-Mrs. Morland went home alone in her carriage, promising to send it back
-for Frances and Austin, who were to take Max with them and set him down
-at his father’s gate. A wonderful amount of consideration from Woodend
-invalids had left Dr. Brenton free for a whole evening, and among the
-Altruist audience not one had been happier than he. Now he went off
-with his borrowed bath-chair and its weakly occupant, meaning not only
-to see poor Mrs. Baker safely indoors, but to satisfy himself that her
-husband, who had stayed sulking at home, was propitiated by the present
-of warm shirts and socks which Frances had chosen as the likeliest
-pacifiers.
-
-The boys were still in their fancy dress, and obliged to wait in the
-school-room for Mrs. Morland’s carriage; but Frances, in her cosy frock
-and jacket, could defy the snow without, and she accompanied some of
-her friends to the gate and saw them off. As the last carriage full of
-boys and girls rolled smoothly away, she still stood thoughtfully by
-the roadside. Frances was thoroughly content; her heart seemed full
-of peace and good-will to all the world, and lifting her face to the
-moonlit sky, she searched half-consciously for those old friends Orion
-and the Plough, while her happy young face smiled in memory of all the
-joys that evening had brought for her.
-
-“She does look kind!” mused a lad hidden in the shadow of some bushes
-opposite. “Kind and gentle and good! It was worth while to tramp from
-Rowdon to see Miss Frances’s face to-night. She has been making folks
-happy, as her way is, God bless her! I was afraid before I came,--but
-now I’m glad. Miss Frances will be kind, I know she will. The boy’s
-different, and I doubt he’ll be against me; but what shall I care, if
-Missy is kind?”
-
-Jim East lifted his head, and stood erect and brave.
-
-“Nay, what should I care, with all the world against me, so long as
-Missy was kind?”
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER VII.
-
-PHOTOGRAPHERS ABROAD.
-
-
-Mrs. Morland, as may have been gathered, was in a sense an indulgent
-mother, and her children lacked nothing necessary for their health or
-their comfort. Her personal interest in their private concerns, their
-hobbies, their undertakings, their studies, was regulated entirely
-by what she estimated as social opinion--by the effect which the
-particular hobby or pursuit in question might have on the position of
-Frances and of Austin among their juvenile fellows, and in the eyes of
-Mrs. Morland’s own acquaintances.
-
-Thus, she had almost from the first set the seal of her approval on the
-Society of the Altruists; because she observed that Frances, as founder
-and leader of that energetic body, had secured a kind of sovereignty
-over her comrades; also, that the majority of the better-class
-Woodendites spoke well of the young people’s efforts, and gave honour
-to Frances as the inspirer of all their best intentions. Greater
-still was the credit given to the girl for the modesty which made her
-obviously unaware of the good opinions she had won from her mother’s
-friends, and for the unselfishness which made her eager to admire the
-generous labours of her supporters; and Mrs. Morland was careful to
-do nothing to make Frances more self-conscious, and therefore less
-attractive to critical eyes.
-
-At home, the mother was content to give an occasional peep into the
-club-room when a meeting was in full swing, and to subscribe liberally
-when funds were requisitioned; abroad, she was fond of allusions to
-“my lassie’s up-to-date fancies,--which really, you know, are quite
-amusingly altruistic”. Mrs. Morland was by no means a popular person,
-in spite of her local distinction. Woodend happened to be favoured
-with, for its size, an unusually large number of well-to-do residents;
-and among these, by birth, by fortune, by knowledge of the world, Mrs.
-Morland had an undoubted prominence. When qualities of head and heart
-were considered, her claims were less readily admitted.
-
-Yet she was, in a degree, an able woman, though her talents were purely
-social, and she had no sympathy with art or with letters except in so
-far as they might help to secure social consideration. Austin inherited
-a share of his mother’s gifts, and was naturally her favourite child.
-In Frances she detected all those qualities which had least appealed to
-her in her husband’s character; but as most people seemed to find these
-traits admirable, she gave them toleration on account of their value in
-the eyes of others.
-
-Christmas-day dawned in what the girls and boys of Woodend called
-“proper weather”--snow under foot, clear blue sky and sunshine
-overhead. Frances and Austin had worked hard on Christmas-eve at church
-decorations, proving themselves Muriel Carlyon’s best allies. Their
-mother viewed without enthusiasm the ornamentation of her pictures,
-furniture, and walls, when the materials were holly and fir. Indeed,
-she called such time-honoured greenstuff “messy nonsense”, which soiled
-whatever it touched when fresh, and covered the floors with litter when
-dry. In church, she found it unnecessary to disapprove of anything
-which had the sanctity of tradition to support its use; and so she
-willingly granted Muriel’s request that the two youngsters might be
-spared to help her, and allowed to share her luncheon in order to save
-the time spent in going home.
-
-Muriel Carlyon was a popular person both in school and out of it, but
-she certainly shone as a holiday companion. She was as invariably
-ready to interest herself in the latest schemes of harmless frolic
-as in the soberer matters of daily life and duty, and had been quite
-as enthusiastic as any of her pupils over the plans for the great
-entertainment, quite as delighted at its triumphant success. There were
-a few among her younger friends who knew that her sympathies could go
-deeper still, that she could sorrow with the sorrowing, and point the
-way to seek for comfort.
-
-The old rector, Dr. Stansby, looked on Edward and Muriel Carlyon almost
-as a son and daughter. They spent with him all they could of their
-scanty leisure, and held it a pleasant duty to see that a sense of
-growing infirmity should not touch his peace of mind. No parish matter
-could be neglected while these two workers watched over affairs, and
-Edward tackled bravely the few abuses which old-fashioned prejudices
-had rendered unassailable in the days when Dr. Stansby had laboured
-alone.
-
-The brightness of the Christmas morning with which my story is
-concerned was reflected in the faces of Mrs. Morland’s pair of
-youngsters as they ran into the breakfast-room to see what fate
-had sent them. Their mother followed at leisure, her simple winter
-morning-gown falling gracefully about her stately person. She never
-had been known to be in a hurry; and of late years the assured comfort
-of her circumstances, and the small demands made on her for sustained
-exertion, had weakened further her naturally inert disposition. But
-she had a smiling face for her children when they sprang back to throw
-their arms about her and offer grateful kisses.
-
-Before Austin’s place at table stood a beautiful enlarging camera,
-which would surely be a priceless help in the practice of the “dark
-art”; he found, too, a fine array of photographic plates and papers,
-and the latest thing in “print-washers”, as a gift from his sister.
-All these matters being of moment in regard to his latest hobby, the
-boy was certain that no present could have pleased him better. Frances
-found herself the possessor of a beautiful writing-case, fitted with
-everything necessary and unnecessary. Austin had amused himself and
-Max vastly by a special journey to Exham in order to select his
-present, which now astonished his sister’s eyes. It was a plain wicker
-work-basket of enormous proportions; and half an hour of coaxing had
-induced Muriel Carlyon to line the monster with crimson silk, on which
-were stitched at regular intervals great white letters:
-
-“FRANCES THE ALTRUIST”.
-
-The peals of laughter with which Frances received this offering, and
-in which Austin joined, almost upset Mrs. Morland’s equanimity; but
-just as she began to think of frowning, the lively couple calmed down
-and pounced on the row of new story-books, which were to be a joint
-possession.
-
-Frances remembered for long afterwards the special peacefulness and
-happiness which seemed to mark the morning of that Christmas-day. Never
-had she more thoroughly enjoyed the service in the old Woodend church,
-with the rector’s benign face seeming to greet each well-known member
-of his congregation, and Edward Carlyon reading the familiar prayers,
-and Muriel accompanying on the organ her well-trained choir of boys and
-men. The choristers were recruited chiefly from Mr. Carlyon’s pupils,
-so that Austin was the soloist that morning, and sang with bird-like
-clearness a vocal hymn of joy and praise.
-
-The children dined late with their mother on great occasions, and now,
-after a luncheon of sandwiches, mince-pies, jelly, and cream, they
-hurried out for a run which might assist digestion. Austin carried his
-camera, for he pined to get a snow-effect, and thought that the view of
-Woodend village from the elevation on which his mother’s house stood
-would answer admirably for a subject.
-
-“It wasn’t worth while to bring my camera-case,” announced the boy, as
-he darted round from a side-door his arms burdened with impedimenta.
-“You won’t mind carrying something, will you, Frances, as it’s such a
-little way we’re going?”
-
-“I always carry something,” replied his sister calmly; “and I would
-have come to help you collect your baggage if Mater hadn’t called me
-back to write a letter for her. It was only a little letter, but it
-took time. Everything takes time. I wish the days were twice as long.”
-
-“Well, as they’re at their shortest now, and we’ve only two hours of
-light before us, we’d better scurry. There, I’ve dropped my dark cloth,
-and I can’t stoop to pick it up.”
-
-“Mercy! Are your dark slides in it?”
-
-“No, better luck.”
-
-“But ought you to carry them without any covering? I’m sure light will
-get in and fog the plates when the sun shines like this.”
-
-“It’s December sun,” said Austin testily. “And what’s the use of
-calling the slides ‘dark’ if they let in the light?”
-
-“I don’t know; but surely you remember last week, that waster you got--”
-
-“If you’re going to begin by talking about wasters--!”
-
-“Oh, never mind, dear!” cried Frances hastily, remembering that
-Austin’s “wasters”, as he called his spoilt plates, were sore points.
-The glory of his few photographic successes could hardly, as yet, be
-said to atone for the bitterness of almost universal failure.
-
-Austin had pulled three dark slides from under one arm, a tripod from
-under the other, and had held towards Frances the racked-out camera he
-had hugged to his breast.
-
-“If you’ll carry this tricky thing I’ll be awfully obliged,” he said
-piteously. “I’m in mortal fear of dropping it and smashing my lens.”
-
-“All right!” agreed Frances. “Wrap the slides in the dark cloth and
-I’ll take them also. That’s the way. Now, let’s run.”
-
-So Austin shouldered the tripod, and off they went. Down the
-carriage-drive to the gate, and then along the road overlooking the
-village till they reached the desired spot. Here they cried a halt, and
-Austin set up his tripod.
-
-“No cap on the lens!” exclaimed Frances in dismay.
-
-“Oh, crikey! Why didn’t you tell me when I handed you the wretched
-thing?”
-
-“I never looked at the lens. I thought you would have made sure you had
-everything before you came downstairs. Not that I need have thought
-so,” added Frances grimly. “Last time, you forgot the dark cloth; and
-the time before, when Max was with us, don’t you remember--?”
-
-“There you are again with your ‘rememberings’!” muttered Austin. “A
-fellow can’t be expected to keep his wits about him with you and Max
-chattering like fun.”
-
-“Oh, I dare say!” laughed Frances. “Here, take the camera, and I’ll run
-back for the cap.”
-
-“Hang it, can’t I use my hand? I’m sure I’d cover the lens all right.”
-
-“I’m sure you wouldn’t! Wait, and I won’t be long.”
-
-Frances scudded away, but when she had gone almost out of sight,
-suddenly turned and scudded back again.
-
-“I suppose you have filled the slides?” she inquired.
-
-“Filled them!” ejaculated Austin. “Why,” he began lamely, “weren’t they
-full? I never thought of that. And I want slow plates.”
-
-“You dreadful goose!” cried Frances; and picking up the slides, she
-raced away again.
-
-Arrived in the dark-room, she found that only one of the double slides
-possessed its piece of black card for dividing the two plates. A search
-for the missing necessaries delayed her a good deal, and might have
-ruffled her temper had she not become resigned to photographic muddles.
-
-“Here I am at last!” she remarked cheerfully, as she came up to Austin,
-who remained seated in philosophic calm on the top of a five-barred
-gate. “There were no cards in two of the slides.”
-
-“Oh!” remarked Austin, “I thought perhaps you’d lost the cap.”
-
-“_I_ had lost it!”
-
-“Well--it might have lost itself. Thank you ever so much for going.”
-
-“Let’s make a start, Austin. The sun’s sinking down into the mist.”
-
-“That’s all right. It says in my photographic handbook there are
-‘immense possibilities in mist and cloud’; and also, that ‘there is
-pictorial value in a gate or a stile carefully placed’. Now, I haven’t
-been wasting my time while you’ve been away; I’ve been thinking over
-what that chap wrote. And I’ve made up my mind to get the mist and the
-cloud and this gate into my photograph.”
-
-“Likewise the windmill, the group of poplars, and the whole expanse of
-Nature, I presume?” observed Frances sarcastically.
-
-“I dare say I could edge in the poplars--my lens has a wide field,”
-said the photographer. “The windmill is behind our backs.”
-
-“I thought you were going to take the village. And you can’t see the
-village through the gate or over it. You must open the gate and go into
-the field to get the view we wanted.”
-
-“Humph! I believe I’ll give up the village in favour of the gate. I’m
-certain I can ‘carefully place’ the gate on my ‘neg.’, so as to give it
-‘pictorial value’; and a gate is easier than a whole village. Besides,
-the cloud and the mist will go in of themselves, not to mention your
-poplars.”
-
-“Get your beloved gate on the ground-glass, and we’ll settle.”
-
-This Austin proceeded to do, while Frances patiently held the cap--the
-sixth which had been bought for this particular camera. Each of the
-remaining five had been dropped and trodden into a shapeless mass in
-what its owner called “moments of remarkable enthusiasm”. Anticipating
-such a moment, Frances thought it well to watch over the survivor.
-
-“I’m doing my best,” announced the operator from the enveloping folds
-of his dark cloth, “but those poplars are awful worrying. They don’t
-work in nicely with the gate when it’s ‘carefully placed’.”
-
-“Leave them out.”
-
-“Oh, not when I’ve promised you,” said Austin courteously. “There, I’ve
-focussed the lot somehow. Just take a peep, Sis, and admire my work.”
-
-Frances accordingly concealed the greater part of her person from view
-beneath the dark cloth--which, it may be noted, was of proportions as
-Brobdignagian as Frances’s work-basket, in order to elude the light
-which like a fiend seemed to pursue Austin’s dark slides.
-
-“I see the gate on the extreme left,” commented the critic, “and half
-the poplars on the extreme right, and a long strip of hedge cutting the
-picture nearly in two, and a foreground muddled into nothing--”
-
-“You must have a muddled foreground,” interrupted Austin. “It’s
-artistic.”
-
-“Well, I like to tell a bush from a wall myself,” said Frances;
-“but I suppose you’re an impressionist, like those people your
-photographer-man writes about. There’s plenty of cloud and mist,
-Austin; and if you don’t think a picture with just a gate and poplars,
-and a hedge and an impressionist foreground, rather dull--”
-
-“I’d have liked a figure or two, ‘to give interest’,” admitted the
-handbook student. “Of course I can put you in.”
-
-Frances groaned. She always was “put in”,--with frightsome results.
-
-“Hallo!” shouted Austin just then, “here come two jolly figures for me!”
-
-Frances looked, and saw Max Brenton and Betty Turner tramping through
-the snow at a pace dictated by Betty’s aversion to undue haste. Max
-lugged a big basket in one hand and a small one in the other, and was
-trying to keep up his circulation by whistling vigorously. Betty was
-pensive, and disinclined at the moment for conversation.
-
-As soon as the two pairs of youngsters hailed each other from afar,
-they began, after the fashion of their age and kind, to rush together
-as though they had been opposing currents of electricity. They met with
-a bump and a shock and a great deal of laughter.
-
-“We were just coming to you,” said Betty. “At least, I was. Mamma has
-some friends staying with her, and this morning each of them gave me
-something for our Society stores--”
-
-“How kind of them!”
-
-“It was rather decent. So I thought I’d like you to have the things,
-as it’s Christmas-day; and the servants were fearfully busy, so I just
-took the basket to bring it myself. Coming up the hill I got so hot and
-tired, and I just sat down on my basket--”
-
-“And might have been sitting there yet!” ejaculated Max tragically.
-
-“Only Max came and helped me up, and carried the basket. It was nice of
-him, only he’s always in such a hurry. In the other basket, the little
-one, he has some nonsense of his own--”
-
-“That’s what she calls Dad’s prescriptions.”
-
-“Oh, I hope they’re not ‘every four hours’ bottles!” cried Austin. “Do
-look, Max. Perhaps, by luck, they’re ‘at bed-time’ potions. I want you
-and Betty to be figures for me.”
-
-“Got out the camera? My, what larks!”
-
-The boys immediately set off at the best pace permitted by the baskets,
-Austin giving a hand with the altruistic burden. The girls followed, at
-Betty’s leisure.
-
-“There’s no hurry about Dad’s things,” remarked Max, setting his
-load down by the roadside and dashing at the camera. Max could be
-enthusiastic with anybody. “What are you taking, old fellow? The lens
-doesn’t seem to be pointing anywhere.”
-
-“It’s pointing at a pictorial gate, an impressionist foreground, half a
-group of poplars, and any amount of mist and cloud ‘thrown in’. Frances
-actually says my view will be dull!”
-
-“Let’s look.”
-
-Max accordingly popped under the cloth, and presently emerged with a
-somewhat puzzled and dejected appearance.
-
-“I suppose it’s all right,” he remarked humbly to the owner of the
-camera; “though things do seem a little mixed in front.”
-
-“Poor Max! He doesn’t appreciate the charms of impressionism,” said
-Frances, coming up arm in arm with the serene Betty.
-
-“Ha! there’s another figure for me!” cried Austin next. “My star’s
-overhead this afternoon. Fly, Max, and tell Florry to hurry up. She’s
-the very thing for a photograph. There’s ‘pictorial value’ in any girl
-with long hair and an animated expression.”
-
-Max “flew” as desired; and, while he ran--by way of saving
-time,--acquainted Florry at the top of his voice with the honour in
-store for her. Florry naturally flew to meet the honour, reached Max
-midway, caught his hand, and dashed wildly back. They landed, at full
-pelt, in the middle of Frances, Betty, Austin, the camera, and the
-baskets. In the result, Austin and the smaller basket became as mixed
-as the impressionist foreground.
-
-“Goodness!” said the boy ruefully, picking himself up. “I’ve squashed
-your basket, Max, and all your father’s things are running out in
-streams!”
-
-The entire company precipitated themselves on the snow to examine the
-ruin.
-
-“It wasn’t medicine--it was port-wine,” confessed Max in sorrow; “Dad
-was sending it to old Briggs. Janet had made him some jelly and stuff,
-too. You needn’t mind, though, Austin; it was my fault.”
-
-“Bosh!”
-
-“You needn’t mind, either of you,” said Frances. “Mamma will give us
-some more port-wine, and we’ll beg a jelly from cook.”
-
-“Thank you,” said Max fervently. “You’re awfully kind,
-Frances,--Frances the Altruist!”
-
-“Now for the figures!” Austin sprang with recovered glee to his camera.
-“You’d better all stand nicely up against my carefully-arranged gate.”
-
-“But why should we all stand up against a gate?” objected Betty. “Let
-half of us, at least, sit down.”
-
-“Why should you sit down in the snow?” inquired Austin sensibly. “I
-should say that, for choice, you’d rather stand up.”
-
-“I could sit on my basket,” murmured Betty. But she allowed Austin to
-“place” her, as carefully as any handbook could desire, exactly against
-the middle of the gate, with Florry and Max on either hand.
-
-“Aren’t we a bit stiff?” suggested Max mildly. “Mightn’t I sit on top
-of the gate, instead of standing in a row with the girls? Or, as Betty
-likes sitting, couldn’t she mount the gate?”
-
-“Catch me!” cried Betty.
-
-“I’d hold you on,” said Max accommodatingly.
-
-“No, indeed!” said Austin severely; “Betty would block out my best
-clouds. And if you held her on, Max, I couldn’t take your eyes. I don’t
-fancy portraits when you can’t see the folks’ eyes.”
-
-“I could turn my face to you,” said Max persuasively, with a lingering
-fondness for his bright idea.
-
-Austin was immovable in his determination to arrange his friends in
-line, and to photograph all the eyes they could present to his camera.
-
-Finally, after the usual agonized commands to his sitters, Austin
-reached the vital moment and removed the cap from his lens. He remained
-then in a state of frantic uncertainty as to when he should put it on
-again; and remained uncertain so long that, before he could settle the
-important point, the six eyes watching his changeful countenance and
-palpitating person began to twinkle, and Betty giggled outright.
-
-“There!” said the photographer, with the calmness of despair, “that’s
-another plate done for!”
-
-“Oh, I’m so sorry!” said Betty penitently.
-
-“It isn’t as though it would have been a common picture either,”
-continued Austin stonily; “we’ve lost a really good thing. Not so much
-a snow-effect as a figure-study, with mist and clouds and poplars.”
-
-Betty was overwhelmed with shame.
-
-“If only I could have made up my mind!” broke out the artist bitterly.
-“If only I could have made up my mind a moment sooner, I should have
-capped the lens and saved my best picture!”
-
-“Austin dear,” remarked Frances quietly, “you have six plates in your
-slides.”
-
-This simple speech effected an immediate transformation. Austin
-remembered that his little all in the way of plates had not been torn
-from him. Betty recovered her spirits, and having magnanimously offered
-to “stand out, in case she spoilt another”, was warmly pressed to
-remain in and be immortalized. Frances suggested that, after removing
-the cap, Austin should count ten under his breath, and then do the
-deed. Florry added the useful hint that if Betty did not fix her gaze
-on the photographer’s worried countenance she might be better able to
-control her own.
-
-“Very well,” said Austin graciously, “you may turn your head just
-a trifle, Betty, and stare at that fir-tree. But I must have your
-eyes on the camera, Florry; and I’d like one or two of your curling
-locks pulled over your shoulder to show in front. I want to take your
-long hair and your animated expression. I believe,” finished Austin
-joyfully, “this picture will be better than the other. I hadn’t
-remembered the ‘pictorial value’ of Florry’s curls!”
-
-After several agitated moments, the photographer announced that his
-mission was accomplished.
-
-“I don’t believe any of you turned a hair,” he remarked gratefully.
-“I’m no end obliged to you. Let’s all tear off home and develop this
-plate.”
-
-“Oh, Austin!” remonstrated Frances; “you’re always in such a hurry! Do
-let’s take some more pictures first.”
-
-“All right. I’ll tell you what. We’ve six plates; one’s spoilt, and
-one’s properly exposed. That leaves four: one for each of you. I’ll sit
-on the gate, and watch you take them. Only do be a little quick, for
-I’m burning to develop my beautiful figure-study.”
-
-A chorus of thanks applauded this generosity; though, to tell truth,
-Austin’s possessions were always freely at the disposal of everybody.
-All the present party of friends knew enough of the photographic art to
-be able to “take” something--what, they were not quite sure until their
-work had gone through “development” at the hands of Austin or Frances.
-
-Frances now announced that her choice of subject should be the village
-of Woodend, from the brow of the hill whereon she stood. Betty wished
-to take a portrait of Frances and Florry. Max was already focussing
-Austin, as the latter perched on the gate,--“so as to give the girls
-time to think”. Florry declined to disclose her purpose till her
-comrades had had their turns.
-
-Austin’s eyes beamed with good-humoured triumph, as he obligingly
-turned them full on his friend; and Max “took” the eyes and their owner
-without any discomfiting entreaties for attention and tiresome worry
-about detail.
-
-Betty was so charmed with Austin’s pose that she insisted on Frances
-and Florry displacing him and mounting the gate.
-
-“I shall take you large,” she observed ambitiously; “just as big as I
-can get you on to the ground-glass.”
-
-The sitters made anguished efforts to keep still while Betty, who
-despised haste in photographic exposure as in everything, counted sixty
-aloud.
-
-“I’ve given my plate a minute,” she said with satisfaction. “Now
-something’s sure to come up.”
-
-Frances carried the camera into the field, and focussed her “view”.
-
-“Oh, put in a few figures to give interest!” begged Austin. “My
-handbook says they’re an enormous improvement to a quiet country
-landscape.”
-
-“Well, if Max doesn’t mind, he might just run across the field to that
-stile leading to the brook. He could be crossing over it, as though he
-were going to the village by the short cut.--When you’re half over it,
-Max, you might stand still, and--and--just try to look like moving.”
-
-Max ran to execute the required task, and his dramatic instincts
-brought him to a pause in an attitude quite suggestive of motion.
-
-“But he’s got his back to us,” objected Austin loudly. “We can’t see
-his eyes. Hi, Max! Turn round, I say!”
-
-“No, no!” shouted Frances. “Keep still!--I couldn’t see his eyes if
-he turned this way, Austin; he’s too far off. This is a view, not a
-portrait.”
-
-“Oh!” said Austin in disgust; “you could easily have made it a
-figure-study.”
-
-Frances, however, appeared satisfied, and speedily recalled Max. To
-Florry now fell the post of responsibility, and the last plate.
-
-Florry, as dramatist, author, poet, painter, and musician, was easily
-first among the artistic youth of Woodend. Her social qualities were
-as naught in the eyes of Mrs. Morland, for she did not understand how
-to appear “to advantage” before select circles of her elders, and
-among her fellows she held her many gifts as the property of all. When
-the universal voice demanded it, Florry emerged from her shell, and
-wrote, painted, or played to order, without even the affectation of
-incompetence. She was the sole darling of a refined and modest home,
-where her talents were wisely nourished and never overstrained.
-
-Florry, with a thoughtful brow, now delivered herself:
-
-“I wish you would all go and look at Max’s basket again.”
-
-“Why? What for?”
-
-“I mean, just as you did before. Frances and Betty squatting anyhow in
-the snow; Austin standing up with his legs apart, his cap pushed back,
-his hands in his pockets, and looking awfully ashamed of himself; Max
-down on one knee, holding the broken bottle, and with such a dismal
-face.” Florry caught hold of the camera and led the way back to the
-roadside. She had an idea.
-
-“It will be a picture--we’ll call it ‘Disaster!’,” she went on rapidly.
-“Frances and Betty will be showing each other the wasted jelly and
-beef-tea. It won’t be acting--it will be real.”
-
-The young people threw themselves with their usual enthusiasm into
-Florry’s plan. As they grouped on the snow, Florry, who was careful of
-details, requested Austin to turn up his collar in consideration of
-the wintry atmosphere she wished to preserve in the composition of her
-picture, and implored him to look at the ruin he had wrought, and not
-to stare, round-eyed, at the camera.
-
-“Is it a quick plate?” she asked him.
-
-“No;--I’m sorry. My handbook says slow plates are best for
-snow-effects; and when we came out, I meant--”
-
-“Never mind! Just wait a moment, as quiet as you can, while I draw my
-shutter. But when I say ‘Now!’ mind you don’t wink an eye.”
-
-“Winking an eye,” began Austin eagerly, “wouldn’t show on a slow plate.
-It--”
-
-“Hush--sh--sh! We sha’n’t hear Florry’s ‘Now!’”
-
-The group waited and listened.
-
-“I’ve done,” said Florry calmly. And she capped her lens as she spoke.
-
-“Why, you never said ‘Now’!”
-
-“And I’m not going to. I wasn’t likely to let you all look like
-statues.”
-
-“We’ve been ‘took’ unawares!” cried Austin, dancing wildly round Max
-and the basket.
-
-“Florry’s a base deceiver!” said Frances, chuckling over the little
-ruse. “Now we’ll pack our traps and learn our fate in the dark-room.”
-
-Subsequent proceedings in the ammonia-perfumed apartment need not be
-here described, but I give the result.
-
-Austin’s developed plate revealed the distressing fact that a trifling
-twist of the camera had caused the disappearance of the half-group of
-poplars. There remained to him the gate, with a tin-soldier row of
-diminutive figures in front of it--their backs to the fading light, and
-their faces consequently indistinguishable as to eyes and all other
-features; a long stretch of hedge, running aimlessly across the picture
-to the right as though seeking a lost vanishing-point; a foreground
-more mixed than the most ardent impressionist could have believed
-possible; and a dark expanse of nothing where the mist and clouds ought
-to have been.
-
-Max had three portraits of Austin. That is to say, his figure
-faithfully represented Austin at three different moments, as the model
-had oscillated on his slippery perch.
-
-Betty’s desire for size had given her two gigantic heads, which
-acknowledged her leisurely exposure by deliberately fading away
-before her anxious eyes, leaving her with a coal-black plate and a
-disappointed soul.
-
-Frances’s lights were a little hard and her shadows a little heavy;
-but Woodend village loomed with no more than artistic vagueness on
-her plate, and her short exposure had preserved her mist and clouds.
-And Max’s far-off figure was quite life-like. Frances hoped that
-her negative would, after all, yield a decent print, and Austin was
-consoled by the thought that Woodend village had been photographed at
-last.
-
-There was no light in the dark-room save that which came from Austin’s
-ruby lamp, and a flickering reflection through the red-paned window of
-the waning day without. Frances developed Florry’s plate with friendly
-care, and announced results to the group peering over her shoulders.
-
-“It’s coming up!” was the first exciting news. (Don’t press so, Austin
-dear; you’re shaking my arm, and I can’t rock the dish properly.)
-“Oh, it’s coming up all over, quite slowly, and ever so nicely! Not
-those splashes of black here and there--which just mean fearfully
-high high-lights, and nothing else in particular,--and not black fog
-everywhere, like poor Betty’s. Oh, it’s coming more, it’s getting
-plain! There’s Austin’s furry collar, and Betty’s woolley cloud, and
-Max’s black collar--I mean, his white collar showing black! And
-there’s the basket, and the broken bottle, and the spoilt jelly! It’s
-lovely! I think all the details have come out now. Shall I stop?”
-
-“Oh, no!” pleaded Austin. “Make it pretty dense, then we’ll see
-ourselves through the back.”
-
-So Frances resigned herself to future slow printing, and developed a
-good, strong negative, which, when fixed, rinsed, carried out to the
-brightest light attainable, and examined through the back over a black
-cloth, was found to reveal a delightfully natural presentment of the
-agitated group round about the broken basket.
-
-Austin gazed long, and drew a tremendous breath.
-
-“It’s a dream!” he murmured low, and turned away full-hearted.
-
-This triumph and Frances’s modest success were carefully consigned
-to the plate-washer beneath the running tap, the “wasters” were
-thrown aside, and the troop of boys and girls departed to secure the
-replenishment of Max’s stores.
-
-Then the young folks prepared to separate. It was Christmas-day, and
-long absence from home was impossible. Max was due at the cottage of
-old Briggs, and Frances and Austin must set him on his way. So down the
-drive to the gate pelted the lively four, promising themselves many
-more exciting hours with the wizard camera, which could turn a roadside
-accident into a “dream”.
-
-Frances was still standing outside the gate, giving a last wave to her
-retreating friends, when she caught sight of a dark figure advancing
-from the direction of the village.
-
-“Austin,” she called to her brother, “do come here. I believe I see
-poor Jim East. Yes, I’m sure it’s he. Fancy! Oh, poor Jim! Let’s stay
-and speak to him.”
-
-“Oh, I don’t know. I don’t feel like saying--things.”
-
-“Don’t be so unkind. Surely we can show we’re sorry?”
-
-“Well, you do the talking, then. I’ll stick here in the shade till I
-see what he looks like.”
-
-“He’s walking very slowly. I’m sure he’s sad. Oh, poor Jim!”
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER VIII.
-
-JIM EAST.
-
-
-Jim East, in his dark-hued mourning garments, had from afar appeared
-sad indeed in the eyes of Frances. As he came nearer, she saw signs
-not of sadness alone, but of sensations more strange to the girlish
-onlooker. The sorrow he had just experienced could hardly account for
-the wistful expression in the lad’s face, or for a certain hopefulness
-in his bearing. Jim was coming forward to meet, with what courage he
-could command, the crucial moment of his young life. He was trying to
-assure himself that he had a right to expect that the ordeal would pass
-and leave him happy.
-
-“He is very lonely,” reflected Frances pityingly; “he has begun to feel
-that he is lonely. I wish I could comfort him, but I don’t know how.”
-
-Setting aside all possibility of administering comfort, it must surely
-be a simple thing to condole and sympathize with Jim. Frances felt that
-she could do both, for she had sincerely liked the old grandfather, and
-was glad now to recall the sacrificed holiday hours for which he had
-thanked her with moist eyes and grateful lips. She took a step forward
-lest Jim should pass her with his usual quiet salute, but she saw that
-this had not been his intention. He turned a little, even before she
-moved, and directed his course to her without hesitation.
-
-“She will be kind,” thought the lad as his gaze rested on Frances, and
-she greeted him with a smile. “Grandfather was right, he said she would
-be kind. If only she knew how I want her to be kind!”
-
-Jim’s yearning was no more translatable through his face than was his
-simple trust in a girl’s faith. Frances had left him the treasured
-belief that in her sight his work, however humble, was honourable;
-himself, however lowly, above reproach. She had not forced on him, as
-had Austin, more than once, the recognition of differences of class,
-habit, and attainment. These, she knew, were obvious enough to modest
-Jim. Instead, she had shown him a gracious friendliness which had
-roused the lad to wondering gratitude; while her intelligent interest
-in his monotonous labour had given it value apart from bread-winning
-necessity.
-
-Jim, in his ill-fitting cloth suit of rustic cut, was in Frances’s
-eyes a much more pretentious and less picturesque figure than Jim the
-blacksmith working at his forge. A little half-conscious regret that
-Jim himself was likely to hold a contrary opinion was promptly stifled
-by the remembrance that in his case, at least, the wearing of mourning
-garb was no meaningless form.
-
-“Good-evening, Jim!” Frances’s right hand rested lightly on the
-half-opened gate which bounded the carriage-drive to Elveley. “I’m
-glad you’re here. I’ve wanted to tell you how very sorry I am for your
-trouble. It isn’t only I, either; all of us boys and girls are sorry.
-Your grandfather was always good to us; and we liked him, ever so much.
-Of course,” she went on gravely, “I know that we can’t feel as you do,
-because you miss him all day long. But you won’t forget, will you, when
-you are sad and lonely, that we are sorry too?”
-
-“No, Missy,” said Jim in a low voice, “I won’t forget; and I thank you
-kindly for speaking so.”
-
-“Then you will try to cheer up, won’t you, Jim? And we will all come to
-see your dear smithy; and you must come sometimes to our meetings and
-help us with the village-boys.”
-
-A scrape of Austin’s foot on the gravel warned Frances of his strong
-objection; but at that moment his sister’s thoughts were echoing the
-quavering tones of an old man’s voice, begging her, when Jim should be
-left solitary, to be kind to the lonely lad.
-
-“We hope you will come to help us,” persisted the girl.
-
-“I’ll do anything as you may wish,” Jim replied. “I’ll be proud
-to serve you, Missy.” He lifted his head then; the gentleness of
-Frances’s accents moving him to look to her face in search of help
-for the better meeting of his fate. The lad was in sore need of
-some encouragement, for he knew that the errand which had brought
-him to Elveley this Christmas-day was one that might well startle,
-if it did not repel, his listener. And above all things Jim dreaded
-to see Frances’s pain or to hear her reproach. The position he now
-occupied was intolerable to the boy’s sensitive nature. But guessing
-instinctively that in telling his story the simplest words would be
-the best, and the briefest phrases the most acceptable, Jim began his
-explanations without any sort of pretence at ingenious circumlocution.
-
-“I came to see you this afternoon, Missy, because of something you
-don’t know about--something Grandfather told me just before he died.
-I’m feared--I’m feared it isn’t what you’ll wish to hear. Grandfather
-told the doctor, too; but not till he’d promised to keep quiet.
-Grandfather wished me to tell you myself. He wished me to tell you on
-Christmas-day, because then, he said, folks thought kinder of everyone,
-let alone their own kindred. So I’ve been waiting all day, but somehow
-I couldn’t bear to come. I wanted to come, but I was feared, in case
-Grandfather was wrong when he said you would be kind. He bade me speak
-first to you.”
-
-“Jim,” said Frances slowly, though her heart beat fast, “I don’t
-understand you in the very least.”
-
-“Likely not, Missy. But it’s true what Grandfather told me, and I’ve
-brought the papers, as he wished, for Madam to see.”
-
-“For my mother to see?” asked Frances wonderingly.
-
-“Ay, Missy. And,” added Jim, with a sudden, natural break in his
-self-control, “won’t you please try to be kind to me? I’m your own
-father’s son.”
-
-“What!” exclaimed Frances, drawing back against the gate. “Jim! You!
-What do you mean?”
-
-“I’m Mr. Morland’s eldest son,” said Jim, in hurried tones, vibrating
-with mingled hope and fear. The hope was built on memory alone, the
-fear was roused by the shrinking dread he had fancied present in
-Frances’s face and voice.
-
-“My mother was Martha East, Grandfather’s only daughter,--there had
-been one son, who had died. My mother wished to marry Mr. Morland, but
-Grandfather wouldn’t let her, for fear he’d tire of her; so they ran
-away, and married without leave. Mr. Morland was good to Mother, and
-they were very happy.”
-
-Jim paused a moment, in keen distress, for he saw that Frances had
-grown white, and that she trembled as she leant for support against the
-gate.
-
-“Not long before he married, Mr. Morland had promised a great Society
-in London to go for them to some country where he had travelled, and
-try to find out something they wanted to know. So when the time came
-he was obliged to go right away to some place in Asia; and before he
-went he took my mother to her old home--for he had no relations of his
-own--and begged Grandfather to take care of her till he came back.
-When he’d been away three months, word came to England that he’d been
-lost--taken prisoner, and carried off by some robber-tribes. There was
-no more heard of him, and Mother began to fret and pine, for it was
-said he’d never come home again. Mother lived only a few months after
-she’d got the news. She said she couldn’t live without her husband. I
-was born two months before she died.”
-
-Jim hesitated, his voice faltering again as he glanced at Frances’s
-face, in which the dread was now too clear to allow of mistake. The
-hopefulness left the lad’s tones altogether, and he finished his story
-in nervous haste.
-
-“They thought I’d die too, but I didn’t; and Grandfather, being alone,
-except for me, was glad I lived. Mother had called me Austin after my
-father, and James after her brother; but Grandfather always called me
-Jim. He’d loved his daughter dearly, but he was proud, and didn’t like
-her having married among gentlefolk, who’d look down on him as just a
-rough farmer. So, seeing he thought as my father was dead, as well as
-my mother, he reckoned he’d keep me and bring me up a working-man.
-
-“I was six months old when Mr. Morland came back. He had been rescued
-by some travellers, who had been sent to search for him. When
-Grandfather heard the news, he made up his mind as he’d keep me still,
-and he did. They said in the certificate as my mother had died of a
-fever that was about the village where Grandfather lived then; and
-Grandfather took this paper and went to town to meet my father, and
-told him how Mother had died, but never a word about me. My father
-was dreadfully grieved not to find his wife waiting for him; and
-Grandfather told him--quite true--how she’d always loved him, and
-fretted after him, and spoken of him tender at the last.
-
-“Then Grandfather took me away to the north, but he always managed to
-know where my father was. He knew when Mr. Morland married again, and
-that he had children, and when he died. And a few months ago, knowing
-he was failing in health and soon to leave me, he began to think as he
-oughtn’t to have kept me away from my father’s folk, so that I’d be
-left all alone in the world; and he found out where you were living,
-and bought Rowdon Smithy so that we could settle near you. He meant
-that some day I should come to you and beg you to be good to me.” Jim’s
-eyes and voice pleaded eloquently. “I’m your brother, Missy! your own
-father’s son. I’ll always care for you and little master if you’ll let
-me. I’d be proud to work for you, only”--Jim sighed forlornly--“there’s
-naught you need.”
-
-Frances stood silent and utterly confused. She might have fancied that
-Jim’s sorrow had turned his brain, but for his intense earnestness and
-the straightforward way in which he had told his strange story. Again,
-she remembered facts which gave the story corroboration. For instance,
-the old grandfather’s solemn expressions of pleasure and satisfaction
-that he had seen her, and his evident delight in witnessing any
-kindness she had shown to his boy. Then Frances knew that her father
-had been a distinguished member of a learned Society, and in his youth
-had travelled far to serve the cause of science. She had heard of his
-romantic imprisonment and rescue; and though she never had been told
-that he had been married twice, she saw that in this respect Jim’s
-statements might easily be true. Her father had died while she was very
-young, and her mother might not have cared to speak, to a mere child,
-of her own predecessor.
-
-As she hesitated, painfully conscious of Jim’s troubled and searching
-glances, she was relieved to hear her brother step forward. What Austin
-would say she could not guess, but at least his words might help her
-own. The boy did not turn to her for prompting, though he stood by her
-side, his face flushed and disturbed.
-
-“Is it all true, Jim East,--what you’ve been telling my sister?”
-
-Austin’s tone was masterful, and by no means suggestive of a
-willingness to believe; but it served to rouse Jim’s pride, which had
-refused to help its owner hitherto. The lad gained self-command, and
-after answering Austin’s question with a simple “Yes”, turned again
-pointedly to Frances for some sort of comment. The girl felt that she
-must speak. Her perceptions were always quick, though they gained in
-force from her reluctance to hold them final; and now her confusion
-vanished before the overwhelming certainty that Jim had spoken the
-truth--that he, the uneducated, shy young blacksmith, his face
-roughened with exposure, his hands hard with toil, was indeed her own
-father’s son, and her kin in blood.
-
-“It is all true,” said Jim once more.
-
-“Oh!” cried Frances passionately; “Oh, Jim, I hope it is not true!”
-
-“Not true!” repeated Jim blankly. “You hope it is not true, Missy?
-Why?--I’m rough, maybe,--but I’d never be rough to you. It is true,
-Missy; I’ve the papers to show Madam. I’m your father’s eldest child.”
-
-Jim’s trembling hands sought vaguely in his pockets.
-
-“Oh, don’t say it--don’t say it!” went on Frances, in extremity of
-fear and distress. “It--it couldn’t make any difference if it were
-true,--don’t you see? We’re not alike in--in anything; we never could
-be alike now. Oh, I don’t know how it sounds--what I’m saying! I dare
-say it’s horrid, and conceited, and--and--not fair. But it wasn’t we
-who settled whose you should be; and it’s your grandfather’s fault,
-not ours!” Frances hurried out her words as though her own ears were
-ashamed to listen to them. “He kept you back--he wouldn’t let you
-belong to Papa,--and now he wants you to come to us, when it’s too
-late.”
-
-“Too late?” echoed Jim.
-
-“Yes, it’s too late!” repeated Frances almost fiercely; “you belong to
-your mother’s people, not to us. You know there is--a difference. If we
-were all little, it wouldn’t matter; but Austin and I are too old not
-to feel--to feel--”
-
-“To feel shame of me, Missy?” suggested Jim quietly.
-
-The peasant lad was standing erect and calm, and his grave eyes hardly
-hinted at the agony which had come to him with the breaking of his
-happy dream. If his imagination had idealized this young sister of his,
-as well as a future which, in truth, would have been impossible as
-he had pictured it, he could find blame for no one save himself. His
-memory still dwelt tenderly on his grandfather, and he now wondered
-how he ever could have supposed that the daintily-reared young
-Morlands would have a thought of toleration for him and his claim of
-brotherhood.
-
-“How can we help feeling ashamed? It’s not our fault!” reiterated
-Frances bitterly.
-
-“You didn’t feel shame to speak to me at the smithy,” said Jim.
-
-Then Frances, hardly knowing how to account for sensations of repulsion
-which she knew to be unworthy, broke into child-like tears.
-
-“You--you were a very nice blacksmith,” she sobbed, “and your house was
-clean and tidy, and we liked to see the forge.”
-
-“But we don’t exactly want a blacksmith-brother?” added Austin
-interrogatively, while he looked curiously at his sister.
-
-Frances seized his hand, and tugged it nervously.
-
-“Oh, Austin, come away!”
-
-“Wait,” interrupted Jim, in a dull voice; “won’t you stay till I’ve
-seen Madam? I promised Grandfather I’d see Madam, and show her the
-papers, to prove he’d told true. Mayhap she won’t turn from me,--won’t
-you wait?”
-
-“I can’t!” murmured Frances, shrinking as Jim advanced. “And Mamma will
-only be angry if you go to her.”
-
-“I don’t see why she should be angry,” said Austin, who was the best
-controlled of the three. “Go up to the front door, Jim East, and
-they’ll let you in. Then you’ll see our mother. I’ll wait here.”
-
-“Austin, come with me!” begged Frances.
-
-“No--I’ll wait here.”
-
- * * * * *
-
-Mrs. Morland laid the papers aside with a little well-bred gesture of
-courtesy. Careless her examination of them had seemed to Jim; but in
-reality she had grasped their contents accurately, and had no doubt
-that they were genuine. The stately, beautifully-dressed woman leaned
-back in her luxurious chair, and her fine eyes, which had forgotten
-their youthful softness, scanned Jim from head to foot. She seemed to
-find his appearance amusing.
-
-“My good lad,” she said, in her clear, refined voice, “I am quite aware
-that I was Mr. Morland’s second wife, and that his first was beneath
-him in station. He was an honourable man, and he told me all the facts
-of his pretty rustic idyll. I believe that he even told me that the
-young woman’s name was Martha East. In any case, there is no reason why
-her name should not have been Martha East. Nor is there any reason why
-she should not have left a child. I do not wish to profess incredulity
-concerning your statement that you are Martha East’s son, and that your
-existence was hidden deliberately from Mr. Morland by your grandfather.
-Such an action would, of course, be underhand and selfish; but one does
-not expect from the uneducated classes a great refinement of motive
-or honesty of conduct. It would be unreasonable to do so. It would
-have been unreasonable, for instance, if I had supposed that, when
-this piece of news was communicated to you, you would have resolved to
-spare Mr. Morland’s other children the pain and annoyance of hearing
-it also. That would have been the sort of conduct I could have had the
-right to expect only from a gentleman. Your grandfather’s training
-would naturally teach you differently. It would incline you to take the
-course which promised most gain to yourself.”
-
-Jim raised his eyes and looked steadily at the speaker.
-
-“I do not blame you,” continued Mrs. Morland, with a quick movement
-of deprecation; “your behaviour has been according to your lights. It
-makes it the more easy for me to credit your story, which has, however,
-no concern for me or my children. As your grandfather probably knew,
-Mr. Morland was not a land-owner, and his fortune was absolutely at his
-own disposal. Consequently, his will would hold good; and the discovery
-of an elder child would in no way affect his provision for my son and
-daughter.”
-
-“Madam--Madam,” said Jim sternly, “you have no right to think as I was
-wanting the money!”
-
-“Then what did you want?” asked Mrs. Morland, smiling slightly. “You
-wished, perhaps, that I should adopt you--take you to live here, as my
-children’s equal and companion?”
-
-“No,” said Jim, speaking firmly and bravely, “I did not wish that. I
-only hoped as you’d allow I belonged to them, and had a right to care
-for them, and--they for me.”
-
-“Poor boy, you are quite modest and nice! I am afraid you do not
-precisely understand social distinctions. Your grandfather made choice
-of your future position for you, when he concealed your birth from
-my husband. You have been brought up a working-man; and it would be
-impossible, as it is quite unnecessary, for you to fit yourself for any
-other kind of life.”
-
-“I had no thought of doing so,” said Jim, maintaining his composure in
-spite of failing heart.
-
-“I have no doubt that when you come to reflect, you will see matters
-in a sensible light. For your sake, I am sorry that your grandfather,
-having kept silence so long to suit his own convenience, did not keep
-it to the end to suit yours. You would have been happier without this
-foolish revelation, which I advise you speedily to forget. I will
-say nothing more about your coming here; you have merely obeyed your
-grandfather’s selfish wish. But there is something I must say concerning
-the future.”
-
-Mrs. Morland raised herself, and, leaning forward, spoke in a firm,
-distinct tone, very different from her previous cynical indifference.
-
-“You must understand, once for all, that I can allow no sort of
-acquaintanceship between you and my children. They are mine, and I
-have the right to decide what is best for them. They have, I believe,
-shown you some kindness--in return, I readily admit, for kindness shown
-to them by your grandfather. You and they are therefore quits, and I
-wish all intercourse between you and them to cease from this moment. I
-understand that your grandfather bought for you a cottage and workshop
-at a place called Rowdon, not far from here, and that he provided for
-you according to the needs of the station in which he brought you up?”
-
-“Ay, Madam.”
-
-“To some extent, then, he justified his conduct. Well, in the same
-way I have bought a house here, I have placed my children at a school
-where they are happy, I have surrounded them with the comforts, the
-pleasures, the luxuries, to which they are accustomed.”
-
-Mrs. Morland stumbled for a second, as her eyes rested on the rough
-clothing and labour-hardened hands of her husband’s eldest son. But if
-there was an opening for reproach, Jim did not avail himself of it.
-
-“I do not envy them their better fortune, Madam. Indeed, I do not.”
-
-“You have no occasion to. If you have missed what you might have had,
-it has been no fault of theirs or mine. I have settled here, in my own
-house, and my children are learning to love their home. You, perhaps,
-are attached to yours. I have no wish to suggest that you should go
-elsewhere, and I should prefer not to do so myself. At the same time,
-my resolve that you and they shall hold no intercourse is unalterable;
-and I will rather break up my home than have its peace destroyed. If
-you will give me your promise to keep silence on this purely private
-matter--which never ought to have been brought forward--and to refrain
-from forcing yourself on my children, there is no reason why you and
-they should not rest undisturbed.”
-
-Mrs. Morland waited in an anxiety to which her manner gave no clue.
-
-“I never thought of telling anyone,” said Jim simply. “I never meant to
-come here against your will. I’ll promise, as you wish.”
-
-He picked up the papers Mrs. Morland had laid aside, and thrust them
-back into his pocket. The young blacksmith would have been puzzled to
-know what was meant by theories of life and analyses of conduct; but he
-did not lack intelligence, and he perceived that he was being treated
-unworthily by his father’s widow. For the two children he had lately
-left he had no condemnation, though from them had come the only stabs
-which had reached his heart.
-
-“I’ll go now, Madam,” he said. “I’ve done as my grandfather bade me,
-and I hope you’ve seen as he spoke true.”
-
-“Yes,” reflected Mrs. Morland, while Jim was closing the door softly
-behind him, “the wretched old man did ‘speak true’! That boy has
-his father’s eyes and expression--he is like Frances. None of those
-marvellous resemblances one reads of in story-books, of course; but
-there are sometimes traces which recall personalities more closely than
-a stronger likeness would. I hope, I hope against hope, that he’ll keep
-his word! If he’s his father’s son, he will.”
-
- * * * * *
-
-Down by the garden-gate Frances and Austin Morland awaited Jim’s
-return. Frances had striven hard to draw her brother away; but as he
-would neither leave his post nor talk to her, she remained by his side,
-acutely miserable. With tongues inactive, the girl and boy thought the
-more. Frances felt a self-accusing shame which she could not escape
-and did not know how to justify. She was not old enough to probe her
-nature with searching finger, and find there that very sensitiveness to
-the opinions of others which she always had thought so poor a thing.
-She wondered only why the sudden appearance of a blacksmith-brother
-should seem so great a misfortune to her--to her whom her friends had
-nicknamed “Frances the Altruist”, who had appeared to have a mission
-for the better instruction of less liberal-minded persons! She was a
-sinner against her own code, a traitor to her own cause.
-
-Frances did not tell herself these facts: she merely felt them in a
-kind of vague disturbance. Self-consciousness is not a fault bred in
-public schools; and the influence which, though brief in duration,
-had so strongly affected her, had not tended to develop unchildlike
-self-introspection.
-
-“Here he comes.”
-
-Austin spoke at last, and his sister, with a little shiver, drew close
-to him. The boy laid his hand on her arm, in a gesture which was at
-once affectionate and protecting.
-
-“Never mind, Sis. We can’t help things happening.”
-
-Jim’s footsteps drew close. The lad had forgotten Austin’s promise, and
-in the gathering darkness did not quickly see the watchers by the gate.
-He gazed straight before him as he came, and would have passed the two
-Morlands had Austin not stepped forward.
-
-“You’ve seen my mother, then?”
-
-Jim, with a start, looked at the speaker, not knowing what his own face
-revealed.
-
-“Yes--I’ve seen Madam.”
-
-“You showed her those papers--whatever they were? Did she believe what
-you said?”
-
-“Yes. It didn’t make any difference. I’d rather be going, please,”
-added Jim, trying to open the gate on which Austin had laid his hands.
-
-“Stay!... No, never mind! I’ll ask Mamma myself.” Austin opened the
-gate, mounted it, and swung out with it into the roadway. From this
-convenient perch he fixed a steady and observant gaze on the figure of
-the unwelcome visitor.
-
-“We might have said good-bye to him?” queried Frances in a shaking
-voice.
-
-“Perhaps--if we’d meant it,” returned Austin carelessly. “Frances, I’m
-going to Mamma. You come too.”
-
-So Austin led the way. Mrs. Morland had already sent a servant to look
-for her children, and they met the man on the steps.
-
-In the drawing-room Austin put his questions straight.
-
-“Jim East has been here, hasn’t he, Mater? He has been telling Frances
-and me queer things. Are they true?”
-
-“How am I to know what he has told you, my darling?” asked Mrs. Morland
-diplomatically.
-
-“He told you too, didn’t he? He said he was our brother.”
-
-“Your half-brother, dearest,” corrected Mrs. Morland gently. “A mixed
-relationship merely. You need not remember it.”
-
-“Is it true? Is he our father’s son?”
-
-“I believe he is. I shall make inquiries, of course, but I have no
-doubt they will confirm his story. He brought proofs which appeared to
-me sufficient; some letters of your father’s, for instance.”
-
-There was a brief pause, while Austin stood thoughtful, and Frances
-scanned her mother’s face.
-
-“I tell you these things, children,” continued Mrs. Morland
-composedly, “because I wish you to understand the position clearly,
-and also my wishes with regard to it. This poor lad is probably your
-half-brother, but he has been brought up apart from you, and you and he
-have nothing in common. There are many reasons why I could not possibly
-allow you to be intimate with him. Such persons have different thoughts
-and feelings, and use different language, from any I could allow you to
-become accustomed to.”
-
-Austin looked steadily at his mother.
-
-“I’ve seen Jim East--no! I suppose it’s Jim Morland!--a good many
-times, Mater. I don’t know about his ‘thoughts and feelings’, but I’ve
-never heard him say a word you wouldn’t have liked us to listen to.”
-
-Frances saw her brother glance at her for confirmation, and murmured
-lamely: “No, he always spoke nicely.”
-
-“I am glad to hear it,” said Mrs. Morland drily. “That lessens my
-regret at having let you both come in contact with your poorer
-neighbours. Indirectly, we owe all this nuisance to your fads and
-nonsense, Frances.”
-
-“Mamma,” said the girl, colouring, “Jim’s grandfather evidently meant
-to send him here some day. Mr. East came to live at Rowdon on purpose.”
-
-“It is horrible to think we have lived under a sort of espionage,” said
-Mrs. Morland impetuously. “The old man’s conduct, from first to last,
-was disgraceful. Let me never hear you speak of him again. And let me
-hear no more of the wretched boy he left behind. Austin and Frances,
-you will give me your word of honour that you will not again visit
-Rowdon Smithy, and that if you come across that lad anywhere you will
-take no sort of notice of him. You understand me?”
-
-Frances murmured a reply.
-
-“Then I have your distinct promise, Frances?”
-
-The girl knew that her brother was watching her. He, of course, would
-follow where she led.
-
-“Yes, Mamma.”
-
-“Yours also, Austin?”
-
-“Well, ... no.” The boy threw back his head with a proud motion. “See,
-Mater, I don’t want to be cheeky, or to vex you ... and what you say
-may be all right for Frances. She’s a girl; and though I can’t see
-what harm she’d come to at the smithy, I suppose she’s got to stay at
-home if you want her to. But I don’t care twopence about charity, and
-humble neighbours, and Altruists--except to please Frances, and join
-in any lark that’s going. I’ll cut the lot if you like. But if Jim is
-Jim Morland and our brother--half or whole--I’m not going to cut _him_.
-That would make me a jolly cad, anyhow.”
-
-Austin, who was certainly innocent of any desire for melodramatic
-effect, stopped abruptly, the better to observe his hearers. Frances
-had dropped her face between her hands--now, why on earth, Austin asked
-himself, had she done that? Mrs. Morland had started upright, angry and
-bewildered. What was the matter with her? Did she suppose--did anyone
-suppose--a fellow was going to cut his own brother?
-
-“Austin!” exclaimed Mrs. Morland, “do I understand that you threaten to
-disobey me? Do you wish to make me miserable, and bring shame upon us
-all? Don’t imagine I shall allow you to do it. You are only a child,
-and utterly incapable of judging for yourself on so important a matter.
-You will simply do as I order you. By and by, when you come of age,
-you can of course throw my authority aside. In the meantime you are
-entirely under my control. I forbid you to speak again to this young
-blacksmith. That is enough.”
-
-Mrs. Morland leant back on her cushions almost overcome. Her agitation
-was very real; for though Austin had not interrupted her, she had seen
-no sign of yielding on his handsome, boyish face--out of which, as she
-had spoken, had passed all the carelessness and all the pride.
-
-“Mater--I don’t know how to tell you properly--but I think you’d speak
-differently if you had seen Jim at the gate just now. Frances had
-chucked him up, you know, when he came first; and then you had chucked
-him up, and he was going away without a word. He looked awfully _down_.
-I thought it was hard lines.”
-
-Austin pushed away, with an abrupt, half-nervous movement, the chair
-across which he had been leaning, and thrust his hands into his
-pockets. He was a typical little Englishman--a boy of that nation which
-despises demonstrations of sentiment; but there was an honest flush on
-his cheeks.
-
-“Look here, Mater,” he continued, “don’t you believe that if our father
-were alive he’d take Jim home this very minute? Wouldn’t he have him
-here with us, and treat him just the same?”
-
-Mrs. Morland sat speechless.
-
-“I think he would,” said Austin soberly; “I truly do. And,” he
-continued, a delicate instinct prompting him, “I can’t tell why you
-don’t; only, of course, I don’t know about all the things you know of.
-I’m just settling about myself. I saw Jim going away, looking _down_,
-and I meant to ask you to send someone to fetch him back.”
-
-“Austin!”
-
-“Why not?”
-
-“Because,” said Mrs. Morland indignantly, “I will not hear of such
-a thing. Do you suppose I will have all Woodend sneering at my
-blacksmith-stepson?”
-
-The boy kicked a stool vehemently.
-
-“Well, I won’t ask what isn’t any good. But I’d like to go after him
-myself, and say--something. And I think I’ll go.”
-
-“Austin! you--”
-
-“I think I’ll just go.”
-
-The boy was near to the door. He reached it in a few quick, firm steps,
-turned, waved his hand smilingly, and went.
-
-Mrs. Morland sprang up and moved some paces after him, then, with a
-helpless sigh, moved towards Frances. Why did not she run to stop the
-daring offender?
-
-But Frances had sunk into a chair, and was sobbing bitterly. Shrugging
-her shoulders, Mrs. Morland stepped rapidly to the bell and rang it.
-
-“John,” she said to the servant who appeared at the door, “I wish you
-to try to catch Master Austin. He has just left the room, and has, I
-think, gone out of doors.”
-
-“I saw Master Austin in the hall just now, ma’am.”
-
-“Make haste, then, and bring him back.”
-
-John hurried off, much exercised in his mind concerning his mistress’s
-distressed manner; and though used to a dignified pace, he fairly ran
-down the carriage-drive, threw back the gate, and stood gazing, now
-this way, now that.
-
-“Can hardly have got out of sight in this time,” reflected the puzzled
-servant. “Well! if that isn’t the sound of a pony coming down the
-drive! Master Austin must have got the beast saddled double-quick.
-What’s our young gentleman up to, I’d like to know? Well, I’ve got to
-stop him, I suppose.”
-
-John stood prepared in the middle of the gateway; and as Austin trotted
-into close quarters the servant explained his mistress’s orders.
-
-“Look here, John,” said Austin, his eyes glowing with mischief, “I’ve
-an excellent regard for you, and I’d be sincerely sorry to cut short
-your valuable career. But if you don’t move a bit to one side I’m
-afraid I’ll make short work of you. I’m going through that gate this
-instant!”
-
-As he spoke the boy touched his pony; the plucky little animal sprang
-forward, John sprang backward, and with a joyous laugh Austin was off
-down the road at full gallop.
-
- * * * * *
-
-Jim tramped steadily through Woodend village, noting his whereabouts
-only when his heedless progression brought him to a stop in the deep
-snow gathered at the sides of the pathways, or sent him floundering
-against wall or fence half-hidden in the heavy shadows. His thoughts
-kept him company, and shut out intrusive sensations concerning the
-white world around him. The lights blinked through the trees from
-the houses standing back among their gardens, and the sounds of
-mirthful family meetings strayed sometimes to the lad’s ears. It
-was Christmas-day--the day on which, so old Bill East had said,
-folks’ hearts beat tenderly for all their kin. Lower down the valley
-cottage-homes stood humbly in their tiny plots; and the windows, often
-uncurtained, revealed the rough comfort within. Homes of another
-sort--as those of Lumber’s Yard--lay back from view: among them Dr.
-Brenton and Max were paying a round of Christmas calls before settling
-down for the evening they never cared to spend apart.
-
-Jim tramped on. He had reached the entry to Lumber’s Yard, where a knot
-of the male residents had gathered for a sociable chat until it should
-be time to repair to the parlour of the “Jolly Dog”. One of the men
-called out to Jim, whose face was just then visible in the light from
-an open cottage-door. The lad heard the gruff greeting,--it came from
-Harry the Giant,--and the well-meant invitation which followed it.
-
-“Why, Jim East, you’re looking rarely glum and peckish! Cheer up, lad.
-Come wi’ me, and ’ave summat hot to hearten ye. We’re all agoing into
-the “Dog” this minnit. Come along wi’ us.”
-
-Jim paused irresolutely. Before his mental vision loomed the smithy,
-infinitely dreary; no welcome awaiting him save from four-footed
-friends. The old woman who kept the place clean and cooked meals for
-the Easts had begged a holiday, which had been granted cheerfully. Jim
-shivered as he thought of the lonely rooms.
-
-It was a searching moment for the poor lad. The cruel rebuffs of his
-kindred had cut him to the heart; more than that, they had threatened
-the ruin of his moral sense. If he were a creature so repellent in
-the eyes of those to whom his inner self had turned with instinctive
-yearning, surely he must have been mistaken in supposing that his
-nature could have qualities in common with theirs. Beauty of form,
-colour, or sound had always roused in him a glow of happiness, in
-which, during the last fortnight, he had tried--with a kind of grateful
-wonder--to recognize some latent refinement such as he supposed to be
-the inalienable possession of the gently born and bred.
-
-He was the son of one whom even his grandfather had admitted to be
-a gallant and honourable gentleman. He was the brother of Frances,
-with her gracious manner and gentle speech, and of Austin, whose gay
-courtesy towards his girl-playmates had secured Jim’s respectful
-admiration. But since Frances and Austin would have none of him,
-whither should he turn? Could he carry into his lonely, loveless life
-that higher purpose which would teach him, without help or sympathy,
-to shun the base and impure, and to cling to the thing which is right?
-Or must he sink, sink at once and for ever, to the level of such as
-these?... Jim dragged his thoughts from the memory of the beautiful
-home from which he had just been banished, and forced his eyes to rest
-intelligently on the slouching figures blocking the entry to Lumber’s
-Yard.
-
-“Thank you, Harry;”--the lad’s voice had an unusual firmness--“you are
-kind, but I must be getting home.”
-
-“There’s none to greet ye now,” persisted the giant good-naturedly.
-“Change your mind, and come wi’ us.”
-
-“I can’t,” said Jim quietly. “Good-night, and thank you, Harry.”
-
-More arguments, some rough, some jeering, followed him as he shook
-his head and walked on towards the darkening lanes beyond the village
-bounds. He chose mechanically the shortest way to Rowdon; and he had
-just turned into a by-road overhung by leafless elms, when a galloping
-pony caught him up, and was reined in with a jerk by his side.
-
-“Jim!”
-
-The lad started violently, and turned in amazement to see Austin
-Morland leaning from his saddle with hand outstretched.
-
-“Jim! I’ve come after you. Shake hands, old fellow.”
-
-Jim, still staring, obeyed half-consciously. The grip exchanged by the
-brothers satisfied Austin, and sent through Jim a strange thrill of joy.
-
-“I can’t quite make out things yet,” continued the younger boy, a
-little shy, but wholly friendly; “my mind’s a bit mixed, I fancy. But
-I know one thing--if you’re Jim Morland, we’ve got to stick to each
-other. Eh?”
-
-Jim muttered a choky affirmative.
-
-“Well, you are Jim Morland. Mater says so; and if she seems fussy at
-first, you and I aren’t going to worry. Perhaps she’ll come round.
-Anyhow, we’ll stick to each other. Eh?”
-
-“Ay--I’d give the world for you. I’ll not forget.”
-
-“If I could, I’d come with you now. But Frances and I can’t leave the
-Mater to-night. You see, Jim, don’t you?”
-
-“Dear lad, I’d not have you come.”
-
-“But you will have me--ever so often. Whether you like it or not. I’ve
-holidays now. See, Jim! I’ll come to-morrow, in the afternoon quite
-early. Will you look out for me?”
-
-“Will I not?”
-
-“Then good-bye now. Because of Frances and the Mater, you know. Don’t
-mope to-night, there’s a good fellow. I’ll come to-morrow, and won’t I
-wake you up! Shake hands again! Now I’m off. Good-bye, brother Jim!”
-
-The swift pony and his rider vanished. Jim Morland stood where they had
-left him, and his head sunk in his hands. Who shall despise him if, in
-his overwrought condition, he sobbed for very happiness?
-
-“And to think I nearly missed him! Ah, if I’d gone along of Harry!
-Thank God I didn’t.... I’d never go now. I’d never do aught to make him
-feel shame of me. I’ll care for him always--ay, and for Missy too!...
-He called me ‘brother Jim’, God bless him!”
-
-Jim went on through the darkness. At the smithy he found that Elizabeth
-had returned, made up his fire, and laid his table. Jim wandered about,
-too happy to eat. He was no longer alone in the world: he had a small
-brother, who was coming to see him to-morrow, and on many morrows.
-(Jim hardly paused to wonder how Austin had contrived to overcome his
-mother’s objections.) At last the lad dragged a chair to the blazing
-fire in the kitchen. His dog crouched at his feet. His great black
-tom-cat purred at his elbow. His fiddle invited a song of thanksgiving
-to which his heart piped its cheerful chorus.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER IX.
-
-FRANCES FALTERS.
-
-
-On the following day Austin paid his promised visit to Rowdon Smithy.
-There was no deceit in the boy, and he proclaimed his intention openly
-at home. The contest on the subject between himself and his mother
-was sharp and brief: Austin gained the day. Mrs. Morland had no idea
-how to enforce her commands, for she had at her disposal no means of
-coercion. Had it been possible to send her son to school, she would
-have taken this step immediately; but her husband’s objections stood in
-the way. There were no near relatives to whose charge she might, for a
-time, have consigned the little rebel, save the Scotch cousin with whom
-Austin had spent the last Easter holidays; and this cousin had gone
-to Australia to take up sheep-farming, in hopes of making a fortune,
-marrying, and settling down as an antipodean millionaire. Meanwhile,
-he was making short work of his patrimony; and Mrs. Morland did not
-exactly see her way to employ him as jailer.
-
-A settlement between the opposed forces was brought about by the wise
-diplomacy of Austin. The boy had always found that he had more than
-enough to do in taking care of his own conscience, and it did not for a
-moment occur to him that he was the appointed keeper of anybody else’s.
-Least of all was he inclined to try to dictate to his mother and
-Frances on points of duty or conduct; if only they would let him alone,
-he was quite willing to be equally tolerant.
-
-So Austin struck a bargain. His visits to the smithy were to be
-permitted, in return for a promise that he would not enlighten Woodend
-as to Jim’s revelations. Austin claimed one exception--he must and
-would tell Max everything. Dr. Brenton knew already; and the doctor
-and Max had no secrets from one another; so that Max, most likely, was
-already in possession of the strange news. Anyway, Austin could not
-shut out from his confidence his special chum.
-
-Mrs. Morland made the best of the matter, and secured for the present
-her own peace of mind by holding an interview with Max’s eccentric
-father.
-
-“Eccentric” Dr. Brenton certainly was in the eyes of Mrs. Morland, who
-had not hitherto entrusted the health of herself or her children to
-a medical man not possessed of a carriage and pair. The high esteem
-in which the Doctor was held by the gentle-people as well as the
-working-folk of Woodend had roused first her curiosity and then her
-scorn.
-
-“You must look more closely, dear Madam,” the old-fashioned Rector
-had said to her, “and beneath Brenton’s shabby coat you will see the
-spreading of an angel’s wings.”
-
-“I think not, sir,” Edward Carlyon had differed quietly; “beneath the
-shabby coat you’ll see only a shabbier waistcoat. The wings can wait a
-bit: we want the man.”
-
-Mrs. Morland was persuaded that she could secure the Doctor’s silence,
-and indeed she did so. But she did not forget, during a whole
-uncomfortable day, the “eccentric” man’s look as he bowed agreement to
-her request. Dr. Brenton heartily wished Jim well, and he knew that
-Mrs. Morland’s departure from Woodend would in no way help the lad; but
-while he handed his visitor to her carriage with punctilious courtesy,
-he wondered what manner of woman this was who could stoop to inflict so
-great an injustice.
-
-Though in the case of Austin Mrs. Morland gave way to what seemed to be
-necessity, she was careful to hold Frances to her promise. And Frances
-wavered miserably between the two parties, in this house divided
-against itself. Of one thing she was sure--she could not have taken the
-half-measures which had satisfied Austin. Had Frances acknowledged her
-brother at all, she must have acknowledged him to all the world. The
-feeling that in this respect Austin had fallen short of consistency
-warped her sympathy with his actions, and to some extent seemed to
-justify her own. She, surely, was at least consistent.
-
-When poor Frances reached this stage in her meditations, she began to
-falter. She remembered that she was still the leader of the Altruists,
-and that a score of boys and girls paid her real homage as the inspirer
-of deeds of self-denial and mercy. When the Carlyons’ school reopened
-after the Christmas vacation, Muriel’s pupils began slowly to detect
-some changes in their popular comrade. The girls with whom she had
-seemed hitherto to have least in common were those who now met eagerly
-her tardy advances. To be sought as friend and playfellow by Frances
-Morland had been a happy distinction to any of Miss Carlyon’s little
-band. Frances had never affected superiority, and it was impossible
-to suspect her of vanity; but her clear gray eyes had appeared to
-look beneath the surface, and to choose with unerring confidence the
-best natures as those most akin to her own. Her gentle sincerity had
-appealed to every loyal heart and won its ungrudging recognition.
-
-Now, in the society of her former favourites, she was dull and ill at
-ease; and when her new friends gathered round her, only too ready to
-hail her as leader, her instinctive contempt for the offered loyalty
-made her capricious and even tyrannical. Muriel Carlyon, who watched
-over her pupils with a very real tolerance and sympathy, knew a pang of
-disappointment as she saw Frances apparently content to reach a lower
-plane in character and conduct.
-
-At home, the girl’s altered demeanour was not less apparent than at
-school. Her influence over Austin must have gone for ever, she told
-herself, or he could not have differed from her on a point which was
-surely a test of individuality; and having so made up her mind, she
-soon brought about the state of things which had been purely imaginary.
-It was true that Austin had begun to spend a good deal of his leisure
-at the smithy, but he would at any time have given his sister’s affairs
-the preference. Now, however, Frances no longer invited his willing
-aid. The chemicals and dishes in the dark-room, once so fascinating,
-were thick with dust, since Austin found photography “no fun” without
-Frances. Prints had duly been taken from the two negatives which had
-been the Christmas-day successes, and Florry’s group and Frances’s
-landscape had been admired by half Woodend. But Frances could not
-endure the sight of either; and when copies were begged, no coaxing or
-pleading from Austin would induce his sister to help him to take them.
-
-The boy laid aside his camera and took up his fiddle. His patient
-teacher, a young Exham musician, was delighted with his sudden
-progress; and Mrs. Morland smiled complacently while she whispered to
-her friends:
-
-“Yes, Austin has always been musical--so like his dear father. Mr.
-Morland had quite a reputation as an amateur violinist. The Amati that
-is now Austin’s was once his. It gives me so much pleasure to see my
-dear boy take up in earnest the study of his instrument.”
-
-On reception days Mrs. Morland’s servants were sent to playroom and
-garden in search of the juvenile prodigy, but their efforts were vain.
-Austin’s performances were strictly private--private to himself and his
-brother Jim. For Jim’s sake he listened to his teacher’s instructions,
-and strove, in half-hours of self-sacrificial practice, to communicate
-those instructions to his own finger-tips. Then, later on, he could
-pass them on to Jim. And Jim sat willingly at Austin’s feet in the art
-and science of music, and found no evening dull on which he could pore
-over the exercise-books his brother had brought him, and repeat again
-and again on his own poor instrument some passage whose difficulty
-Austin had tried to help him to overcome.
-
-For many weeks matters held to the same course, and the Easter holidays
-came round to complete the year of Mrs. Morland’s residence in Woodend.
-Jim had kept his promise, and had not sought to make public the secret
-of his birth; and Dr. Brenton and Max and Austin had proved equally
-faithful.
-
-Max’s training, as much as his natural endowment, had given him a
-large heart and a most tolerant judgment. He was “all things to all
-men” in the best sense. With this true friend, Austin attempted no
-concealments, and felt that, without disloyalty, he might venture on a
-discussion of the one epoch-marking experience of his young life. He
-even tried to win from Max some opinion as to Frances’s share in Jim’s
-dismissal and banishment.
-
-“For it wasn’t a scrap like her,” remarked Austin in a puzzled voice;
-“Frances has always been such a stickler about justice and that, you
-know. Goodness! she’s down like a shot on a chap who doesn’t play
-fair--”
-
-“She used to be,” amended Max diffidently. The talk was of another
-fellow’s sister, and he trusted his tongue would remember its duty.
-“The other day, when Lal slanged Guy because Guy won that prize Lal
-wanted, I believe every girl except Frances slanged Lal in his turn for
-his sneakiness.”
-
-“My! wasn’t there a jolly row!” said Austin, chuckling at the
-recollection. “Ten of ’em all together giving it hot to that skunk Lal!”
-
-“Frances would have led the assault once on a time.” Max smiled,
-remembering not Lal’s rating only, but many occasions when Austin’s
-sister had exchanged her usual serenity for hot contempt of conduct
-base and ungenerous.
-
-“Yes, she would,” assented Austin slowly. “And that’s what I can’t make
-out--why she’s so different now.”
-
-“I think it’s because she’s so really fair and straight,” said Max in a
-sober voice, which breathed chivalrous determination to believe in the
-absent Frances. “And if she knows all the time that she isn’t exactly
-fair to Jim, she won’t want to come out strong about ‘justice’ when
-other folks trip.”
-
-Austin nodded his head in agreement. “That’s it! Besides, she’s a girl,
-and girls are cranky things; a fellow never knows quite how to take
-’em.”
-
-“Not a fellow’s own sister?” queried Max, with interest.
-
-“Bless you, no,” replied Austin, shaking his head this time, and
-speaking with conviction. “Why, I could make out any other chap’s
-sister better than I can make out Frances. But of course,” he added,
-sitting very erect, “Frances isn’t a common girl. She’s not so
-understandable as the rest of the lot, even.”
-
-“Do you know,” began Max seriously, “what she told me yesterday? She
-said she thought she’d have to give up being an Altruist!”
-
-“No!” exclaimed Austin.
-
-“She did! And I said: ‘Oh, Frances! don’t break up our club. It’s the
-first of our Woodend things which has gone on and been a success.’ And
-she said: ‘Of course it will go on, and far better without me.’ And I
-asked her why; and she said something, very low, about the nicest sort
-of girls--the girls who were the best Altruists--not caring for her as
-they used to do; and that they didn’t come so much to the meetings, and
-that she thought they would if she weren’t the leader.”
-
-“Well,” said Austin, in a crestfallen tone, “fancy Frances chucking up
-her beloved Society! She trots about with the Mater, too, ever so much
-more than she used to do, and it’s a bad sign. Imagine Frances sitting
-in a drawing-room, wearing her best togs, when she might be playing
-hockey with us!”
-
-“Yes--fancy!” echoed Max dismally.
-
-“She goes out to tea, like any silly, when she might be making bromides
-with me in the dark-room.”
-
-“Well, she gave me two pinafores out of the Altruists’ stores last
-week,” said Max, brightening; “she’s been so stand-off lately I was
-afraid to beg.”
-
-“Perhaps things will pick up,” said Austin. “I know what would make
-them do it soonest.”
-
-“What?”
-
-“Why, for the Mater to find out what a jolly good fellow Jim is, and
-make it up with him. Then Frances could follow suit, without any humble
-pie. There’s nothing a girl hates so much as having to own she’s in the
-wrong.”
-
- * * * * *
-
-The kindness he received from his young brother sank deeply into Jim’s
-heart, and went far to heal it of the soreness left by Frances’s
-repudiation of his plea for a kinsman’s position. Jim, as he truly
-put it, “thought the world of the lad”, and was almost pathetically
-proud of his handsome face and gallant bearing. During the prevalence
-of the bleak March winds Austin caught cold, and had one of his bad
-throats; and Jim was miserable all day and all night, except when Max
-was with him, assuring him that the boy was “getting on splendidly”,
-and promising to deliver to the interesting invalid every kind of
-affectionate message, supplemented by such gifts as were within Jim’s
-reach.
-
-Austin got well, and resumed his custom of riding to the smithy at
-least two or three days a week. The first time he went after his
-convalescence, he received from Jim a welcome which he never could
-forget. The elder lad’s wet eyes, shaking hands, and broken voice
-were evidence enough of his clinging love for the younger; and Austin
-realized, with some sobering emotion, that to his brother he was
-infinitely dear.
-
-A closer relationship grew between them. When the occasion served, they
-had long talks, and learned to know one another. Jim’s simple manliness
-of thought and deed roused in Austin a respect which kept down his
-secret impatience with his brother’s extreme tenderness of heart.
-Austin felt dimly that Jim ought to be resentful of the harsh decree
-which shut him out from the ease and luxury of the home at Elveley, and
-denied him the advantages due to his father’s son. He even tried to
-“stir Jim up a bit”, and encourage him to stand out against the powers
-that were.
-
-“I don’t know what’s mine,” remarked Austin one day, after much
-pondering over matters which had forced themselves on his boyish
-consideration, “but I’m sure you ought to have most of it. Why don’t
-you pluck up, Jim, and say so? Then you could study and go to college
-as you’d like to; and you’re such a grind, you’d come out an awful
-swell, and make the Mater and Frances proud of you!”
-
-To his surprise, Jim turned from him with a pained expression, and
-leaning against the window, murmured:
-
-“Lad, lad! Do you think I’d take aught from you?”
-
-“It wouldn’t be from me, really,” persisted Austin. “It would be only
-having what’s rightfully yours. Well, there! Don’t mope, Jim! Come on
-and give us another lesson in shoeing. I believe I’ll soon be able to
-tackle a gee all by myself. Won’t it be larks when I can!”
-
-Austin presently realized his ambition; and a fine dray-horse was
-proudly shod by a young gentleman in spotless flannels, while his
-admiring elder brother looked on to prompt and praise. Mrs. Morland
-was spared the knowledge of this achievement; but Austin confided it
-to Frances without hesitation. Frances’s native love of consistency
-moved her to vindicate her chosen position by a hot reproof of Austin
-for his unconventional conduct.
-
-“Well!” said the boy, profoundly bored, “you don’t stick to your own
-opinions, Miss Frances. Wasn’t it you who used to talk about any honest
-work being noble and beautiful, and all that tommy-rot? Now I don’t say
-shoeing horses is noble work, or beautiful, or anything. I just say
-it’s first-rate fun!”
-
-And Austin turned on his heel and went off.
-
-“There!” thought Frances bitterly, “he has gone away; he never stays
-with me now. He isn’t a bit my boy any longer. He’s Jim’s. Oh, how I
-wish we never had come to Woodend! But Jim says his grandfather always
-managed to know where we lived. How horrid it seems! I wish I’d been
-different to Jim. He looked so sorry. I think--I think I hurt him. I
-wish I were brave, and didn’t feel ashamed for people to know I had a
-blacksmith for a brother! I hate to think of anyone pitying us about
-Jim, and sneering at his funny clothes and way of speaking! I know I’m
-a ‘snob’, and that Miss Cliveden would scorn me now; but I can’t help
-it.”
-
-Doubt of herself made Frances doubtful of others, and she began to
-show signs of developing that unlucky sort of suspicion which searches
-motives with intent to prove itself in the right. Her common-sense told
-her that the best of her girl-friends could not despise her for conduct
-of which they knew nothing; yet she, who had been above all things
-frank and sincere, now continually imagined slights and offences on the
-part of her favourite comrades. But Frances had been too well liked to
-be readily regarded as an outsider by any of Muriel Carlyon’s brightest
-and busiest lassies.
-
-It was not until, in a mood of hopeless discontent, she carried out
-her purpose of deserting the flourishing Society she had founded with
-so much energy and success, that a deputation of alarmed and amazed
-damsels pursued Miss Carlyon into her private sitting-room, and
-demanded that she should, then and there, tell them what could be the
-matter with Frances.
-
-“She called a meeting in the schoolroom after hours!” cried Florry
-Fane breathlessly; “it was to let us know that she wasn’t going to be
-our leader any more! She said we should do better without her, and she
-proposed that I should be the Altruist secretary--as though any one
-could take Frances’s place!”
-
-“It is true,” said the First Violin--a pensive maid known to her
-elders as Dorothy Gray,--“that we have not attended the meetings so
-regularly as we used to; but that was all because Frances has seemed so
-different.”
-
-“In what way ‘different’?” queried Miss Carlyon quietly.
-
-“Oh! in every way. She used to talk such a lot about helping people,
-and to be full of plans for all sorts of ways to make our Society some
-real good to the Woodend poor folks. We were going to have a bazaar in
-the summer, and build a club-room which would be open in the evenings
-and entice the men from that dreadful inn at Lumber’s Yard. It was to
-be a secret until we had held another meeting.”
-
-“I thought you were bringing me some news, Dorothy.”
-
-“Of course we were going to tell you all about it before we decided
-anything.”
-
-“Well, dear. And must the project fall through?”
-
-“Why, I suppose so. We could not get on without Frances. She is so
-good at arranging and managing. Besides, it would seem so strange and
-unfriendly to throw ourselves into anything heartily with Frances out
-in the cold.”
-
-“But if Frances has chosen that uncomfortable position?”
-
-“Can’t we get her away from it? Do help us, Miss Carlyon!”
-
-There was a minute’s silence, while Muriel watched observantly the
-half-dozen young faces turned eagerly to hers.
-
-“My dears,” she said soberly, “I am with you in your surprise at the
-change in Frances, and in your natural longing to understand it and to
-win your friend back to her old ways. Let us put our heads together,
-and see what we can do. First, let us ask Florry, who has been so much
-with Frances, whether she can suggest any reason for the lassie’s
-whims.”
-
-“I don’t think I can,” said Florry slowly; “you see, she isn’t the kind
-of girl to back out of things in order to be flattered and fussed over,
-and begged to go on with them. Frances isn’t a bit vain. She’s too much
-in earnest.”
-
-The other girls assented in chorus.
-
-“Can her mother have raised objections to her doing so much for your
-Society? Mrs. Morland is taking Frances about with her more than
-she used to do, and she may wish her daughter to use her leisure
-differently.”
-
-Florry shook her head. “No--it can’t be that. Frances told me her
-mother had promised to help with our bazaar, and to persuade her
-friends to work for it. We should hardly have gone on thinking about
-it else,” added Florry bluntly, “because the Woodend people all follow
-Mrs. Morland like sheep.”
-
-“We needn’t criticise our elders on that point,” said plump Betty
-Turner, “for we all follow Frances like sheep. Why not? Someone must
-lead.”
-
-“And Mrs. Morland’s leadership has been used most kindly on behalf of
-the Altruists,” said Miss Carlyon gently. “No doubt it would serve
-the bazaar to good purpose, and I still hope your grand plan may be
-triumphantly worked out. And now, dear girls, as you cannot clear up
-the mystery of Frances’s behaviour, may I, without discouraging you,
-own that you mustn’t look to me for enlightenment? If there is anything
-behind, I am not in Frances’s confidence; I can judge only from what
-appears on the surface. Isn’t it possible that the very honours you
-have thrust upon her--the popularity, the responsibility--may have
-become something of a strain? Perhaps she may feel that, for a time
-at least, she would rather remain in the background, while those who
-have learned to imitate her courage and energy may take their turn in
-coming to the front. In any case, I can’t help believing that your best
-course will be to persist in your gallant undertakings, and to let our
-Frances see that her efforts have not been thrown away. She has borne
-the burden and the heat of the day, and she may flag for awhile only to
-spring forward more gladly and willingly after a well-earned rest.”
-
-“But our Society!--our Club, without Frances!”
-
-“Must go on and prosper, if only to maintain its founder’s credit. If
-your Club-room at Elveley is no longer available, you shall hold your
-meetings here. Persevere, lassies, persevere! And before long--I feel
-sure of it--Frances the Altruist shall be again in your midst.”
-
-The news that her daughter had abandoned her pet hobby was quite a
-shock to Mrs. Morland, who had so long been accustomed to see her
-children to the fore in every juvenile scheme, that she could not
-recognize the value of a light hidden under a bushel. She reproached
-Frances long and scornfully for her voluntary abdication of her small
-queenship; but the girl listened in silence, and with an expression
-of weariness and indifference which increased her mother’s vexation.
-Mrs. Morland felt the disappointment and chagrin Austin and Frances
-were causing her all the more because such sensations were so new and
-strange. She had always congratulated herself on the possession of a
-pair of youngsters who were made for future social success. And here
-was Austin, of his own choice, spending half his play-hours at a vulgar
-smithy. And here was Frances handing over her girlish honours to
-Florry Fane.
-
-Mrs. Morland’s fretting and the children’s divided interests made of
-Elveley a different home. The three members of the little family were
-drifting apart slowly and steadily. During Austin’s short illness,
-mother and daughter drew nearer in the press of a common anxiety; but
-as soon as the boy was about again, and galloping his pony to and from
-Rowdon Smithy, he seemed to become once more a being outside Frances’s
-world.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER X.
-
-TROUBLE AT ELVELEY.
-
-
-It was August, and the evenings were sultry and oppressive after
-burning summer days. At Rowdon Smithy there was always some coolness,
-borrowed from the adjacent moorland, and helped by a situation exposed
-on northern and eastern sides. So, when dusk drew on, and Jim’s work
-might, as a rule, be considered over, the young smith used to sit in
-his trellised porch, with book in hand or violin on shoulder, and enjoy
-such breezes as were to be had. The place pleased him for several
-reasons. It had been a favourite resting-spot of his grandfather’s, it
-caught the latest beams of the sun setting across the Common, and it
-commanded a fair stretch of the road by which Austin might be expected
-to come.
-
-Austin came now oftener than of old. Jim sometimes wondered why: he
-had, as it seemed to him, so little entertainment to offer to his
-brother.
-
-On a particular evening of this sunny August, Jim sat, as usual, in
-the cottage-porch. His hands were busy with his fiddle, his eyes
-were bent over a sheet of music which Austin had lent to him. Jim
-had changed much during the last few months. His face and figure had
-matured and grown manlier; he was dressed with more care, and had the
-fresh, “clean” look peculiar to upper-class Englishmen. There was but
-slight trace of the peasant about him, and his homely language sounded
-pleasantly enough in his soft, clear voice--which even to Austin’s ears
-was quaintly reminiscent of Frances’s sweet tones. His manners and
-bearing were seldom at fault; for old William East had known something
-of the ways of gentle-people, and, acknowledging within himself a duty
-owed to the lad’s deceived father, had taken pains to shield Jim from
-bad example and to encourage his natural refinement. The sorrow of his
-bereavement, and the keen pain of his rejection at the hands of his
-sister and stepmother, had indeed saddened his young face; but they had
-also deepened and strengthened his character, in teaching him to stand
-alone.
-
-The sound of a trotting pony advancing along the hard, white country
-road broke in on Jim’s peaceful studies and caught his attention.
-Hoping that the nearing rider might be Austin, Jim sprang to his feet,
-laid aside his fiddle, and swung briskly down the garden-path to the
-gate. As he went, he saw that his young brother was putting his pony
-to the gallop, with evident impatience to reach his journey’s end. Jim
-threw wide the gate, and stepped out on to the roadway in time to wave
-a welcome to his visitor. Then he saw that Austin’s sunburnt cheeks had
-lost their ruddy colour, and that his eyes looked scared and strange as
-from a nervous shock.
-
-“Why, Austin! What’s up, lad?” asked the elder brother anxiously.
-“There’s surely something wrong.”
-
-“Everything’s wrong, Jim! Everything’s dreadful! You’d never guess
-what’s happened at home! Don’t try: I’d rather tell straight out.
-Perhaps I shall feel better when you know, too!”
-
-“It’s no harm to Madam or Missy?”
-
-“Harm to all of us, I think, Jim. At least, Mother says we’re beggars!
-Isn’t that harm enough? Jim, don’t stand and stare like that!”
-
-Jim pulled himself together. “I was frighted, lad,--feared to think of
-what you might mean. ‘Beggars!’ Surely not ‘beggars’!”
-
-Austin laughed roughly. Child as he was, the trouble which had
-overtaken him, and the way in which it had been met, had affected him
-strongly.
-
-“Well, Mater says so: and I suppose she knows. Jim, I’ll ride round to
-the shed and fasten up Rough first of all.”
-
-“I’ll come with you,” said the other briefly; and they made the short
-journey in silence. When the pony had been safely tethered, Austin
-caught Jim by the arm and dragged him off.
-
-“Not indoors!” said the boy impatiently. “I feel choked already. Let’s
-go to the orchard. Oh, how jolly quiet and cool it is here! At home--.”
-
-Austin paused, and held his tongue perseveringly until the brothers
-had gained a favourite retreat in the pleasantest nook among the old
-apple-trees. Jim, even then, forbore to question, guessing that his
-young brother’s nerves were strung to a pitch which would not bear
-further tension. With considerate kindness the elder lad forced back,
-out of sight, his own fears and forebodings.
-
-Austin threw himself on the ground with a long-drawn breath of relief.
-The calm of his surroundings and the friendly presence of his brother
-brought a happy sense of protection to the overwrought lad.
-
-“Now I’ll tell everything,” he said, drawing near to Jim, who
-immediately put an arm about him. “Only I can’t explain very well,
-because I don’t half understand myself. It was this morning it
-happened. A man came from London to see Mamma; so he was taken to the
-library, and she went there to speak to him. The library has a French
-window opening on to the lawn, and Frances and I were sitting together
-in the garden, quite near the library window. We could hear Mamma and
-the man talking, but not well enough to know what they were saying, so
-we did not think we need move away. Presently we did hear something:
-we heard Mamma say plainly, in a queer, high voice, ‘Then I and my
-children are paupers!’ Frances jumped up, and so did I; and we both ran
-to the library window. It wasn’t what Mamma had said; it was the way
-she spoke. Jim, it would have scared you. Just as we got to the house
-we heard a sort of cry. Well, we pushed open the window in a jiffey;
-and there was Mamma, lying all of a heap in her chair, and the strange
-man standing beside her, looking frightened out of his wits. And he
-said to us: ‘I’ve brought your mother bad news, but I couldn’t help it;
-I’ve nothing to do with the matter. The governor sent me down from town
-to tell her, because he thought it would come easier that way than in a
-letter or a telegram.’ Of course we didn’t know what he meant, and we
-didn’t much mind, we were so awfully scared about Mater.”
-
-“Madam had fainted?” questioned Jim in a low voice.
-
-“Yes. We called her maid, and brought her round; while the man vanished
-into the garden, saying he’d stay there a while in case he was wanted
-again. I’d have told him to cut back to his precious ‘governor’, only
-Frances wouldn’t let me. And as soon as Mamma could speak she asked
-for the London man, and in he came. I must say he looked sorry; and he
-didn’t seem to like it when Mamma said she wished him to tell Frances
-and me exactly what he had told her. Then--oh, Jim! I can’t remember
-half his long speech. It was all about deeds, and securities, and
-fraudulent trustees, and creditors. There was a man who had charge of
-all our money--Mamma’s and Frances’s and mine,--and was to manage for
-us till I was twenty-one. Papa had made him ‘trustee’. He had always
-given Mamma plenty of money for everything she needed, and she had
-never thought anything was wrong. But a while ago he wanted to make
-more money for himself; and first he used only what was his own, and
-lost it; then he began to use ours, and lost that. When nearly all ours
-was lost, and he knew he must soon be found out, he managed to get hold
-of what was left of Papa’s money, and then he ran away. So he has gone;
-and we shall never find him, or get back what he stole.”
-
-“Oh!” exclaimed Jim breathlessly, “what a sore, sore trial for Madam!
-Does she bear up, dear lad?”
-
-“No,” replied Austin gloomily; “and that’s the worst of it all. Mamma
-seems so very--queer. She sits and moans and groans, and tells Frances
-and me over and over again that we’re just beggars, and must go to
-the workhouse. Jim!” added Austin, with a break in his voice, and a
-childlike dread which made him shiver nervously, “Jim! must we really
-do that?”
-
-“No, dear lad, no. Why, Madam has her beautiful house anyway. She told
-me she’d bought it.”
-
-“Yes; but it isn’t all paid for,” said Austin, shaking his head. “The
-London man said Mamma’s trustee hadn’t paid for lots of things. Elveley
-is to be sold and all that’s in it; and even then Mamma won’t be able
-to pay everybody.”
-
-“I can’t hardly take it in,” muttered Jim. “Are you sure it’s as bad as
-you say?”
-
-“I’m sure enough,” said Austin bitterly, “seeing Mamma has said it all
-over and over again. Frances and I have stayed with her,” continued the
-lad, throwing up his arms wearily; “but this evening I thought I must
-come here for a bit, or I’d--I’d howl! Jim, you can’t guess what it’s
-like, at home. Mamma can’t do anything but groan.”
-
-“But Madam has many friends?” suggested Jim hopefully.
-
-“What’s the good of friends? They can’t find our trustee--or make our
-money come back again. And we’ve no relations except Cousin Walter, and
-he’s in Australia, sheep-farming. Don’t I wish I could go to Australia,
-and have heaps of land, and millions of sheep!” Austin closed his
-eyes, the better to call up a vision of plenty. “But Cousin Walter’s a
-failure out there: he can’t help us.”
-
-“There’s surely someone,” said Jim, unable to think of the stately,
-handsome owner of Elveley as friendless, penniless, and homeless.
-The lad might have been pardoned a gleam of satisfaction at the ruin
-which had overtaken the woman who had treated him with contemptuous
-indifference, and shown no intention of acknowledging his just claim to
-a share of his father’s property. But Jim was guiltless of resentment,
-and the inherent chivalry of his nature rose up in indignant pity at
-the blow dealt to the widow and orphans.
-
-Jim thought much and deeply, but he wisely said little in the meantime,
-preferring deeds to words. Austin succeeded in convincing him that in
-Mrs. Morland’s sight, at least, her case was desperate; and Jim the
-simple-minded could only marvel how so many years of prosperity and
-social success could have been unfruitful of a single friend attached
-and loyal enough to come forward with counsel and help.
-
-“There must be someone,” he repeated, with conviction. “Austin, lad,
-this is too soon to talk so hopeless-like. Mayhap your mother is fair
-dazed with the shock, and too upset to think clear. Keep up heart, dear
-lad, and cheer Madam and Missy too. Tell them as all must come right.”
-
-“Oh, Jim!” broke out Austin, “I wish you would come to Elveley and make
-some sense of things! It’s so awfully bothering to go on not knowing
-what will really happen, and with Mater not able to tell us. Jim, do
-come home with me now!”
-
-“Dear lad, I’d come with you gladly, but I haven’t the right--yet. I
-promised your mother I wouldn’t tell who I was; and what would folks
-think to see Jim East the blacksmith meddling with Madam’s affairs? No,
-it would just worry her more if I should venture--it would make things
-harder for her to see me there. I mayn’t do it, lad. It’s terrible
-vexing to know I mayn’t.”
-
-Jim’s reluctance was so evidently reasonable and unselfish that Austin
-forbore to press his entreaty. Instead, he allowed himself to be
-comforted and encouraged by all the arguments for hope and cheerfulness
-which Jim could draw from his imagination. At the smithy, Austin always
-felt happy and at peace. The difficulty was to tear himself away and go
-back to the home whence peace and happiness had fled.
-
- * * * * *
-
-Mrs. Morland, as has been said, was not personally popular in the
-village where she had made her home. Woodend was, in a sense,
-old-fashioned, and it had acquiesced quietly in her assumption of
-leadership in all that concerned its small social matters, but it had
-not learned to like her. Though its upper-class community was no less
-charitable than others similarly placed, there were not a few old
-residents who heard the story of the Morland downfall, as it affected
-the mistress of Elveley, with hardly more than a conventional murmur
-of regret. But when her children were under discussion the case was
-different. Everyone liked the bright girl and boy, everyone grieved at
-the tragic calamity which must so greatly change their lives.
-
-Still, there were some neighbours able and willing to show Mrs. Morland
-kindness and sympathy. These sought her out at the earliest moment that
-good taste allowed, and frankly offered to be of service; but the poor
-woman, completely overwhelmed by the extent of the disaster, rejected
-their overtures with angry scorn. Naturally, her well-meaning friends
-retired precipitately, determining that she should be left to take her
-own course.
-
-What that course should be Mrs. Morland did not even attempt to decide.
-The creditors who had insisted on the sale of Elveley wished to show
-the innocent debtor some consideration, and informed her that she might
-continue to occupy the house for three weeks. The Rector, who was not
-to be driven away by any rebuffs, listened patiently to the outpourings
-of bitter invective against her fraudulent trustee, which seemed the
-only relief Mrs. Morland could discover. The kindly, gentle old man
-was too infirm to fight an injured woman’s battles; but Edward Carlyon
-persuaded Mrs. Morland to put her affairs in the hands of a competent
-solicitor, who might make the best terms possible with her creditors.
-
-The three weeks of grace had almost slipped by, and still no provision
-had been made for the future of the little family. Frances and Austin
-seldom left their mother, though in her presence they were acutely
-miserable. They were young and vigorous, and, after they had recovered
-from the shock of misfortune, they were eager to be up and doing. Both
-girl and boy implored their mother to speak--to tell them what her
-plans might be, so that they might help forward any arrangements she
-had made. But Mrs. Morland declared herself incapable of action, and
-was not moved even by the pale and anxious faces of the harassed pair
-who were ready to take the field in her behalf.
-
-It was an awakening period for the two young Morlands. Hitherto they
-had felt a childlike security in the capacity of a mother’s protecting
-love and care. The world’s struggles and trials had seemed far removed
-from the sheltered comfort of their home. Now, the arm that had
-encircled and shielded them had been suddenly removed, and the onset of
-trouble found them defenseless.
-
-“If only we knew what was going to become of us,” sighed Frances in
-Miss Carlyon’s ear. “It is so dreadful to feel day after day passing
-and not to have the least idea what Mamma will do. Sometimes Austin
-and I think she really does not understand that we must leave Elveley
-immediately; but if we try to talk about it she will not listen.”
-
-“Dear child, your mother has received a very heavy blow. Who can wonder
-if it has prostrated her?”
-
-Miss Carlyon’s tone was extremely pitiful, though she could hardly
-think without impatience of the crushed, broken woman who, even for
-the sake of her children, would not rouse herself out of her state of
-despondency. The girl and boy whose future had promised to be so bright
-were surely the chief sufferers; but Mrs. Morland’s pride saw as yet
-only her personal defeat--her loss of position, her coming poverty.
-
-“I know how very hard it is for Mamma,” said Frances; “Austin and I
-would scarcely mind at all if only Mamma need not lose all her things.
-I do want to help her, but she says I am just a girl, and of no use.
-And Austin is not grown-up yet. Oh, Miss Carlyon, is there no work I
-can do? I think I could take care of children, and I would do anything.”
-
-“Dear Frances, you are so young to leave home.”
-
-“Should I have to leave home? I don’t think I could bear to go quite
-away among strangers. What would Austin do?”
-
-“What, indeed? And how could your mother part from her only daughter?
-Your place is at home, darling.”
-
-“I don’t know,” said Frances in a shaky voice. “I don’t seem much good
-to Mamma; and perhaps, after all, Austin would not mind now. He does
-not want me as he used to.”
-
-“How is that?” asked Miss Carlyon gently, while she stroked the girl’s
-bent head.
-
-“It is because I am different,” said Frances dejectedly. “I have been
-mean and horrid, and Austin knows.”
-
-Muriel Carlyon remained silent, half-expecting that her young favourite
-would open her heart, and give her confidence to her friend. But
-Frances’s tongue was tied by her promise to her mother; though, in this
-time of trial, when sight seemed clearer and duty plainer, she did long
-to cast away the burden of deceit and tell the truth before all the
-world.
-
-“Do you think anyone would take me as a nursery governess, Miss
-Carlyon?” asked the girl presently.
-
-“No, dear, I do not. People do not engage little maids of fourteen for
-posts of responsibility.”
-
-“I am nearly fifteen. Of course I know that is not old, but I could put
-up my hair.”
-
-Muriel replied with a loving kiss.
-
-“I might try a grey wig,” suggested Frances, throwing her arms round
-her friend; “and spectacles, you know,--like a girl in a story-book.”
-
-“Even then, I am afraid, you would be nothing but a dear young lass, by
-no means formidable enough to pose as a governess.”
-
-“You are formidable,” said Frances, hugging Miss Carlyon close. “And
-your hair is not grey, but pretty brown curls; and you look, oh! ever
-so young and jolly! It cheers me up just to see you.”
-
-“Have that cheer as often as you will, darling; and believe it doesn’t
-make troubles lighter to meet them with a gloomy face.”
-
-“Ah! that’s what Florry says.”
-
-“Florry is a first-rate philosopher--an unconscious preacher, too, of
-the gospel of plain living and high thinking.”
-
-“I’ll tell you how she argues--you know she loves to argue. This is
-exactly what she said:--‘If you don’t have such a big house, you
-needn’t mind, for you can’t be in more than one room at a time. And
-if you don’t have grand dinners, you needn’t mind, for boys and girls
-come in only for dessert, and grown-ups just have indigestion. And if
-you’ve only one best frock and one worst one, you needn’t mind, for it
-will save the bother of thinking what you’ll put on.’ It sounds quite
-sensible, really. I don’t think I do mind being poor, for myself. Just
-for Mamma and Austin.”
-
-“Perhaps Mamma and Austin may learn to be equally philosophical. At
-all events, dear, you can go on trying to show them the bright side of
-things.”
-
-“If there were a bright side!” said Frances. “I must try to see it
-myself first.”
-
-“Suppose I could help you there?” said Muriel, smiling rather oddly.
-
-“Could you?”
-
-“Well--think. Since the sad day of your trial, dear, which of your
-friends have been most eager to seek you out--which have been careful
-to hold aloof?”
-
-Muriel watched the changing expression of the girl’s intelligent face.
-
-“Ah!” said Frances at last, in a low, happy voice, “I know what you
-mean. Thank you, Miss Carlyon. Of course you knew, you could not help
-seeing, how the girls I used to like the best have seemed, ever since
-Christmas, to be far jollier without me.”
-
-“Only because you made them believe that you were jollier without them.”
-
-“Did I?” said Frances, with real surprise. “I thought it was because I
-was dull and stupid. So I tried to make friends with the others, but it
-never seemed the same. And now all my old chums have come back to me,
-and the new ones have stayed away. Oh, yes, Miss Carlyon, there _is_ a
-bright side. Only, I didn’t know where to look for it.”
-
- * * * * *
-
-It was the evening of the third day before the one on which Elveley,
-and the major portion of its contents, were to be put up to auction.
-Mrs. Morland sat alone in her private sitting-room; a small and
-beautifully-furnished apartment where, during the last weeks, she
-had hidden herself from all eyes which she considered malicious
-or inquisitive. She knew she was not a popular woman; but she had
-preferred to mere popularity the more exclusive gratification which
-could be obtained by a determined and successful insistence on
-superiority. So long as she could be a leader, Mrs. Morland cared
-not whether her train followed her willingly or not. Thus, among her
-acquaintances, she had not tried to make a single friend.
-
-The disaster which would have been heavy to most women was appalling
-to her. So far, she had refused to face facts, and had met her
-children’s timid protests either with indifference or anger. But that
-very afternoon, the boy and girl--coming hand in hand, for mutual
-encouragement--had made a fresh attempt to persuade her to listen to
-them; and though she had fairly driven them away by her harsh and
-bitter replies, she had not been able to forget the wretchedness in
-their young faces. It was true, of course, what they had said: in three
-days they would have no roof to cover their heads.
-
-Austin, on leaving his mother, rushed to the stable, had his pony
-saddled, and galloped off to Rowdon. He had promised that his brother
-should know that day how matters stood; and it seemed to Austin that
-matters were at desperation-point.
-
-Mrs. Morland remained alone. Round her were the evidences of her lost
-prosperity, and her eyes roved from one to another of her possessions,
-while her brain worked busily, and her long, slender fingers played
-with the pretty toys on a delicately-carved and inlaid table by her
-side. The children’s appeal had at last roused her, and consternation
-was taking the place of lethargy. Frances had implored her to speak:
-but after all, what could she say? What refuge was open to her, that
-pride could let her accept? More than one of her neighbours--the Rector
-first of them--had courteously offered her and her children a temporary
-home; but the idea of lingering on in Woodend, an object of careless
-pity to those whom she had compelled to a certain admiration, was
-hateful, even insupportable, to the suffering woman.
-
-Her thoughts were still dwelling on what seemed to her an indignity
-impossible of endurance, when a servant brought a visitor to her door,
-and left him, at his own request, to enter unannounced.
-
-“Who’s that?” demanded Mrs. Morland sharply, as the figure of young
-Jim Morland began to take shape in the distant shadows of the room.
-
-Jim stepped forward, and with a word of greeting quietly proclaimed
-himself. He had been warned by Austin of the mood in which he was
-likely to find his stepmother; and the latent chivalry of his nature
-was now prepared to resist all inclinations towards impatience or
-resentment. In Jim’s simple creed a woman’s misfortune rendered her
-sacred.
-
-“Please forgive me for venturing, Madam,” began the lad respectfully;
-“I’m feared you’ll not be over-pleased as I should come just now. I’m
-here because Austin told me of your trouble, and I wanted to see what I
-could do.”
-
-“What you could do!” exclaimed Mrs. Morland, remembering bitterly
-enough that her stepson was of age now; that, had she treated him
-justly, and made over to him the share of his father’s property which
-was morally his right when he reached his majority, he would have been
-able, and probably willing, to help her to good purpose. “What can you
-do, pray? Take my son, and teach him the trade of a blacksmith?”
-
-“He has pluck enough,” replied Jim gently. “And he would think it no
-shame to do aught which would help you or his sister. But of course
-that’s for me to do. I am the eldest: and--though I feel sore-like to
-vex you, Madam,--I’ve come now to claim my rights.”
-
-“Your rights?” queried Mrs. Morland, thinking of her husband’s lost
-thousands.
-
-“Yes. I’ve waited--knowing as you and Missy thought shame of me--to
-see if you had better plans. But now I’ve come, because my brother and
-sister are in need of someone to care for them.” Jim moved nearer, and
-laid his strong brown hand on the dainty inlaid table: Mrs. Morland
-almost shivered to see it there. “I claim the right to care for them.
-Madam, this time you can’t say me nay--it _is_ my right.”
-
-“My good boy,” said Mrs. Morland petulantly, “don’t try to be bombastic
-if you want me to hear you out. Please say what you have come to say,
-as quickly as you can.”
-
-“I’d best be quick,” said Jim, unmoved; “for I doubt not you are tired
-and worried: and if I could”--the lad’s eyes rested softly on his
-stepmother’s hard-drawn features--“I’d like to bring you some ease. You
-know as I’ve a little house, Madam. ’Tis a small place, but tidy-like;
-and there’s a big orchard behind. And since my brother and sister must
-soon leave their home, I’d have them come to mine and be king and queen
-of it. I’d be proud to see them there.”
-
-“No doubt,” said Mrs. Morland grimly; “but the joys of cottage life are
-not quite in their line.”
-
-“Madam,” said Jim earnestly, “you must listen to me now. The others
-are too young to do aught, and it’s not for them to feel the world’s
-roughness. You do not like as folks should know their brother’s just
-a blacksmith and the home he has to offer them just a poor cottage. I
-do not say as that’s not reason in a way, and no fault of yours. But
-if, when this place is sold, you will not let me take them to Rowdon,
-where are they to go?”
-
-Mrs. Morland sat still awhile, without replying, while her fingers
-tapped nervously the polished surface of the little table. Her
-demeanour had changed somewhat during Jim’s brief speech, for she had
-been obliged to recognize that his words were the expression of his
-heart’s true feeling, and that she had now no hard or revengeful nature
-to deal with. However unworthy might be her estimate of the causes
-which prompted Jim’s present attitude, she began to see in the lad
-possibilities that would render more tolerable the necessity for owning
-him.
-
-“Where are they to go?” asked Jim again, with increased gentleness.
-
-“They will go with me,” said Mrs. Morland bitterly, “to the workhouse,
-I suppose!”
-
-“They will go with you, of course,” said Jim, leaning forward, and
-speaking in a tone of the most persuasive softness his peasant tongue
-could command. “What would they do without you? But I’ve a home for you
-all at Rowdon--and--indeed, I’ll make it as trim as I can.”
-
-He glanced at the beautiful and costly things about him, and sighed
-inwardly. His common-sense taught him that a woman who had been bred
-amid such surroundings could hardly be contented at Rowdon Smithy.
-When Jim Morland pressed his invitation on his stepmother, he guessed
-that he was passing sentence on all his future peace of mind. With his
-brother and sister alone, he might have hoped, some day, to be happy:
-they were very young, and youth readily accepts its circumstances.
-Austin, at least, would quickly have been at home. But Frances!--Jim
-wondered if he could bear the daily sight of his sister’s shrinking
-repugnance; and how might he ever hope to overcome it while Frances
-remained under the influence of this suspicious, ungracious nature?
-
-“I’ll do my best,” continued the lad gravely; “and mayhap Rowdon will
-serve for a home till I can earn more and provide a better. Come, then,
-Madam, if it please you; and the children will make it home-like.”
-
-The impulse to believe the best of Jim, to give him the credit of a
-magnanimous proposal, was stronger with Mrs. Morland at that moment
-than she could have imagined. Some words of acknowledgment were rising
-to her lips when her eyes lighted on her stepson’s rough hand, so near
-her own delicate fingers, and in a rapid glance she noted his rustic
-dress, while her pride rose passionately at the thought of recognizing
-him as a kinsman. Her better instincts were choked at once by a
-sensation of overwhelming dislike and scorn. Mrs. Morland knew that she
-was ungenerous; but she easily persuaded herself that, without loss of
-self-respect, she could deal to Jim a certain measure of fairness in
-compensation for lack of generosity. He would be satisfied, no doubt,
-if, in return for the refuge he offered, she gave him the name but not
-the place of a son.
-
-“If I go to Rowdon,” she said deliberately, “you will, of course,
-expect me to acknowledge your identity as my husband’s child?”
-
-Jim flushed deeply: his stepmother’s words contained a hint of motive
-on his part which he had a right to resent.
-
-“I make no bargains, Madam!” said the young workman sternly. “Come to
-Rowdon, and call me what you please.”
-
-“You have claimed your ‘rights’ as a brother,” said Mrs. Morland,
-smiling slightly; “and besides, my friends are, as you know, not so
-dull as to believe I should go by choice to live at Rowdon Smithy, or
-that you offered me a home there out of pure benevolence. Perhaps,
-James,” she continued more seriously, “we shall understand each other
-better if we do strike a bargain. We can put the matter on a business
-footing between ourselves, and leave the rest of the world to supply
-the sentiment. Well, then, I accept your offer of a temporary home: in
-return, I agree to place in the Rector’s hands a written acknowledgment
-of your right to bear your father’s name.”
-
-“Madam,” said Jim coldly, his patience strained to the uttermost, “you
-know right well as I’ve the means of proving who I am, if so be as I
-wanted to do it, without a word from you. ’Twas to save you and Missy
-what you held to be shame that I’ve kept so long a name as was never
-really my own. There’ll be no bargaining on my side. Call me East or
-Morland as it pleases you; I’ll count your wish as it might be my
-father’s, and be your son or not as you choose. I’ll not presume on
-your choice either way,” added Jim, borrowing for once a little of
-his companion’s bitterness; “I’m not likely to forget as you’d never
-give me a mother’s love.... I’d not expect it, neither,” he went
-on, recovering his softer speech, “no more than I look for Missy to
-remember as it’s not my fault I’m just a rough fellow. The little lad
-... the little lad”--Jim’s brave voice trembled--“he’s different: he
-sees through things somehow.... Madam,” finished Jim, looking straight
-at his stepmother, “I think the world of the little lad!”
-
-“Boys are so ready to make friends,” said Mrs. Morland, moved in spite
-of her prejudices, and striving to shake off an uncomfortable sense of
-defeat. “Well, James, I am not so insensible of your good intentions
-as you fancy. I never was quick to give affection, so you need not
-take it amiss if I am not demonstrative. I dare say we shall manage to
-put up with one another. Whether as part of a bargain or not, I shall
-certainly desire that you be known for the future by your proper name.
-And perhaps,” added the speaker, as the better side of her nature
-asserted itself, “you may not despise a different undertaking on my
-part. It is unlikely that you and I shall draw together--there is no
-tie of blood to help us, and I frankly confess to thinking the time
-too late. But I give you my promise to do nothing to hinder you from
-winning the children’s liking, if it has value in your eyes.”
-
-Jim silently bent his head.
-
-“They are very miserable,” continued Mrs. Morland, “and you are about
-to give them some sort of comfort. Your chance with them ought to be a
-good one.”
-
-“I’d rather,” said Jim steadily, “as they did not think of things that
-way. They’re just children, and shouldn’t know what trouble means,
-when there’s grown folk to save them. Then, will you please tell them
-as we’ve arranged?”
-
-“Why not do that yourself?” Mrs. Morland rose, and her spirits
-answering to a relief of mind she could not all at once realize, she
-moved with her old grace and dignity towards the door. “Come with me,
-James. You shall be introduced as the future head of the house to your
-brother and sister. I shall leave you to give the necessary orders
-about our movements. _La reine est morte_--that is, she’s going to
-retire into private life!”
-
-Mrs. Morland led the way to the children’s sitting-room; but only
-Austin was there. He had lingered, nervously anxious about the result
-of Jim’s visit to Elveley; but Frances had already gone for comfort
-and counsel to her friend Miss Carlyon. To Austin his mother formally
-announced her decision as to the future.
-
-“Your brother means to be good to you,” she said, with an attempt at
-cheerfulness; “you must try to thank him better than I have done.”
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XI.
-
-THE HEAD OF THE HOUSE.
-
-
-It fell to the lot of Austin to tell his sister of Jim’s plan for
-their settlement at Rowdon Smithy. Jim had resolutely declined to
-wait at Elveley long enough to be the bearer of his own news. He was
-beset with misgivings as to the results of the course to which he had
-persuaded his stepmother to agree; and yet he knew that by no other
-means could he possibly provide, even in the humblest way, for his
-kinsfolk.
-
-He had been reared by a masterful, self-contained man, who had exacted
-unmurmuring obedience, and had seldom encouraged individual thought and
-action. Thus Jim Morland, at twenty-one, was hardly more than a boy
-in essential matters; and the responsibility of “head of the house”,
-suddenly thrust on him, was enough to press heavily on his immature
-character. He learned, as time passed, to draw on the fundamental
-independence of his nature; but at first he found himself capable only
-of doing what lay to his hand--of planning as best he might for the
-present comfort of his little family, while he trusted that his path
-might some day grow less dim.
-
-His interview with Mrs. Morland had been really a trial to the
-sensitive, country-bred lad; and he could not find courage to witness
-his sister’s reception of the tidings he supposed would come to her as
-a fresh calamity. Jim suffered here for his pardonable moral cowardice;
-for even Austin, who knew how Frances had drooped under the burden of
-suspense and uncertainty, was surprised at the relief she showed when
-he had explained what lay before her. Frances rose to the occasion like
-the plucky lass she always had tried to be. That very evening she began
-to work at the necessary packing; and her mother, hearing the girl’s
-cheerful voice when she came for instructions, felt an unreasonable
-impatience because what she would herself so greatly miss seemed to
-have small value in her children’s eyes.
-
-Frances was not in the least insensible to the worth of what she was
-leaving behind, but out of the depths of her late despondency it was
-good to rise to a level whence she might look bravely and gratefully
-on the possibilities of the future. In the first place, she knew that
-the question of acknowledging her brother was at last settled beyond
-dispute, and that the injustice done to him was to be removed, however
-tardily. She had done nothing to bring this about, and she was quick to
-see that atonement on her own part must be of another sort--if, indeed,
-there were any compensation Jim would care to accept. She could at
-least take heed that she did not now mistake her brother’s motives, or
-under-estimate the sacrifice he was ready to make. He had shown himself
-capable of chivalrous forgiveness, and the higher part of her nature
-was eager to respond.
-
-Frances’s admiration and her longing to make amends were freely
-confessed to Muriel Carlyon, who sympathized with both, and had good
-counsel to give.
-
-“Don’t overwhelm the boy with formal apologies and embarrassing
-praises, dear child. You would only make him uncomfortable. Try to let
-him see that you like and trust him, and want to help him all you can.
-It’s no light duty he has undertaken. You, more than anybody, can make
-it a pleasant one.”
-
-When Frances came to attempt the putting in practice of her friend’s
-advice, she found an obstacle in the barrier of shyness and constraint
-which the unlucky past had raised between her and her elder brother.
-Jim was obviously uneasy in her presence--dreading, poor fellow,
-a criticism which he had every reason to think would be to his
-disadvantage. He came to Elveley, during the three days of waiting, as
-little as he could; though, as Mrs. Morland seemed determined to fulfil
-literally her expressed intention of “retiring into private life”, he
-was obliged to act for her at every point, to give all necessary orders
-about the removal, and to interview, as her appointed representative,
-all persons who had business with her. Jim did his utmost; but at
-Elveley he grew each moment more weary and dispirited, as he recognized
-more and more clearly the difference between the surroundings to which
-his stepmother and her children had been accustomed and those into
-which he had offered to take them. He kept his forebodings secret, but
-they worried him none the less.
-
-The long-continued trouble had at last brought Frances one comfort
-which made amends for everything. It had given Austin--the old
-Austin--back to her, and had shown the lad at his best. His manly
-instincts had come into evidence, and he had hovered patiently about
-his mother and sister, assuring them that he would soon be grown-up,
-and able to work for them. Then they would all be happy again.
-Meanwhile--as growing-up is a slow process--he was content to leave to
-Jim the ordering of affairs. He knew that he meant from the beginning
-to do his share, but he wisely refrained from informing his mother
-that his accomplishment of horse-shoeing was at length to “come in
-handy”.
-
-Frances, too, had laid her plans, and meant to be a busy little
-housewife. She had confided to Muriel Carlyon all the doubts and
-difficulties which had made her hold aloof from her favourite comrades,
-even to the extent of deserting her cherished Society; and now, feeling
-that at last she possessed no worrying secrets and was fairly on the
-road to recover her self-respect, Frances rejoiced in the possession of
-a true friend to whom she might turn for the encouragement she could
-not find at home. On the day before the departure from Elveley, she
-paid a “farewell” visit (only Muriel scouted the word “farewell”) to
-Woodbank, and entertained herself and her companion with a discussion
-of her coming diversions.
-
-“I am going to be ever so useful,” she announced blithely. “It
-wasn’t for nothing, after all, that we girls started our Club. We’ve
-learned to cook and to iron, and I’ve not forgotten your lessons
-in cutting-out. I can make my own frocks and things, and the boys’
-shirts.--I call Austin and Jim ‘the boys’,” she went on with a little
-flush, “so that I may get used to thinking of them together.”
-
-“You know where to come for help, darling.”
-
-“Yes, thank you. Oh, I’m so glad we’re going to Rowdon, not to some
-quite strange place, far away from you and the girls! Miss Carlyon,
-we had a little bit of good news this morning. Mamma’s lawyer wrote
-to tell her that the people who have made her sell Elveley are
-going to let her keep some of her favourite books and pictures and
-furniture--anything she likes up to a certain value--and some of her
-glass and silver. And Austin and I may have all our very own things:
-so that Austin is going to take his cameras, and Jim has promised him
-a dark-room. That will be so nice for him, won’t it? He has a fine
-stock of plates and chemicals, and we must make them last as long as we
-can. They’ll keep a good while. Most of Mamma’s things were chosen and
-packed at once, and have gone away to-day. Austin went with them, to
-help Jim.”
-
-“You would have known, far better than your brothers, how to arrange
-the rooms as your mother would like best.”
-
-“I shall have some time to-morrow,” said Frances, colouring. “Mamma
-will not leave Elveley till the last thing, but I can go to Rowdon
-early in the day.”
-
-“And you will go by yourself?”
-
-“No--Florry is coming with me.” Frances admitted rather awkwardly this
-evidence of the shy feeling which made her avoid the sole company
-of Jim. “We are going to unpack and put away all the clothing, and
-finish Mamma’s sitting-room ready for her. Jim has been kind about the
-sitting-room. He has made Mamma understand that it is to be quite her
-own; he has moved out of it the old things which used to be there, and
-has put them into the room opposite, where he keeps all sorts of tools
-and some of the materials for his work. I remember very well when we
-went to Rowdon Cottage--that’s what they call the little house beside
-the smithy--Jim’s grandfather inviting us to look into ‘Jim’s den’. It
-was neat and nice, only it had no proper furniture except tables and
-chairs. There were loads of shelves in it. I do love shelves!”
-
-Muriel Carlyon laughed with pleasure to see the girl’s cheeks grow pink
-as she pictured to herself a real workshop, with entrancing rows of
-tools, a carpenter’s bench, apparatus for various kindred handicrafts,
-and a floor littered with fresh-smelling shavings and sawdust.
-
-“It was a jolly ‘den’!” continued Frances; “and if--if I do get
-friends with Jim, I know I shall beg admittance sometimes to his
-treasure-chamber. I shouldn’t wonder if Austin had a corner of it all
-to himself. Jim is very fond of Austin. I’m certain he is, though I’ve
-hardly seen them together. You could tell by the way they look at one
-another.”
-
-“Well, dear, you must have a corner of your mother’s sitting-room.”
-
-Frances shook her head. “Mamma would be miserable if there were any
-litter about her, she likes everything spick and span. And, you know,
-Austin and I do want her to be as happy as she can. It is so very, very
-dreadful for her--” Frances paused awkwardly “I mean, it is dreadful to
-give up the nice things she has been used to for such a long time.”
-
-“It is, darling; indeed it is.”
-
-“So I thought if only she could have her own rooms filled with her
-own things she might not miss what she has to leave--at least, not so
-much. And when Jim told her she must count the sitting-room quite for
-herself, it did seem possible to make that pretty. Then the room above
-it is to be hers too. It is a pity, but I must take a corner of that.
-I am afraid Mamma will dislike sharing her bedroom, especially as her
-furniture will fill it up so; but we can’t help it. There are only four
-rooms upstairs, and the two back ones are tiny places, not big enough
-for anyone to sleep in. One will be for our boxes, and the other is
-full of lumber already. The second bedroom is for the boys. Austin and
-I are to have our own little beds, so they won’t take up much room.”
-
-Muriel listened to all these confidences and to many more before she
-allowed Frances to leave her. She knew that the girl was in real need
-of a woman’s sympathy and encouragement, and she hoped by judicious
-counsel to make the entry on a new and strange life a little easier
-for her favourite. Miss Carlyon was quite as fond of planning and
-contriving as were any of her young folk; she meant to do her full
-share in helping forward Frances’s ambitions, and to see that none of
-her girls had more of her personal help and affection than the lass who
-was so ready and eager to conquer fate.
-
- * * * * *
-
-The lights in Rowdon Cottage burned throughout that last night of Jim
-Morland’s solitary life. The hours of dusk and darkness and dawning
-were few and short to the busy lad, who worked steadily and with
-intention during every moment they gave him. Jim’s eyes were already
-fairly-well opened to the nature of the burden he had taken on his
-young shoulders. He had accepted in a spirit Mrs. Morland had not
-dreamed of, her injunction that he should consider himself the head of
-the little family.
-
-He knew that he must be, first of all, the bread-winner. Jim’s
-calculations as to ways and means were already completed, and he had
-reckoned up the average of his earnings, added the result to the sum
-which came to him from the provision made by his grandfather, and
-decided that he might count on a weekly income of thirty-five shillings.
-
-Jim was not ignorant enough to suppose that this amount could allow for
-any save the simplest methods of housekeeping, even when supplemented
-by garden produce and home-reared poultry. The old woman who did
-his cooking and housework expected only a small wage, but this, and
-her food, made a serious item of expenditure; and poor Jim wondered
-anxiously whether her blundering ways would be tolerated by his
-fastidious stepmother. Jim was not prone to hard judgments, but he was
-not a fool; and he had seen that Mrs. Morland could be both unjust
-and unreasonable. He knew, only too surely, how Frances had shrunk
-from contact with himself; and argued that she would be predisposed to
-despise his cottage home.
-
-The lad grew hot and cold by turns as he anticipated his inability to
-satisfy their expectations; and at last came to the wise decision that
-he would, at the outset, make confession of his modest means, and avoid
-the worse pain of raising hopes he could not fulfil.
-
-“For I must not run into debt,” pondered Jim. “I promised grandfather I
-never would do that.”
-
-Even without the remembered promise to admonish him, Jim was not
-cast in the mould of those people who can look their just creditors
-unblushingly in the face.
-
-When morning brought his elderly housekeeper, the lad nerved himself
-for an ordeal. This was no less a matter than an important parley with
-old Elizabeth Macbean. Elizabeth was a Scotswoman, and an excellent
-domestic according to her lights; but her gaunt, angular person and
-strong-featured countenance were not prepossessing, and Jim was
-nervously anxious lest she should give offence by her independent
-speech and manners. To old East and his grandson her civility had
-never fallen short; she had looked on them as her superiors simply
-because they employed her, and she had even shown a kind of motherly
-interest in her younger master. But Jim recollected that Elizabeth had
-heard with compressed lips and scowling brow the facts he had found
-it necessary to tell her about the changed affairs of Rowdon Cottage;
-so he was not without qualms as he prepared to add to his news at
-this latest possible moment. His gentle nature made him shrink from
-inflicting pain, and he feared he was about to hurt well-meaning old
-Elizabeth. Fortunately, Jim had no mixed notions on the score of duty;
-and it seemed to him now that his duty was plain.
-
-He left Elizabeth to go about her morning work as usual, and was
-careful to do justice to the simple breakfast prepared for him.
-Home-baked scones and new-laid eggs were excellent fare in Jim’s
-opinion; and he rose from the table refreshed and strengthened in spite
-of his long night of toil.
-
-“I don’t think as anything could be better than your scones,
-Elizabeth,” said Jim, from a discreet post at the kitchen door. “You’ll
-let me have some every day when the children come, won’t you? I’m sure
-they’ll like your scones, Elizabeth.”
-
-“I’ll see what I can dae. Whiles they have nae butter-milk up at the
-fairm.”
-
-The tone of Mrs. Macbean’s voice was not promising, and her attitude,
-as, shovel in hand, she “made up” her fire, was positively militant.
-Jim drew on his reserve fund of determination and stood his ground.
-
-“Well, can you spare a moment, Elizabeth? I have something to tell you.”
-
-“I hae thocht that,” replied Mrs. Macbean, with disconcerting
-promptitude.
-
-“And I hope you won’t take it unkind,” added Jim.
-
-“I’ll mak nae promises,” snapped Elizabeth.
-
-[Illustration:
-
-M432
-
-“NAY, ELIZABETH,” SAID JIM KINDLY, “THERE’S NO NEED FOR LOCKING UP.”]
-
-“Anyway, I must say it,” continued the lad gravely. “You know,
-Elizabeth, as there’s ladies coming here to-day. I’ve told you all
-about it, and how, though they’re my very own folk (Jim held his head
-proudly), they’ve been brought up different. I’m wanting, most of
-all, as they shall feel this cottage home-like, and so I’d not have
-them miss, more than I can help, all they’ve had to give up. You’ve
-always managed for grandfather and me, Elizabeth; and you’ve served
-us faithful, as I’ll never forget. But when my stepmother and my
-half-sister come (Jim was faithfully exact), they’ll be mistresses
-here. I want you to go to one of them every day for orders, and do your
-best to please them.”
-
-Jim held his breath.
-
-“Jist as ye please, sir,” was the sole response of Elizabeth; and
-thrusting one hand deeply into a serviceable pocket, she dragged out,
-with ostentatious indifference, a small bunch of keys, and flung them
-clatteringly on to the kitchen-table.
-
-“Nay, Elizabeth,” said Jim kindly, “there’s no need for locking up,
-and I’m sure the ladies won’t wish it. Keep the keys, and give me
-your promise as you’ll help me all you can. I’m a bit worried and
-sore-hearted, Elizabeth.”
-
-“There’s nae doot aboot that,” returned the old dame, though evidently
-mollified. “I hae watched ye ever since ye telt me o’ the happenings at
-the grand hoose yonder, where your fine leddy mither and sister wear
-their silks an’ satins; and I hae seen the speirit gang oot o’ ye. But
-I’ll dae your wull, maister.”
-
-“That’ll be all right, then, Elizabeth,” said Jim, sighing in relief of
-spirit. “You’ve made the cottage beautiful clean and fresh-like, and
-I’m sure you’ll keep things nice.”
-
-Then Mrs. Macbean uplifted her long person after a final dash at the
-coals, and emphasized her speech with her loaded shovel.
-
-“I hae served gentlefolk afore,” she remarked grimly; “and I’m no
-needin’ tellin’ as to hoo I’ll serve them the noo. There’s ae thing
-mair. I hae kent, lang afore ye hae telt me onything, Maister Jim, that
-ye were come o’ gentle folk yersel. Ye hae a’ the look o’ it; and I’m
-thinkin’ it’s a peety.”
-
-With these uncompromising words, Mrs. Macbean flung the contents of
-her shovel on the fire, snatched up a broom, and vanished through the
-back door. Jim sighed again, and went off to give the rooms a final
-inspection. His last visit was to the “den” of which Frances had told
-Miss Carlyon. Thence he emerged with a strange glimmer of a smile on
-his lips.
-
-As he stepped to the threshold of the front door, which stood wide
-open to the warm August airs, he saw a sight which made him halt
-irresolutely, while his pulses throbbed in sheer nervous excitement.
-
-A couple of girls had just reached the gate, and were pacing slowly up
-the path between the glowing flower-beds: as they came, they pointed
-out eagerly to one another old favourites they could recognize among
-the cared-for luxuriance of the borders.
-
-“See!” said the sweet, clear voice of Frances, “isn’t that a splendid
-clump of southernwood? And those deep purple pansies--I love them!”
-
-Jim caught his breath sharply. If Frances could “love” anything about
-Rowdon!
-
-“What darling snapdragons--white and yellow and red!”
-
-“And those briar roses--aren’t they late?”
-
-The girls bent low to enjoy the varied fragrance. Jim felt something
-in his throat, and for a moment saw the pretty girlish figures through
-a mist. A sudden access of joy filled his heart. Could it be that
-his home was to know the familiar presence of such as these? Could
-anything he had to offer be worthy of their soft eyes and dainty hands?
-He gazed, in a happiness he could not have explained, at the gracious
-picture before him. Only a pair of charming English lassies; but for
-simple Jim they were an inspiration to love all that was highest,
-purest, worthiest.
-
-Florry Fane lifted her head, and caught sight of Frances’s
-“blacksmith-brother”. Florry did not keep her intellect for
-book-studies, and she called on it now to help the situation.
-
-“Hallo!” she exclaimed merrily, “there’s Jim! I shall run and ask him
-to tell me the name of that pretty blue flower!”
-
-She hurried on, and before Frances could overtake her had gained the
-porch, and held out her hand to Jim, who stood waiting there.
-
-“Good-morning, Mr. Morland!” said Florry, in gay greeting; “we’ve come
-to make ourselves tremendously useful. We’ve great big aprons in this
-bag, and Austin has lent us a hammer and a packet of nails. We mean
-business, you see.”
-
-Jim took the kind little hand, and bade Florry welcome with most
-respectful courtesy. It was good of her to call him by his father’s
-name; but, being Frances’s friend, she was, of course, a queen among
-girls.
-
-Frances came up, and finding the ice thus broken, managed to greet Jim
-easily enough. The three talked for a few moments in the porch.
-
-“Now we must go in and set to work,” declared Florry presently; and Jim
-stood aside that she might lead the way; then, as Frances made a shy
-motion to follow, he detained his sister by a slight gesture.
-
-“I hope as you’ll find things right, Missy,” said the youth in a low
-voice. “I’ve a lot of work to do in the smithy yonder, and I’ll be
-there all day most like. Elizabeth will bring me something to eat; and
-so--so--the place’ll be clear, if you and Miss Fane wish to stay. I
-bade Elizabeth ask what you’d fancy,”--Jim coloured, and added with
-some effort,--“and you won’t forget, Missy, as you’re mistress here.”
-
-Frances wanted to say something kind and appreciative; but while
-she watched her brother’s nervousness her own came back to her, and
-she searched vainly for words which might make an approach to frank
-confidence between them seem possible. Jim saw only her hesitation, and
-hastily concluding that his forebodings had been justified, stepped
-quietly out of the porch and took the side-path to the smithy.
-
-“I believe it will always be like this,” thought Frances, as she gazed
-remorsefully after her brother’s tall, well set-up figure. “I wonder
-why I’m such a silly? I wish he wouldn’t call me ‘Missy’. I wish I
-could tell him nicely--so that he wouldn’t be vexed--that he ought to
-say ‘Frances’, as Austin does. Austin would know how to do it, but
-that’s because he behaved kindly and fairly and has nothing to be
-ashamed of. And Jim has been so good to us, so generous and forgiving;
-I ought to be proud of him--and I think I am, deep down in my heart.
-It’s the top part of me that’s so ungracious and horrid. How stupid to
-be shy, when he’s my own brother! Shall I ever be sensible about it?”
-
-Just as Frances reached this plaintive speculation her friend’s
-patience gave way, and Florry, who had ventured on a peep into the
-sitting-room, came back to fetch the loiterer.
-
-“It looks quite nice already,” said Florry cheerfully. “There really
-isn’t much for us to do, except the ‘etceteras’.” She dragged Frances
-forcibly into Mrs. Morland’s future sanctum. “See! even the curtains
-have been put up; and don’t they hang nicely? One of your brothers has
-ideas, Frances! I wonder which of them ‘disposed’ that drapery?”
-
-“Not Austin; he wouldn’t be bothered!” laughed Frances. “The room does
-look pretty. Those soft gray walls are such a nice background for the
-pictures. It was kind of the creditor-people to let Mamma keep some of
-her pictures and china, wasn’t it?”
-
-“I suppose so,” said Florry soberly. “But as your mother wasn’t really
-a bit to blame--”
-
-“Don’t! Miss Carlyon says the more I ‘nurse a grievance’ the worse
-things will seem. I’m certain she’s right; for I begin to feel my
-‘angry passions rise’ the moment I give them a chance.”
-
-“Come, then--to business! Here are two suggestive-looking boxes already
-unfastened for us. What lurks within, fellow-conspirator?”
-
-“Nothing very mysterious. Only a few special treasures of Mamma’s, and
-some of her books, and other odds and ends. There’s the empty book-case
-in that corner. Good Austin! He has remembered to put up the brackets
-and small shelves for the china.”
-
-“Isn’t that a pretty little overmantel? I don’t recollect seeing it at
-Elveley. What dainty carving!”
-
-“It never was at Elveley,” said Frances, in a puzzled voice; “and it
-is pretty. Those two long shelves will be lovely for photographs and
-the little figures papa brought from India. Oh! the overmantel is a
-blessing. Let’s make haste to fill it.”
-
-“No--I’ll do the books, and leave you the treasures. Ah, what a jolly
-Browning! Isn’t this binding perfect? Hallo! it’s Rivière’s! Frances,
-you’re a lucky girl. It ought to make you amiable to live with this.”
-
-“Goose! I like a binding I can handle. I wouldn’t give my own Browning
-for that; though I own that Rivière, like our unknown genius of the
-curtains, has ‘ideas’.”
-
-“Here’s an edition of Jane Austen in crimson morocco. Frances, I
-wouldn’t have Jane Austen in crimson. She ought to be bound in French
-gray, or ‘puce’, or anything old-fashioned and sweet. Never mind; here
-she goes, dear old thing! When we’ve finished with this room, Francy,
-do let’s unpack your treasures. I helped you to pack them, so I shall
-know just where everything is.”
-
-Frances shook her head. “I told Austin to send my boxes to the little
-place upstairs. There’s no room for their contents anywhere.”
-
-Florry looked unmistakably crestfallen.
-
-“You see, this is the only sitting-room besides Jim’s den,” continued
-Frances hastily; “and Mamma and I have to share a bedroom. I’ve been
-wondering where I shall pop my mammoth work-basket.”
-
-“Oh, Frances! Your beautiful Altruist basket!” Florry saw her friend
-wince, and, running across the room, threw her arms about the other
-lassie and hugged her close. “Come back to us, Francy dear! oh, do! You
-were the first Altruist, and the best--”
-
-“Ah, no, no!” cried Frances, with a tremble in her voice; “I was just a
-great humbug--a mean pretender!”
-
-“You never were. You started it all; and, Frances, it has been of some
-use to Woodend. The Rector says so, and Mr. Carlyon, and Dr. Brenton,
-and--Max. If Max says so--who would dispute Max? Francy, all the girls
-and boys want you to come back.”
-
-“I can’t till I’m gooder,” said Frances, wavering between sobs and
-smiles. “I’m a shabby, horrid thing! Florry, don’t let’s talk of those
-jolly old times--before last Christmas. See! I’m going to work hard. I
-won’t say another word till I’ve finished.”
-
-Florry could both see and hear that the resolve was a wise one; so she
-went sedately back to her books, and was in the thick of “business”
-when the sitting-room door was pushed open and Mrs. Macbean entered.
-
-The girls at once greeted the old woman,--whom they had seen more than
-once when they had paid holiday visits to the smithy,--with a pleasant
-word and smile.
-
-“I hae made a bit dinner for ye, Missies,” said Elizabeth, striving
-after the manners she considered due to gentlefolk, “and I hae pit doon
-the table-claith, as the maister’s bidding was, in the room on the
-ither side o’ the passage. Maybe ye’ll ring the bell yonder when ye’re
-minded for me to serve ye.”
-
-“Oh, Elizabeth, you are good!” said Frances gratefully. “We meant to go
-home for dinner; but it is a long way, isn’t it, Florry?”
-
-“Rather! And we’ve such lots to do. Elizabeth--best of Elizabeths!--do
-say we are to have some of those delicious scones you brought to us
-once when we came here to plague you!”
-
-“Surely ye’ll no be minding on my bits o’ scones, Missy?” inquired Mrs.
-Macbean graciously. “The likes o’ you lassies I never did see! Weel,
-I’ve nae doot I can obleege ye; and ye’ll likely no refuse a whang
-o’ the cream cheese that the fairm-wife sent till the maister this
-morning. Come awa’ wi’ ye, Missies, ben the ither room, and I’ll bring
-the dishes in. It’s one o’clock--late eneuch for bairns.”
-
-Elizabeth bustled away, secretly well pleased that it was once more her
-lot to wait on gentlefolk. Perhaps there was in the peasant woman’s
-nature a strain of sympathy which, if it made her jealous for her
-“maister’s” rights and dignity, was no less capable of appreciating the
-trouble which had fallen on Jim’s “fine leddy mither and sister”.
-
-The girls ran upstairs to wash their dusty hands, and chased each other
-down again amid peals of laughter, which brought indulgent smiles to
-Mrs. Macbean’s face and sent her with good-will to her serving.
-
-“Fancy dining in Jim’s den!” laughed Frances, pausing at the door. “We
-shall need to use the sitting-room for meals, I suppose, when we’ve a
-proper table there. I’m glad we’re going in here to-day. It’s a lovely
-place, Florry,--all shelves and saw-dust, and dear little saws and
-hammers and things. Don’t you like a carpenter’s shop? I do. I always
-envied the boy Altruists--”
-
-Frances, having by this time led the way into “Jim’s den”, stood just
-beyond the threshold, too absolutely surprised at what she now saw
-to remember after what fashion she had envied the boys. The room had
-undergone a transformation. The walls had been freshly covered with
-a pretty paper; the wide, latticed windows had been hung with dainty
-Madras muslin, with sage-green draperies at either side to be drawn
-across at night. The carpet was of the same soft tint, and so were the
-furnishings of two or three wicker chairs placed at cosy points. The
-deep window-seat held a couple of big cushions of yellow silk, and was
-thickly padded, and covered to match the chairs. On a table close to
-the window stood the Altruist work-basket. Most of the shelves which
-Frances had admired still ran along the walls, and on them were neatly
-ranged, not the paraphernalia of handicrafts, but the many special
-possessions of Frances and Austin. Their own treasured volumes filled
-two plain book-cases, whence had been banished the hoarded sum of Jim’s
-library.
-
-Before her eyes had taken in half the details, Frances turned to Florry
-and exclaimed impetuously: “Oh, what made him do this? How could he?
-Jim has given up his den to us!”
-
-“He is a brick!” said Florry heartily. “Now you know where your things
-are going, Frances. I believe they are all here. There’s your mother’s
-Christmas present”--Florry pointed to the desk on a side-table spread
-with the children’s writing materials. “There’s your easel, and
-your paint-boxes are on the shelf close at hand. What’s behind that
-inviting-looking curtain hung between those two shelves?”
-
-“Austin’s photographic things,” replied Frances, peeping; “here are
-his cameras, plates, papers, chemicals, and everything. He is to use
-the bath-room for developing; he has been covering the window with red
-stuff. Fancy a bath-room in a cottage like this! Jim’s grandfather
-built it out at the back.”
-
-“Austin will be very much obliged to him.”
-
-“Florry,” said Frances, a troubled look in her eyes, “I don’t think
-Austin and I ought to take this room from Jim. He cannot possibly have
-anywhere else to go. I think I will just find my way to the smithy this
-very moment, and talk to him about it.”
-
-“Good!” returned Florry equably; “I will e’en to that cosy window-seat
-and watch for your return.”
-
-Frances departed in a hurry for fear of failing courage; and Florry,
-who had something to say, but was in no haste to say it, carried a book
-to the window and felt herself at home.
-
-Jim stood by his anvil, making, with level, well-aimed blows, rough
-nails for farmers’ use. He had flung off his coat and waistcoat, rolled
-up his sleeves, and donned a leathern apron. It was Jim the blacksmith
-on whose hardy toil Frances cast shy and interested eyes. He did not
-look so unapproachable as she had expected; but it was evident that her
-coming had startled him. The lad laid down his hammer, however, and
-stepped forward at once.
-
-“You want me, Missy?” he said quickly, with an undefined hope that his
-sister might be about to command his willing service.
-
-“Oh no!” said Frances; “I didn’t mean to interrupt you--at least, only
-for a minute. I came to say that--that Florry and I have been looking
-at your room--”
-
-Jim was hungering for a word of satisfaction. If, indeed, he had
-pleased Frances, surely he might dare to hope that he had not begun
-amiss.
-
-“You used to have so many things there,” continued Frances, her
-self-possession deserting her as she noted the expression of her
-brother’s grave young face. “I don’t think Austin and I ought to be so
-much in your way.”
-
-“You could never be that, Missy,” said Jim, whose spirits sank
-unaccountably at the painful courtesy of Frances’s manner. “It’ll be
-right for you to have a little place where you’ll feel private-like,
-and know as nobody will interfere.”
-
-“You are kind, Jim,” said Frances; and the girl hung her head in shame
-that no warmer words would come at her bidding.
-
-“Surely not,” said Jim dejectedly. “There’s no talk of kindness so
-long as I can do aught--” Jim hesitated, fearing to offend by some
-obtrusively brother-like speech, and his pleading glance fell at the
-sight of Frances’s averted head. “There, Missy,” he continued gently;
-“don’t you go for to trouble yourself about my bits of things. I’ve a
-deal more room for them in the big shed behind here; and they’ll be
-handier to get at. You’ve no call to think twice of them.”
-
-Then Frances stepped close, and laid her hand on Jim’s arm.
-
-“You are kind--and good,” she said earnestly. “I don’t know why you
-should take us in here, and bother about us at all.”
-
-“Don’t, Missy!” murmured Jim, keenly wounded. “Who should care for you
-and the little lad, if not me?”
-
-“Nobody would, Jim; nobody. And I don’t see why you should. But indeed
-I do want to help, and to share the work all I can. I shall soon find
-out--and I’ll beg Elizabeth to teach me.”
-
-“No!--no!” Jim was touched at his tenderest point. “You’ll do naught
-here but what pleases you, Missy. ’Tis for men to work and make
-beautiful homes for their lady-folk.”
-
-“Girls work now as well as boys, Jim,” returned Frances rather
-wistfully. She had been wont to dream of the life-work which should
-be hers some day--of voluntary, altruistic toil among the poor and
-suffering of the great city; not of humdrum daily tasks which could
-claim no more fascinating name than the prosaic one of duty.
-
-“I cannot see as that’s right, Missy,” said Jim; and Frances
-looked with a certain pity at this lad born out of due time--this
-old-fashioned believer in the right of woman to be worked for, and
-set apart and worshipped. If he could have heard Miss Cliveden’s
-impassioned voice as she urged her pupils to remember their sacred
-claim to share with men the glorious task of making history!
-
-Jim was utterly out of date. He bent his head and kissed reverently the
-little fingers resting on his arm; then caught up his hammer and began
-afresh to work for his “lady-folk” with all his peasant might.
-
-Frances went slowly back to her comrade.
-
-“Jim will make us keep the room,” said the girl with conviction; “and I
-do not believe I even thanked him properly.”
-
-“I wouldn’t worry him with gratitude,” remarked Florry the philosopher.
-“I would just clear a corner for him and ask him to occupy it. I fancy
-he would like that better than thankings.”
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XII.
-
-A GENTLEMAN-BLACKSMITH.
-
-
-The energy of the Altruists languished a good deal during the long
-summer vacation. Edward and Muriel Carlyon went on a six-weeks’ visit
-to a relative in the north, and enjoyed themselves mightily after a
-year of hard work. Edward’s black coat did not hinder him from tasting
-the happiness peculiar to the sportsman-naturalist; and Muriel’s
-governessing had not taken the charm from her tramps through heather
-and bracken. A good many of the younger Altruists were off to the
-seaside: those that remained in Woodend voted it ridiculous to attend
-meetings over which there was nobody in particular to preside.
-
-Florry Fane received a long-hoped-for invitation to visit an aunt who
-had settled in Normandy, whence she was in the habit of making frequent
-excursions to continental cities. The chance of seeing Paris, Rome,
-and Florence was suddenly flashed before Florry’s dazed eyes, and her
-parents prepared to miss for a couple of months, at least, the light of
-their quiet home. Frances Morland did not learn till long afterwards
-that Florry had turned resolutely from the offered treat because she
-would not leave her friend in the hour of trouble.
-
-“Paris must wait,” said Florry, “till Frances is happy again.”
-
-The self-denying little Altruist proved that no meetings were necessary
-to hold her to the accepted motto of her Society. Hardly a day passed
-without the appearance at Rowdon of her bright face and helpful hands.
-Jim’s heart grew lighter directly he heard “Miss Fane’s” voice. It
-was good to hear for its own sake, and then it meant the best of
-comradeship for Frances.
-
-The Society sent another delegate to do its work at the smithy. Max
-and Florry frequently travelled the three miles together, arguing as
-they went with a vivacity learned at the school “symposia”. They never
-convinced one another, but it was all the better to be able to look
-forward to a fresh bout of disagreeing next time. Sometimes they
-walked, sometimes they rode with a friendly farmer or begged a lift
-in the Doctor’s trap. Journey as they might, they always turned up
-smiling, contented, and in hot dispute.
-
-It was Max’s fair season at Woodend; the season when his many public
-concerns made least demand on him, and he was most free to remember
-private interests. His invalids were at their best; his poor folk
-were recovering from the effects of the burning heat in their stuffy
-rooms, and were still independent of warm clothing. Moreover, a wealthy
-valetudinarian had bought Elveley, and was demanding a daily visit
-from Dr. Brenton. Max ventured to anticipate the consequent fees,
-and on his own responsibility borrowed from the “Examinations” fund
-the wherewithal to present the dog-cart with a new rug and its owner
-with a new overcoat. Dr. Brenton retaliated by ordering for Max a
-trim Eton suit--challenging the chancellor of the exchequer to refuse
-to pay for it, and in so doing to ruin his father’s credit. Then the
-unconventional pair attired themselves festively, and beamed at each
-other in the joy of their reciprocal liberality.
-
-Max and Austin were always merry at the smithy, and they did their best
-to make Jim merry likewise. With fervent good-will they wielded the
-hammer, and smote the anvil, and practised horse-shoeing until their
-teacher pronounced them adepts. Sometimes they dragged Jim off to the
-common, where they had cut and rolled a decent pitch for their cricket.
-Jim could play, of course, but his science was behind theirs. It seemed
-to the boys a fair return for lessons in horse-shoeing when their
-hints, added to natural quickness of eye and hand, had made of Jim a
-most respectable bowler.
-
-The Morland family had by this time fairly settled at Rowdon, and
-accepted, after their varying fashion, the fresh order of their lives.
-The first excitement of change and bustle was over, and with it had
-gone the impression of relief from pressing disaster, as well as the
-sense of unrest and adventure which had served to dispel fruitless
-broodings and cast a glamour of romance over the new cottage-home.
-Frances and Austin were too busy and too active to sink back into
-despondency; but their mother suffered acutely--all the more acutely
-because she shut herself and her gloom out of the reach of the
-kindliest sympathizers.
-
-Loneliness and misery rendered her harsh and intolerant to the
-youngsters who longed to comfort her. She was irritated by seeing her
-own children seemingly happy and contented, and by witnessing the small
-_gaucheries_ of her stepson’s harmless rusticity. Jim, better able than
-the younger ones to understand her condition, bore her sharp reproofs
-and covert sneers with determined self-control. They hurt him none the
-less; and he suspected that he was despised for the very efforts after
-a dutiful bearing which cost him so much: but he never had cherished
-any hope of pleasing or satisfying his stepmother, and was grateful
-that she kept her promise of not intervening between him and his
-brother and sister.
-
-It was true that she had not much opportunity of doing so, for the
-three young people were seldom together. Frances found plenty of ways
-in which she could help Elizabeth; who was willing to be relieved of
-lighter duties, though she would not for worlds have allowed her young
-mistress to do anything she could make time to do herself. Then there
-were studies to be kept up, books to be read on the recommendation of
-Miss Carlyon or Florry, old friends to be visited in spare hours, and
-the family mending to be attended to.
-
-Jim was an excellent craftsman, as his neighbours had soon discovered;
-but working alone, and with only the simplest appliances, he could
-not attempt the higher branches of a smith’s trade. He had constant
-employment, but no greater returns than any other skilled artisan could
-depend on; and after the first month of his new life had gone by he
-began to be tormented by anxiety as to ways and means. Part of his
-weekly income came from his small invested capital, and on the latter
-he soon found he must draw to meet household expenses. This meant, by
-and by, a reduction on the interest paid to him in consideration of his
-grandfather’s savings, and a consequent lessening of his resources.
-
-When Mrs. Morland had first come to Rowdon, he had told her frankly the
-amount of his income, and had suggested that she should have control
-over it and make the housekeeping her own charge. Most women would have
-been touched by the offer, which was surely honourable to the lad who
-made it.
-
-“My good boy,” replied Mrs. Morland, “you really must excuse me from
-undertaking the management of your house and the responsibility of
-your wealth. I have never learned how to spend pennies, and I have
-no idea when porridge and herrings are in season. I might order by
-mistake a halfpenny-worth too much milk, and then where would you
-be? No, believe me, you will manage far better yourself. Or stay,
-it might amuse Frances to play with sixpences, and she is terribly
-conscientious. No doubt she would calculate the required milk to a
-drop. I have always felt sure she had a genius for figures, since
-she told me she “kept the accounts” of that funny little Society she
-started and got tired of. Children always get tired of everything; but
-Frances might find housekeeping quite a pleasant entertainment for a
-time. Go and ask her, James. And do try to avoid grimacing. It makes me
-quite uncomfortable to see that frowning brow and those tightly-drawn
-lips. So like some melodramatic, middle-class novel. Run away, boy.
-Ta-ta.”
-
-Jim’s courage, after this rebuff, was not equal to the task of
-approaching Frances, and his sister would have heard nothing of the
-interview if Mrs. Morland had not diverted herself by giving Frances
-a special version of it. The girl listened in silence, and with
-half-acknowledged regret on Jim’s behalf. Frances felt instinctively
-that Jim had made an honest advance, and that he had been unworthily
-answered.
-
-She was sorry that time did not prove correct her mother’s prophecy
-that her brother would come to her next; and she debated anxiously with
-herself whether he would be vexed if she were to offer to try her own
-prentice hand at the ordering of the cottage affairs. Jim had certainly
-invited her to remember that she was “mistress” at Rowdon; there could
-be no undaughterly presumption in filling the place her mother had
-refused.
-
-Frances decided that Jim had better be the one to open the question;
-but Jim held his tongue, and bore his own burdens. He had been
-accustomed to leave the provisioning of his little household to
-Elizabeth, and to pay the weekly bills without investigation. Now he
-found that he must not only investigate, but urge on Mrs. Macbean the
-strictest economy. Even then, as has been said, his income must be
-supplemented somehow.
-
-Further, the lad worried himself about the arrested education of his
-young brother and sister. At first it was undivided happiness to have
-Austin so constantly at his side, and to catch glimpses of Frances
-tending the flowers or feeding the chickens. But when he found his
-brother obstinately determined to help in the smithy, and discovered
-that his sister actually made beds and dusted rooms, he began to accuse
-himself of grossly neglected duties.
-
-Edward and Muriel Carlyon had sought out Mrs. Morland on their return
-home, and had begged her in most tactful fashion to let them keep
-their two pupils without payment of school-fees. Mrs. Morland’s pride
-had not been sufficient to render her quite blind to the value of the
-opportunity; but she had tried to save her self-esteem by leaving the
-matter for the children’s own settlement. Austin and Frances were
-not blind either, and they saw more clearly now than before what a
-good education might mean to them. They had talked the subject over
-together, they had invited the counsel of Florry and Max. It was
-significant that they did not seek their mother’s advice. Finally, they
-went to Woodbank in company, and put their concerns bravely and fully
-before their two kindly friends and teachers.
-
-Frances and Austin did not go back to school, but they went twice a
-week to Woodbank for private lessons in modern languages, classics, and
-mathematics, and studied at home between whiles. Every evening they
-spent at least a couple of hours over their books, and found chances
-for music and drawing as best they could in the daytime.
-
-It was this custom which led, one evening in November, to an unexpected
-development in the quiet life of Rowdon Cottage. The boy and girl
-(Austin being the chief spokesman) had persuaded Jim that they would
-not accept sole rights in his old “den”. He must spend there his few
-hours of leisure, and a book-case brought from Elveley should be
-consecrated to his library. Jim at first availed himself but sparingly
-of his opportunities. Usually he worked all the early part of the
-evening in the smithy or the shed, and later on disappeared into the
-little lumber attic where he had disposed the tools and materials
-for his wood-carving. But sometimes he would slip quietly into the
-children’s room--the study, as they chose to call it,--and after a
-respectful, interested glance at the pair of young students seated
-opposite one another, with the shaded lamp between them, at the round
-table, would take a book from his shelf and try to remember that he was
-one of the family.
-
-On the evening in question, Frances had noticed that Jim had betaken
-himself to his own corner with a volume which she had seen with some
-surprise to be Green’s _Short History of the English People_. The lad
-read steadily for an hour or so, and Frances, each time she looked up,
-saw that his attention was firmly fixed on the page. But presently Jim
-leaned back in his chair, his book rested on his knee, and his eyes
-were turned towards the round table with an expression which his sister
-found uncomfortably suggestive of some latent longing. She hesitated
-for a moment, and then said diffidently:
-
-“Don’t you like your book, Jim?”
-
-“Yes, but I’ve finished it, thank you, Missy.”
-
-Jim had not learned to say “Frances”; but “Missy”, as he pronounced it,
-had the accents of a pet-name, and his sister had ceased to find fault
-with it.
-
-“Fancy! You must read fast. Can you remember all those names and
-things? I do think it’s difficult.”
-
-“I’ve read this book three times,” said Jim gently. He had read, ever
-since he could remember, all the historical works he could get hold of.
-“I ought to remember it now, Missy.”
-
-“Do you want to?” asked Frances curiously.
-
-“Ay--surely. Else, what good to be an Englishman?”
-
-“Jim,” began Frances after anxious cogitation, “would you like--would
-you care--to study with Austin and me?” The girl flushed a little as
-she went on hurriedly: “There are heaps of things I dare say you know
-far more about than we do; but there are some ... and Papa would have
-liked....”
-
-Poor Frances stopped in awkward fear of hurting the lowly-reared
-brother.
-
-She need not have paused. The words were hardly spoken when Jim’s face
-lighted up with eager pleasure.
-
-“Missy--I’d love it! Oh, would you--could you--?”
-
-“Of course we could,” interrupted Austin with a merry laugh. “Jim, old
-man, you are an eccentric. Fancy meeting a fellow who needn’t stew at
-lessons, and actually wants to! Come to the table this very minute!”
-Austin flew to drag up a third chair and force Jim into it. “Now then,
-what’s it to be first--classics or mathematics?”
-
-“Austin, don’t worry, dear,” said Frances, seeing that Jim’s breath
-came fast from the excitement of what was to him a momentous
-opportunity. “Tell Jim the lessons we have at Woodbank, then he can
-choose what he would like best.”
-
-Then Jim seized his chance and spoke.
-
-“I’d like best to learn to speak right, Missy,” said the youth
-earnestly; “so as you’d have no need, some day, to feel shame of me.”
-
-It was a hard thing to say, but Jim got through it.
-
-Frances was on the point of disclaiming vehemently. She was checked by
-the certainty that her brother would not believe her. Had she not long
-ago proved him right?
-
-“Humph!” said Austin, again filling the breach; “that’s in your line,
-Sis. ‘Grammar and Analysis’, and all that twaddle. I hate the stuff.”
-
-“Very well,” agreed Frances quickly, “Jim and I will study subjects and
-objects; and you’ll see, sir, _my_ pupil won’t hate them.”
-
-“And you’ll see, miss, that _my_ pupil will cross the _Pons Asinorum_
-with a leap and a bound.”
-
-“_My_ pupil will read Latin without a crib.”
-
-“_My_ pupil will parley-voo frangsay like a gay moonseer.”
-
-“You ridiculous boy!”
-
-“You cockaleekie girl!”
-
-Austin flung his arm round his brother’s shoulders and hugged them with
-a will.
-
-“Don’t mind us, Jim,” he said. “We must lark a bit, and so must you.
-We’ll be awful strict teachers, and give you a hundred lines every time
-you miss a question. But you may wink one eye between whiles.”
-
-Austin’s mirth drowned Jim’s attempted thanks. But the younger boy
-suddenly became sober, and thrusting his Euclid under Jim’s eyes,
-entered on a careful explanation of certain well-known axioms necessary
-to the comprehension of the First Proposition. Then Frances delivered a
-lucid lecture on the Nominative Case. Finally, Jim carried off a couple
-of lesson-books to his corner, and set to work to recall half-forgotten
-rudiments learned long ago at elementary schools, and to assure himself
-that he never would disgrace the pair of accomplished scholars he had
-left at the round table.
-
-Elizabeth kept a divided opinion with regard to Mrs. Morland, but the
-discords feared by Jim were not heard at Rowdon Cottage. The chief
-reason for the comparative harmony which reigned between kitchen and
-sitting-room was the undisguised satisfaction of Mrs. Macbean in being
-again in contact with gentle-people, and in seeing her young master
-recognized as one of them. It is to be feared that her estimation of
-“gentlefolk” was strictly conventional, and that in her heart of hearts
-she thought all the more of her “fine leddy” mistress because Mrs.
-Morland never dreamed of soiling her fingers over household matters,
-but maintained a dignified privacy among the remnants of her former
-prosperity.
-
-Elizabeth found that a late dinner was expected as a matter of course.
-Here, there might have been a difficulty, since the old woman had been
-in the habit of going home to her “gudeman” as soon as she had served
-Jim’s tea and “tidied up”. But while ordering dinner for half-past
-eight, Mrs. Morland happened to mention that her stepson would dine
-with her; and Elizabeth immediately became complaisant.
-
-Jim’s soul grew faint within him when he was informed of the coming
-ordeal--a dinner _à deux_ with his stepmother. A refusal was on the
-poor lad’s lips, but he held it back. He could do nothing, he supposed,
-to narrow the gulf between himself and his father’s second wife; but
-he had determined that no act or word of his should make the gulf
-wider. He assented quietly to Mrs. Morland’s peremptory demand for his
-company in the sitting-room at half-past eight, and promised meekly
-enough to don his Sunday suit before he ventured to present himself.
-
-He imagined that his stepmother’s request was prompted solely by
-a desire to “teach him manners”, and so render him a little more
-presentable to her friends; but in this he did Mrs. Morland less than
-justice. She was slow to act in matters for any reason displeasing to
-her; but having once taken a step in any direction, she did not care
-to turn back. She had been, in her own limited sense, in earnest when
-she had said that she would henceforth regard Jim as the head of the
-family. She meant him to endure to the full the penalties attaching at
-present to the unenviable position, and would not strain a nerve to
-lighten his load; but she intended also to see that a certain respect
-and consideration should be offered him by everyone except herself, and
-it was a part of her plan that he should be found in her company on
-fitting occasions.
-
-The family meals were served in the children’s study, but at none of
-these was the mother present. Her breakfast was carried up to her
-bedroom, and she lunched alone in her sitting-room. It was Austin’s
-duty to take her cup backward and forward across the passage at the
-children’s tea-hour. After dinner Frances and Austin were ordered to
-appear for dessert. Thus Mrs. Morland attempted to retain among her
-present surroundings some of the customs and restrictions of the life
-she had been used to; though the imitation might be a faint likeness
-of the model, and the result pathetic rather than impressive.
-
-The various courses of the meal were perhaps only Scotch broth, broiled
-chicken, and rice-pudding, and the dessert a dish of apples and another
-of nuts. But the glass, china, and silver were the joy of Elizabeth’s
-soul; and the simple food must be served most daintily. Jim was right
-in anticipating severe drilling and remorseless fault-finding; yet,
-taking all in wise humility, he had sense to acknowledge that the
-experience had its value. He soon learned to satisfy Mrs. Morland’s
-requirements as to his comportment at table, and his association with
-her and her children taught him quickly to note the errors in his
-speech and to correct them for himself.
-
-“The lad is no dullard,” admitted the victorious stepmother in
-her thoughts; “he will be a gentleman before he knows it. A
-gentleman-blacksmith! Delightful absurdity! Oh, shall we never escape
-from this dreadful place!”
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XIII.
-
-“MISSY.”
-
-
-After Christmas the winter arrived in earnest--such a winter as
-England seldom sees. Day after day keen “black” frost and bitter east
-wind brought hard suffering to the poor. Jim banished Austin from the
-smithy, and more than once the boy and his sister were prevented
-from paying their visits to Woodbank, and were reduced to “hearing
-each other” say their well-prepared lessons. Florry was not seen at
-Rowdon for a week at a time. Max came, of course; but Max in greatcoat,
-comforter, and gaiters could defy the weather.
-
-Not so Austin; yet Austin, rash as ever, would not stay indoors. Thus
-Jim got into disgrace; he was condemned utterly as an aider and abettor
-of his brother’s defiance of prudence. Jim it was who sharpened and
-cleaned and polished Austin’s old skates, by way of helping the younger
-lad to forget that he was to have had a new pair that year. Jim it was
-who announced that Rowdon Pond was bearing. Jim it was who, having
-reasonable fears of the results when Austin mooned listlessly about the
-lanes, suggested the brisk exercise of skating as an excellent way of
-keeping boyish blood in circulation.
-
-Frances always declared that it was running out without cap or
-overcoat, and standing in draughts, and lingering for last words with
-Max at the gate, which did it. But Mrs. Morland blamed Jim and the
-pond; and Jim went for a fortnight with heavy pain at his heart and
-fresh anxiety on his mind. For he accepted Mrs. Morland’s view: and
-Austin was very ill. Austin had not had so bad a throat for a long
-time. He suffered much, poor boy; and Jim, looking at him, suffered
-more. Dr. Brenton came daily, and Doctor Max spent hours by the bedside.
-
-Jim was night-nurse, at his own humble, imploring request. In vain did
-Frances remind her mother that the “head of the house” went to his
-post after a long day’s work. Mrs. Morland’s face was stony as she
-declined to accept any excuses for the culprit. Jim was the person at
-fault, and it was obviously just that he should suffer for his sin.
-Jim thankfully bore this sort of punishment, and tended Austin through
-the night hours,--when pain and weakness made the boy restless and
-irritable,--with infinite tenderness and patience. Francis begged to
-be allowed to share the watch, but Mrs. Morland was inexorable. She
-required her daughter’s help in the sick-room during the day, and
-Frances must take her usual rest or she certainly would break down.
-
-Frances thought “breaking down” more likely to be Jim’s lot, as she
-watched her elder brother’s face, with its haggard eyes, heavy from
-ceaseless fatigue, and noted how worry and care were setting on his
-brow their ineffaceable lines. Indeed, the extra burden of Austin’s
-illness was leaving marks of its weight, and Jim’s slight figure bowed
-beneath it.
-
-But the trial was over presently. Austin was better, he became
-convalescent; he must be carried downstairs in Jim’s own arms, and be
-coddled and spoiled in the warmest corner of the study. Jim thought no
-self-denial too hard, no service too exacting; and Austin would hardly
-have been mortal boy had he never taken advantage of his willing slave.
-
-When fear and trouble on Austin’s personal behalf were ended, a
-dreadful sequel began. Bedroom fires night and day made inroads into
-the coal-supply, and invalid luxuries ran up expensive bills. Mrs.
-Morland’s demands had not been unreasonable with regard to her own
-table; but when Austin’s nourishment was in question she ordered
-lavishly, hardly requiring Jim’s entreaty that she would see that her
-boy lacked nothing. During convalescence the lad’s appetite was tempted
-with difficulty, and Jim’s only fear was lest the port-wine should not
-be strong or plentiful enough. Afterwards, however, the wine must be
-paid for.
-
-Jim took to sitting up late in his corner under the roof,--how late
-nobody guessed; for Austin, in his well-warmed bedroom, was always fast
-asleep when his brother stole in. But the hard winter told on trade,
-and Jim knew nothing of the best markets for his wood-carving. He was
-glad to sell his dainty work for a trifle to a little hook-nosed Jew
-who kept a small “curiosity-shop” in Exham.
-
-Jim reminded himself that he was now a man, and that a man worth
-his salt ought to be able to maintain his family--especially his
-“lady-folk”--in comfort. He could not bring himself to suggest further
-“stinting” to Elizabeth. The lad seemed possessed with a feverish
-activity. He went to the farmers round about, and found all sorts of
-odd pieces of work with which to fill up every minute not required by
-his special trade. Anything to earn a few shillings, and to delay that
-borrowing from capital and lessening of interest which must surely some
-day bring ruin on the little home where he sheltered his cherished
-kindred.
-
-Jim hid his troubles with desperate courage, but there was somebody
-who was not entirely deceived. Frances had not forgotten that first
-interview between Jim and his stepmother on the latter’s coming to
-Rowdon, and her clear sense had taught her to suspect that the finances
-of the cottage were giving her elder brother some reason for his
-harassed look. The girl longed to ease his burden, but she did not
-know how to invite his confidence. The constraint between them had not
-lessened sufficiently to allow Frances the opportunity of penetrating
-his carefully-concealed secret.
-
-At last chance played poor Jim a trick, and he stood revealed.
-
-“Austin,” said Frances one evening, looking up from her books, “do you
-know where Jim is? It’s so frightfully cold to-night--surely he can’t
-be in the smithy still?”
-
-“I hope not. I wish I could go to see.”
-
-“You mustn’t, indeed. The wind cuts like a lash, and the place where
-Jim works is right open to it.”
-
-“Well, it’s hard lines for a fellow to be mewed up here. Frances, it’s
-Saturday. Jim is always late on Saturdays.”
-
-“He’s late every night now, I think. He just gives himself time to
-dress for dinner; and after dinner he spends half an hour studying
-with us, then he vanishes upstairs. And he hardly eats anything; he’s
-getting quite thin.” There was a hint of tears in the girl’s voice,
-though she did not add aloud her conviction--“I believe he goes
-without, to leave more for us.”
-
-“We must look after him better,” said Austin uneasily. “He’s such a
-right-down good chap, he never thinks of himself.”
-
-“No, never. I’ll go and look after him now, Austin. I’ll make him come
-to the warm room.”
-
-Frances wrapped herself in a woollen shawl, borrowed Austin’s
-“Tam-o’-Shanter”, and went out softly at the front door. Down the
-side-path, over a thick carpet of snow, she crept stealthily into view
-of the smithy. The fires were out: clearly Jim had left his forge.
-She kept the pathway, and skirted the larger building to reach the
-closed-in shed behind it, where stood the carpenter’s bench. Here Jim
-often worked after regular hours, and here she found him to-night.
-
-The girl peeped in through the small window, and at once saw her
-brother, seated on a rough stool by a rough trestle-table. A few books
-and papers were spread before him, but he was not examining them,
-though Frances could see that they were account-books and bills. Jim’s
-arms rested on the table, his hands supported his upturned face, which,
-in the light of his little lamp, looked rigid in its blank misery.
-
-For a moment Frances was startled; then the sight of the papers, and
-the recollection of many things, brought home to her the truth of her
-recent suspicions. Now, if ever, was the time to speak. If Jim were
-vexed by her interference, he still might be persuaded to explain his
-position; and then surely it would be her right to try to help him.
-
-Frances opened the shed door softly, and closed it behind her when she
-had passed in. The place was bitterly cold. Jim’s face looked pinched
-and wan as he turned and gazed at her in dumb surprise. His hands,
-moving mechanically, swept the bills together with an instinctive
-effort to hide them; but Frances, walking straight to his side, pointed
-deliberately to the little heap of crushed papers.
-
-“Jim, I’ve caught you at last!”
-
-“Missy!” ejaculated Jim, and gazing still at the determined intruder he
-stumbled on to his feet.
-
-“Yes, I’ve caught you, so you needn’t attempt to get off telling the
-truth!” The girl feared that the laboured jocularity of her tone wasn’t
-much of a success, and continued with a natural quiver in her voice:
-“Oh, Jim, you mustn’t think I’m quite blind, or that I don’t care. I’ve
-seen for a long time back how worried you have been, and I’ve guessed
-that something must have gone wrong.”
-
-“I’m sorry, Missy,” said Jim, in a low voice. “I suppose I’m a coward,
-or I shouldn’t show so plainly when I’ve a little difficulty to meet.
-But I didn’t know that anyone--that you would notice.” The lad’s eyes
-grew very soft. “You must please forgive me, Missy.”
-
-“Oh, Jim,” exclaimed Frances, perplexed by this disarming entreaty, “I
-wish you wouldn’t talk like that! Do--do tell me what’s wrong!”
-
-“It’s not anything for you to know, Missy. Indeed, it’s just my own
-affair--I’d not trouble you with it. Don’t mind me if I seem a bit
-downhearted now and again. I’m just a rough fellow, and forget my duty
-sometimes, like as not.”
-
-“No, Jim, you remember it far too well. You make all the horrid things
-your duty, and won’t understand that Austin and I want to go shares.
-And I will know. So now, Jim, tell me.”
-
-Frances persisted with argument and entreaty until she had drawn her
-brother’s secret from his lips. Having learned the facts, she set to
-work energetically to propose a remedy.
-
-“We must not spend so much, Jim,” she remarked, knitting her brows
-seriously. She now occupied the stool, Jim standing by her side with
-all the air of a conscious defaulter. “It will never do to keep on
-drawing from your capital. I understand about ‘capital and interest’
-quite well--really I do. I know that if capital grows less, so will
-the interest. We don’t want our interest less, so we mustn’t touch our
-capital.” (Jim’s eyes brightened as he heard the plural possessive.)
-“Now,” Frances went on, “listen to me, and don’t interrupt, and don’t
-contradict. I sha’n’t allow you to contradict! We can do without
-Elizabeth, and we must.”
-
-“Why, Missy--”
-
-“Be quiet, Jim! I like Elizabeth ever so much; but she costs a good
-deal, and we won’t keep her. She will easily get another place; for
-I’ll tell Miss Carlyon about her, and what an old dear she is.” Jim
-smiled forlornly at the epithet applied to angular Mrs. Macbean. “You
-see, it’s wicked to employ people you can’t afford to pay; and I’m sure
-we can’t afford to pay Elizabeth.”
-
-Jim clenched his hands behind his back. They were strong, capable
-hands; why, oh why, could he not fill them with gold for Missy!
-
-“We can do quite well without her,” persisted Frances, her courage
-rising bravely to the emergency. Jim watched the kindling of the
-girl’s intelligent face, and wondered whether he had known before that
-gentle-voiced Missy possessed so plucky a spirit. “She--or someone
-else--might come, perhaps, once a week: to wash, you know, Jim, and to
-clean the kitchen. I shall do the rest.”
-
-“You!” gasped Jim.
-
-“Of course. I can cook and sweep and dust--yes, and I’ll learn to
-scrub. Why not?”
-
-“No, Missy. Oh, don’t put that shame on me!” muttered Jim, in an agony
-of mental distress. “’Tis no work for little ladies: and a man ought to
-bear the burdens by himself. I’ll get more to do--indeed I will! You
-sha’n’t need to worry, if only you’ll not say Elizabeth must go.”
-
-“But I do say it, Jim,” said Frances solemnly; “I wish I could send you
-to Haversfield, and let Miss Cliveden talk to you. She’d show you what
-a goose you were to think ladies--no, gentlewomen--are disgraced by
-work. Why, loads of splendid, clever women earn their own living; and
-I’ve always thought I’d love to earn mine. Look at Miss Carlyon--she
-isn’t ashamed to work for herself, and not be a burden to her brother.”
-
-“But her work’s so different, Missy,” pleaded Jim.
-
-“As if that mattered! Still, if you think it does, and won’t let me
-help here, I’ll try another plan. I’m fifteen now, and I dare say I
-might teach little children. Mrs. Stanley wants a nursery governess,
-Max says. I shall beg her to take me.”
-
-“Missy!” Jim’s tone was now one of the blankest, most thorough dismay.
-“Go away from home--leave Rowdon” murmured the lad incredulously. “Why,
-’twould take all the light from the place. You’d never--Missy!--you’d
-never do it?”
-
-“I’ll have to, if you won’t be reasonable,” said Frances severely. “Of
-course I’d rather stay here, and teach just you, and look after Austin,
-and take care of Mamma. But if you won’t let me--”
-
-“Missy,” said Jim nervously, “you know you’re mistress at Rowdon. I
-won’t say--anything. But oh, don’t go away!”
-
-Frances discreetly followed up her advantage, and made her brother
-promise to dismiss Elizabeth with the usual notice. It was to be done
-in the kindest, most appreciative way; and Mrs. Macbean was to be asked
-if she would care to have another situation found for her, or if she
-would take daily work, and keep Saturdays for the cottage.
-
-Then Jim was requested to put away the tiresome bills, and go indoors
-and get his lessons ready at once.
-
-It was his first experience of his sister as “mistress”. Never before
-had she assumed the voice of the dictator, never before had she ordered
-him about. Jim felt that he liked it.
-
- * * * * *
-
-And now little Frances the Altruist was indeed a woman of affairs.
-Jim kept his word, and after the reluctant departure of Elizabeth
-attempted no remonstrance; he tried faithfully to control his feelings
-when he saw his sister cook and sweep and dust. Only, if she rose
-early, he rose earlier; and she never came down to find a fireless,
-uncared-for grate. Her cans were filled with water, her scuttles with
-coal, before her light step could be heard on the stairs.
-
-After due thought, Frances had decided that Austin should share Jim’s
-secret.
-
-“It won’t do him any harm to know all Jim has tried to do for us,” she
-reflected wisely; “and I think, somehow, it will help him to be manly
-and brave himself.”
-
-So Austin was told, and received the news with preternatural gravity.
-
-“All right, Sis! Jim can keep his hair on; he sha’n’t be ruined yet
-awhile, if we know it. Peace to the shades of the departed Elizabeth!
-You’ll boss the show, and I’ll be second in command.”
-
-Mrs. Morland, also, received a communication from Frances. Jim was
-forthwith sent for--being suspected of having a weaker will than
-the one she had just encountered,--and obliged to listen to keen
-upbraiding, even to merciless taunts. Jim, pale and suffering, could
-reply only that Mrs. Morland’s opinions were humbly acknowledged as his
-own; and that if Missy could be induced to abandon her scheme, he would
-thankfully support motherly authority.
-
-But Frances the Altruist took her own way.
-
-The young people of Rowdon Cottage formed themselves into a sort
-of household league, and speedily discovered the benefits of
-co-operation. Jim toiled early and late; but his trouble shared was
-trouble lightened by at least one appreciable fact--the absence of
-need for further concealment. His distress of mind at the sight of his
-fellow-toilers grew no less, in spite of arguments drawn unconsciously
-from the propaganda of enlightened social economists; but his love for
-those two children who thus bravely tried to help him grew greater, and
-taught him more, day by day.
-
-Frances had found her contentment, and was “happy again”. Her loyal
-friend Florry might now have roamed the Continent, if this desired
-consummation had indeed sufficed to send her there. But happy, busy
-Frances was more than ever a companion to be sought by a girl who never
-had been otherwise than happy and busy. Florry “begged lifts” from Dr.
-Brenton oftener than ever, and enjoyed her part in the cookery and
-housework quite as much as she enjoyed the talks about books and the
-comparisons of lessons which came in between, when folks wanted a rest.
-
-Austin was positively refused regular employment as maid-of-all-work,
-so he kept on the look-out and seized his chances. At night he would
-prowl about in search of the family boots, and would hide them in a
-secret nook, so that in the morning he might try his hand at a new and
-original system of “blacking”. He would creep through the house, gather
-up the mats in a swoop, and depart, chuckling, to do mighty execution
-in the back-yard. Max, if on the spot, of course assisted like a man
-and a brother. Frances only had to hint that any special cleansing
-process was under consideration, and three young Altruists got ready
-for the fray.
-
- * * * * *
-
-“Hi, old man! How’s that for a carpet?”
-
-Jim, anxious-eyed but smiling, professed profound admiration, and
-disappeared within his shed.
-
-It was an April afternoon. Max and Austin, armed with flat sticks,
-stood on either side of a well-stretched rope, whereon hung the
-study carpet. The Altruists were spring-cleaning, and Rowdon Cottage
-resounded with their songs of triumph. Jim had timidly suggested
-Elizabeth as a helper, but the idea had been rejected with scorn.
-
-Kind Mrs. Fane had taken a hint from Florry, and had carried off Mrs.
-Morland to spend a week with her--“while the children amused themselves
-turning everything upside down”. Florry went to Rowdon to keep Frances
-company, by way of exchange of guests; and other Altruists dropped in
-promiscuously to “lend a hand”. It was the Easter holidays, so persons
-of leisure were free to make themselves useful.
-
-Max and Austin stood wiping their fevered brows and admiring their
-work. They were on the drying-green, which widened out into an orchard
-that was the pride of Rowdon Cottage. Presently to the green entered a
-little procession.
-
-Firstly, Guy Gordon, bearing a pile of footstools, and thumping the top
-one energetically as he marched to a whistled war-song. Next, Florry,
-carrying cushions many and various. Then, Frances, with an armful of
-curtains. Next, the small and rosy-cheeked boy--brother to Guy--who
-long ago had inquired of Frances, “What is an Altruist?” Bertie bore
-nothing except himself, and found the task sufficient, for indeed he
-was plumper than Betty Turner. Last of all came Betty herself, with
-a basket of stockings and socks. Betty had volunteered to bring the
-cottage darning and mending up to date as her contribution to the
-proceedings. One can sit very comfortably on a bank under a tree while
-one darns the family hose.
-
-Then arose a very Babel. The various persons of the procession betook
-themselves to convenient spots in the orchard, and set about their
-business. Guy deposited his footstools on the grass, and thrusting a
-stick into the hand of small Bertie, left him with the laconic order:
-
-“See there isn’t a grain of dust in them when I get back!”
-
-Then off flew Guy to the carpet-beating, which was more inspiriting
-than footstools. The flat sticks started afresh to the tune of “Three
-Jolly Sailor Boys”, roared in lusty trebles. Frances, with Florry’s
-aid, shook her curtains, Betty seated herself picturesquely out of
-reach of the dust, Bertie banged away to his heart’s content, and the
-orchard echoed the drying-green in a rousing chorus. Round about,
-the fruit-trees, in all their loveliness of pink and white, averted
-the dazzling April sunshine. Betty, among the violets and primroses,
-examined heels and toes with critical attention, while her voice joined
-involuntarily in the “Sailor Boys”.
-
-“Isn’t it jolly?” demanded Max, during a pause for breath. “Here’s an
-Altruist entertainment given gratis and for nothing to the ducks and
-chickens! Now, then, girls, it’s your turn to lead off. Let’s have
-something sweet!”
-
-Frances started Mendelssohn’s “Farewell to the Forest”, and Miss
-Carlyon’s “Selected Choir” gave three parts in melodious first and
-second treble and alto. Jim brought his work to the door of his shed
-and listened happily. The sound of the young voices, ringing through
-the clear spring air, came to his ears as a reminder of his changed
-conditions, which had in them much of trouble, yet more of joy.
-
-Back and forward between cottage and orchard went the merry troop
-through the long afternoon. A very respectable amount of work had been
-got through when, at half-past five, Frances called a halt for tea.
-
-By common consent the pleasant meal was taken out of doors, under the
-apple-boughs. The girls went into the house, cut bread-and-butter,
-and piled plates with scones and cakes, while the boys spread the
-cloth and fetched and carried. All the visiting Altruists had brought
-contributions to the feast, but Elizabeth’s scones, left at the door
-with Mrs. Macbean’s respectful duty, were in chief demand.
-
-“Good old Elizabeth!” chuckled Austin. “She’s a first-rater. She bakes
-scones once a week, and never forgets ‘Mr. Jim’. I say, Mr. Jim, here’s
-a second supply, well-buttered. Finished? What rot! Pull him down, Max,
-and send up his cup!”
-
-“I made this cake myself, Jim,” whispered Florry. “It’s ever so
-sweet--and all boys like sweet things.”
-
-Jim, always grateful for Florry’s simple friendliness, found he could
-eat the cake nicely. He was next supplied with an egg, which Guy’s hen
-had been obliging enough to lay, and Betty to boil, on purpose for him.
-Frances would be hurt if he did not do justice to her home-made brown
-bread. Altogether, the youngsters took care that Jim’s tea was a hearty
-one. The lad had dropped, some time ago, the idea that these girls
-and boys might despise the blacksmith-brother. He knew, without any
-sentimental demonstrativeness on their part, that they all accounted
-him “a brick”, and he tried earnestly to deserve the flattering
-compliment. He did not know how industriously Frances and Austin sang
-his praises, and with what honest pride they spoke of the hard and
-self-denying toil which set so high an example that they could not but
-be up and struggling to follow it.
-
-Tea over, work began again, and lasted till the shadows lengthening
-“from each westward thing” brought the Altruists’ busy day to a close.
-The visitors straggled homeward, with Frances, Florry, and Austin
-travelling as far as the Common to speed them on their way. They were
-very tired, and very jolly, and very well pleased with themselves. Who
-could say that spring-cleaning had not its aspects picturesque and
-poetic? Who could deny these virtuous labourers the right to rouse the
-echoes with a song of parting, and with yet another to the next good
-meeting?
-
-Austin ran all the way home that he might coax Jim out for a peaceful
-stroll. Frances and Florry, left together, exchanged confidences and
-opinions after their manner. At length, among desultory talk, Florry
-suddenly opened a brisk campaign.
-
-“Frances, do you remember saying, when you first went to Rowdon, that
-you couldn’t come back to our Society--your Society--till you were
-gooder?”
-
-Frances assented doubtfully.
-
-“Well, you’re just as much gooder as any mortal girl wants to be.”
-
-Frances kept expressive silence.
-
-“If you were any gooder than you are now, I should be certain you were
-falling into a decline. Anyway, you’re an Altruist of Altruists, if our
-motto counts for anything, for I’m sure you ‘help others’ all day long.
-We’ve a meeting to-morrow evening. I am going over to it, and I mean to
-take you with me, and Austin too. It’s a mixed meeting--girls and boys;
-and afterwards we’ve a choir practice.”
-
-Frances’s eyes kindled as she heard of these remembered joys. She was
-by no means unhealthily self-introspective by nature; and since she
-had repented her unworthy treatment of Jim, and done her best to make
-amends, the load of sensitive shame and humiliation had seemed to
-fall from her heart. Need she longer hold aloof from the comrades to
-whom she had once ventured to speak--parrot-like, as it now appeared
-to her awakened sense, and ignorant of real issues--such brave words
-of fellowship and admiration towards all those who did worthily the
-world’s exacting work? Might she not again take her place among them,
-better instructed and less ready to instruct?
-
-Florry found that persuasion was not needed. Frances was too sincere
-to profess a belief in difficulties which time had swept away. She
-replied, very truthfully and willingly, that she longed to refill the
-Altruist work-basket.
-
-“I could give odd half-hours to it, you know, Florry. The mornings are
-so light now, I could easily rise a little earlier.”
-
-“Mamma says it is always the busy people who do the most. Oh, dear
-Frances, I am so glad! You will see, to-morrow, how badly you have been
-missed.”
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XIV.
-
-MRS. MORLAND’S TRIO.
-
-
-Mrs. Morland, in a sober evening dress of black silk, inhabited her
-sitting-room in solitary state. The nest her children’s love had
-prepared for her was fresh and sweet as an Altruist spring-cleaning
-could make it; and its occupant, surrounded by pretty and dainty
-things, looked in no want of pity as she sat by her cosy fireside,
-a volume of Tennyson in her hands. Yet on this particular evening
-the leisurely reader seemed not entirely at ease. Her eyes wandered
-continually from her book, and the expression of her face had for once
-lost its satisfaction with self and impatience with the rest of the
-world. In thought as in act Mrs. Morland was slow to admit novelty;
-but a simple occurrence of the afternoon had touched her imagination,
-and inclined her to observe intelligently various matters which helped
-to make the small sum of her daily experience.
-
-A little earlier she had been entertaining visitors--only Muriel and
-Edward Carlyon. But those young people possessed alert and vigorous
-individualities which were apt to leave a track where they had been.
-They talked well on a good many subjects, and had the pleasant knack of
-choosing those subjects with due regard to their company. Mrs. Morland
-liked them both, and was by no means insensible to the kindness which
-had made Frances and Austin their pupils still. So she had listened
-graciously, and spoken a few appropriate words of thanks when the
-brother and sister had warmly commended her children’s progress.
-
-“How proud you must be of them!” Miss Carlyon had exclaimed, determined
-to do her favourites justice. “Do you know, I think no one ever had a
-brighter trio than yours.”
-
-Mrs. Morland stiffened perceptibly as she heard the word “trio”.
-
-“My two children always have given me every satisfaction,” she replied
-with emphasis.
-
-“Never more than now, I am sure,” said Muriel gently.
-
-“Jim is a first-rate fellow,” remarked Edward. “Boyish for his years,
-perhaps, and overpoweringly conscientious. But I believe, when he goes
-out into the world, he will make his mark.”
-
-“He is a worthy, unassuming lad,” said Mrs. Morland indifferently. “I
-should hardly have credited him with more than an average share of
-brains. Of course, I readily admit that he has had no advantages.”
-
-Edward gaily contested the point, arguing that in learning to use his
-hands as well as his head, Jim had provided himself with two forces
-instead of one to aid him in doing battle with difficulties. Mrs.
-Morland declined to show interest in Jim, but she listened courteously
-to her stepson’s praises, and left her combatant in possession of the
-field.
-
-The two visitors were disarmed, and began to think they might hitherto
-have done their hostess injustice on some points at least. They had
-walked out of set purpose to Rowdon that afternoon, after stirring up
-each other, as their habit was, to undertake a doubtful errand. They
-were wondering now whether they might not hope--with the mother in this
-gracious mood--to make that errand something of a success.
-
-“And how is Frances, our own dear Altruist?” questioned Muriel
-presently. “I thought yesterday that she was looking pale and tired.”
-
-“Indeed! I have not heard her complain. She has excellent health,
-fortunately, and is altogether stronger than Austin.”
-
-“Oh, Austin will make a sturdy fellow by and by,” said Carlyon cheerily.
-
-“Meanwhile,” said Muriel tentatively, “I hope our pair of pickles
-aren’t overdoing it? You will forgive me, Mrs. Morland, I’m sure, if
-I intrude on you with selfish anxieties. You see, Edward and I can’t
-contemplate with equanimity the loss of our pupils, and Frances
-has been telling me that she is afraid she must give up some of her
-studies.”
-
-Mrs. Morland flushed angrily. “She has said nothing of the kind to me.”
-
-“She would not wish to worry you,” added Muriel in haste; “and she did
-not speak definitely--only, I understood it was a question between home
-duties and school lessons. As Frances has passed the Oxford Junior
-Locals, I wanted her to get ready for the Senior; but if she has not
-time for the necessary preparation, there is no more to be said.”
-
-“I had a scholarship in view for Austin,” said Carlyon, before Mrs.
-Morland could speak. The brother and sister felt themselves on thorny
-ground, and feared a retreat might be forced on them. “It would help to
-take him to the University. Still, he is right to stick to his sister.”
-
-“You mustn’t let our foolish ambitions vex you, dear Mrs. Morland,”
-said Muriel, rising to lay her hand with a pretty gesture on the elder
-woman’s arm. “If our young people choose the better part, we can only
-love them all the more, and be all the more proud of them. They will
-learn a great deal in helping Jim. Do you know, I am quite jealous of
-Frances’s success as a rival teacher? Now, Edward, you and I must run
-away. We are due at the rectory at six o’clock.”
-
-The visitors said good-bye to a very stately, monosyllabic hostess,
-whose geniality had vanished, and left moroseness behind. At first Mrs.
-Morland was strongly moved to summon Frances for a severe lecture,
-but she felt herself handicapped by her ignorance as to the truth.
-She had no real knowledge of the manner in which her children spent
-their days; and had objected to the work they had undertaken, in
-Elizabeth’s place, on account of its nature, not because she realized
-its amount. But if it were indeed the case that sweeping and scrubbing
-had absorbed the hours due to Latin and mathematics, in what direction
-could she exercise her authority? Somebody must sweep and scrub, if
-the spotlessness on which Mrs. Morland tacitly insisted were to be
-maintained at Rowdon Cottage.
-
-For a time, indignation with her “trio” and their too officious
-friends occupied Mrs. Morland’s thoughts entirely; but compunctions
-were stirring her memory, and she began to recall more exactly, and to
-examine more thoroughly, the few remarks her late visitors had made.
-She wondered whether she had indeed left it to an outsider to notice
-that Frances looked “pale and tired”, and why her girl and boy should
-not have come first of all to their mother with their doubts as to
-their ability to keep up their lessons. Mrs. Morland had seen plainly
-that the Carlyons had spoken with some trepidation and fear of giving
-offence. She felt obliged to admit that they had not willingly broken
-the laws of good taste, but had made an honest effort to serve their
-young friends by letting fall such hints as might induce the children’s
-mother to give more attention to their affairs.
-
-Mrs. Morland’s thoughts were still dwelling on these matters, when the
-door opened softly and Frances entered, carrying a snowy table-cloth
-of finest damask, such as it was Elizabeth’s pride to handle. Next
-came Austin, with a folding-stand and butler’s tray, which he set up
-close to the door. Mrs. Morland was seated so that she could face her
-children, and she watched them furtively from the cover of her fan. The
-young pair were so unaccustomed to attract their mother’s notice while
-about their daily duties that they behaved as though she were as deep
-in Tennyson as they supposed her to be.
-
-Frances deftly spread the cloth, while Austin fussed gravely over his
-tray. Presently they began to lay the covers for two, and to deck the
-table with pretty crystal and silver. There were no “specimen” vases,
-but they had a big bowl filled with white narcissus and ivy for a
-centre-piece.
-
-“Is Jim ready?” questioned Frances in a low voice. “I have no soup
-to-day, but Mr. Carlyon brought a lovely pair of soles, and I have
-fried them most beautifully. Mamma likes fried soles. Jim is so
-thoughtful, he is sure to remember to say he won’t have any; then there
-will be one left for Mamma’s breakfast.”
-
-“Good!” said Austin laconically. “Isn’t there anything for Jim?”
-
-“Silly! Of course there is! I made rissoles out of that cold beef.”
-
-Austin sighed.
-
-“I have kept one back for you, dear,” said Frances quickly. “I know you
-hate cold beef. You shall eat that delicious rissole while I dish the
-pudding.”
-
-The two now wrangled in undertones as to which should enjoy the
-comparative dainty of a rissole, and Mrs. Morland laughed behind her
-fan until she feared detection. Finally, Austin decided that the morsel
-should be halved, and the preparations then proceeded in uninterrupted
-solemnity.
-
-“Is Jim ready?” inquired Frances again. “My soles will be spoilt if
-dinner is kept waiting.”
-
-“Oh, Jim’s all right. He’s turning out the potatoes.”
-
-“Austin! Last time Jim meddled with the potatoes he let one drop into
-the ashes--and he nearly spoiled his best coat!”
-
-“Well, if he’s such a duffer he must go without, himself.”
-
-“I shall fly to the rescue. Oh, Austin, you promised to mix the fresh
-mustard!”
-
-“Crikey! So I did! I’ll do it now, in half a jiffey.”
-
-“Come then; it’s half-past eight already!”
-
-Frances retired in haste to the kitchen, packed Jim off to the
-sitting-room, and served up her three courses in fine style. Mrs.
-Morland, intent on observations, dined almost in silence; and Jim,
-amazed to find neither his mind nor his manners undergoing improvement,
-wondered nervously of what heinous offence he had been guilty unawares.
-Austin brought in the dishes, and waited at table with the utmost
-confidence and resource. It was his little joke to call himself
-Adolphus the page-boy, in which character he indulged in various small
-witticisms, chiefly, it must be owned, for the benefit of Frances.
-When he had placed a scanty dessert before his mother, he went off, to
-reappear immediately in Frances’s wake in his own character of Master
-Austin Morland.
-
-He wore an evening suit of black velvet, which, having been made
-eighteen months before, was an exceedingly tight fit for its owner.
-Mrs. Morland now became aware of the fact, and felt a sudden qualm as
-she anticipated the time when the children’s stock of good, well-made
-clothing would be finally worn out or outgrown. She determined to put
-off, for that evening at least, her intended demand for the immediate
-re-engagement of Elizabeth, and the release of Frances from “household
-drudgery”. She would hardly have acknowledged that a part of that
-forbearing resolution was due to the awakened eyes with which she now
-regarded the third of her “trio”. Jim’s face was pale and tired beyond
-all possibility of concealment.
-
-The meal was ended. Mrs. Morland returned to her Tennyson, and the trio
-returned to their various tasks. For more than an hour the solitary
-woman sat on by her fireside deep in thought. Glancing up, at length,
-she saw that her clock pointed to a quarter-past ten, and it occurred
-to her that the children had not yet come to bid her good-night. Rising
-with a little shiver, for the room was growing chilly, she crossed the
-passage to the study, and, opening the door gently, peered in. The
-three students were gathered together, to share the light of the single
-small lamp. Frances was correcting an exercise for Jim, who listened
-intently while she lucidly explained his mistakes. Austin struggled
-with Greek verbs, repeating them under his breath, while he held his
-hands to his ears, and rocked his body to and fro, after the familiar
-fashion of industrious schoolboys.
-
-Consternation took the place of contentment when Mrs. Morland made the
-young folks aware of her presence by inquiring whether they knew the
-hour.
-
-“It is a quarter-past ten,” she remarked, her voice falling on a guilty
-silence. “You know, Frances and Austin, I do not like you to be up
-later than ten.”
-
-“We have nearly finished, Mamma. We go to Woodbank to-morrow, and we
-shall not have our lessons ready unless we do them to-night.”
-
-“Why not, pray? Are there no morning hours before you? And what is
-this I hear from Miss Carlyon, Frances? Have you really taken it
-upon yourself to tell her, without first consulting me, that you are
-prepared to dispense with her kind help?”
-
-“Oh, Mamma,” exclaimed Frances, “Miss Carlyon could not have thought--.
-Indeed, I didn’t say it that way!”
-
-“Perhaps not,” said Mrs. Morland, half-ashamed of her injustice; “but
-you said it in some way, and I am very much annoyed. A child like you
-has no business to decide for herself whether she will or will not
-accept so great a favour.”
-
-“I only didn’t want to worry you, Mamma; and I didn’t think--I didn’t
-guess you would mind about my lessons.”
-
-“I dare say your intentions were good, Frances,” said Mrs. Morland less
-sharply; “but you certainly should have come to me first. You cannot
-really have been so foolish as to suppose that I am indifferent about
-your studies. They may be of the utmost importance to you some day.”
-
-“I know,” said Frances eagerly. “So, won’t you let me sit up a little
-later sometimes?”
-
-“I can’t do that, for the best of reasons. You rise--as I know to my
-cost--very early; and I must insist on your taking proper rest. But I
-see no obstacle to your finding plenty of opportunity for study in the
-daytime. What is it that comes in the way?”
-
-Frances glanced up at Jim, and meeting his troubled look answered
-pleadingly:
-
-“I’ll tell you all about it when you come upstairs to-night, Mamma
-dear. Won’t that do?”
-
-“Very well,” replied Mrs. Morland, feeling a new and strange reluctance
-to prolong the discomfort she had brought to the industrious little
-group. Memory again spoke in her ears with Miss Carlyon’s voice the
-familiar words about choosing the better part. She went back to her
-room, stirred the smouldering fire, and sank into her luxurious chair.
-Something--could it be conscience?--was stirring fiercely within her;
-and qualities long dormant rose up and cried her shame.
-
-She had been alone but a few minutes when Jim came into the room. The
-lad, still white and weary-eyed, moved with his quiet, undisturbing
-step to Mrs. Morland’s side.
-
-“I wanted to tell you something,” he began diffidently; “something
-perhaps you don’t know. It is that, for a good while back, the
-children have been helping me--teaching me, I mean, besides learning
-their own lessons. I wanted so much to learn, that I’m afraid I forgot
-how I was taking up their time; but indeed I never guessed that Missy
-was going to leave off any of her lessons with Miss Carlyon. Of course
-I will manage so that she need not. I hope you won’t worry, or be vexed
-with Missy. It’s all my fault.”
-
-“And how do you propose to ‘manage’, as you say?”
-
-Mrs. Morland’s keen gaze fell steadily on her stepson’s face.
-
-“I will not let Missy be troubled with me,” said Jim. “That will make
-some difference.”
-
-“But you want to learn?”
-
-“Ay. I will learn, too, somehow, but not at the children’s cost. I can
-do a smith’s work without Latin; but my brother and sister are to be
-something different.”
-
-“You are resolved on that?”
-
-“Ay.”
-
-“And if they do not teach you, they will have time for their own
-studies?”
-
-“I cannot tell that; but I can easily get up an hour earlier and help
-more in the house.”
-
-“When do you rise now, James?”
-
-“Not till five,” replied Jim eagerly. “It would be nothing to rise at
-four.”
-
-“But if my ears haven’t deceived me, I’ve heard stealthy steps going to
-your bedroom at one, and even two, in the morning.”
-
-Jim stood detected and confused.
-
-“Well,” said Mrs. Morland calmly, “I’ll think over matters and let
-you know if I agree to your ingenious plan. Meanwhile, James, I would
-rather you went to bed a little earlier and rose a little later. And
-I object to your giving up your lessons with the children. I have no
-doubt that in helping you they help themselves; but in any case I wish
-you to go on remembering that if you are a blacksmith you are also a
-gentleman.”
-
-Mrs. Morland enjoyed the knowledge that her stepson was utterly
-astonished and subdued; and she went on in the same level tone:
-
-“I never was more convinced of the latter fact than I am this evening.
-Now, good-night, James! Go to bed, and get rid of that headache.”
-
- * * * * *
-
-During the whole of the following couple of days Mrs. Morland displayed
-an unwonted activity, though in a direction her children found terribly
-discomfiting. On this or that pretext she contrived to maintain a
-careful watch on everybody’s movements, and some of the youngsters’
-most cherished and harmless secrets were dragged to light. Thus,
-Frances was surprised by her mother in the act of “washing out” certain
-dainty frills which it always had been supposed were left to Mrs.
-Macbean’s tender mercies. Austin was discovered peeling potatoes in the
-study, whither he had been banished for fear of draughts, while Jim
-cleaned the kitchen windows. And Jim’s feelings may be imagined when
-his workshop was invaded by the stately presence of his stepmother,
-who had donned a shawl and wandered through the darkness merely to
-inquire if he happened to know whether a quarter to ten were the
-correct time.
-
-Mrs. Morland’s inspection was thorough enough to supply her with a
-basis of facts whereon to build further meditations and resolutions.
-Perhaps the latter were confirmed by a conversation she overheard
-through a door left ajar accidentally:
-
-“I say, Frances, isn’t the Mater getting awfully spry? She has been
-going about no end the last two days.”
-
-“Yes. She seems ever so much better and stronger, doesn’t she? Wouldn’t
-it be jolly if she would come for a walk with us sometimes, and go
-visiting a little, as she used to? She wouldn’t always be so dull if
-she had more change.”
-
-“She came and watched me feed my chickens this morning. Fancy! she said
-she had no idea I had gone in for poultry rearing! I believe I must
-have forgotten to tell her about it. I showed her my ducklings, too,
-and promised her one for dinner soon.”
-
-“Mamma asked me where I had learned to make such nice puddings.
-Wasn’t it dear of her to notice? I shall turn out lovely pancakes
-to-night--she likes pancakes.”
-
-“Anybody would like your pancakes. May I have the little burnt one at
-the end?”
-
-“You unkind boy, it isn’t always burnt! Perhaps I’ll give you a whole
-proper one for a treat, as you provide the eggs.”
-
-On the third day after the Carlyons’ visit, Mrs. Morland once more
-surprised the little housewife and her male servitors. They were at
-breakfast in the kitchen; for Frances, to save coal, had decreed that
-the study fire should not be lighted in the early morning.
-
-“Is this an innovation, young people?” demanded the newcomer amiably.
-“Thank you, James; I will take Austin’s chair, and he can fetch
-another. Really”--and Mrs. Morland glanced critically round the bright,
-clean kitchen--“you look remarkably comfortable here. Your copper pans
-do you credit, Frances.”
-
-“Jim scoured the pans, Mamma dear,” said the girl, recovering from the
-shock of discovery. “And I do think they’re pretty. Mayn’t I give you
-some tea? Oh no! not this, of course--I’ll make some fresh.”
-
-“Nonsense! I’m sure you can spare me a cup of yours. That tea-pot has
-immense capacity, and if these lads haven’t drained it--”
-
-“Why, there’s lots,” said Austin, lifting the lid of the big brown
-pot. “Only, you see, Mater, it’s--it’s a little nurseryfied. Frances
-doesn’t approve of strong tea for our youthful digestions. I’ve plenty
-of boiling water in my kettle, and you shall have a special brew.”
-
-Jim had risen quietly and placed a small clothes-horse, over which he
-had thrown a cloth, between Mrs. Morland and the fire. Meanwhile his
-stepmother, with a swift glance that escaped detection, had surveyed
-the young people’s fare. A home-baked loaf, a plate of scones, butter,
-and marmalade. For Austin alone, a boiled egg. All set out with
-exquisite cleanliness, and appetizing enough in itself, but hardly
-sufficient preparation for a long and hard day’s work.
-
-“Frances has found some dainty for my breakfast-tray each morning,”
-reflected Mrs. Morland, and at that moment Frances spoke.
-
-“Your kidneys are still in the larder, Mamma. Would you like them
-cooked sooner than usual since you are down so early?”
-
-“They will do nicely for dinner,” said Mrs. Morland. “I am going to
-breakfast with you, and cannot possibly resist those scones any longer.”
-
-The amazed silence of the group may not have been entirely
-complimentary, but Mrs. Morland seemed unconcerned, and forced speech
-on “James” by inquiring whether he were responsible for the shining
-dish-covers as well as the copper pans. The freshly-made tea was
-praised generously; and altogether Mrs. Morland showed a welcome
-disposition to admire everything.
-
-Breakfast over, the workers of the family prepared to set about their
-usual duties. Jim went off to the forge, Austin departed to feed his
-chickens, Frances began to clear the breakfast-table.
-
-“I have been thinking,” said Mrs. Morland, while she helped to gather
-together cups and plates, “that for the future Jim and I will dine with
-you children in the middle of the day.”
-
-“Mamma!” exclaimed Frances, standing statue-like in her amazement.
-
-“It would be at least an hour’s saving of your time--oh! more than
-that. However simple your cookery, it must require a good deal of
-attention; then, there is the serving, and after all the washing of
-dishes and pans. Why, child, we have hit in a moment on the solution of
-your difficulty.”
-
-“You never have been used to an early dinner,” said Frances in a
-troubled voice; “you would hate it.”
-
-“It could not really make the slightest difference to me now,” declared
-the mother. “When I visited and received visitors, things naturally
-were arranged according to custom.”
-
-“But, Mamma,” said Frances wistfully, “why should you not visit again?
-The people worth knowing wouldn’t like us a bit the less because we
-live in a cottage instead of at Elveley. It is not as though we had
-done anything wrong. All your favourite friends have called since you
-have been here--”
-
-“Called!” interrupted Mrs. Morland vehemently “yes--to pry into my
-affairs and gossip over my changed circumstances. Ah! Frances, you
-don’t know the world yet, thank Heaven; you look on it still with a
-girl’s eyes, thoughtless and ignorant. No, you must not attempt to
-question my judgment in such matters. I could not endure to be pitied.”
-
-“Nor I, Mamma.”
-
-“Then don’t put your acquaintances to the test,” said Mrs. Morland
-bitterly.
-
-Frances looked up with clear, wondering eyes.
-
-“Would you rather I did not go to our Altruist meetings, then, Mamma?
-You know, I’ve joined our little club again lately. Of course, all the
-girls understand that I can be with them only once in a way, and that
-I can’t make things for our stores, but they don’t seem to mind.”
-
-A smile of pleasure brightened the girl’s face as she recalled the
-enthusiasm which had greeted her return to the Altruists.
-
-“By all means go to your meetings, child. It was not by my wish that
-you left off doing so. And by all means attend regularly, and get
-what fun you can in your dull life. As to the work, you shall not be
-entirely empty-handed. You and I will set up a work-basket between us;
-and if we have no new material, we can alter and cut down our own old
-clothes.”
-
-“Oh, Mamma, that would be lovely!” said Frances gratefully.
-
-“I will look over your wardrobe this afternoon and bring down some
-of the things you have quite outgrown. And, my dear, I wish you to
-consider the matter of our meals as settled. We will all dine together,
-and we shall have nice long evenings. Why, the Altruist work-basket
-will be a positive blessing to me. You young people mustn’t be
-surprised if I pay a visit to your study sometimes; it is just a little
-lonely in my room after dark. I will sew while you are busy with your
-lessons, and then we shall save a fire. We might let the kitchen fire
-go out now and then after tea, and keep one in the sitting-room, so
-that we could have an hour or two’s music. James has a nice voice--you
-must teach him to sing.” ...
-
-“Mamma!--mamma darling!” Frances had flown to Mrs. Morland. Their
-cheeks were pressed together, their arms were about one another.
-
-“There--you silly child! I have been thinking the old mother has been
-out of everything long enough. Run away to your bedrooms; and before
-you go, lend me your biggest apron. You shall see that I will soon
-master the professional manner of washing breakfast-cups.”
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XV.
-
-POLLY’S DELIVERER.
-
-
-“Max,” said Dr. Brenton from the hall door, “can you take a case for
-me this afternoon?” The Doctor’s eyes twinkled as he spoke, for his
-son’s professional aid furnished him with plenty of opportunity for
-the harmless jesting enjoyed by both. “Of course, I mean if your own
-private practice permits.”
-
-“Thank you,” replied Max gravely; “I believe I’ve nothing serious
-on. My distinguished services are entirely at your disposal. Is it
-toothache or measles? I’m great at measles.”
-
-“I’m sorry I can’t give you a turn with your speciality. It’s just a
-broken arm. But there was some chance of fever; and the boy’s mother is
-such a fool she can’t even take his temperature, or I might have told
-her to send me word how he did--”
-
-“Pardon me, but who’s the boy?”
-
-“Oh! why, young Brown, at Appleton Farm.”
-
-Max whistled. “Hallo! that’s a six-mile trot.”
-
-“Yes, and I don’t know how you’re to get there. I can’t spare the trap,
-for I’ve to go twice as far in the other direction.”
-
-“Never mind ways and means,” said Max cheerily. “As Appleton isn’t out
-of our planet, I suppose I can reach it somehow.”
-
-“Wait a bit, though, my boy,” said the Doctor, stepping out on to the
-gravel path and laying his hand on Max’s shoulder. “This is Wednesday,
-and I don’t want to spoil any little plan for your friends’ holiday
-afternoon. Was there a spree in view?”
-
-“Nothing you need bother about, Dad,” replied Max, raising his bright
-face. “I was just going over to Rowdon with this pansy-root for
-Frances. I forgot to grub up the thing in the morning, so I’m getting
-it now.”
-
-“You always enjoy a few hours at Rowdon,” said the Doctor regretfully.
-“Perhaps, after all, I might get back in time to tackle Appleton
-myself.”
-
-“No, you mightn’t. You’ll be tired enough as it is, after being out
-half last night. Don’t you worry, Dad, I’ll see to Brown.”
-
-“It won’t matter how late you visit him. You could have a game first,
-lad. Rowdon is not much off the road to Appleton. Suppose you went
-there first?”
-
-“Good idea! If Austin’s in trim, I dare say he’ll go on with me.
-Frances too, maybe. Off you go, Dad, and don’t fidget about Brown. I’ll
-settle him and his temperature.”
-
-So off the Doctor went, as easy in his mind as his young son’s care
-could make him. And Max dug up his root, wrapped it neatly in brown
-paper, and made ready for the tramp to Rowdon.
-
-Austin was “in trim” and volunteered his company to Appleton. Frances
-and her mother had arranged to give the afternoon to the Altruist
-work-basket; but they invited Max to come back to tea at the cottage,
-and to play a game at cricket on the Common afterwards. The boys did
-their walk in good time, found Brown’s temperature normal and his arm
-doing well, and then strolled homeward at a leisurely pace.
-
-“How are things going in the village?” inquired Austin, as they neared
-Rowdon, and topics of more personal interest had been pretty well
-exhausted. “Has your father got old Fenn to do anything for Lumber’s
-Yard?”
-
-“Fenn! Not he. But the folks themselves are looking up. Carlyon has
-been hammering away at them a long time, as you know, and most of
-them are a shade more respectable in consequence. At least, they are
-beginning to show some disgust with that beast Baker, which is a sign
-of a return to decency.”
-
-“Has Baker been doing anything fresh lately?”
-
-“Anything fresh in the way of brutality is hardly within Mr. Joe
-Baker’s power. He’s an out-and-out right-down waster, and I told him so
-yesterday for the fiftieth time.”
-
-“What was he doing?”
-
-“Mauling that tiny mite Polly. Fortunately Harry the Giant heard the
-child yell, and went to her help just as I got there. I couldn’t help
-treating Baker to a few home truths, and I wish you’d seen his scowls
-and heard the pleasant things he promised me.”
-
-“Beast! But I say, Max, don’t put yourself in his way in a lonely lane
-on a dark night. He doesn’t love you.”
-
-Max’s expressive “Ugh!” closed the subject.
-
-The tea-table, presided over by Mrs. Morland, was surrounded that
-evening by a lively little company. Austin and Max gave a mirthful
-version of their encounter with Mrs. Brown, concerning the beef-tea
-they had ventured to criticise; and quiet Jim, whose sense of humour
-was undergoing cultivation, chuckled over the boys’ small witticisms.
-Max’s long walk had not robbed cricket of attraction. As soon as tea
-had been cleared away, the youngsters dragged Jim off to the Common;
-and even Mrs. Morland was cajoled into coming with them to look on and
-keep the score.
-
-But it was a really tired-out lad who, when dusk was deepening into
-darkness, bade Frances and Austin good-bye on the further side of the
-Common. Max would not let his friends come further, for he meant to
-cover a good part of the remaining distance at a swinging trot, which
-might, he hoped, compel his aching legs to do their duty. And for a
-time they did it nobly; but presently fatigue compelled the boy to slow
-down to a steady walk, which made reflection easier. Max’s thoughts
-were usually good company, and on this particular evening he had
-abundant food for them.
-
-Max Brenton was nearing his fifteenth birthday, and his busy, capable
-life held promise of early maturity. Though still a very boyish boy,
-he had in his many quiet hours developed a power of concentration and
-resolute temper, which inclined him to wider schemes of activity than
-boyhood often learns to contemplate. It was only the strength and depth
-of his affections--in which alone Max was child-like--that rendered
-it possible for him to look forward without impatience to a career
-consecrated to the service of Woodend.
-
-Max would have preferred a broader outlook and a brisker scene for his
-energies. But he knew that a partnership with his son was Dr. Brenton’s
-wildest dream of future happiness and prosperity, and Max could not
-imagine himself bringing defeat to his father’s plan. How often had
-they talked it over together! and how gaily had Max anticipated his
-triumphant return to his little country home with the honours of the
-schools bound thick about his brows! By that time Dad would want
-someone to do the night-work, and share the responsibility of difficult
-cases; and who should help him, who ever had helped him, but Max?
-
-The boy smiled as, moving rapidly through the evening darkness, he
-reminded himself afresh of all these things. Then the smile faded,
-and a quick sigh expressed the lurking regret of his growing years.
-For a while his thoughts soared to all conceivable heights of medical
-distinction; and he wondered whether, had his path not been inexorably
-prepared for him, he might have climbed to better purpose some other
-way.
-
-Max’s thoughts still dwelt lingeringly on the opportunities present-day
-conditions afford to the specialist in any profession, as he drew
-within sight of the straggling cottages of Woodend village. The first
-of all was a neat little one-storeyed tenement, where dwelt poor Mrs.
-Baker’s aged father and mother. Of late the couple had often tried
-to shelter Bell and her little ones during outbreaks of Joe Baker’s
-drunken fury; and more than once the fugitives had been pursued to
-their place of refuge by their persecutor. Max recalled these facts
-while his eyes caught through the trees the glimmer of lights below him
-in the valley; and by a natural sequence of thought, he remembered also
-his morning encounter with Joe.
-
-“He was in one of his worst moods,” meditated the boy; “and if the
-‘Jolly Dog’ has seen any more of him since, I expect his wife will
-be in danger to-night. I declare, I’ve half a mind to look in on her
-father and give him a word of warning. He might fetch the children,
-anyhow.”
-
-Max looked again at the light in old Baring’s distant window, and
-decided to carry out his plan. A little further on he turned into the
-lane where, many months ago, Austin Morland’s galloping pony had caught
-up “brother Jim”. The overhanging trees behind tall wooden palings
-added to the natural darkness of the hour and place; and it was not
-till his eyes had grown accustomed to the gloom that he detected a tiny
-figure stumbling towards him up the path. When the child came close,
-Max saw that it was little five-year-old Polly Baker.
-
-“Hallo!” sang out Max; “you again, small kid! What are you doing here?”
-
-“Oh, Mas’r Max! Mas’r Max!” The child flung herself at the lad, and
-clung to him desperately. “He’s after me, Father is! Don’t let him have
-me! Please don’t, Mas’r Max!”
-
-The boy lifted the little child in his arms, and tried to soothe her.
-He felt that her frail body was palpitating with the terror which had
-already made her baby face wizened and old. A mighty wrath surged into
-Max’s heart. Polly’s trembling fingers tugging weakly at his jacket
-called all his manliest instincts into vigour.
-
-He easily made out the child’s broken words of explanation. Baker had
-been turned away from the “Jolly Dog” as being dangerous to its other
-frequenters, and in malicious rage had lurched home and set about
-beating wife and children indiscriminately. Neighbours had come to the
-rescue, and had seen that Bell was safely housed with a friend, while
-her children were sent under escort to their grandfather Baring. For a
-time Baker had remained indoors, nursing his wrongs; then, not daring
-to interfere with Bell, since Harry the Giant was mounting guard over
-her, he had set out in the dark to wreak his fury on the Barings and
-their helpless charges.
-
-His coming had sent Polly and the other little ones into paroxysms of
-terror, and they had flown for shelter out to the friendly night. Baker
-was drunk enough to be dangerous, without having in the least lost
-control over his senses. Little Polly, whose baby fist had sometimes
-been raised in defence of her mother, was always his favourite victim;
-and the child now gasped in Max’s ear her certainty that her father
-had seen and followed her. If he had been sure she was right, Max
-would have turned instantly, and have run back up the lane to some
-trusty villager’s dwelling; but before he could persuade himself to
-this course, events proved Polly’s fear to be justified. Round the
-corner into the lane came Baker, running at full speed, with sufficient
-certainty of gait to assure Max that he would have no helpless drunkard
-to deal with.
-
-Even then, Max knew that he could escape, without Polly. Max was fleet
-of foot; but the clinging grasp of the childish fingers and the weight
-of the little quivering body were enough to give the advantage to
-Baker in an uphill race. Max had but a minute for reflection, and he
-determined to try to dodge Baker, slip past him, and make a dash for
-the village. Running downhill, he thought he might outstrip the enemy,
-should he give chase; and there would be the chance of meeting help in
-the more frequented road.
-
-Max had hardly resolved on the attempt, when he knew it had failed.
-Baker made a cunning feint of speeding by, then flung himself to one
-side and fairly pinned Max against the palings. In a twinkling the boy
-had twisted himself free, and set down his burden with a whispered “Run
-for it, Polly! Run back to the village, fast!”
-
-Max’s fear was all for the baby girl, and his one thought now was to
-gain time for her escape. Therefore he made no attempt to secure his
-own, but threw all his strength into the effort to hold back Polly’s
-father, who, with threats which chilled Max’s blood, addressed thickly
-to the flying child, was trying to hurl himself after her. The strong
-young arms of Polly’s defender were not so easily shaken off; and as
-the little flickering feet carried their owner round the corner and out
-of sight, Baker turned his attention to revenge.
-
-Max’s vigour was already nearly spent, and his danger had been obvious
-to him from the beginning of the unequal struggle. Baker’s hatred of
-“the young Doc”, first called into active existence on the night when
-the boy’s manœuvres had successfully combated his own brutal designs,
-had increased continually ever since. It was Max’s interference, and
-Max’s personal popularity, which had made the denizens of Lumber’s Yard
-band themselves into a sort of bodyguard to protect Baker’s ill-used
-wife and children. It was Max who had again and again assailed the
-drunkard and bully with words of biting contempt. It was Max who had
-that very morning boldly threatened to obtain legal redress for Bell
-and her little ones should their cruel tyrant persecute them once more.
-
-Now the man had the boy in his power. Max could not do much in
-self-defence. He tried to hit out, but Baker, seizing his arms, flung
-him back against the fence, and, pinning him there with one hand,
-struck at him furiously with the other. Even then Max’s thoughts were
-with the escaping child, and he clung desperately to the arm which
-held him during the few moments of blinding pain before he dropped.
-Baker was not made of the stuff which spares a fallen foe. His heavy
-nailed boots did a ruffian’s work on the prostrate body of Max Brenton.
-
- * * * * *
-
-Little Polly fled as for dear life along the village road. She passed
-her grandfather’s house, which had proved so poor a shelter; she gave
-no heed to bystanders at cottage-gates; she did not dare to pause even
-when a friendly voice addressed her. Deep in her baby heart was a fear,
-not for herself alone; and she flew on and on, her fluttering breath
-panting between her white lips, her scared eyes gleaming with terror
-above her colourless cheeks. Her way soon led her by large houses set
-far back in their beautiful gardens, and at the gate of one of these a
-boy stood waiting for a comrade.
-
-“Hallo, Polly! What’s the scare, youngster? Stop, and let’s hear.”
-
-Every Altruist was Polly’s friend, and knew the story of her wretched
-home. So now at last the child ventured to check her headlong pace, and
-to give voice to her baby fears. This lad, she knew, was Guy Gordon--he
-who could make cunning use of the strange silver flute, he whose
-pockets kept stores of sweets for tiny, crimson-frocked girls. Guy
-was the friend of Polly’s young deities--Max and Austin, Frances and
-Florry. To him the child now turned with a despairing cry.
-
-“Mas’r Max! Oh, it’s Mas’r Max!”
-
-“No, it’s Mas’r Guy!” laughed the boy good-naturedly. “What’s up,
-Trots?”
-
-“Save him, p’ease save Mas’r Max! Father’s got him in the dark lane far
-away. Father’ll kill Mas’r Max!”
-
-“Polly! What!--what do you mean, child? Your father, and Max! Where?”
-
-Guy knew, like the rest of his small world, the hatred felt by Baker
-for the Doctor’s son; and while the boy tried to assure himself that
-there was no use in heeding incoherent babble from a mere baby like
-Polly, a horrible dread swept across his mind.
-
-“Father’s got him! Oh, Father’s got Mas’r Max! Father hates Mas’r Max
-’cos he won’t let him beat Mummy and me! Father’ll kill Mas’r Max away
-in the dark lane, ’cos--’cos Mas’r Max held Father to let Polly run!”
-
-“It can’t be true! Polly, are you certain you mean just what you say?
-Oh, what’s the use of asking her! I’ll do something on the chance--”
-
-Guy thought a moment, then, picking up the child, ran at his best speed
-up the road to Dr. Brenton’s house, now close at hand.
-
-“Me was comin’ here!” sobbed Polly, as Guy pelted in at the gate; “me
-was comin’ to tell Dokker! Polly love Dokker and Mas’r Max. Polly not
-let Mas’r Max be killed dead!”
-
-“You poor little brave thing!” muttered Guy, choking back a sob
-himself. “If anything has happened to Max, what will the Doctor do? He
-is in, I know. I saw him go home just half an hour ago. Where’s the
-bell? Ugh! how my hand shakes! I’m no better than this baby.”
-
-The Doctor was in, heard Guy’s story, and keeping over his voice and
-face a control which amazed his boy-visitor, questioned Polly so
-quietly and gently that he drew from her an account clear enough as to
-time and place, and connected enough as to fact, to convince himself
-and Guy that the little one told the truth. Then he called Janet,
-handed Polly into her care, and caught up his hat and a thick stick.
-
-Dr. Brenton and Guy ran down the road, side by side, at a level, steady
-trot. Guy kept respectful and sympathetic silence. He, like Polly,
-loved the good Doctor and Max.
-
-Suddenly Guy drew from his pocket a whistle, on which he blew a loud
-and shrill blast.
-
-“It’s the Altruists’ whistle, sir,” he explained briefly. “Of course we
-won’t wait, but if there are any of ‘Ours’ about, they’ll turn up and
-help.”
-
-“Thanks, lad,” said the Doctor. “We’ll pray as we go that Max has
-escaped from that scoundrel.”
-
-“He wouldn’t try,” said Guy simply, “while Polly was about.”
-
-“You’re right,” said the Doctor, and they sped on.
-
-Guy’s whistle roused the echoes. Down the garden-paths and the shadowy
-drives of the larger dwellings of Woodend rushed a half-score of
-Altruists, responsive to the well-known signal, and eager to know what
-had brought it forth. For this particular whistle was never used save
-when opportunity offered for the Society’s members to justify their
-motto, “Help Others”. The running boys soon caught up the Doctor and
-Guy, and heard from the latter, in his breathless undertones, what
-the signal had meant. The lads felt themselves in sufficient force to
-deliver Max from any danger; and as the village road was now empty
-of all save stragglers hieing homeward, they attracted no particular
-attention.
-
-“There’s Harry the Giant!” exclaimed Frank Temple, who ran beside Guy
-just in the Doctor’s wake. “He might be of use--I’ll bring him.”
-
-The name of Max sufficed for Harry, who attached himself willingly to
-the little group of boys. Then in silence they followed the Doctor
-out of the village, along the uphill country road, and so into the
-long, dark lane, which Polly’s description had enabled Dr. Brenton to
-identify. Half-way up the lane they came upon Max, lying, as Baker had
-left him, in the deep shadow of the trees.
-
-All the lads waited silently while the father knelt down to examine his
-son.
-
-“I think he is alive, Guy,” said Dr. Brenton presently, while he turned
-to his young allies a white and agonized face; “if he is, that’s the
-most I can say--and I’m not sure yet. Come, you all cared for him; you
-shall help me to carry him home.”
-
-The boys pressed forward, but Harry, stepping quickly in front of them,
-stooped and raised Max carefully in his mighty arms.
-
-“By your leave, gen’lemen,” said the big, good-hearted fellow, “there’s
-none but me as shall carry Master Max.”
-
-And after that there was for Polly’s deliverer a long and dreamless
-night.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XVI.
-
-WANTED--A NICE SOMEBODY.
-
-
-When Max again looked out on the world with seeing eyes, he was lying
-upon his own bed, a fact which for the moment puzzled him exceedingly.
-Because cool air and soft sunshine were coming in at the open window;
-and while it was yet day, Max had been wont to work. As he still
-scolded himself lazily for a good-for-nothing lie-abed, and almost
-resolved to rise that very minute, his blinking eyes caught sight of
-a dark mass which resolved itself slowly into the definite shape of
-humanity, and became the motionless figure of a man.
-
-“Dad!”
-
-The figure moved, rose, came forward with the painful caution of dreary
-suspense. Dr. Brenton had doubted his ears, and Max’s eyelids were
-together again. But gradually they parted, tardily but surely, and
-Max’s lips smiled.
-
-[Illustration:
-
-M432
-
-“THE FIGURE MOVED, ROSE, CAME FORWARD WITH THE PAINFUL CAUTION OF DREARY
-SUSPENSE.”]
-
-The boy heard a low-breathed murmur of thanksgiving.
-
-“Dad!”
-
-“Ah!--Max!...”
-
-Round the corner of a big screen near the door came the eager face
-of a boy. Just one peep at that other boyish face on the pillow, and
-then Austin’s vanished. A minute later its owner, on shoeless feet,
-was dancing a wild jig of enthusiasm on the landing outside. For the
-great London specialist, Sir Gerald Turner, had said that if, within a
-certain time, Max recovered consciousness, there might be a chance for
-his life. And Austin had firm faith in that “chance”.
-
-Sir Gerald had found it convenient to spend a country holiday with his
-brother, Betty’s father, and might be relied on to be within hail.
-Max’s case was interesting, and Sir Gerald liked Dr. Brenton. So now
-Austin, with one brief word to Janet, found his boots, dragged them on
-somehow, and flew to summon the famous physician. Sir Gerald came at a
-pace which tried Austin’s patience to the last degree; but as the man
-was not to be hurried, the boy ran in advance, and wondered as he went
-what it could feel like to give a verdict for life or death.
-
-Dr. Brenton came to meet his coadjutor, and led him upstairs. The two
-friends, speaking in whispers, passed out of Austin’s ken. Then the
-boy, studying his watch, learned that Sir Gerald could actually be
-heartless enough to keep him in horrible uncertainty for a good ten
-minutes, and wondered how London could produce and tolerate such a
-monster. The distant hum of voices heard murmuringly through Max’s
-window overhead was so intolerable that Austin covered his ears with
-his hands as he rocked to and fro on the doorstep. Thus he was taken by
-surprise when a hand was laid kindly on his shoulder, and a voice said
-gently:
-
-“Be comforted, my boy. Your playfellow is better: he is going to pull
-through.”
-
-Austin’s wild shout of joy made Max stir in his health-giving sleep;
-but after all it did no harm, and carried to a little knot of waiting
-Altruists the first glad prophecy of better things to come.
-
- * * * * *
-
-Max improved slowly, and at length reached a point of improvement
-beyond which he seemed unable to go. No one was more disturbed than
-he that this should be the case. His father was palpably uneasy at
-leaving him, and yet work must be attended to. His own pensioners were
-doubtless in need of him, though the entire body of Altruists had
-placed themselves unreservedly at his service.
-
-Through the cloudless days of a beautiful May the Doctor’s son
-struggled back to life, and learned afresh how sweet a thing it was. He
-never was lonely, for some boy or girl was always at hand to look after
-food and medicines, tell stories, and invite orders. On his own behalf
-Max was not exigent; but his comrades found out, during those days of
-vicarious work among the sick and sorry of Woodend, how busy a person
-“the young Doc” had become, and how many of his glad boyish hours must
-have been given freely to the helping of others.
-
-“Max was an Altruist long before we started our Society,” remarked
-Frances meditatively. “I don’t know how he managed to do all he did.”
-
-“‘Busy people always have most time,’” said Betty sententiously.
-
-“Will Max ever be busy again, I wonder?” questioned Florry. “Oh, poor
-Max!--if he doesn’t get well! I heard Dr. Brenton tell Papa that Max
-didn’t get on a bit, and that he had been so badly hurt.--Oh, Frances!
-wasn’t it cruel?”
-
-“Yes; but Max is a hero, and we’re proud of him. And he’s quite brave
-about it. If he fretted, he wouldn’t have half so good a chance;
-but since he’s plucky and quiet he will surely get well some day.
-Meanwhile, we can take care of all his ‘cases’.--I dressed a burn
-to-day,” finished Frances triumphantly. “The child had come to see
-Max--just fancy--and I took him in, and Max showed me how to do it.”
-
-“We’ll start an ambulance class, and beg Dr. Brenton to teach us,”
-said Betty. “I should like it. I’m going to be a doctor some day, and
-live in Harley Street, and be rich and famous, and cure all the people
-nobody else can cure;--I’ll be just like Uncle Gerald.”
-
-“And Florry will be rich and famous too,” sighed Frances; “she’ll write
-hooks and plays and be as great an author as you will be a doctor. Oh,
-dear! I sha’n’t be anybody particular. I’ll just have to stay at home
-and help Max with his easy cases.”
-
-“I can tell you something more about Max,” said Betty. “Uncle Gerald
-says Dr. Brenton ought to send him away yachting with somebody who
-would take great care of him, and then he would get well a great deal
-sooner. I’m on the look-out for a nice Somebody to do it. I’ve a cousin
-who has a yacht, and I wrote to him, and what do you think the wretch
-replied? ‘Catch me plaguing myself with an invalid boy!’ I sha’n’t
-speak to him when he comes here again.”
-
-“I wouldn’t,” said Florry, with equal determination.
-
-“He doesn’t know Max,” said Frances.
-
-“We will ask all the Altruists to ‘look out for a nice Somebody’ to
-take Max a sea-voyage,” said Florry. “I dare say we shall soon find
-someone. Now, good-bye, girls; it’s my turn to be nurse. I’ve a lovely
-story by Stanley Weyman to read to Max, and I’m aching to begin it.”
-
-If the care and service of his friends could have cured the sick boy he
-would have made a wonderfully quick recovery. As it was, they certainly
-helped him loyally through the long days of his pain and weakness;
-and the persistent cheerfulness of their prophecies as to his future
-coloured insensibly his own thoughts, and made them usually bright and
-always contented. Then, though the details of Baker’s capture by a band
-of Woodend villagers, and his exemplary punishment at their hands, were
-still withheld from him, he had the relief of knowing that the brutal
-rascal of Lumber’s Yard had been packed off to America, with a threat
-of legal proceedings should he dare to reappear in Woodend; and that
-Bell Baker, free of his tyranny, was developing into a good mother and
-tidy housewife. Max’s friends found her as much work as she could do;
-and the Altruists helped her judiciously with extra food and clothing
-for her little ones.
-
-Moreover, the Woodend gentlemen held a meeting, at which they said many
-pleasant things about the Doctor’s son, and many serious ones about the
-condition of the worst part of their village. Edward Carlyon gave his
-testimony; and it was resolved to attempt the purchase of Lumber’s
-Yard. This plan was actually carried out almost immediately; and a few
-months later the “Jolly Dog” and the surrounding wretched dwellings
-were pulled down, and Lumber’s Yard was no more. Instead, the proud
-villagers beheld a row of pretty cottages about an open green; and to
-the small colony was given, by universal vote, the name of young Max
-Brenton.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XVII.
-
-LESSING OF LESSING’S CREEK.
-
-
-“Things are looking up, or else the world is coming to an end. Jim has
-a visitor.”
-
-“Truly?”
-
-“On my word of honour. I say, Frances, he’s such a quaint chap to look
-at.”
-
-“Somebody else is quaint to look at. I hope you weren’t in your
-shirt-sleeves when you answered the door?”
-
-“Well--hardly. I believe I wore a complete shirt, likewise a pair of
-breeks.”
-
-“Run away, boy. I’m busy.”
-
-“So am I--awful. But in the goodness of my heart I just looked in to
-bring you the news. The fellow told me his name was Tom Lessing, of
-Lessing’s Creek Farm, Douglas River, Australia. Pretty wide address.
-He asked for Jim, and said Jim would be sure to see him, so I sent him
-along to the smithy. But first, as I didn’t want to miss a chance, I
-inquired if he had happened to meet Mr. Walter Keith--thinking that he
-would have run across Cousin Walter as likely as not. But he hadn’t.”
-
-“That was remarkable. Australia, as you observed, is a wide address.”
-
-“Well, there was no harm in asking. I hope Jim will invite Tom Lessing,
-of Lessing’s Creek Farm, to dinner. I’d love to hear a backwoodsman
-talk. I’d love to go to Australia. Isn’t it odd of Jim not to long to
-be a colonist? He says he wouldn’t like it a bit.”
-
-“Cousin Walter hasn’t particularly enjoyed being a colonist, Master
-Adventurous.”
-
-“Oh, that’s because he didn’t learn a trade before he went, and because
-he didn’t understand sheep-farming, and because he’s a bit of a duffer
-all round! Now, Jim’s got a kernel in his nut--”
-
-“Austin!”
-
-“Well, brains in his cranium, then. I’m off to peep in on Tom Lessing,
-of Lessing’s Creek Farm.”
-
-“No, dear, don’t. Perhaps he and Jim are old friends.”
-
-“Yes, they are. He said so. He said a jolly lot in two minutes, I can
-tell you.”
-
-“Then I wouldn’t pry, Austin. They may have a great deal to tell each
-other.”
-
-“Well, I won’t pry. I’ll just stroll past the smithy.”
-
-“I thought you were so fearfully busy?”
-
-“So I am. I’m busy keeping you posted up in the latest intelligence.”
-
-“Mamma wants some peas gathered. Get them for her, there’s a dear.”
-
-“None of your blarney! You want to watch over my manners by keeping me
-in sight. Not a bit! Tom Lessing, like a magnet, lures me to Lessing’s
-Creek Farm, Douglas River, Australia.”
-
-Austin walked with dignity out by the backdoor, but presently put his
-head in again, and remarked:
-
-“Of course I’ll gather the peas--enough for five!”
-
- * * * * *
-
-Mrs. Morland was seated shelling peas in the orchard,--it was a warm
-June morning,--when her stepson, walking quickly over the short,
-sweet-smelling grass, came to her side.
-
-“Can you spare a minute?” he asked with his old nervousness. The sight
-of his stepmother taking part in the day’s household work always
-increased his uneasy sense of his own shortcomings.
-
-“Oh, yes! Have you anything to tell me, James?”
-
-“Just that an old friend has come to see me, and is still here. He’s
-waiting for me in the smithy. Tom Lessing and I used to be great chums
-once on a time, though his people were better off than mine. He went
-out to Australia four years ago, and he has done very well.” Mrs.
-Morland heard a slight sigh. “He always was a very capable chap, and he
-has a splendid farm out there now. I--I think the children would like
-him; he has seen such a lot. Please, would you mind very much if I kept
-him to dinner?”
-
-“Is he very rough? I do not mean to hurt you, James; but you know I
-have Frances to think of.”
-
-“I would not let a rough fellow come near the children,” said Jim in
-gentle reproach.
-
-“No--no. I am sure you would not. Then, pray keep your friend. I will
-help Frances to prepare something extra, and he shall be made welcome.”
-
-“Thank you very much,” said Jim gratefully. “Tom has come to England
-for a holiday, and he is going to take lodgings in Exham for a few
-days, so that we may see something of each other. I should not wish him
-to come here, Mrs. Morland,” added Jim simply, “if you were afraid for
-the children; but, indeed, Tom is a nice fellow, and I think you will
-not dislike him.”
-
-The last words proved true. Tom Lessing had not long been in Mrs.
-Morland’s presence before she had decided that she liked him very much.
-He was several years older than her stepson, and as big and strong as
-Jim was slight and active. He treated Jim’s “lady-folk” with courteous
-deference, and was evidently able to polish his “backwoodsman” manners
-for fit converse in an English home. The dinner passed off pleasantly,
-Jim and Austin distinguishing themselves as waiters. The visitor
-enjoyed everything, and behaved in an easy, natural fashion which had
-nothing vulgar about it. Mrs. Morland reflected that her stepson must
-have followed some wise instinct in the choice of his boyhood’s friends.
-
-That dinner was the first of several meals shared by Tom with his old
-chum, and his chum’s kindred. Privately, he declared that Jim was a
-lucky chap to have proved his right to claim relationship with such a
-bright, plucky little pair as his lately-discovered brother and sister;
-and then he added a few words in acknowledgment of Mrs. Morland’s
-courteous welcome, which made Jim happier than anything. Besides
-sharing meals, Tom found himself made free of the smithy, where he held
-exhaustive discussions with Jim, and of the orchard, where he romped
-with Austin, to the latter’s great content.
-
-During the old friends’ exchange of confidences and record of
-experiences, Jim was lured into expressions of feeling with regard to
-his kindred which made good-hearted Tom look on the lad with kindly
-and pitying eyes. With him, overwrought Jim felt he might venture to
-unbosom himself of his anxieties and ambitions concerning the future.
-Jim’s desired course of action tended in only one way--the proper
-maintenance, in ease and comfort, of his stepmother and sister, and
-the careful training of his brother with a view to Austin’s adoption
-of some honourable profession. While uttering his aspirations, Jim
-revealed to his attentive chum the reality of his pride in the girl
-and boy who depended on him, and his deep affection for them. Tom
-listened and pondered, and made up his mind. His liking for “young
-East” had always been something more than mere boyish comradeship; and
-the respect and sympathy with which he quietly noted Jim’s hard and
-continual effort to live up to his own high standard of duty now added
-to Tom’s former easy liking the deeper regard of his maturer years.
-
- * * * * *
-
-One morning Frances, wandering through the orchard for a breath of
-cool air, came suddenly on Jim, who was lying at full length on the
-bank in the shadow of the hedge, his head pillowed on his folded arms.
-There was something so forlorn in the lad’s attitude that Frances
-feared some fresh trouble had overtaken him; and she was not surprised
-that his face, when he raised it in answer to her call, was darkened by
-a deep dejection.
-
-“Jim--Jim! What is the matter? Now, it’s no use to try to hide things,
-Jim! You know it isn’t. Just tell me.”
-
-Jim dragged himself up to his sister’s level as she sat down beside
-him, and his eyes rested very wistfully on her inquiring face. So long
-and sad was his gaze that the girl grew yet more uncomfortable, and
-repeated her question insistently.
-
-“I’ve no bad news for you, Missy,” said Jim at last, with great effort.
-“None that you will find bad, at least. I have heard something, and
-I’ve been thinking it over; that’s all. If I weren’t a coward, it
-wouldn’t have wanted any thinking.”
-
-“Well, what is it, Jim?”
-
-“I will tell you presently, Missy. As well now as any time; only I’d
-like your mother and the lad to hear too.”
-
-“Jim,” said Frances, her brave voice quivering slightly, “you speak as
-though your news were bad.”
-
-“That’s just my selfishness,” muttered Jim; “I couldn’t see all at once
-the rights of things. I can see now.”
-
-“Come indoors and tell us all about it,” said Frances, trying to speak
-cheerfully; “not much news grows better by keeping.”
-
-“It could be only a matter of hours for this, anyway,” replied Jim
-gently; “and if your mother is at liberty and Austin is at home, I will
-do as you wish.”
-
-So Frances led the way, and the pair walked soberly to the little house
-which had become to both a cherished home.
-
-Jim waited at the back-door while his sister went to look for her
-mother and brother, and finding them both in the study, sharing the
-window-seat, and the task of snipping gooseberries, ran back to summon
-the “head of the family”.
-
-All the responsibility of headship was in the lad’s countenance as he
-entered the study in his sister’s wake. He stood silent while Frances,
-in brief fashion, explained the situation; but something in her
-stepson’s look caught and held Mrs. Morland’s attention, and made her
-suspect that a tragedy might underlie Jim’s unusual calmness. She could
-not guess how hard he had striven to reach the degree of composure
-necessary to satisfy his stepmother’s ideal of good breeding.
-
-“Yes, I’ve something to tell,” he said, when Frances paused, “and I
-hope it will mean a real difference to you all. I had no right to look
-forward to such a chance as I have had given me, and I know you’ll
-wonder at it too--”
-
-“James,” interrupted Mrs. Morland, with an acute glance, “you don’t
-look as though the chance were altogether welcome.”
-
-“That’s what I told him,” said Frances brightly. “He pretends to bring
-good news, but I believe he’s a deceiver.”
-
-Jim flushed slightly, and hung his head. “You must please forgive me,”
-he murmured, “if I seem ungrateful and selfish. Indeed, I want to see
-how everything’s for the best. I’ll be quick now, and tell my news. You
-know Tom Lessing has a fine place in Australia, and is making money
-fast. He has a lot of hands, and seems to pay them well; and he gives
-every one of them a share in his profits over and above their salaries.
-Tom is very kind, and--you’ve all been good and kind to him, for which
-we both thank you.”
-
-Though Jim spoke earnestly, there was an aloofness in his manner which
-touched all his listeners, and reminded them, with keen shame, what
-scanty cause he had, even now, to feel himself one of them. Frances
-impulsively moved a step nearer him, and stopped, overcome by the
-constraint she could not disguise; Austin sprang to his brother’s side,
-and pressed affectionately against him. Jim gently held him off, as
-though the lad’s caresses threatened his own self-control; but his
-hand kept the boy within reach, and once or twice passed tenderly over
-Austin’s tumbled curly head. If Mrs. Morland ever had doubted her
-stepson’s love for her children, the suspicion from that moment died
-away.
-
-“Because he is kind, and because you have been good to him,” continued
-Jim, “Tom has given me a chance. He has offered to take me back with
-him to Australia, and to find me a good place as one of his overseers.
-He says I’d soon learn enough to be of use, and he’d help me to get on.
-I should have two hundred and fifty a year; and as I’d live with him,
-he’d give me board and lodging too. So, since I shouldn’t want much for
-clothes, I could send nearly all my earnings home; and there would be
-grandfather’s money as well, and we would sell the smithy. I’ve been
-thinking you might have a little house in Woodend, and the children
-would go to school again, and by and by Austin would go to college. I
-hope you would be very happy.”
-
-The speaker’s lips trembled for just a second, in evidence of full
-heart and highly-strung nerves. Then Jim, with courageous eyes, looked
-across the room for comments and congratulations.
-
-“We should be very happy?” queried Frances; and this time she went
-close to her brother, and took his hand. “Oh, Jim!” she exclaimed, her
-eyes bright with tears; “don’t go away from us, dear Jim!”
-
-“You sha’n’t go away--so that’s all about it!” cried Austin, with a
-masterful toss of his fair head. “You sha’n’t oversee anybody, except
-us. It’s tommy-rot.”
-
-“We are happy now,” continued Frances in trembling haste. “We don’t
-want any more money, if we can’t have it without giving you up to
-Australia. What’s the use of having found you, Jim, if you go away
-again?”
-
-[Illustration:
-
-M432
-
-“AH! BUT YOU WOULD MAKE SUCH A MISTAKE IF YOU THOUGHT WE WOULD LET YOU
-GO.”]
-
-Boy and girl, on either side, were clinging tightly to him. Jim, trying
-to be calm--trying to be brave--looked desperately to his stepmother
-for her expected support. If she should quench Austin and Frances with
-some cynical reproof--if she should accept Jim’s final sacrifice with
-just a word of contemptuous indifference--surely his pride would help
-his judgment to keep fast hold of his failing courage.
-
-Mrs. Morland had already risen, and was coming towards him now with
-hands outstretched, and in her face the light of a motherly love to
-which Jim could not try to be blind.
-
-“Would you really do that for us?” she asked, smiling, though her
-voice was not quite steady. “Ah! but you would make such a mistake if
-you thought we would let you go. Frances is right;--we can do without
-wealth, but we can’t do without you!”
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XVIII.
-
-TO THE FAR SOUTH.
-
-
-“And so you want me to go back to Australia alone? But, my dear madam,
-consider. Though I say it, this is a really first-rate opening for
-Jim--and remember the advantage to your own children. You won’t think
-me impertinent, will you, for what may seem a cool sort of interference
-in your affairs? You and all your family have been so kind to me that I
-can’t help taking a warm interest in your children; and as for Jim--I
-think he’s first-rate. I quite admit that, in wanting him, I’ve a
-selfish regard for my own concerns.”
-
-“I don’t believe there’s an atom of selfishness about you, Mr.
-Lessing,” replied Mrs. Morland, speaking slowly and very sincerely. “I
-am not in the least offended by your frank speech, for I appreciate
-to the full all you say about my children. Among ‘my children’, you
-must please include Jim; and when I say that your opinion of him is
-also mine, I think you will see why I want to keep him with me. He is
-willing to endure exile for the sake of his sister and brother; but I
-no longer think, as I’m afraid I did once, that Jim ought to give all
-and receive nothing. Frances and Austin are not afraid of work, and
-are anxious to do all they can to ease the load which, as you know,
-at present lies chiefly on their brother. By and by they will relieve
-him more. No, Mr. Lessing, we can’t part with Jim. To be plain, we are
-indebted to you for teaching us how much we need him.”
-
-“Then that’s all right,” returned Tom heartily, “and glad am I to hear
-it. I didn’t take long to see that the foolish lad was breaking his
-heart because he fancied the young folks and you would just as soon be
-without him. So, thought I, let Jim put it to the test: if he’s right,
-he’ll do better to make a fresh start and learn to stand alone; if he’s
-wrong, he’ll be a happy fellow when he discovers it. There, you’ll
-forgive me, won’t you? I meant my offer straight enough, and I mean it
-still. It rests with you whether Jim has a way made clear for him, or
-whether he hasn’t. He won’t leave you and the children. Well and good:
-let you and the children come with him. A minute more--best allow me
-to say my say, and then you’ll find it easier to answer. My place out
-there is not so lonely that you need fear to be beyond civilization.
-There’s Douglas Town near at hand, with good schools and the rest, and
-plenty of nice folk of a sort you could make friends with. Then the air
-is dry and bracing--just the thing for your boy. Lastly,--and this is
-a bit personal, maybe,--if you and the young people came out with Jim,
-you’d find a home ready-made. The Creek Farm badly wants a mistress,
-and I’d be proud to see you reign there, and grateful too. I’m not
-a marrying man--now. I had my dream;--you’ll not think the worse of
-me, Mrs. Morland,--it’s over. But I can fancy what a difference it
-would make out yonder, if there were a kindly, gracious gentlewoman in
-authority. As for Miss Frances, she’d just be the light of the place.
-Last of all, I’d like to say that our exile--for so it is to every son
-of Old England--needn’t be for always. When Jim and I had made our
-pile,--and we’d try to be quick about it,--we’d all come home again; in
-time, maybe, for Austin to keep his terms at Oxford. Well, that’s all
-I need trouble you with for a first start; details can follow. I think
-you know enough to be able to decide.”
-
- * * * * *
-
-Mrs. Morland’s decision was not arrived at all at once, or without some
-serious deliberations with her “trio”. They were all old enough to
-comprehend both the advantages and disadvantages of the plan proposed
-by Lessing; but Austin’s delight at the prospect of becoming a
-“backwoodsman” was not to be damped by the assurance that in Australia,
-as in England, he would have to be just a schoolboy for a good while
-yet. The only regret of the two youngest of the family was the
-anticipation of a long parting from friends tried and true; but various
-circumstances rendered this outlook less dismal than it might have
-been. Florry Fane and her parents were going to the Normandy aunt for
-a lengthy stay; Guy Gordon and Frank Temple were bound for Harrow next
-term; Betty Turner and the First Violin were at the same date to become
-pupils of Miss Cliveden at Haversfield College.
-
-And Max? Well, Max’s movements were decided for him by Frances at the
-outset of the family deliberations.
-
-“A voyage to Australia! The very thing for Max! And we could keep him
-out there until he was quite well and strong, and bring him back in
-time for college with Austin!”
-
-“Yes, we must have Max,” declared Lessing, who had given a good many
-hours to the entertainment of Woodend’s petted “hero”, and accounted
-himself a favoured friend of the young Doctor and the old. “And why
-shouldn’t his father come too? I’d guarantee him plenty of practice:
-we’d give our ears for an English medical man out there. I’ll wager
-he’d make his fortune faster than any of us.”
-
-After that, Dr. Brenton joined in one or two of the councils, but his
-decision was arrived at more easily than Mrs. Morland’s. He had only
-Max to think of, and Sir Gerald said that a sea-voyage and a prolonged
-residence in a fine climate would certainly save Max for a useful
-maturity. The Doctor set his old dreams aside, and made a final draw on
-“Examinations”. If that hoarded fund would give his boy present ease
-and future vigour, he could afford to wait patiently and let the world
-slip by. Some day Max would find his life-work: what it might be his
-father no longer cared to anticipate. Enough to know that the crown
-of a worthy manhood must be the unfailing reward of a generous and
-unselfish youth.
-
-At last Mrs. Morland spoke.
-
-“Children, I think that we will go. Jim ought to have his chance, and
-we don’t wish to separate. That, after all, sums up everything for the
-present, so the question is answered easily enough.... Now, we must not
-keep back Mr. Lessing, and he is kindly anxious to take us with him.
-Besides, let us remember Max, whose hope of health depends, it seems,
-on a quick departure. We must help each other to make haste.”
-
- * * * * *
-
-We cannot here follow our three young Altruists into their busy lives
-across seas; but we know that they will ever be the best of comrades,
-and never better than when sharing willing labours in the service of
-all who need their aid.
-
-Frances’s motto, “Help Others”, was faithfully cherished in her old
-home. Woodend kept up constant communication with the Creek Farm, and
-still hoped some day to welcome the wanderers back. Meanwhile, a branch
-“Society of Altruists” was started in the new home in the far southern
-continent; and Antipodean school-fellows of Frances and Austin became
-oddly familiar with a certain corner of Old England, and with the girls
-and boys who worked and played together there.
-
-
-THE END.
-
-
-PRINTED BY BLACKIE AND SON, LIMITED.
-
-
-
-
-[Illustration]
-
-
-
-
-BLACKIE & SON’S BOOKS FOR YOUNG PEOPLE.
-
-
-
-
-BY G. A. HENTY.
-
-“Mr. Henty’s stores of literary vivacity are inexhaustible, and boys
-will find their old favourite as full of instruction and of excitement
-as ever.”--_The Times._
-
-_In crown 8vo, cloth elegant, olivine edges._
-
-
-=With Frederick the Great=: A Tale of the Seven Years’ War. By G. A.
-HENTY. With 12 page Illustrations by WAL PAGET, and Maps. 6_s._
-
- “The story is one of Mr. Henty’s best, and so cleverly is history
- interwoven with fiction that the boy who reads it will know as much
- about the _Seven Years’ War_ as many an adult student of Carlyle’s
- masterpiece.”--_Standard._
-
-=With Moore at Corunna=: A Tale of the Peninsular War. By G. A. HENTY.
-With 12 page Illustrations by WAL PAGET. 6_s._
-
- “A very spirited story, well worthy to be ranked with the best of
- Mr. Henty’s work. Terence O’Connor, up to the time of the opening of
- the tale, has done little but get into mischief, but as soon as he
- feels the responsibility of being one of Mr. Henty’s heroes, combines
- discretion with courage, not forgetting, however, to spice the mixture
- with a little fun.”--_Spectator._
-
-=The Tiger of Mysore=: A Story of the War with Tippoo Saib. By G. A.
-HENTY. With 12 Illustrations by W. H. MARGETSON, and a Map. 6_s._
-
- “Mr. Henty not only concocts a thrilling tale, he weaves fact and
- fiction together with so skilful a hand that the reader cannot help
- acquiring a just and clear view of that fierce and terrible struggle
- which gave to us our Indian Empire.”--_Athenæum._
-
-=A Knight of the White Cross=: A Tale of the Siege of Rhodes. By G. A.
-HENTY. With 12 full-page Illustrations by RALPH PEACOCK. 6_s._
-
- “Mr. Henty is a giant among boys’ writers, and his books are
- sufficiently popular to be sure of a welcome anywhere.... In stirring
- interest, this is quite up to the level of Mr. Henty’s former
- historical tales.”--_Saturday Review._
-
-=When London Burned=: A Story of Restoration Times and the Great Fire.
-By G. A. HENTY. With 12 page Illustrations by J. FINNEMORE. 6_s._
-
- “No boy needs to have any story of Henty’s recommended to him, and
- parents who do not know and buy him for their boys should be ashamed
- of themselves. Those to whom he is yet unknown could not make a better
- beginning than with _When London Burned_.”--_British Weekly._
-
- “Schoolboys owe a deep debt of gratitude to Mr. Henty.”--_The Record._
-
-=At Agincourt=: A Tale of the White Hoods of Paris. By G. A. HENTY.
-With 12 page Illustrations by WAL PAGET. 6_s._
-
- “Mr. Henty’s admirers, and they are many, will accord a hearty welcome
- to the sturdy volume entitled At Agincourt.”--_Athenæum._
-
-=The Lion of St. Mark=: A Tale of Venice in the Fourteenth Century. By
-G. A. HENTY. With 10 page Illustrations by GORDON BROWNE. 6_s._
-
- “Every boy should read _The Lion of St. Mark_. Mr. Henty has never
- produced any story more delightful, more wholesome, or more vivacious.
- From first to last it will be read with keen enjoyment.”--_Saturday
- Review._
-
-=By England’s Aid=: The Freeing of the Netherlands (1585-1604). By G.
-A. HENTY. With 10 page Illustrations by ALFRED PEARSE, and 4 Maps. 6_s._
-
- “The story is told with great animation, and the historical material
- is most effectively combined with a most excellent plot.”--_Saturday
- Review._
-
-=With Wolf in Canada=: or, The Winning of a Continent. By G. A. HENTY.
-Illustrated with 12 page Pictures by GORDON BROWNE. 6_s._
-
- “A model of what a boys’ story-book should be. Mr. Henty has a great
- power of infusing into the dead facts of history new life, and as no
- pains are spared by him to ensure accuracy in historic details, his
- books supply useful aids to study as well as amusement.”--_School
- Guardian._
-
-=Bonnie Prince Charlie=: A Tale of Fontenoy and Culloden. By G. A.
-HENTY. Illustrated with 12 page Pictures by GORDON BROWNE. 6_s._
-
- “As good a narrative of the kind as we have ever read. For freshness
- of treatment and variety of incident, Mr. Henty has here surpassed
- himself.”--_Spectator._
-
-=For the Temple=: A Tale of the Fall of Jerusalem. By G. A. HENTY. With
-10 page Illustrations by S. J. SOLOMON, and a Coloured Map. 6_s._
-
- “Mr. Henty’s graphic prose pictures of the hopeless Jewish
- resistance to Roman sway adds another leaf to his record of the
- famous wars of the world. The book is one of Mr. Henty’s cleverest
- efforts.”--_Graphic._
-
-=True to the Old Flag=: A Tale of the American War of Independence. By
-G. A. HENTY. With 12 page Illustrations by GORDON BROWNE. 6_s._
-
- “Does justice to the pluck and determination of the British soldiers.
- The son of an American loyalist, who remains true to our flag, falls
- among the hostile redskins in that very Huron country which has been
- endeared to us by the exploits of Hawkeye and Chingachgook.”--_The
- Times._
-
-[Illustration: TERENCE FINDS THAT THE _SEA-HORSE_ HAS BEEN BADLY MAULED
-BETWEEN-DECKS.]
-
- “Among writers of stories of adventure Mr. Henty stands in the very
- first rank.”--_Academy._
-
-=The Young Carthaginian=: A Story of the Times of Hannibal. By G. A.
-HENTY. With 12 page Illustrations by C. J. STANILAND, R.I. 6_s._
-
- “From first to last nothing stays the interest of the narrative. It
- bears us along as on a stream whose current varies in direction, but
- never loses its force.”--_Saturday Review._
-
-=Redskin and Cow-boy=: A Tale of the Western Plains. By G. A. HENTY.
-Illustrated by ALFRED PEARSE. 6_s._
-
- “It has a good plot; it abounds in action; the scenes are equally
- spirited and realistic. The pictures of life on a cattle ranche are
- most graphically painted, as are the manners of the reckless but
- jovial cow-boys.”--_Times._
-
-=The Lion of the North=: A Tale of Gustavus Adolphus. By G. A. HENTY.
-With 12 page Pictures by J. SCHÖNBERG. 6_s._
-
- “A praiseworthy attempt to interest British youth in the great deeds
- of the Scotch Brigade in the wars of Gustavus Adolphus.”--_Athenæum._
-
-=With Clive in India=: or, The Beginnings of an Empire. By G. A. HENTY.
-Illustrated by GORDON BROWNE. 6_s._
-
- “Those who know something about India will be the most ready to thank
- Mr. Henty for giving them this instructive volume to place in the
- hands of their children.”--_Academy._
-
-=In Greek Waters=: A Story of the Grecian War of Independence
-(1821-1827). By G. A. HENTY. With 12 page Illustrations by W. S.
-STACEY, and a Map. 6_s._
-
- “An excellent story, and if the proportion of history is smaller than
- usual, the whole result leaves nothing to be desired.”--_Journal of
- Education._
-
-=The Dash for Khartoum=: A Tale of the Nile Expedition. By G. A. HENTY.
-With 10 page Illustrations by J. SCHÖNBERG and J. NASH, and 4 Plans.
-6_s._
-
- “It is literally true that the narrative never flags for a moment; the
- incidents which fall to be recorded after the dash for Khartoum has
- been made and failed are quite as interesting as those which precede
- it.”--_Academy._
-
-=With Lee in Virginia=: A Story of the American Civil War. By G. A.
-HENTY. With 10 page Illustrations by GORDON BROWNE, and 6 Maps. 6_s._
-
- “The story is a capital one and full of variety. Young Wingfield, who
- is conscientious, spirited, and ‘hard as nails’, would have been a man
- after the very heart of Stonewall Jackson.”--_Times._
-
-=By Right of Conquest=: or, With Cortez in Mexico. By G. A. HENTY. With
-10 page Illustrations by W. S. STACEY. 6_s._
-
- “_By Right of Conquest_ is the nearest approach to a
- perfectly successful historical tale that Mr. Henty has yet
- published.”--_Academy._
-
- “Mr. Henty is the king of story-tellers for boys.”--_Sword and Trowel._
-
-=Through the Fray=: A Story of the Luddite Riots. By G. A. HENTY. With
-12 page Illustrations by H. M. PAGET. 6_s._
-
- “One of the best of the many good books he has produced, and deserves
- to be classed with his _Facing Death_.”--_Standard._
-
-=Captain Bayley’s Heir=: A Tale of the Gold Fields. By G. A. HENTY.
-Illustrated by H. M. PAGET. 6_s._
-
- “A Westminster boy who makes his way in the world by hard work, good
- temper, and unfailing courage.”--_St. James’s Gazette._
-
-=St. Bartholomew’s Eve.= By G. A. HENTY. Illustrated by H. J. DRAPER.
-6_s._
-
- “Is in Mr. Henty’s best style, and the interest never
- flags.”--_Journal of Education._
-
- [Illustration: _Reduced Illustration from “With Frederick the Great”._]
-
-=In Freedom’s Cause=: A Story of Wallace and Bruce. By G. A. HENTY.
-Illustrated by GORDON BROWNE. 6_s._
-
- “His tale of the days of Wallace and Bruce is full of stirring action,
- and will commend itself to boys.”--_Athenæum._
-
-=With Cochrane the Dauntless=: A Tale of the Exploits of Lord Cochrane
-in South American Waters. By G. A. HENTY. With 12 page Illustrations by
-W. H. MARGETSON. 6_s._
-
- “This tale we specially recommend; for the career of Lord Cochrane and
- his many valiant fights in the cause of liberty deserve to be better
- known than they are.”--_St. James’s Gazette._
-
- “Mr. Henty is one of the best of story-tellers for young
- people.”--_Spectator._
-
-=Beric the Briton=: A Story of the Roman Invasion. By G. A. HENTY.
-Illustrated by W. PARKINSON. 6_s._
-
- “Mr. Henty has done his utmost to make an impressive picture of the
- haughty Roman character, with its indomitable courage, sternness, and
- discipline. _Beric_ is good all through.”--_Spectator._
-
- [Illustration: _Reduced Illustration from “Beric the Briton”._]
-
-=By Pike and Dyke=: A Tale of the Rise of the Dutch Republic. By G. A.
-HENTY. With 10 page Illustrations by MAYNARD BROWN, and 4 Maps. 6_s._
-
- “Told with a vividness and skill worthy of Mr. Henty at his
- best.”--_Academy._
-
-=Wulf the Saxon=: A Story of the Norman Conquest. By G. A. HENTY.
-Illustrated by RALPH PEACOCK. 6_s._
-
- “_Wulf the Saxon_ is second to none of Mr. Henty’s historical tales,
- and we may safely say that a boy may learn from it more genuine
- history than he will from many a tedious tome.”--_The Spectator._
-
-=Through the Sikh War=: A Tale of the Conquest of the Punjaub. By G. A.
-HENTY. With 12 page Illustrations by HAL HURST, and a Map. 6_s._
-
- “We have never read a more vivid and faithful narrative of military
- adventure in India.”--_The Academy._
-
-=Under Drake’s Flag=: A Tale of the Spanish Main. By G. A. HENTY.
-Illustrated by GORDON BROWNE. 6_s._
-
- “There is not a dull chapter, nor, indeed, a dull page in the book;
- the author has so carefully worked up his subject that the exciting
- deeds of his heroes are never incongruous or absurd.”--_Observer._
-
- “G. A. Henty more than holds his own as the prince of story-tellers
- for boys.”--_St. James’s Gazette._
-
-=A March on London=: Being a Story of Wat Tyler’s Insurrection. By G.
-A. HENTY. With 8 page Illustrations by W. H. MARGETSON. 5_s._
-
- “Mr. Henty, true as ever, tells a capital story, and keeps up to
- the high standard of interest which we have learnt to expect from
- him.”--_Spectator._
-
- “The story of Wat Tyler’s ever-famous insurrection is set forth with a
- degree of cunning and an eye for effect that may always be looked for
- in the work that comes from this practised hand. Mr. Henty deals with
- troublesome times and with characters that have left their mark on the
- pages of history. He is fresh, virile, and never dull, and this volume
- must needs add to his reputation.”--_Daily Telegraph._
-
-=On the Irrawaddy=: A Story of the first Burmese War. With 8
-Illustrations by W. H. OVEREND. Crown 8vo, cloth elegant, olivine
-edges, 5_s._
-
- “Altogether this is a capital story, and the descriptions of the
- Burmese cities are very good.”--_The Times._
-
- “Stanley Brook’s pluck is even greater than his luck, and he is
- precisely the boy to hearten with emulation the boys who read his
- stirring story.”--_Saturday Review._
-
-=Through Russian Snows=: A Story of Napoleon’s Retreat from Moscow. By
-G. A. HENTY. With 8 Illustrations by W. H. OVEREND, and a Map. 5_s._
-
- “Julian, the hero of the story, early excites our admiration, and is
- altogether a fine character such as boys will delight in, whilst the
- story of the campaign is very graphically told.... Will, we think,
- prove one of the most popular boys’ books this season.”--_St. James’s
- Gazette._
-
-=In the Heart of the Rockies=: A Story of Adventure in Colorado. By G.
-A. HENTY. Illustrated by G. C. HINDLEY. 5_s._
-
- “Few Christmas books will be more to the taste of the ingenuous boy
- than _In the Heart of the Rockies_.”--_Athenæum._
-
- “Mr. Henty is seen here at his best as an artist in lightning
- fiction.”--_Academy._
-
-=One of the 28th=: A Tale of Waterloo. By G. A. HENTY. With 8 page
-Illustrations by W. H. OVEREND, and 2 Maps. 5_s._
-
- “Written with Homeric vigour and heroic inspiration. It is graphic,
- picturesque, and dramatically effective ... shows us Mr. Henty at his
- best and brightest. The adventures will hold a boy of a winter’s night
- enthralled as he rushes through them with breathless interest ‘from
- cover to cover’.”--_Observer._
-
-=Facing Death=: or, The Hero of the Vaughan Pit. A Tale of the Coal
-Mines. By G. A. HENTY. With 8 page Pictures by GORDON BROWNE. 5_s._
-
- “If any father, godfather, clergyman, or schoolmaster is on the
- look-out for a good book to give as a present to a boy who is worth
- his salt, this is the book we would recommend.”--_Standard._
-
- “Ask for Henty, and see that you get him.”--_Punch._
-
-=The Cat of Bubastes=: A Story of Ancient Egypt. By G. A. HENTY.
-Illustrated by J. R. WEGUELIN. 5_s._
-
- “The story, from the critical moment of the killing of the sacred
- cat to the perilous exodus into Asia with which it closes, is very
- skilfully constructed and full of exciting adventures. It is admirably
- illustrated.”--_Saturday Review._
-
-=Maori and Settler=: A Story of the New Zealand War. By G. A. HENTY.
-With 8 page Illustrations by ALFRED PEARSE. 5_s._
-
- “It is a book which all young people, but especially boys, will read
- with avidity.”--_Athenæum._
-
- “A first-rate book for boys, brimful of adventure, of humorous
- and interesting conversation, and of vivid pictures of colonial
- life.”--_Schoolmaster._
-
-=St. George for England=: A Tale of Cressy and Poitiers. By G. A.
-HENTY. Illustrated by GORDON BROWNE. 5_s._
-
- “A story of very great interest for boys. In his own forcible style
- the author has endeavoured to show that determination and enthusiasm
- can accomplish marvellous results; and that courage is generally
- accompanied by magnanimity and gentleness.”--_Pall Mall Gazette._
-
-=The Bravest of the Brave=: With Peterborough in Spain. By G. A. HENTY.
-With 8 full-page Pictures by H. M. PAGET. 5_s._
-
- “Mr. Henty never loses sight of the moral purpose of his work--to
- enforce the doctrine of courage and truth, mercy and lovingkindness,
- as indispensable to the making of an English gentleman. British lads
- will read _The Bravest of the Brave_ with pleasure and profit; of that
- we are quite sure.”--_Daily Telegraph._
-
-=For Name and Fame=: or, Through Afghan Passes. By G. A. HENTY.
-Illustrated by GORDON BROWNE. 5_s._
-
- “Not only a rousing story, replete with all the varied forms of
- excitement of a campaign, but, what is still more useful, an account
- of a territory and its inhabitants which must for a long time possess
- a supreme interest for Englishmen, as being the key to our Indian
- Empire.”--_Glasgow Herald._
-
-=A Jacobite Exile=: Being the Adventures of a Young Englishman in
-the Service of Charles XII. of Sweden. By G. A. HENTY. With 8 page
-Illustrations by PAUL HARDY, and a Map. 5_s._
-
- “Incident succeeds incident, and adventure is piled upon adventure,
- and at the end the reader, be he boy or man, will have experienced
- breathless enjoyment in a romantic story that must have taught him
- much at its close.”--_Army and Navy Gazette._
-
-=Held Fast for England=: A Tale of the Siege of Gibraltar. By G. A.
-HENTY. Illustrated by GORDON BROWNE. 5_s._
-
- “Among them we would place first in interest and wholesome educational
- value the story of the siege of Gibraltar.... There is no cessation of
- exciting incident throughout the story.”--_Athenæum._
-
- “Mr. Henty’s books are always alive with moving incident.”--_Review of
- Reviews._
-
- _In crown 8vo, cloth elegant._
-
-=Condemned as a Nihilist=: A Story of Escape from Siberia. By G. A.
-HENTY. Illustrated by WALTER PAGET. 5_s._
-
- “The best of this year’s Henty. His narrative is more interesting than
- many of the tales with which the public is familiar, of escape from
- Siberia. Despite their superior claim to authenticity these tales are
- without doubt no less fictitious than Mr. Henty’s, and he beats them
- hollow in the matter of sensations.”--_National Observer._
-
-=Orange and Green=: A Tale of the Boyne and Limerick. By G. A. HENTY.
-Illustrated by GORDON BROWNE. 5_s._
-
- “The narrative is free from the vice of prejudice, and ripples with
- life as vivacious as if what is being described were really passing
- before the eye.... Should be in the hands of every young student of
- Irish history.”--_Belfast News._
-
-=In the Reign of Terror=: The Adventures of a Westminster Boy. By G. A.
-HENTY. Illustrated by J. SCHÖNBERG. 5_s._
-
- “Harry Sandwith, the Westminster boy, may fairly be said to beat Mr.
- Henty’s record. His adventures will delight boys by the audacity and
- peril they depict. The story is one of Mr. Henty’s best.”--_Saturday
- Review._
-
-=By Sheer Pluck=: A Tale of the Ashanti War. By G. A. HENTY. With 8
-full-page Pictures by GORDON BROWNE. 5_s._
-
- “Morally, the book is everything that could be desired, setting
- before the boys a bright and bracing ideal of the English
- gentleman.”--_Christian Leader._
-
-=The Dragon and the Raven=: or, The Days of King Alfred. By G. A.
-HENTY. With 8 page Illustrations by C. J. STANILAND, R.I. 5_s._
-
- “A story that may justly be styled remarkable. Boys, in reading it,
- will be surprised to find how Alfred persevered, through years of
- bloodshed and times of peace, to rescue his people from the thraldom
- of the Danes. We hope the book will soon be widely known in all our
- schools.”--_Schoolmaster._
-
-=A Final Reckoning=: A Tale of Bush Life in Australia. By G. A. HENTY.
-Illustrated by W. B. WOLLEN. 5_s._
-
- “All boys will read this story with eager and unflagging interest.
- The episodes are in Mr. Henty’s very best vein--graphic, exciting,
- realistic; and, as in all Mr. Henty’s books, the tendency is
- to the formation of an honourable, manly, and even heroic
- character.”--_Birmingham Post._
-
-=The Young Colonists=: A Tale of the Zulu and Boer Wars. By G. A.
-HENTY. With 6 Illustrations by SIMON H. VEDDER. 3_s._ 6_d._
-
- “Fiction and history are so happily blended that the record of
- facts quicken the imagination. No boy can read this book without
- learning a great deal of South African history at its most critical
- period.”--_Standard._
-
-=A Chapter of Adventures=: or, Through the Bombardment of Alexandria.
-By G. A. HENTY. With 6 page Illustrations by W. H. OVEREND. 3_s._ 6_d._
-
- “Jack Robson and his two companions have their fill of excitement, and
- their chapter of adventures is so brisk and entertaining we could have
- wished it longer than it is.”--_Saturday Review._
-
-
-
-
- BY PROFESSOR A. J. CHURCH.
-
- “That prince of winning story-tellers, and master of musical
- English.”--_Expository Times._
-
- _In crown 8vo, cloth elegant, olivine edges._
-
-
-=Lords of the World=: A Tale of the Fall of Carthage and Corinth. By A.
-J. CHURCH. With 12 page Illustrations by RALPH PEACOCK. 6_s._
-
- “Mr. Church’s mastery of his subject and his literary skill are
- sufficiently complete to carry his adult readers with him. Some of
- the scenes are highly picturesque, and there is many an exciting
- adventure that sustains the reader’s curiosity in the fortunes of the
- hero, Cleanor. As a boys’ book, _Lords of the World_ deserves a hearty
- welcome.”--_Spectator._
-
- [Illustration: _Reduced Illustration from “Lords of the World”._]
-
-=Two Thousand Years Ago=: or, The Adventures of a Roman Boy. By
-Professor A. J. CHURCH. With 12 page Illustrations by ADRIEN MARIE.
-6_s._
-
- “Adventures well worth the telling. The book is extremely entertaining
- as well as useful, and there is a wonderful freshness in the Roman
- scenes and characters.”--_The Times._
-
-
-
-
- BY HERBERT HAYENS.
-
-
-=Paris at Bay=: A Story of the Siege and the Commune. By HERBERT
-HAYENS. With 8 page Illustrations by STANLEY L. WOOD. 5_s._
-
- “The story culminates in the terrible struggle between the
- Versaillists and the men who follow the red flag. Mr. Hayens holds the
- balance with commendable impartiality. He loves to describe a good
- soldier on whichever side he may fight. Altogether _Paris at Bay_ is
- of more than average merit.”--_Spectator._
-
-
-
-
- BY GEORGE MANVILLE FENN.
-
- “Mr. Fenn stands in the foremost rank of writers in this
- department.”--_Daily News._
-
- _In crown 8vo, cloth elegant._
-
-
-=Dick o’ the Fens=: A Romance of the Great East Swamp. By G. MANVILLE
-FENN. Illustrated by FRANK DADD. 6_s._
-
- “We conscientiously believe that boys will find it capital reading.
- It is full of incident and mystery, and the mystery is kept up to the
- last moment. It is rich in effective local colouring; and it has a
- historical interest.”--_Times._
-
-=Devon Boys=: A Tale of the North Shore. By G. MANVILLE FENN. With 12
-page Illustrations by GORDON BROWNE. 6_s._
-
- “An admirable story, as remarkable for the individuality of its
- young heroes as for the excellent descriptions of coast scenery and
- life in North Devon. It is one of the best books we have seen this
- season.”--_Athenæum._
-
-=The Golden Magnet=: A Tale of the Land of the Incas. By G. MANVILLE
-FENN. Illustrated by GORDON BROWNE. 6_s._
-
- “There could be no more welcome present for a boy. There is not a dull
- page in the book, and many will be read with breathless interest. ‘The
- Golden Magnet’ is, of course, the same one that attracted Raleigh and
- the heroes of _Westward Ho!_”--_Journal of Education._
-
-=In the King’s Name=: or, The Cruise of the _Kestrel_. By G. MANVILLE
-FENN. Illustrated by GORDON BROWNE. 6_s._
-
- “The best of all Mr. Fenn’s productions in this field. It has the
- great quality of always ‘moving on’, adventure following adventure in
- constant succession.”--_Daily News._
-
-=Nat the Naturalist=: A Boy’s Adventures in the Eastern Seas. By G.
-MANVILLE FENN. With 8 page Pictures. 5_s._
-
- “This sort of book encourages independence of character, develops
- resource, and teaches a boy to keep his eyes open.”--_Saturday Review._
-
-=Bunyip Land=: The Story of a Wild Journey in New Guinea. By G.
-MANVILLE FENN. Illustrated by GORDON BROWNE. 4_s._
-
- “Mr. Fenn deserves the thanks of everybody for Bunyip Land, and we
- may venture to promise that a quiet week may be reckoned on whilst
- the youngsters have such fascinating literature provided for their
- evenings’ amusement.”--_Spectator._
-
-=Quicksilver=: or, A Boy with no Skid to his Wheel. By GEORGE MANVILLE
-FENN. With 6 page Illustrations by FRANK DADD. 3_s._ 6_d._
-
- “_Quicksilver_ is little short of an inspiration. In it that prince of
- story-writers for boys--George Manville Fenn--has surpassed himself.
- It is an ideal book for a boy’s library.”--_Practical Teacher._
-
-=Brownsmith’s Boy=: A Romance in a Garden. By G. MANVILLE FENN. With 6
-page Illustrations. 3_s._ 6_d._
-
- “Mr. Fenn’s books are among the best, if not altogether the best,
- of the stories for boys. Mr. Fenn is at his best in _Brownsmith’s
- Boy_.”--_Pictorial World._
-
-
- ⁂ For other Books by G. MANVILLE FENN, see page 22.
-
-
-
-
- BY GEORGE MAC DONALD.
-
- “Dr. George Mac Donald is one of the cleverest of writers for
- children.”--_The Record._
-
- _In crown 8vo, cloth elegant._
-
-
-=A Rough Shaking.= By GEORGE MAC DONALD. With 12 page Illustrations by
-W. PARKINSON. 6_s._
-
- “One of the very best books for boys that has been written. It is
- full of material peculiarly well adapted for the young, containing in
- a marked degree the elements of all that is necessary to make up a
- perfect boys’ book.”--_Teachers’ Aid._
-
-=At the Back of the North Wind.= By GEORGE MAC DONALD. With 75
-Illustrations by ARTHUR HUGHES. 5_s._
-
- “The story is thoroughly original, full of fancy and pathos.... We
- stand with one foot in fairyland and one on common earth.”--_The
- Times._
-
-=Ranald Bannerman’s Boyhood.= By GEO. MAC DONALD. With 36 Illustrations
-by ARTHUR HUGHES. 5_s._
-
- “The sympathy with boy-nature in _Ranald Bannerman’s Boyhood_ is
- perfect. It is a beautiful picture of childhood, teaching by its
- impressions and suggestions all noble things.”--_British Quarterly
- Review._
-
-=The Princess and the Goblin.= By GEORGE MAC DONALD. With 32
-Illustrations. 3_s._ 6_d._
-
- “Little of what is written for children has the lightness of touch and
- play of fancy which are characteristic of George Mac Donald’s fairy
- tales. Mr. Arthur Hughes’s illustrations are all that illustrations
- should be.”--_Manchester Guardian._
-
-=The Princess and Curdie.= By GEORGE MAC DONALD. With 8 page
-Illustrations. 3_s._ 6_d._
-
- “There is the finest and rarest genius in this brilliant story.
- Upgrown people would do wisely occasionally to lay aside their
- newspapers and magazines to spend an hour with _Curdie_ and the
- _Princess_.”--_Sheffield Independent._
-
-
-
-
- BY ASCOTT R. HOPE.
-
- “Such is the charm of Mr. Hope’s narrative that it is impossible to
- begin one of his tales without finishing it.”--_St. James’s Gazette._
-
-
-=The Seven Wise Scholars.= By ASCOTT R. HOPE. With nearly 100
-Illustrations by GORDON BROWNE. 5_s._
-
- “As full of fun as a volume of _Punch_; with illustrations,
- more laughter-provoking than most we have seen since Leech
- died.”--_Sheffield Independent._
-
-=Stories of Old Renown=: Tales of Knights and Heroes. By A. R. HOPE.
-With 100 Illustrations by GORDON BROWNE. 3_s._ 6_d._
-
- “A really fascinating book worthy of its telling title. There is, we
- venture to say, not a dull page in the book, not a story which will
- not bear a second reading.”--_Guardian._
-
-=Young Travellers’ Tales.= By ASCOTT R. HOPE. With 6 Illustrations by
-H. J. DRAPER. 3_s._ 6_d._
-
- “Possess a high value for instruction as well as for entertainment.
- His quiet, level humour bubbles up on every page.”--_Daily Chronicle._
-
-
-
-
- BY HARRY COLLINGWOOD.
-
- “As a story-teller Mr. Collingwood is not surpassed.”--_Spectator._
-
- _In crown 8vo, cloth elegant._
-
-
-=The Log of a Privateersman.= By HARRY COLLINGWOOD. With 12 page
-Illustrations by W. RAINEY, R.I. 6_s._
-
- “The narrative is breezy, vivid, and full of incidents, faithful in
- nautical colouring, and altogether delightful.”--_Pall Mall Gazette._
-
-=The Pirate Island.= By HARRY COLLINGWOOD. With 8 page Pictures by C.
-J. STANILAND and J. R. WELLS. 5_s._
-
- “A capital story of the sea; indeed in our opinion the author is
- superior in some respects as a marine novelist to the better-known Mr.
- Clark Russell.”--_The Times._
-
-=The Log of the “Flying Fish”=: A Story of Aerial and Submarine
-Adventure. By HARRY COLLINGWOOD. With 6 page Illustrations by GORDON
-BROWNE. 3_s._ 6_d._
-
- “The _Flying Fish_ actually surpasses all Jules Verne’s creations;
- with incredible speed she flies through the air, skims over the
- surface of the water, and darts along the ocean bed. We strongly
- recommend our schoolboy friends to possess themselves of her
- log.”--_Athenæum._
-
- ⁂ For other Books by Harry Collingwood, see pages 22 and 23.
-
-
-
-
- BY KIRK MUNROE.
-
- “Captain Mayne Reid and Gustave Aimard find a worthy successor in Mr.
- Kirk Munroe.”--_St. James’s Gazette._
-
-
-=With Crockett and Bowie=: A Tale of Texas. By KIRK MUNROE. With 8 page
-Illustrations by VICTOR PERARD. 5_s._
-
- “Mr. Munroe has constructed his plot with undoubted skill, and his
- descriptions of the combats between the Texans and the Mexicans are
- brilliantly _graphic_. This is in every sense one of the best books
- for boys that has been produced this season.”--_Spectator._
-
-=Through Swamp and Glade=: A Tale of the Seminole War. By KIRK MUNROE.
-With 8 Illustrations by VICTOR PERARD. 5_s._
-
- “The hero of _Through Swamp and Glade_ will find many ardent
- champions, and the name of Coachoochie become as familiar in the
- schoolboy’s ear as that of the headmaster.”--_St. James’s Gazette._
-
-=At War with Pontiac=: or, The Totem of the Bear. By KIRK MUNROE. With
-8 Illustrations by J. FINNEMORE. 5_s._
-
- “Is in the best manner of Cooper. There is a character who is the
- parallel of Hawkeye, as the Chingachgooks and Uncas have likewise
- their counterparts.”--_The Times._
-
-=The White Conquerors of Mexico=: A Tale of Toltec and Aztec. By KIRK
-MUNROE. With 8 Illustrations by W. S. STACEY. 5_s._
-
- “Mr. Munroe gives most vivid pictures of the religious and civil
- polity of the Aztecs, and of everyday life, as he imagines it,
- in the streets and market-places of the magnificent capital of
- Montezuma.”--_The Times._
-
-
-
-
- FINELY ILLUSTRATED BOOKS FOR CHILDREN.
-
-
-=Red Apple and Silver Bells=: a Book of Verse for Children of all Ages.
-By HAMISH HENDRY. With over 150 charming Illustrations by Miss ALICE B.
-WOODWARD. Square 8vo, cloth elegant, gilt edges, 6_s._
-
- “Mr. Hendry sees the world as children see it, and he writes
- charmingly and musically about it; many, indeed most, of his verses
- are delightful in all respects--childish, but not silly; funny,
- but not foolish; and sweet without being goody. Miss Woodward’s
- designs are just what the verses require, and they are carefully and
- delicately drawn and exquisitely finished after nature; consequently
- they are beautiful.”--_Athenæum._
-
-=Just Forty Winks=: or, The Droll Adventures of Davie Trot. By HAMISH
-HENDRY. With 70 humorous Illustrations by GERTRUDE M. BRADLEY. Square
-8vo, cloth elegant, gilt edges, 5_s._
-
- “Daintily illustrated; _Just Forty Winks_ is an eye-opener for the
- little ones, who will enjoy the amazing adventures of _Davie Trot_
- down the long lane that has so many turns in dreamland.”--_Punch._
-
- “_Just Forty Winks_ is full of high spirits and most excellent
- invention.”--_Spectator._
-
-=To Tell the King the Sky is Falling.= By SHEILA E. BRAINE. With over
-80 quaint and clever Illustrations by ALICE B. WOODWARD. Square 8vo,
-cloth, decorated boards, gilt edges, 5_s._
-
- “It is witty and ingenious, and it has certain qualities which
- children are quick to perceive and appreciate--a genuine love of fun,
- affectionateness, and sympathy, from their points of view.”--_Bookman._
-
-
-
-
- BOOKS FOR GIRLS.
-
- _In crown 8vo, cloth elegant._
-
-
-=Banshee Castle.= By ROSA MULHOLLAND (Lady Gilbert). With 12 page
-Illustrations by JOHN H. BACON. 6_s._
-
- “One of the most fascinating of Miss Rosa Mulholland’s many
- fascinating stories.”--_Athenæum._
-
-=Giannetta.= By ROSA MULHOLLAND (Lady Gilbert). With 8 page
-Illustrations by LOCKHART BOGLE. 5_s._
-
- “One of the most attractive gift-books of the season.”--_The Academy._
-
-=A Girl’s Loyalty.= By FRANCES ARMSTRONG. With 8 page Illustrations by
-JOHN H. BACON. 5_s._
-
- “There is no doubt as to the good quality of _A Girl’s Loyalty_. The
- book is one which would enrich any girl’s book-shelf.”--_St. James’s
- Gazette._
-
-=A Fair Claimant=: Being a Story for Girls. By FRANCES ARMSTRONG.
-Illustrated by GERTRUDE D. HAMMOND. 5_s._
-
- “As a gift-book for big girls it is among the best new books of
- the kind. The story is interesting and natural, from first to
- last.”--_Westminster Gazette._
-
- [Illustration]
-
-=Adventures in Toyland.= By EDITH KING HALL. With 8 page Pictures
-printed in Colour, and 70 Black-and-White Illustrations throughout the
-text, by ALICE B. WOODWARD. Crown 4to, decorated cloth boards, gilt
-edges, 5_s._
-
- “One of the funniest as well as one of the daintiest books of the
- season. The Adventures are graphically described in a very humorous
- way.”--_Pall Mall Gazette._
-
- “The story is a capital ‘make-believe’, and exhibits real knowledge on
- the part of both author and illustrator of what children want, as well
- as an unusual power of supplying it.”--_Literature._
-
-
-
-
- BY ROBERT LEIGHTON.
-
- “Mr. Robert Leighton has taken a place in the very front rank of the
- writers of stories for boys.”--_Daily Graphic._
-
- _In crown 8vo, cloth elegant, olivine edges._
-
-
-=The Golden Galleon=: A Narrative of the Adventures of Master Gilbert
-Oglander, under the gallant Sir Richard Grenville in the great
-sea-fight off Flores. By ROBERT LEIGHTON. With 8 page Illustrations by
-WILLIAM RAINEY, R.I. 5_s._
-
- “The story itself is a capital one, but the chief merit lies in the
- telling. It presents an excellent picture of life in England, both on
- land and sea, in the days of Elizabeth.”--_Standard._
-
-=Olaf the Glorious.= By ROBERT LEIGHTON. With 8 page Illustrations by
-RALPH PEACOCK, and a Map. 5_s._
-
- “Is as good as anything of the kind we have met with. Mr. Leighton
- more than holds his own with Rider Haggard and Baring-Gould.”--_The
- Times._
-
-=The Wreck of “The Golden Fleece”=: The story of a North Sea
-Fisher-boy. By ROBERT LEIGHTON. With 8 page Illustrations by F.
-BRANGWYN. 5_s._
-
- “This story should add considerably to Mr. Leighton’s high reputation.
- Excellent in every respect, it contains every variety of incident. The
- plot is very cleverly devised, and the types of the North Sea sailors
- are capital.”--_The Times._
-
-=The Pilots of Pomona=: A Story of the Orkney Islands. By ROBERT
-LEIGHTON. Illustrated by JOHN LEIGHTON. 5_s._
-
- “A story which is quite as good in its way as _Treasure Island_, and
- is full of adventure of a stirring yet most natural kind. Although
- it is primarily a boys’ book, it is a real godsend to the elderly
- reader.”--_Glasgow Evening Times._
-
-=The Thirsty Sword=: A Story of the Norse Invasion of Scotland
-(1262-63). By ROBERT LEIGHTON. With 8 page Illustrations by A. PEARSE.
-5_s._
-
- “This is one of the most fascinating stories for boys that it has
- ever been our pleasure to read. From first to last the interest never
- flags.”--_Schoolmaster._
-
- * * * * *
-
-=The Clever Miss Follett.= By J. K. H. DENNY. With 12 page
-Illustrations by GERTRUDE D. HAMMOND. 6_s._
-
- “Just the book to give to girls, who will delight both in the
- letterpress and the illustrations. Miss Hammond has never done better
- work.”--_Review of Reviews._
-
- * * * * *
-
-=The Heiress of Courtleroy.= By ANNE BEALE. With 8 page Illustrations
-by T. C. H. CASTLE. 5_s._
-
- “We can speak highly of the grace with which Miss Beale relates how
- the young ‘Heiress of Courtleroy’ had such good influence over her
- uncle as to win him from his intensely selfish ways.”--_Guardian._
-
-
-
-
- _TWELFTH EDITION OF THE UNIVERSE._
-
-
-=The Universe=: or, The Infinitely Great and the Infinitely Little. A
-Sketch of Contrasts in Creation, and Marvels revealed and explained by
-Natural Science. By F. A. POUCHET, M.D. With 272 Engravings on wood,
-of which 55 are full-page size, and 4 Coloured Illustrations. _Twelfth
-Edition_, medium 8vo, cloth elegant, gilt edges, 7_s._ 6_d._; also
-morocco antique, 16_s._
-
- “Dr. Pouchet’s wonderful work on _The Universe_, than which there is
- no book better calculated to encourage the study of nature.”--_Pall
- Mall Gazette._
-
- “We know no better book of the kind for a schoolroom
- library.”--_Bookman._
-
-
-
-
- BY G. NORWAY.
-
- _In crown 8vo, cloth elegant._
-
-
-=A Prisoner of War=: A Story of the Time of Napoleon Bonaparte. By G.
-NORWAY. With 6 page Illustrations by ROBT. BARNES, A.R.W.S. 3_s._ 6_d._
-
- “More hairbreadth escapes from death by starvation, by ice, by
- fighting, &c., were never before surmounted.... It is a fine
- yarn.”--_The Guardian._
-
-=A True Cornish Maid.= By G. NORWAY. With 6 page Illustrations by J.
-FINNEMORE. 3_s._ 6_d._
-
- “There is some excellent reading.... Mrs. Norway brings before the
- eyes of her readers the good Cornish folk, their speech, their
- manners, and their ways. _A True Cornish Maid_ deserves to be
- popular.”--_Athenæum._
-
- ⁂ For other Books by G. NORWAY see p. 23.
-
- * * * * *
-
-=Under False Colours=: A Story from Two Girls’ Lives. By SARAH DOUDNEY.
-Illustrated by G. G. KILBURNE. 4_s._
-
- “Sarah Doudney has no superior as a writer of high-toned stories--pure
- in style and original in conception; but we have seen nothing from her
- pen equal in dramatic energy to this book.”--_Christian Leader._
-
-=With the Sea Kings=: A Story of the Days of Lord Nelson. By F. H.
-WINDER. Illustrated by W. S. STACEY. 4_s._
-
- “Just the book to put into a boy’s hands. Every chapter contains
- boardings, cuttings out, fighting pirates, escapes of thrilling
- audacity, and captures by corsairs, sufficient to turn the quietest
- boy’s head. The story culminates in a vigorous account of the battle
- of Trafalgar. Happy boys!”--_The Academy._
-
-=Dr. Jolliffe’s Boys=: A Tale of Weston School. By LEWIS HOUGH. With 6
-page Pictures. 3_s._ 6_d._
-
- “Young people who appreciate _Tom Brown’s School-days_ will find
- this story a worthy companion to that fascinating book.”--_Newcastle
- Journal._
-
-=Dora=: or, A Girl without a Home. By Mrs. R. H. READ. With 6 page
-Illustrations by PAUL HARDY. 3_s._ 6_d._
-
- “It is no slight thing, in an age of rubbish, to get a story so pure
- and healthy as this.”--_The Academy._
-
-
-
-
- BY DR. GORDON STABLES, R.N.
-
- “In all Dr. Gordon Stables’ books for boys we are sure to find
- a wholesome tone, plenty of instruction, and abundance of
- adventure.”--_Saturday Review._
-
- _In crown 8vo, cloth elegant._
-
-
-=The Naval Cadet.= By GORDON STABLES, C.M., M.D., R.N. With 6 page
-Illustrations by WILLIAM RAINEY, R.I. 3_s._ 6_d._
-
- “A really interesting travellers’ tale, with plenty of fun and
- incident in it.”--_Spectator._
-
- “Love and war and ‘gun-room fun’ combine to make the history of _The
- Naval Cadet_ a very readable book.”--_Literature._
-
-=For Life and Liberty.= By GORDON STABLES, C.M., M.D., R.N. With 8
-Illustrations by SYDNEY PAGET, and a Map. 5_s._
-
- “The story is lively and spirited, with abundance of blockade-running,
- hard fighting, narrow escapes, and introductions to some of the most
- distinguished generals on both sides.”--_The Times._
-
-=To Greenland and the Pole.= By GORDON STABLES, C.M., M.D., R.N. With 8
-page Illustrations by G. C. HINDLEY, and a Map. 5_s._
-
- “His Arctic explorers have the verisimilitude of life. It is one of
- the books of the season, and one of the best Mr. Stables has ever
- written.”--_Truth._
-
-=Westward with Columbus.= By GORDON STABLES, C.M., M.D., R.N. With 8
-page Illustrations by A. PEARSE. 5_s._
-
- “We must place _Westward with Columbus_ among those books that all
- boys ought to read.”--_The Spectator._
-
-=’Twixt School and College=: A Tale of Self-reliance. By GORDON
-STABLES, C.M., M.D., R.N. Illustrated by W. PARKINSON. 5_s._
-
- “One of the best of a prolific writer’s books for boys, and inculcates
- the virtue of self-reliance.”--_Athenæum._
-
-
-
-
- BY HUGH ST. LEGER.
-
-
-=An Ocean Outlaw=: A Story of Adventure in the good ship _Margaret_.
-With Illustrations by WILLIAM RAINEY, R.I. 4_s._
-
- “We know no modern boys’ book in which there is more sound, hearty,
- good-humoured fun, or of which the tone is more wholesome and bracing
- than Mr. St. Leger’s.”--_National Observer._
-
-=Hallowe’en Ahoy!= or, Lost on the Crozet Islands. By HUGH ST. LEGER.
-With 6 Illustrations by H. J. DRAPER. 4_s._
-
- “One of the best stories of seafaring life and adventure which
- have appeared this season. No boy who begins it but will wish to
- join the _Britannia_ long before he finishes these delightful
- pages.”--_Academy._
-
-=Sou’wester and Sword.= By HUGH ST. LEGER. With 6 page Illustrations by
-HAL HURST. 4_s._
-
- “As racy a tale of life at sea and war adventure as we have met with
- for some time.... Altogether the sort of book that boys will revel
- in.”--_Athenæum._
-
-
-
-
- BY CHARLES W. WHISTLER.
-
- “Historical tales are always welcome when they are told by such a
- prince of story-tellers as Mr. CHARLES W. WHISTLER.”--_The Record._
-
-
- _In crown 8vo, cloth elegant._
-
-=King Olaf’s Kinsman=: A Story of the Last Saxon Struggle against the
-Danes. By CHARLES W. WHISTLER. With 6 page Illustrations by W. H.
-MARGETSON. 4_s._
-
- “Mr. Whistler’s story is in fine an excellent one--worthy to rank with
- some of R. L. Stevenson’s tales for boys.”--_St. James’s Gazette._
-
-=Wulfric the Weapon-Thane=: The Story of the Danish Conquest of
-East Anglia. By CHARLES W. WHISTLER. With 6 Illustrations by W. H.
-MARGETSON. 4_s._
-
- “A picturesque and energetic story. A worthy companion to his capital
- story, _A Thane of Wessex_. One that will delight all active-minded
- boys.”--_Saturday Review._
-
-=A Thane of Wessex=: Being the Story of the Great Viking Raid of 845.
-By CHARLES W. WHISTLER. With 6 Illustrations by W. H. MARGETSON. 3_s._
-6_d._
-
- “The story is told with spirit and force, and affords an excellent
- picture of the life of the period.”--_Standard._
-
- * * * * *
-
-=Grettir the Outlaw=: A Story of Iceland. By S. BARING-GOULD. With 6
-page Illustrations by M. ZENO DIEMER. 4_s._
-
-=A Champion of the Faith=: A Tale of Prince Hal and the Lollards. By J.
-M. CALLWELL. With 6 page Illustrations by HERBERT J. DRAPER. 4_s._
-
- * * * * *
-
-=Meg’s Friend.= By ALICE CORKRAN. With 6 page Illustrations by ROBERT
-FOWLER. 3_s._ 6_d._
-
- “One of Miss Corkran’s charming books for girls, narrated in that
- simple and picturesque style which marks the authoress as one of the
- first amongst writers for young people.”--_The Spectator._
-
-=Margery Merton’s Girlhood.= By ALICE CORKRAN. With 6 page Pictures by
-GORDON BROWNE. 3_s._ 6_d._
-
- “Another book for girls we can warmly commend. There is a delightful
- piquancy in the experiences and trials of a young English girl who
- studies painting in Paris.”--_Saturday Review._
-
-=Down the Snow Stairs=: or, From Good-night to Good-morning. By ALICE
-CORKRAN. Illustrated by GORDON BROWNE. 3_s._ 6_d._
-
- “A gem of the first water, bearing upon every page the mark of genius.
- It is indeed a Little Pilgrim’s Progress.”--_Christian Leader._
-
- * * * * *
-
-=Gold, Gold, in Cariboo.= By CLIVE PHILLIPPS-WOLLEY. With 6 page
-Illustrations by G. C. HINDLEY. 3_s._ 6_d._
-
- “We have seldom read a more exciting tale. There is a capital plot,
- and the interest is sustained to the last page.”--_The Times._
-
-
-
-
- BY ANNIE E. ARMSTRONG.
-
-
- _In crown 8vo, cloth elegant._
-
-=Violet Vereker’s Vanity.= By ANNIE E. ARMSTRONG. With 6 page
-Illustrations by G. DEMAIN HAMMOND, R.I. 3_s._ 6_d._
-
- “A book for girls that we can heartily recommend, for it is bright,
- sensible, and with a right tone of thought and feeling.”--_Sheffield
- Independent._
-
-=Three Bright Girls=: A Story of Chance and Mischance. By ANNIE E.
-ARMSTRONG. Illustrated by W. PARKINSON. 3_s._ 6_d._
-
- “Among many good stories for girls this is undoubtedly one of the very
- best.”--_Teachers’ Aid._
-
-=A Very Odd Girl=: or, Life at the Gabled Farm. By ANNIE E. ARMSTRONG.
-Illustrated. 3_s._ 6_d._
-
- “The book is one we can heartily recommend, for it is not only
- bright and interesting, but also pure and healthy in tone and
- teaching.”--_The Lady._
-
- * * * * *
-
-=The Captured Cruiser.= By C. J. HYNE. Illustrated by FRANK BRANGWYN.
-3_s._ 6_d._
-
- “The two lads and the two skippers are admirably drawn. Mr. Hyne has
- now secured a position in the first rank of writers of fiction for
- boys.”--_Spectator._
-
- * * * * *
-
-=Afloat at Last=: A Sailor Boy’s Log of his Life at Sea. By JOHN C.
-HUTCHESON. 3_s._ 6_d._
-
- “As healthy and breezy a book as one could wish to put into the hands
- of a boy.”--_Academy._
-
- * * * * *
-
-=Brother and Sister=: or, The Trials of the Moore Family. By ELIZABETH
-J. LYSAGHT. 3_s._ 6_d._
-
- * * * * *
-
-=Storied Holidays=: A Cycle of Red-letter Days. By E. S. BROOKS. With
-12 page Illustrations by HOWARD PYLE. 3_s._ 6_d._
-
- “It is a downright good book for a senior boy, and is eminently
- readable from first to last.”--_Schoolmaster._
-
-=Chivalric Days=: Stories of Courtesy and Courage in the Olden Times.
-By E. S. BROOKS. With 20 Illustrations. 3_s._ 6_d._
-
- “We have seldom come across a prettier collection of tales. These
- charming stories of boys and girls of olden days are no mere
- fictitious or imaginary sketches, but are real and actual records of
- their sayings and doings.”--_Literary World._
-
-=Historic Boys=: Their Endeavours, their Achievements, and their Times.
-By E. S. BROOKS. With 12 page Illustrations. 3_s._ 6_d._
-
- “A wholesome book, manly in tone; altogether one that should
- incite boys to further acquaintance with those rulers of men whose
- careers are narrated. We advise teachers to put it on their list of
- prizes.”--_Knowledge._
-
-
-
-
- BY EDGAR PICKERING.
-
-
- _In crown 8vo, cloth elegant._
-
-=A Stout English Bowman.= By EDGAR PICKERING. With 6 page Illustrations
-by WALTER S. STACEY. 3_s._ 6_d._
-
- “A vivid romance of the times of Henry III. In drawing the various
- pictures of this age of chivalry Mr. Pickering has caught the true
- spirit of the period, and never once does he forget that he is writing
- the sayings and doings of a past age.”--_Public Opinion._
-
-=Two Gallant Rebels.= By EDGAR PICKERING. With 6 Illustrations by W. H.
-OVEREND. 3_s._ 6_d._
-
- “There is something very attractive about Mr. Pickering’s style....
- Boys will relish the relation of those dreadful and moving events,
- which, indeed, will never lose their fascination for readers of all
- ages.”--_The Spectator._
-
-=In Press-Gang Days.= By EDGAR PICKERING. With 6 Illustrations by W. S.
-STACEY. 3_s._ 6_d._
-
- “It is of Marryat we think as we read this delightful story;
- for it is not only a story of adventure with incidents well
- conceived and arranged, but the characters are interesting and
- well-distinguished.”--_Academy._
-
-=An Old-Time Yarn.= By EDGAR PICKERING. Illustrated by ALFRED PEARSE.
-3_s._ 6_d._
-
- “And a very good yarn it is, with not a dull page from first to
- last. There is a flavour of _Westward Ho!_ in this attractive
- book.”--_Educational Review._
-
-=Silas Verney=: A Tale of the Time of Charles II. By EDGAR PICKERING.
-With 6 page Illustrations by ALFRED PEARSE. 3_s._ 6_d._
-
- “Altogether this is an excellent story for boys.”--_Saturday Review._
-
- * * * * *
-
-=His First Kangaroo=: An Australian Story for Boys. By ARTHUR FERRES.
-Illustrated by PERCY F. S. SPENCE. 3_s._ 6_d._
-
-
-
-
- BLACKIE’S NEW THREE-SHILLING SERIES.
-
-
- _In crown 8vo. Beautifully illustrated and handsomely bound._
-
-=Highways and High Seas=: By F. FRANKFORT MOORE. With 6 page
-Illustrations by ALFRED PEARSE. 3_s._
-
- “This is one of the best stories Mr. Moore has written, perhaps
- the very best. The exciting adventures are sure to attract
- boys.”--_Spectator._
-
-=Under Hatches=: or, Ned Woodthorpe’s Adventures. By F. FRANKFORT
-MOORE. Illustrated by A. FORESTIER. 3_s._
-
- “The story as a story is one that will just suit boys all the world
- over. The characters are well drawn and consistent.”--_Schoolmaster._
-
-=The Missing Merchantman.= By HARRY COLLINGWOOD. With 6 page
-Illustrations by W. H. OVEREND. 3_s._
-
- “One of the author’s best sea stories. The hero is as heroic as any
- boy could desire, and the ending is extremely happy.”--_British
- Weekly._
-
-=Menhardoc=: A Story of Cornish Nets and Mines. By G. MANVILLE FENN.
-Illustrated by C. J. STANILAND, R.I. 3_s._
-
- “The Cornish fishermen are drawn from life, and stand out from the
- pages in their jerseys and sea-boots all sprinkled with silvery
- pilchard scales.”--_Spectator._
-
-=Yussuf the Guide=: or, The Mountain Bandits. By G. MANVILLE FENN. With
-6 page Illustrations by J. SCHÖNBERG. 3_s._
-
- “Told with such real freshness and vigour that the reader feels he
- is actually one of the party, sharing in the fun and facing the
- dangers.”--_Pall Mall Gazette._
-
-=Patience Wins=: or, War in the Works. By GEORGE MANVILLE FENN. With 6
-page Illustrations. 3_s._
-
- “Mr. Fenn has never hit upon a happier plan than in writing this
- story of Yorkshire factory life. The whole book is all aglow with
- life.”--_Pall Mall Gazette._
-
-=Mother Carey’s Chicken.= By G. MANVILLE FENN. With 6 page
-Illustrations by A. FORESTIER. 3_s._
-
- “The incidents are of thrilling interest, while the characters
- are drawn with a care and completeness rarely found in a boys’
- book.”--_Literary World._
-
-=Robinson Crusoe.= With 100 Illustrations by GORDON BROWNE. 3_s._
-
- “One of the best issues, if not absolutely the best, of Defoe’s work
- which has ever appeared.”--_The Standard._
-
-=Perseverance Island=: or, The Robinson Crusoe of the 19th Century. By
-DOUGLAS FRAZAR. With 6 page Illustrations. 3_s._
-
-=Gulliver’s Travels.= With 100 Illustrations by GORDON BROWNE. 3_s._
-
- “Mr. Gordon Browne is, to my thinking, incomparably the most artistic,
- spirited, and brilliant of our illustrators of books for boys, and one
- of the most humorous also, as his illustrations of ‘Gulliver’ amply
- testify.”--_Truth._
-
-=The Wigwam and the War-path=: Stories of the Red Indians. By ASCOTT R.
-HOPE. With 6 page Illustrations. 3_s._
-
- “Is notably good. It gives a very vivid picture of life
- among the Indians, which will delight the heart of many a
- schoolboy.”--_Spectator._
-
-=The Loss of John Humble=: What Led to It, and What Came of It. By G.
-NORWAY. With 6 page Illustrations by JOHN SCHÖNBERG, 3_s._
-
- “Full of life and adventure. The interest of the story is sustained
- without a break from first to last.”--_Standard._
-
-=Hussein the Hostage.= By G. NORWAY. With 6 page Illustrations by JOHN
-SCHÖNBERG. 3_s._
-
- “_Hussein the Hostage_ is full of originality and vigour. The
- characters are lifelike, there is plenty of stirring incident, and the
- interest is sustained throughout.”--_Journal of Education._
-
-=Cousin Geoffrey and I.= By CAROLINE AUSTIN. With 6 page Illustrations
-by W. PARKINSON. 3_s._
-
- “Miss Austin’s story is bright, clever, and well
- developed.”--_Saturday Review._
-
-[Illustration: _Reduced Illustration from “Cousin Geoffrey”._]
-
-=Girl Neighbours=: or, The Old Fashion and the New. By SARAH TYTLER.
-Illustrated by C. T. GARLAND. 3_s._
-
- “One of the most effective and quietly humorous of Miss Sarah
- Tytler’s stories. It is very healthy, very agreeable, and very well
- written.”--_The Spectator._
-
-=The Rover’s Secret=: a Tale of the Pirate Cays and Lagoons of Cuba. By
-HARRY COLLINGWOOD. With 6 page Illustrations by W. C. SYMONS. 3_s._
-
- “_The Rover’s Secret_ is by far the best sea story we have read for
- years, and is certain to give unalloyed pleasure to boys.”--_Saturday
- Review._
-
-=The Congo Rovers=: A Story of the Slave Squadron. By HARRY
-COLLINGWOOD. With 6 page Illustrations. 3_s._
-
- “No better sea story has lately been written than the _Congo Rovers_.
- It is as original as any boy could desire.”--_Morning Post._
-
-
-
-
-BLACKIE’S HALF-CROWN SERIES.
-
- _Illustrated by eminent Artists. Crown 8vo, cloth elegant._
-
-=A Daughter of Erin.= By VIOLET G. FINNY.
-
- “Extremely well written; the characters are cleverly drawn and
- the individual interest sustained to the end. It is a book we can
- thoroughly recommend, not only to girls, but to all who like a
- well-written healthy toned story.”--_St. James’s Gazette._
-
-=Nell’s School-days.= By H. F. GETHEN.
-
- “A simple and natural picture of young life, and inculcates
- in an unostentatious way lessons of thoughtfulness and
- kindness.”--_Spectator._
-
-=The Luck of the Eardleys.= By SHEILA E. BRAINE.
-
- “One of the cleverest books we have read for a long time. The
- authoress combines wit, humour, and pathos in a delightful manner, and
- understands how to portray character, for all her men, women, boys and
- girls glow with life and colour”--_The Record._
-
-=Picked up at Sea=: or, The Gold Miners of Minturne Creek. By JOHN C.
-HUTCHESON.
-
-=The Search for the Talisman=: A Story of Labrador. By HENRY FRITH.
-
- “We pity the boy who cannot read every page of this capital
- story.”--_School Guardian._
-
-=Marooned on Australia.= By ERNEST FAVENC.
-
- “A remarkably interesting and well-written story of travel and
- adventure in the Great Southern Land.”--_School Guardian._
-
-=The Secret of the Australian Desert.= By ERNEST FAVENC.
-
- “We recommend the book most heartily; it is certain to please boys and
- girls, and even some grown-ups.”--_Guardian._
-
-=My Friend Kathleen.= By JENNIE CHAPPELL.
-
-=A Girl’s Kingdom.= By M. CORBET-SEYMOUR.
-
- “The story is bright, well told, and thoroughly healthy and
- good.”--_Ch. Bells._
-
-=Laugh and Learn=: The Easiest Book of Nursery Lessons and Nursery
-Games. By JENNETT HUMPHREYS.
-
- “One of the best books of the kind imaginable, full of practical
- teaching in word and picture, and helping the little ones pleasantly
- along a right royal road to learning.”--_Graphic._
-
-=Reefer and Rifleman=: A Tale of the Two Services. By Lieut.-Col.
-PERCY-GROVES.
-
-=A Musical Genius.= By the Author of the “Two Dorothys”.
-
- “It is brightly written, well illustrated, and daintily bound, and can
- be strongly recommended as a really good prize-book.”--_Teachers’ Aid._
-
-=For the Sake of a Friend=: A Story of School Life. By MARGARET PARKER.
-
- “An excellent school-girls’ story.”--_Athenæum._
-
-=Things Will take a Turn.= By BEATRICE HARRADEN. With 44 Illustrations
-by JOHN H. BACON.
-
- “Perhaps the most brilliant is _Things Will Take a Turn_.... It
- is a delightful blending of comedy and tragedy, with an excellent
- plot.”--_The Times._
-
-[Illustration: _From “Things will Take a Turn”._ (_Reduced._)]
-
- * * * * *
-
-=Under the Black Eagle.= By ANDREW HILLIARD.
-
- “The rapid movement of the story, and the strange scenes through
- which it passes, give it a full interest of surprise and
- adventure.”--_Scotsman._
-
-=A Golden Age.= By ISMAY THORN. Illustrated by GORDON BROWNE.
-
- “Ought to have a place of honour on the nursery shelf.”--_The
- Athenæum._
-
-=Hal Hungerford.= By J. R. HUTCHINSON, B.A.
-
- “Altogether, _Hal Hungerford_ is a distinct literary
- success.”--_Spectator._
-
-=The Secret of the Old House.= By E. EVERETT-GREEN.
-
- “Tim, the little Jacobite, is a charming creation.”--_Academy._
-
-=White Lilac=: or, The Queen of the May. By AMY WALTON.
-
- “Every rural parish ought to add _White Lilac_ to its
- library.”--_Academy._
-
-=The Whispering Winds=, and the Tales that they Told. By MARY H.
-DEBENHAM. With 25 Illustrations by PAUL HARDY.
-
-=Miriam’s Ambition.= By EVELYN EVERETT-GREEN.
-
- “Miss Green’s children are real British boys and girls.”--_Liverpool
- Mercury._
-
-=The Brig “Audacious”.= By ALAN COLE.
-
- “Fresh and wholesome as a breath of sea air.”--_Court Journal._
-
-=Jasper’s Conquest.= By ELIZABETH J. LYSAGHT.
-
- “One of the best boys’ books of the season.”--_Schoolmaster._
-
-=Little Lady Clare.= By EVELYN EVERETT-GREEN.
-
- “Reminds us in its quaintness of Mrs. Ewing’s delightful
- tales.”--_Liter. World._
-
-=The Eversley Secrets.= By EVELYN EVERETT-GREEN.
-
- “Roy Eversley is a very touching picture of high
- principle.”--_Guardian._
-
-=The Hermit Hunter of the Wilds.= By G. STABLES, R.N.
-
- “Will gladden the heart of many a bright boy.”--_Methodist Recorder._
-
-=Sturdy and Strong.= By G. A. HENTY.
-
- “A hero who stands as a good instance of chivalry in domestic
- life.”--_The Empire._
-
-=Gutta-Percha Willie.= By GEORGE MAC DONALD.
-
- “Get it for your boys and girls to read for themselves.”--_Practical
- Teacher._
-
-=The War of the Axe=: or, Adventures in South Africa. By J.
-PERCY-GROVES.
-
- “The story is well and brilliantly told.”--_Literary World._
-
-=The Lads of Little Clayton.= By R. STEAD.
-
- “A capital book for boys.”--_Schoolmaster._
-
-=Ten Boys.= By JANE ANDREWS. With 20 Illustrations.
-
- “The idea is a very happy one, and admirably carried out.”--_Practical
- Teacher._
-
-=A Waif of the Sea=: or, The Lost Found. By KATE WOOD.
-
- “Written with tenderness and grace.”--_Morning Advertiser._
-
-=Winnie’s Secret.= By KATE WOOD.
-
- “One of the best story-books we have read.”--_Schoolmaster._
-
-=Miss Willowburn’s Offer.= By SARAH DOUDNEY.
-
- “Patience Willowburn is one of Miss Doudney’s best
- creations.”--_Spectator._
-
-=A Garland for Girls.= By LOUISA M. ALCOTT.
-
- “These little tales are the beau ideal of girls’ stories.”--_Christian
- World._
-
-=Hetty Gray=: or, Nobody’s Bairn. By ROSA MULHOLLAND.
-
- “Hetty is a delightful creature--piquant, tender, and true.”--_World._
-
-=Brothers in Arms.= By F. BAYFORD HARRISON.
-
- “Sure to prove interesting to young people of both sexes.”--_Guardian._
-
-=Stimson’s Reef=: A Tale of Adventure. By C. J. HYNE.
-
-=Miss Fenwick’s Failures.= By ESMÉ STUART.
-
- “A girl true to real life, who will put no nonsense into young
- heads.”--_Graphic._
-
-=Gytha’s Message.= By EMMA LESLIE.
-
- “This is the sort of book that all girls like.”--_Journal of
- Education._
-
-=A Little Handful.= By HARRIET J. SCRIPPS.
-
- “He is a real type of a boy.”--_The Schoolmaster._
-
-=Hammond’s Hard Lines.= By SKELTON KUPPORD.
-
- “It is just what a boy would choose if the selection of a story-book
- is left in his own hand.”--_School Guardian._
-
-=Dulcie King=: A Story for Girls. By M. CORBET-SEYMOUR.
-
-=Nicola=: The Career of a Girl Musician. By M. CORBET-SEYMOUR.
-
-=Hugh Herbert’s Inheritance.= By CAROLINE AUSTIN.
-
-=Jack o’ Lanthorn=: A Tale of Adventure. By HENRY FRITH.
-
-=A Rough Road=: or, How the Boy Made a Man of Himself. By Mrs. G.
-LINNÆUS BANKS.
-
-=The Two Dorothys.= By Mrs. HERBERT MARTIN.
-
- “A book that will interest and please all girls.”--_The Lady._
-
-[Illustration: _Reduced Illustration from, “A Girl in Spring-time”._]
-
-=My Mistress the Queen.= By M. A. PAULL.
-
-=The Stories of Wasa and Menzikoff.=
-
-=Stories of the Sea in Former Days.=
-
-=Tales of Captivity and Exile.=
-
-=Famous Discoveries by Sea and Land.=
-
-=Stirring Events of History.=
-
-=Adventures in Field, Flood, and Forest.=
-
-=A Cruise in Cloudland.= By HENRY FRITH.
-
-=Marian and Dorothy.= By ANNIE E. ARMSTRONG.
-
-=Gladys Anstruther.= By LOUISA THOMPSON.
-
-
-
-
-BLACKIE’S TWO-SHILLING SERIES.
-
-
-_Illustrated by eminent Artists. Crown 8vo, cloth elegant._
-
-=Tommy the Adventurous.= By S. E. CARTWRIGHT.
-
-=Some Other Children.= By H. F. GETHEN.
-
-=That Merry Crew.= By FLORENCE COOMBE.
-
-=Sir Wilfrid’s Grandson.= By GERALDINE MOCKLER.
-
-=Sydney’s Chums=: A Story of East and West London. By H. F. GETHEN.
-
-=Daddy Samuels’ Darling.= By the Author of “The Two Dorothys”.
-
-=May, Guy, and Jim.= By ELLINOR DAVENPORT ADAMS.
-
-=A Girl in Spring-time.= By Mrs. MANSERGH.
-
-=In the Days of Drake.= Being the Adventures of Humphrey Salkeld. By J.
-S. FLETCHER.
-
-=Wilful Joyce.= By W. L. ROOPER.
-
-=Proud Miss Sydney.= By GERALDINE MOCKLER.
-
-=Queen of the Daffodils.= By LESLIE LAING.
-
-=The Girleen.= By EDITH JOHNSTONE.
-
-=The Organist’s Baby.= By KATHLEEN KNOX.
-
-=School Days in France.= By AN OLD GIRL.
-
-=The Ravensworth Scholarship.= By Mrs. HENRY CLARKE.
-
-=Sir Walter’s Ward=: A Tale of the Crusades. By WILLIAM EVERARD.
-
-=Raff’s Ranche=: A Story of Adventure among Cow-boys and Indians. By F.
-M. HOLMES.
-
-=The Joyous Story of Toto.= By LAURA E. RICHARDS.
-
-=Our Dolly=: Her Words and Ways. By Mrs. R. H. READ.
-
-=Fairy Fancy=: What she Heard and Saw. By Mrs. READ.
-
-=New Light through Old Windows.= By GREGSON GOW.
-
-=Little Tottie, and Two Other Stories.= By THOMAS ARCHER.
-
-=Naughty Miss Bunny.= By CLARA MULHOLLAND.
-
-=Adventures of Mrs. Wishing-to-be.= By ALICE CORKRAN.
-
-=An Unexpected Hero.= By ELIZ. J. LYSAGHT.
-
-=The Bushranger’s Secret.= By Mrs. HENRY CLARKE, M.A.
-
-=The White Squall.= By JOHN C. HUTCHESON.
-
-=The Wreck of the “Nancy Bell”.= By J. C. HUTCHESON.
-
-=The Lonely Pyramid.= By J. H. YOXALL.
-
-=Bab=: or, The Triumph of Unselfishness. By ISMAY THORN.
-
-=Brave and True=, and other Stories. By GREGSON GOW.
-
-=The Light Princess.= By GEORGE MAC DONALD.
-
-=Nutbrown Roger and I.= By J. H. YOXALL.
-
-=Sam Silvan’s Sacrifice.= By JESSE COLMAN.
-
-=Insect Ways on Summer Days= in Garden, Forest, Field, and Stream. By
-JENNETT HUMPHREYS. With 70 Illustrations.
-
-=Susan.= By AMY WALTON.
-
-=A Pair of Clogs.= By AMY WALTON.
-
-=The Hawthorns.= By AMY WALTON.
-
-=Dorothy’s Dilemma.= By CAROLINE AUSTIN.
-
-=Marie’s Home.= By CAROLINE AUSTIN.
-
-=A Warrior King.= By J. EVELYN.
-
-=Aboard the “Atalanta”.= By HENRY FRITH.
-
-=The Penang Pirate.= By JOHN C. HUTCHESON.
-
-=Teddy=: The Story of a “Little Pickle”. By JOHN C. HUTCHESON.
-
-=A Rash Promise.= By CECILIA SELBY LOWNDES.
-
-=Linda and the Boys.= By CECILIA SELBY LOWNDES.
-
-=Swiss Stories for Children.= From the German of MADAM JOHANNA SPYRI.
-By LUCY WHEELOCK.
-
-=The Squire’s Grandson.= By J. M. CALLWELL.
-
-=Magna Charta Stories.= Edited by ARTHUR GILMAN, A.M.
-
-=The Wings of Courage=; and The Cloud-Spinner. Translated from the
-French of GEORGE SAND, by Mrs. CORKRAN.
-
-=Chirp and Chatter=: Or, Lessons from Field and Tree. By ALICE BANKS.
-With 54 Illustrations by GORDON BROWNE.
-
-=Four Little Mischiefs.= By ROSA MULHOLLAND.
-
-
-
-
-LIBRARY OF FAMOUS BOOKS FOR BOYS AND GIRLS.
-
-_Illustrated. Crown 8vo, cloth extra, 1s. 6d. each._
-
-
- =The Rifle Rangers.= By Captain MAYNE REID.
- =Macaulay’s Essays on English History.=
- =Autobiographies of Boyhood.=
- =Holiday House.= By CATHERINE SINCLAIR.
- =Log-book of a Midshipman.=
- =Parry’s Third Voyage.=
- =Passages in the Life of a Galley-Slave.=
- =The Downfall of Napoleon.= By SIR WALTER SCOTT.
- =What Katy Did.= By SUSAN COOLIDGE.
- =What Katy Did at School.=
- =Wreck of the “Wager”.=
- =Miss Austen’s Northanger Abbey.=
- =Miss Edgeworth’s The Good Governess.=
- =Martineau’s Feats on the Fiord.=
- =Marryat’s Poor Jack.=
- =The Snowstorm.= By Mrs. GORE.
- =Life of Dampier.=
- =The Cruise of the Midge.= M. SCOTT.
- =Lives and Voyages of Drake and Cavendish.=
- =Edgeworth’s Moral Tales.=
- =Marryat’s The Settlers in Canada.=
- =Michael Scott’s Tom Cringle’s Log.=
- =Natural History of Selborne.=
- =Waterton’s Wanderings in S. America.=
- =Anson’s Voyage Round the World.=
- =Autobiography of Franklin.=
- =Lamb’s Tales from Shakspeare.=
- =Southey’s Life of Nelson.=
- =Miss Mitford’s Our Village.=
- =Two Years Before the Mast.=
- =Children of the New Forest.=
- =Scott’s The Talisman.=
- =The Basket of Flowers.=
- =Marryat’s Masterman Ready.=
- =Alcott’s Little Women.=
- =Cooper’s Deerslayer.=
- =The Lamplighter.= By Miss CUMMINS.
- =Cooper’s Pathfinder.=
- =The Vicar of Wakefield.=
- =Plutarch’s Lives of Greek Heroes.=
- =Poe’s Tales of Romance and Fantasy.=
-
-
-BLACKIE’S EIGHTEENPENNY SERIES.
-
-_Illustrated. Crown 8vo, cloth elegant._
-
-
- =Holidays at Sandy Bay.= By E. S. BUCHHEIM.
- =Best of Intentions.= By GERALDINE MOCKLER.
- =An Africander Trio.= By JANE H. SPETTIGUE.
- =A Chum Worth Having.= By FLORENCE COOMBE.
- =Penelope and the Others.= By AMY WALTON.
- =The “Saucy May”.= By HENRY FRITH.
- =The Little Girl from Next Door.= By GERALDINE MOCKLER.
- =Uncle Jem’s Stella.= By Mrs. MARTIN.
- =The Ball of Fortune.= By C. PEARSE.
- =The Family Failing.= By D. DALE.
- =Warner’s Chase.= By ANNIE S. SWAN.
- =Climbing the Hill.= By ANNIE S. SWAN.
- =Into the Haven.= By ANNIE S. SWAN.
- =Down and Up Again.= By GREGSON GOW.
- =Madge’s Mistake.= By ANNIE E. ARMSTRONG.
- =The Troubles and Triumphs of Little Tim.= By GREGSON GOW.
- =The Happy Lad.= By B. BJÖRNSON.
- =A Box of Stories.= By H. HAPPYMAN.
- =The Patriot Martyr=, and other Narratives of Female Heroism.
- =Olive and Robin.= By MRS. MARTIN.
- =Mona’s Trust.= By P. LESLIE.
-
-_With Illustrations. In crown 8vo, cloth elegant._
-
-[Illustration: _Reduced Illustration From “A Chum Worth Having”._]
-
- =Little Jimmy=: A Story of Adventure. By Rev. D. RICE-JONES, M.A.
- =Pleasures and Pranks.= By ISABELLA PEARSON.
- =In a Stranger’s Garden.= By CONSTANCE CUMING.
- =Yarns on the Beach.= By G. A. HENTY.
- =A Soldier’s Son.= By ANNETTE LYSTER.
- =Mischief and Merry-making.= By ISABELLA PEARSON.
- =Tom Finch’s Monkey.= By J. C. HUTCHESON.
- =Miss Grantley’s Girls.= By THOS. ARCHER.
- =The Pedlar and his Dog.= By MARY C. ROWSELL.
- =Littlebourne Lock.= By F. BAYFORD HARRISON.
- =Wild Meg and Wee Dickie.= By MARY E. ROPES.
- =Grannie.= By ELIZABETH J. LYSAGHT.
- =The Seed She Sowed.= By EMMA LESLIE.
- =Unlucky=: A Fragment of a Girl’s Life. By CAROLINE AUSTIN.
- =Everybody’s Business.= By ISMAY THORN.
- =Tales of Daring and Danger.= By G. A. HENTY.
- =The Seven Golden Keys.= By JAMES E. ARNOLD.
- =The Story of a Queen.= By MARY C. ROWSELL.
- =Edwy=: or, Was he a Coward? By ANNETTE LYSTER.
- =The Battlefield Treasure.= By F. BAYFORD HARRISON.
- =Joan’s Adventures at the North Pole.= By ALICE CORKRAN.
- =Filled with Gold.= By J. PERRETT.
- =Our General.= By ELIZABETH J. LYSAGHT.
- =Aunt Hesba’s Charge.= By ELIZABETH J. LYSAGHT.
- =By Order of Queen Maude.= By LOUISA CROW.
- =The Late Miss Hollingford.= By ROSA MULHOLLAND.
- =Our Frank.= By AMY WALTON.
- =A Terrible Coward.= By G. MANVILLE FENN.
- =Town Mice in the Country.= By M. E. FRANCIS.
- =Phil and his Father.= By ISMAY THORN.
- =Prim’s Story.= By L. E. TIDDEMAN.
-
-
-⁂ _Also a large selection of Rewards at 1s., 9d., 6d., 3d., 2d., and
-1d. A complete list will be sent post free on application._
-
-
-
-
-BLACKIE’S SCHOOL AND HOME LIBRARY.
-
-
-Under the above title the publishers have arranged to issue, for
-School Libraries and the Home Circle, a selection of the best and most
-interesting books in the English language. The Library includes lives
-of heroes, ancient and modern, records of travel and adventure by sea
-and land, fiction of the highest class, historical romances, books of
-natural history, and tales of domestic life.
-
-The greatest care has been devoted to the get-up of the Library.
-The volumes are clearly printed on good paper, and the binding
-made specially durable, to withstand the wear and tear to which
-well-circulated books are necessarily subjected.
-
-
-_In crown 8vo volumes. Strongly bound in cloth. Price 1s. 4d. each._
-
- =Dana’s Two Years before the Mast.=
- =Southey’s Life of Nelson.=
- =Waterton’s Wanderings in S. America.=
- =Anson’s Voyage Round the World.=
- =Lamb’s Tales from Shakspeare.=
- =Autobiography of Benjamin Franklin.=
- =Marryat’s Children of the New Forest.=
- =Miss Mitford’s Our Village.=
- =Scott’s Talisman.=
- =The Basket of Flowers.=
- =Marryat’s Masterman Ready.=
- =Alcott’s Little Women.=
- =Cooper’s Deerslayer.=
- =Parry’s Third Voyage.=
- =Dickens’ Old Curiosity Shop.= 2 vols.
- =Plutarch’s Lives of Greek Heroes.=
- =The Lamplighter.=
- =Cooper’s Pathfinder.=
- =The Vicar of Wakefield.=
- =White’s Natural History of Selborne.=
- =Scott’s Ivanhoe.= 2 vols.
- =Michael Scott’s Tom Cringle’s Log.=
- =Irving’s Conquest of Granada.= 2 vols.
- =Lives of Drake and Cavendish.=
- =Michael Scott’s Cruise of the Midge.=
- =Edgeworth’s Moral Tales.=
- =Passages in the Life of a Galley-Slave.=
- =The Snowstorm.= By Mrs. Gore.
- =Life of Dampier.=
- =Marryat’s The Settlers in Canada.=
- =Martineau’s Feats on the Fiord.=
- =Marryat’s Poor Jack.=
- =The Good Governess.= By Maria Edgeworth.
- =Northanger Abbey.= By Jane Austen.
- =The Log Book of a Midshipman.=
- =Autobiographies of Boyhood.=
- =Holiday House.= By Catherine Sinclair.
- =Wreck of the “Wager”.=
- =What Katy Did.= By Miss Coolidge.
- =What Katy Did at School.= By Do.
- =Scott’s Life of Napoleon.=
- =Essays on English History.= By Lord Macaulay.
- =The Rifle Rangers.= By Captain Mayne Reid.
-
-_Detailed Prospectus and Press Opinions will be sent post free on
-Application._
-
- * * * * *
-
-“The Library is one of the most intelligent enterprises in connection
-with juvenile literature of recent years.... A glance at the list
-proves that the editing is in the hands of some one who understands the
-likings of healthy boys and girls.... One of the healthiest juvenile
-libraries in existence.”--=Bookman.=
-
-
-LONDON:
-BLACKIE & SON, Limited, 50 OLD BAILEY, E.C.
-
-
-
-
-Transcriber's Notes
-
-
-A number of typographical errors were corrected silently.
-
-Cover image is in the public domain.
-
-Caption for illustration "The figure moved, rose, came forward with the
-painful caution of dreary suspense" was incorrect in original image and
-was changed to match the text.
-
-*** END OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK A GIRL OF TO-DAY ***
-
-Updated editions will replace the previous one--the old editions will
-be renamed.
-
-Creating the works from print editions not protected by U.S. copyright
-law means that no one owns a United States copyright in these works,
-so the Foundation (and you!) can copy and distribute it in the
-United States without permission and without paying copyright
-royalties. Special rules, set forth in the General Terms of Use part
-of this license, apply to copying and distributing Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works to protect the PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm
-concept and trademark. Project Gutenberg is a registered trademark,
-and may not be used if you charge for an eBook, except by following
-the terms of the trademark license, including paying royalties for use
-of the Project Gutenberg trademark. If you do not charge anything for
-copies of this eBook, complying with the trademark license is very
-easy. You may use this eBook for nearly any purpose such as creation
-of derivative works, reports, performances and research. Project
-Gutenberg eBooks may be modified and printed and given away--you may
-do practically ANYTHING in the United States with eBooks not protected
-by U.S. copyright law. Redistribution is subject to the trademark
-license, especially commercial redistribution.
-
-START: FULL LICENSE
-
-THE FULL PROJECT GUTENBERG LICENSE
-PLEASE READ THIS BEFORE YOU DISTRIBUTE OR USE THIS WORK
-
-To protect the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting the free
-distribution of electronic works, by using or distributing this work
-(or any other work associated in any way with the phrase "Project
-Gutenberg"), you agree to comply with all the terms of the Full
-Project Gutenberg-tm License available with this file or online at
-www.gutenberg.org/license.
-
-Section 1. General Terms of Use and Redistributing Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-
-1.A. By reading or using any part of this Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic work, you indicate that you have read, understand, agree to
-and accept all the terms of this license and intellectual property
-(trademark/copyright) agreement. If you do not agree to abide by all
-the terms of this agreement, you must cease using and return or
-destroy all copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in your
-possession. If you paid a fee for obtaining a copy of or access to a
-Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work and you do not agree to be bound
-by the terms of this agreement, you may obtain a refund from the
-person or entity to whom you paid the fee as set forth in paragraph
-1.E.8.
-
-1.B. "Project Gutenberg" is a registered trademark. It may only be
-used on or associated in any way with an electronic work by people who
-agree to be bound by the terms of this agreement. There are a few
-things that you can do with most Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-even without complying with the full terms of this agreement. See
-paragraph 1.C below. There are a lot of things you can do with Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works if you follow the terms of this
-agreement and help preserve free future access to Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works. See paragraph 1.E below.
-
-1.C. The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation ("the
-Foundation" or PGLAF), owns a compilation copyright in the collection
-of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works. Nearly all the individual
-works in the collection are in the public domain in the United
-States. If an individual work is unprotected by copyright law in the
-United States and you are located in the United States, we do not
-claim a right to prevent you from copying, distributing, performing,
-displaying or creating derivative works based on the work as long as
-all references to Project Gutenberg are removed. Of course, we hope
-that you will support the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting
-free access to electronic works by freely sharing Project Gutenberg-tm
-works in compliance with the terms of this agreement for keeping the
-Project Gutenberg-tm name associated with the work. You can easily
-comply with the terms of this agreement by keeping this work in the
-same format with its attached full Project Gutenberg-tm License when
-you share it without charge with others.
-
-1.D. The copyright laws of the place where you are located also govern
-what you can do with this work. Copyright laws in most countries are
-in a constant state of change. If you are outside the United States,
-check the laws of your country in addition to the terms of this
-agreement before downloading, copying, displaying, performing,
-distributing or creating derivative works based on this work or any
-other Project Gutenberg-tm work. The Foundation makes no
-representations concerning the copyright status of any work in any
-country other than the United States.
-
-1.E. Unless you have removed all references to Project Gutenberg:
-
-1.E.1. The following sentence, with active links to, or other
-immediate access to, the full Project Gutenberg-tm License must appear
-prominently whenever any copy of a Project Gutenberg-tm work (any work
-on which the phrase "Project Gutenberg" appears, or with which the
-phrase "Project Gutenberg" is associated) is accessed, displayed,
-performed, viewed, copied or distributed:
-
- This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and
- most other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no
- restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it
- under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included with this
- eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org. If you are not located in the
- United States, you will have to check the laws of the country where
- you are located before using this eBook.
-
-1.E.2. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is
-derived from texts not protected by U.S. copyright law (does not
-contain a notice indicating that it is posted with permission of the
-copyright holder), the work can be copied and distributed to anyone in
-the United States without paying any fees or charges. If you are
-redistributing or providing access to a work with the phrase "Project
-Gutenberg" associated with or appearing on the work, you must comply
-either with the requirements of paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 or
-obtain permission for the use of the work and the Project Gutenberg-tm
-trademark as set forth in paragraphs 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
-
-1.E.3. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is posted
-with the permission of the copyright holder, your use and distribution
-must comply with both paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 and any
-additional terms imposed by the copyright holder. Additional terms
-will be linked to the Project Gutenberg-tm License for all works
-posted with the permission of the copyright holder found at the
-beginning of this work.
-
-1.E.4. Do not unlink or detach or remove the full Project Gutenberg-tm
-License terms from this work, or any files containing a part of this
-work or any other work associated with Project Gutenberg-tm.
-
-1.E.5. Do not copy, display, perform, distribute or redistribute this
-electronic work, or any part of this electronic work, without
-prominently displaying the sentence set forth in paragraph 1.E.1 with
-active links or immediate access to the full terms of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm License.
-
-1.E.6. You may convert to and distribute this work in any binary,
-compressed, marked up, nonproprietary or proprietary form, including
-any word processing or hypertext form. However, if you provide access
-to or distribute copies of a Project Gutenberg-tm work in a format
-other than "Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other format used in the official
-version posted on the official Project Gutenberg-tm website
-(www.gutenberg.org), you must, at no additional cost, fee or expense
-to the user, provide a copy, a means of exporting a copy, or a means
-of obtaining a copy upon request, of the work in its original "Plain
-Vanilla ASCII" or other form. Any alternate format must include the
-full Project Gutenberg-tm License as specified in paragraph 1.E.1.
-
-1.E.7. Do not charge a fee for access to, viewing, displaying,
-performing, copying or distributing any Project Gutenberg-tm works
-unless you comply with paragraph 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
-
-1.E.8. You may charge a reasonable fee for copies of or providing
-access to or distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-provided that:
-
-* You pay a royalty fee of 20% of the gross profits you derive from
- the use of Project Gutenberg-tm works calculated using the method
- you already use to calculate your applicable taxes. The fee is owed
- to the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark, but he has
- agreed to donate royalties under this paragraph to the Project
- Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation. Royalty payments must be paid
- within 60 days following each date on which you prepare (or are
- legally required to prepare) your periodic tax returns. Royalty
- payments should be clearly marked as such and sent to the Project
- Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation at the address specified in
- Section 4, "Information about donations to the Project Gutenberg
- Literary Archive Foundation."
-
-* You provide a full refund of any money paid by a user who notifies
- you in writing (or by e-mail) within 30 days of receipt that s/he
- does not agree to the terms of the full Project Gutenberg-tm
- License. You must require such a user to return or destroy all
- copies of the works possessed in a physical medium and discontinue
- all use of and all access to other copies of Project Gutenberg-tm
- works.
-
-* You provide, in accordance with paragraph 1.F.3, a full refund of
- any money paid for a work or a replacement copy, if a defect in the
- electronic work is discovered and reported to you within 90 days of
- receipt of the work.
-
-* You comply with all other terms of this agreement for free
- distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm works.
-
-1.E.9. If you wish to charge a fee or distribute a Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic work or group of works on different terms than
-are set forth in this agreement, you must obtain permission in writing
-from the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the manager of
-the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark. Contact the Foundation as set
-forth in Section 3 below.
-
-1.F.
-
-1.F.1. Project Gutenberg volunteers and employees expend considerable
-effort to identify, do copyright research on, transcribe and proofread
-works not protected by U.S. copyright law in creating the Project
-Gutenberg-tm collection. Despite these efforts, Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works, and the medium on which they may be stored, may
-contain "Defects," such as, but not limited to, incomplete, inaccurate
-or corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other
-intellectual property infringement, a defective or damaged disk or
-other medium, a computer virus, or computer codes that damage or
-cannot be read by your equipment.
-
-1.F.2. LIMITED WARRANTY, DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES - Except for the "Right
-of Replacement or Refund" described in paragraph 1.F.3, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the owner of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm trademark, and any other party distributing a Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic work under this agreement, disclaim all
-liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including legal
-fees. YOU AGREE THAT YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE, STRICT
-LIABILITY, BREACH OF WARRANTY OR BREACH OF CONTRACT EXCEPT THOSE
-PROVIDED IN PARAGRAPH 1.F.3. YOU AGREE THAT THE FOUNDATION, THE
-TRADEMARK OWNER, AND ANY DISTRIBUTOR UNDER THIS AGREEMENT WILL NOT BE
-LIABLE TO YOU FOR ACTUAL, DIRECT, INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR
-INCIDENTAL DAMAGES EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH
-DAMAGE.
-
-1.F.3. LIMITED RIGHT OF REPLACEMENT OR REFUND - If you discover a
-defect in this electronic work within 90 days of receiving it, you can
-receive a refund of the money (if any) you paid for it by sending a
-written explanation to the person you received the work from. If you
-received the work on a physical medium, you must return the medium
-with your written explanation. The person or entity that provided you
-with the defective work may elect to provide a replacement copy in
-lieu of a refund. If you received the work electronically, the person
-or entity providing it to you may choose to give you a second
-opportunity to receive the work electronically in lieu of a refund. If
-the second copy is also defective, you may demand a refund in writing
-without further opportunities to fix the problem.
-
-1.F.4. Except for the limited right of replacement or refund set forth
-in paragraph 1.F.3, this work is provided to you 'AS-IS', WITH NO
-OTHER WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, INCLUDING BUT NOT
-LIMITED TO WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTABILITY OR FITNESS FOR ANY PURPOSE.
-
-1.F.5. Some states do not allow disclaimers of certain implied
-warranties or the exclusion or limitation of certain types of
-damages. If any disclaimer or limitation set forth in this agreement
-violates the law of the state applicable to this agreement, the
-agreement shall be interpreted to make the maximum disclaimer or
-limitation permitted by the applicable state law. The invalidity or
-unenforceability of any provision of this agreement shall not void the
-remaining provisions.
-
-1.F.6. INDEMNITY - You agree to indemnify and hold the Foundation, the
-trademark owner, any agent or employee of the Foundation, anyone
-providing copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in
-accordance with this agreement, and any volunteers associated with the
-production, promotion and distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works, harmless from all liability, costs and expenses,
-including legal fees, that arise directly or indirectly from any of
-the following which you do or cause to occur: (a) distribution of this
-or any Project Gutenberg-tm work, (b) alteration, modification, or
-additions or deletions to any Project Gutenberg-tm work, and (c) any
-Defect you cause.
-
-Section 2. Information about the Mission of Project Gutenberg-tm
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm is synonymous with the free distribution of
-electronic works in formats readable by the widest variety of
-computers including obsolete, old, middle-aged and new computers. It
-exists because of the efforts of hundreds of volunteers and donations
-from people in all walks of life.
-
-Volunteers and financial support to provide volunteers with the
-assistance they need are critical to reaching Project Gutenberg-tm's
-goals and ensuring that the Project Gutenberg-tm collection will
-remain freely available for generations to come. In 2001, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation was created to provide a secure
-and permanent future for Project Gutenberg-tm and future
-generations. To learn more about the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation and how your efforts and donations can help, see
-Sections 3 and 4 and the Foundation information page at
-www.gutenberg.org
-
-Section 3. Information about the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation
-
-The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation is a non-profit
-501(c)(3) educational corporation organized under the laws of the
-state of Mississippi and granted tax exempt status by the Internal
-Revenue Service. The Foundation's EIN or federal tax identification
-number is 64-6221541. Contributions to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation are tax deductible to the full extent permitted by
-U.S. federal laws and your state's laws.
-
-The Foundation's business office is located at 809 North 1500 West,
-Salt Lake City, UT 84116, (801) 596-1887. Email contact links and up
-to date contact information can be found at the Foundation's website
-and official page at www.gutenberg.org/contact
-
-Section 4. Information about Donations to the Project Gutenberg
-Literary Archive Foundation
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm depends upon and cannot survive without
-widespread public support and donations to carry out its mission of
-increasing the number of public domain and licensed works that can be
-freely distributed in machine-readable form accessible by the widest
-array of equipment including outdated equipment. Many small donations
-($1 to $5,000) are particularly important to maintaining tax exempt
-status with the IRS.
-
-The Foundation is committed to complying with the laws regulating
-charities and charitable donations in all 50 states of the United
-States. Compliance requirements are not uniform and it takes a
-considerable effort, much paperwork and many fees to meet and keep up
-with these requirements. We do not solicit donations in locations
-where we have not received written confirmation of compliance. To SEND
-DONATIONS or determine the status of compliance for any particular
-state visit www.gutenberg.org/donate
-
-While we cannot and do not solicit contributions from states where we
-have not met the solicitation requirements, we know of no prohibition
-against accepting unsolicited donations from donors in such states who
-approach us with offers to donate.
-
-International donations are gratefully accepted, but we cannot make
-any statements concerning tax treatment of donations received from
-outside the United States. U.S. laws alone swamp our small staff.
-
-Please check the Project Gutenberg web pages for current donation
-methods and addresses. Donations are accepted in a number of other
-ways including checks, online payments and credit card donations. To
-donate, please visit: www.gutenberg.org/donate
-
-Section 5. General Information About Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-
-Professor Michael S. Hart was the originator of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm concept of a library of electronic works that could be
-freely shared with anyone. For forty years, he produced and
-distributed Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks with only a loose network of
-volunteer support.
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks are often created from several printed
-editions, all of which are confirmed as not protected by copyright in
-the U.S. unless a copyright notice is included. Thus, we do not
-necessarily keep eBooks in compliance with any particular paper
-edition.
-
-Most people start at our website which has the main PG search
-facility: www.gutenberg.org
-
-This website includes information about Project Gutenberg-tm,
-including how to make donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation, how to help produce our new eBooks, and how to
-subscribe to our email newsletter to hear about new eBooks.
diff --git a/old/66382-0.zip b/old/66382-0.zip
deleted file mode 100644
index d1f7f0f..0000000
--- a/old/66382-0.zip
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/66382-h.zip b/old/66382-h.zip
deleted file mode 100644
index 2680cec..0000000
--- a/old/66382-h.zip
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/66382-h/66382-h.htm b/old/66382-h/66382-h.htm
deleted file mode 100644
index aaed8fe..0000000
--- a/old/66382-h/66382-h.htm
+++ /dev/null
@@ -1,13799 +0,0 @@
-<!DOCTYPE html PUBLIC "-//W3C//DTD XHTML 1.0 Strict//EN"
- "http://www.w3.org/TR/xhtml1/DTD/xhtml1-strict.dtd">
-<html xmlns="http://www.w3.org/1999/xhtml" xml:lang="en" lang="en">
- <head>
- <meta http-equiv="Content-Type" content="text/html;charset=utf-8" />
- <meta http-equiv="Content-Style-Type" content="text/css" />
- <title>
- A GIRL OF TO-DAY, by Ellinor Davenport Adams&mdash;A Project Gutenberg eBook
- </title>
- <link rel="coverpage" href="images/cover.jpg" />
- <style type="text/css">
-
-body {
- margin-left: 10%;
- margin-right: 10%;
-}
- h1,h2,h3 {
- text-align: center; /* all headings centered */
- clear: both;
-}
-
-p {
- margin-top: .51em;
- text-align: justify;
- margin-bottom: .49em;
-}
-
-hr {
- width: 33%;
- margin-top: 2em;
- margin-bottom: 2em;
- margin-left: 33.5%;
- margin-right: 33.5%;
- clear: both;
-}
-
-hr.tb {width: 45%; margin-left: 27.5%; margin-right: 27.5%;}
-hr.chap {width: 65%; margin-left: 17.5%; margin-right: 17.5%;}
-@media print { hr.chap {display: none; visibility: hidden;} }
-
-hr.r5 {width: 5%; margin-top: 1em; margin-bottom: 1em; margin-left: 47.5%; margin-right: 47.5%;}
-
-div.chapter {page-break-before: always;}
-h2.nobreak {page-break-before: avoid;}
-
-table {
- margin-left: auto;
- margin-right: auto;
-}
-
-td.hanging2 { /* hanging indent */
- text-indent: -1em;
- padding-left: 1em;
-}
-
-.pagenum { /* comment the next line for visible page numbers */
- visibility: hidden;
- position: absolute;
- left: 92%;
- font-size: smaller;
- text-align: right;
- font-style: normal;
- font-weight: normal;
- font-variant: normal;
-} /* page numbers */
-
-.blockquot {
- margin-left: 5%;
- margin-right: 10%;
-}
-
-.center {text-align: center;}
-
-.right {text-align: right;}
-
-.top {vertical-align: top;}
-
-.hanging2 {padding-left: 2em;
- text-indent: -2em;
- }
-
-.smcap {font-variant: small-caps;}
-
-.caption p {
- text-indent: 0;
- margin: 0.25em 0;
- font-size: smaller;
-}
-
-/* Images */
-
-img {
- max-width: 100%;
- height: auto;
-}
-
-img.w100 {width: 100%;}
-
-.figcenter {
- margin: auto;
- text-align: center;
- page-break-inside: avoid;
- max-width: 100%;
-}
-
-/* Poetry */
-.poetry-container {text-align: center;}
-.poetry {text-align: left; margin-left: 5%; margin-right: 5%;}
-/* uncomment the next line for centered poetry in browsers */
-/* .poetry {display: inline-block;} */
-.poetry .stanza {margin: 1em auto;}
-.poetry .verse {text-indent: -3em; padding-left: 3em;}
-/* large inline blocks don't split well on paged devices */
-@media print { .poetry {display: block;} }
-.x-ebookmaker .poetry {display: block;}
-
-/* Transcriber's notes */
-.transnote {background-color: #E6E6FA;
- color: black;
- font-size:smaller;
- padding:0.5em;
- margin-bottom:5em;
- font-family:sans-serif, serif; }
-
-img.drop-cap
-{
- float: left;
- margin: 0 0.5em 0 0;
-}
-
-p.drop-cap:first-letter
-{
- color: transparent;
- visibility: hidden;
- margin-left: -0.9em;
-}
-
-.x-ebookmaker img.drop-cap
-{
- display: none;
-}
-
-.x-ebookmaker p.drop-cap:first-letter
-{
- color: inherit;
- visibility: visible;
- margin-left: 0;
-}
-
-.upper-case
-{
- text-transform: uppercase;
-}
-
-/* Illustration classes */
-.illowp100, .illowp100a {width: 100%;}
-.illowp50 {width: 50%;}
-.x-ebookmaker .illowp50 {width: 100%;}
-.x-ebookmaker .illowp100a {width: 8em;}
-
-ul {
- text-indent: -1em; /*hanging indent*/
- padding-left: 2em;
- list-style-type: none; /* Remove bullets */
-}
-
-/* Poetry indents */
-.poetry .indent0 {text-indent: -3em;}
-.poetry .indent2 {text-indent: -2em;}
-.poetry .indent4 {text-indent: -1em;}
-
- </style>
- </head>
-<body>
-<p style='text-align:center; font-size:1.2em; font-weight:bold'>The Project Gutenberg eBook of A Girl of To-day, by Ellinor Davenport Adams</p>
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and
-most other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no restrictions
-whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it under the terms
-of the Project Gutenberg License included with this eBook or online
-at <a href="https://www.gutenberg.org">www.gutenberg.org</a>. If you
-are not located in the United States, you will have to check the laws of the
-country where you are located before using this eBook.
-</div>
-
-<p style='display:block; margin-top:1em; margin-bottom:1em; margin-left:2em; text-indent:-2em'>Title: A Girl of To-day</p>
- <p style='display:block; margin-top:1em; margin-bottom:0; margin-left:2em; text-indent:-2em'>Author: Ellinor Davenport Adams</p>
- <p style='display:block; margin-top:1em; margin-bottom:0; margin-left:2em; text-indent:-2em'>Illustrator: Gertrude Demain Hammond</p>
-<p style='display:block; text-indent:0; margin:1em 0'>Release Date: September 25, 2021 [eBook #66382]</p>
-<p style='display:block; text-indent:0; margin:1em 0'>Language: English</p>
- <p style='display:block; margin-top:1em; margin-bottom:0; margin-left:2em; text-indent:-2em; text-align:left'>Produced by: Juliet Sutherland, SF2001, and the Online Distributed Proofreading Team at https://www.pgdp.net</p>
-<div style='margin-top:2em; margin-bottom:4em'>*** START OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK A GIRL OF TO-DAY ***</div>
-
- <div class="figcenter illowp50" style="max-width: 28em;">
- <img class="w100" src="images/cover.jpg" alt="Cover" />
- </div>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_2">[Pg 2]</span></p>
-
-<div class="figcenter illowp50" id="i-002" style="max-width: 28em;">
- <img class="w100" src="images/i-002.png" alt="" />
- <div class="caption"><p>M432</p>
-<p class="center">“FRANCES CAUGHT SIGHT OF A DARK FIGURE ADVANCING.”</p></div>
-</div>
-
-</div>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_cat3">[Pg 3]</span></p>
-<h1>
-A GIRL OF TO-DAY
-</h1>
-<p class="center">
-BY<br />
-
-ELLINOR DAVENPORT ADAMS</p>
-
-<p class="center">Author of “Miss Secretary Ethel”, “Comrades True”, “Colonel Russell’s Baby”,
-“May, Guy, and Jim”, &amp;c.</p>
-<hr class="r5" />
-<p class="center">
-<i>WITH SIX ILLUSTRATIONS BY GERTRUDE DEMAIN HAMMOND, R.I.</i>
-</p>
-<hr class="r5" />
-<div class="figcenter illowp100a" id="colophon" style="max-width: 8em;">
- <img class="w100" src="images/colophon.png" alt="" />
-</div>
-
-<p class="center">
-LONDON<br />
-BLACKIE &amp; SON, <span class="smcap">Limited</span>, 50 OLD BAILEY, E.C.<br />
-GLASGOW AND DUBLIN<br />
-1899
-</p>
-</div>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_5">[Pg 5]</span>
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CONTENTS">CONTENTS.</h2>
-
-<table summary="Table of Contents">
-<tr><td class="right smcap">Chap.</td><td></td><td class="right smcap">Page</td></tr>
-<tr><td class="right">I. </td><td class="smcap"><a href="#CHAPTER_I"> Brother and Sister</a>, </td><td class="right"> 9</td></tr>
-<tr><td class="right">II. </td><td class="smcap"><a href="#CHAPTER_II"> Boys and Girls together</a>, </td><td class="right"> 24</td></tr>
-<tr><td class="right">III. </td><td class="smcap"><a href="#CHAPTER_III"> Adventurers Four</a>, </td><td class="right"> 36</td></tr>
-<tr><td class="right">IV. </td><td class="smcap"><a href="#CHAPTER_IV"> Rowdon Smithy</a>, </td><td class="right"> 53</td></tr>
-<tr><td class="right">V. </td><td class="smcap"><a href="#CHAPTER_V"> Doctor Max</a>, </td><td class="right"> 65</td></tr>
-<tr><td class="right">VI. </td><td class="smcap"><a href="#CHAPTER_VI"> Music and Mumming</a>, </td><td class="right"> 82</td></tr>
-<tr><td class="right">VII. </td><td class="smcap"><a href="#CHAPTER_VII"> Photographers Abroad</a>, </td><td class="right"> 103</td></tr>
-<tr><td class="right">VIII. </td><td class="smcap"><a href="#CHAPTER_VIII"> Jim East</a>, </td><td class="right"> 124</td></tr>
-<tr><td class="right">IX. </td><td class="smcap"><a href="#CHAPTER_IX"> Frances Falters</a>, </td><td class="right"> 150</td></tr>
-<tr><td class="right">X. </td><td class="smcap"><a href="#CHAPTER_X"> Trouble at Elveley</a>, </td><td class="right"> 165</td></tr>
-<tr><td class="right">XI. </td><td class="smcap"><a href="#CHAPTER_XI"> The Head of the House</a>, </td><td class="right"> 186</td></tr>
-<tr><td class="right">XII. </td><td class="smcap"><a href="#CHAPTER_XII"> A Gentleman-Blacksmith</a>, </td><td class="right"> 209</td></tr>
-<tr><td class="right">XIII. </td><td class="smcap"><a href="#CHAPTER_XIII"> “Missy</a>”, </td><td class="right"> 222</td></tr>
-<tr><td class="right">XIV. </td><td class="smcap"><a href="#CHAPTER_XIV"> Mrs. Holland’s Trio</a>, </td><td class="right"> 239</td></tr>
-<tr><td class="right">XV. </td><td class="smcap"><a href="#CHAPTER_XV"> Polly’s Deliverer</a>, </td><td class="right"> 256</td></tr>
-<tr><td class="right">XVI. </td><td class="smcap"><a href="#CHAPTER_XVI"> Wanted&mdash;A Nice Somebody</a>, </td><td class="right"> 269</td></tr>
-<tr><td class="right">XVII. </td><td class="smcap"><a href="#CHAPTER_XVII"> Lessing of Lessing’s Creek</a>, </td><td class="right"> 274</td></tr>
-<tr><td class="right">XVIII. </td><td class="smcap"><a href="#CHAPTER_XVIII"> To the Far South</a>, </td><td class="right"> 283</td></tr>
-</table>
-</div>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_6">[Pg 6]</span></p>
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_7">[Pg 7]</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="ILLUSTRATIONS">ILLUSTRATIONS.</h2>
-</div>
-<table summary="Table of Illustrations">
-<tr><td class="smcap hanging2"></td><td class="right smcap"> Page</td></tr>
-<tr><td class="smcap hanging2 top"><a href="#i-002">“Frances caught sight of a dark figure advancing”</a>, </td><td class="right"> <i>Frontis.</i> 123 </td></tr>
-<tr><td class="smcap hanging2"><a href="#i-058">“The old man leaned forward suddenly to scan the speaker’s face”</a>, </td><td class="right"> 58 </td></tr>
-<tr><td class="smcap hanging2"><a href="#i-091">“A story we bring you from Faëry Land”</a>, </td><td class="right"> 91 </td></tr>
-<tr><td class="smcap hanging2"><a href="#i-197">“Nay, Elizabeth,” said Jim kindly, “there’s no need for locking up”</a>, </td><td class="right"> 197 </td></tr>
-<tr><td class="smcap hanging2"><a href="#i-269">“The figure moved, rose, came forward with the painful caution of dreary suspense”</a>, </td><td class="right"> 269 </td></tr>
-<tr><td class="smcap hanging2"><a href="#i-283">“Ah! but you would make such a mistake if you thought we would let you go”</a>, </td><td class="right"> 283 </td></tr>
-</table>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_8">[Pg 8]</span></p>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_9">[Pg 9]</span></p>
-<div class="figcenter illowp100" id="i-009" style="max-width: 28em;">
- <img class="w100" src="images/i-009.png" alt="" />
-</div>
-</div>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="A_GIRL_OF_TO-DAY">A GIRL OF TO-DAY.</h2>
-
-<hr />
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_I">CHAPTER I.<br />
-<small>BROTHER AND SISTER.</small></h2>
-
-<div>
- <img class="drop-cap" src="images/drop-h.png" width="100" height="113" alt="" />
-</div>
-
-<p class="drop-cap"><span class="upper-case">
-Here</span> you are, then, Sis! Here you are&mdash;at
-last!”</p>
-
-<p>The final words, spoken in a tone of complete
-satisfaction, accompanied a daring
-dive of hand and arm through the open window of the
-still moving railway-carriage.</p>
-
-<p>“You ridiculous boy! We are only five minutes
-behind time!” Frances seized the intruding hand in
-a firm grip; and, as the train stopped, leaned out of
-the window to bestow a sisterly hug. “Its good to
-see you, dear! How brown and jolly you look! The
-country agrees with you, Austin; I thought it would.”</p>
-
-<p>“Well, I don’t know. It was fearfully slow here at
-first, after Allerton. Of course, now&mdash;. Oh, come
-along, Frances! I’ve heaps to tell you, once we’re on
-the road. I wouldn’t bring the trap, because I wanted
-time for a good talk all to ourselves; and I knew the
-mile walk from the station to Woodend wouldn’t
-frighten you. Toss out the parcels! I suppose you’ve<span class="pagenum" id="Page_10">[Pg 10]</span>
-a few dozen. What, only one? Hallo! they’ve taught
-you something at school.”</p>
-
-<p>Frances nodded her head reflectively. “Much you
-know about that yet, my son. Wait awhile, and I’ll
-enlighten you!”</p>
-
-<p>Delivering herself of this promise,&mdash;which was
-received by the boy with an impudent little shrug,&mdash;the
-girl sprang to the platform in a style strongly
-suggestive of past triumphs in her school gymnasium,
-and then proceeded to catch her brother by the
-shoulders and give him what she called “a proper
-look-over”.</p>
-
-<p>Austin stood the examination well. Though slightly
-built, he was broad of chest and straight of limb; his
-blue eyes were bright and clear; and the weakness of
-his mouth was usually discounted by the sunny smile
-which readily parted his lips. Nearly three years
-younger than his sister, and accustomed to look to
-her for companionship, guidance, and encouragement,
-Austin had found the months of their separation so
-real a trial that his joy in their present meeting was
-particularly demonstrative. He remembered in a flash
-of thought half a score of promising projects which
-had been allowed to lapse until Frances should come
-home from Haversfield College. And now Frances
-was here in front of him, and surveying him with the
-steady gray eyes he knew and truly loved&mdash;Frances
-herself, no whit spoiled by her two terms at the famous
-school for girls, though in Austin’s mind there had
-lurked some fears of long skirts, hair “done up”, and&mdash;worse
-than all!&mdash;airs of condescending superiority
-and adult wisdom.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_11">[Pg 11]</span></p>
-
-<p>Frances did not look at all grown-up. She was just
-a healthy, happy lass of barely fourteen years; frankly
-preferring short frocks to long ones, and in no haste
-for the time when hair-dressing should become a
-troublesome solemnity. So far, life had made small
-demands on her individuality. At home, she had
-known no special duty except the care of Austin, who
-had been rather delicate in early childhood; at school,
-she had been one of many, fairly successful in her
-work, more than fairly successful at games and bodily
-exercises, and perhaps showing promise chiefly in a
-susceptibility to all those influences which tend to
-widen a young girl’s sympathies and draw out her
-intelligence. Frances had been fortunate in her recent
-experience&mdash;Haversfield is an excellent nursery for
-the best kind of girlhood. Its many house-mistresses
-are chosen by the Principal with extreme care; and
-Frances had been under the charge of Miss Cliveden,
-a clever, cultivated, and liberal-minded woman, whose
-training was quite as valuable for heart as for head.
-The brightest-witted, most thoughtful, and most
-generous pupils of Haversfield were proud to call
-themselves “Miss Cliveden’s girls”.</p>
-
-<p>“Is Mamma all right?” inquired Frances, releasing
-her brother after a little satisfied shake.</p>
-
-<p>“Right as she can be. Ten deep in tea-drinkings,
-and particular friends with all the world. No, not
-with all the world&mdash;with the most particular world
-of Woodend. She’s ‘At Home’ this afternoon, you
-know. First and third Thursdays, and all that
-twaddle&mdash;”</p>
-
-<p>“Austin!” laughed Frances, faintly reproachful.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_12">[Pg 12]</span></p>
-
-<p>“Well, it is! Fancy a lot of women staring at
-each other over tea-cups and cake, and two odd men
-tripping about among the crew and wishing themselves
-at Kamschatka!”</p>
-
-<p>“Who are the two?”</p>
-
-<p>“Any tame sparrows caught in the trap.”</p>
-
-<p>“You ought to watch them, and learn what you’ve
-to grow up to.”</p>
-
-<p>“Catch me!”</p>
-
-<p>“But Mamma is well?” persisted Frances. “And
-she likes Woodend, and her new house&mdash;you’re sure?”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, I suppose so!” exclaimed Austin, showing signs
-of impatience.</p>
-
-<p>“She left Allerton for your sake, and I think you
-ought to remember that.”</p>
-
-<p>“Don’t preach!”</p>
-
-<p>“Don’t you be ridiculous,” said Frances sharply.
-“I’ve no patience with boys who call every sensible
-word ‘preaching’.”</p>
-
-<p>“I’ve no patience with girls who are everlastingly
-‘sensible’.”</p>
-
-<p>Frances’s frowns vanished, and smiles came instead.
-Her sisterly prerogative of “preaching” was so seldom
-exercised that Austin usually took her mild rebukes
-like a lamb. His laugh echoed hers just now, and
-he gave an affectionate hug to the arm he clung to.
-Brother and sister were walking at a good pace along
-the straggling white road to the village.</p>
-
-<p>“Never mind, Sis. You shall preach as much as
-you like&mdash;to-day. And Mater is really all right&mdash;she
-must be. She has loads of friends already.”</p>
-
-<p>“Loads! In a tiny place like this!” commented<span class="pagenum" id="Page_13">[Pg 13]</span>
-Frances, gazing about her. On either hand stretched
-the green meadows, watered by brooks filled with
-recent rain; in front, the country spread smiling and
-serene under the brilliant sun of late July. Immediately
-before them, the road dipped into a shallow
-wooded valley, studded on both sides with houses of
-every degree. Farther off, above the trees of Fencourt
-Park (the home of Woodend’s chief landlord), could be
-descried the broken ridges of Rowdon Common. All
-these interesting facts were duly pointed out by Austin,
-with the justifiable airs and pride of a resident; while
-Frances, as a new-comer, merely listened or asked
-sagacious questions.</p>
-
-<p>“That’s where we hang out,” remarked the boy
-elegantly, while waving his hand towards a long,
-picturesquely-built house on the opposite side of the
-valley. “It’s a tidy crib, with lots of room.”</p>
-
-<p>“A crib&mdash;with lots of room! A pretty confusion of
-terms, young man.”</p>
-
-<p>“I’ve bagged a jolly place for larks,” continued
-Austin eagerly. “There’s a stove in it and a splendid
-big table, and a bath-room next door, which will just
-do for our photography.”</p>
-
-<p>The boy’s face, uplifted to his sister’s, was full of
-the happy enthusiasm which feels itself secure of
-sympathy; and Frances’s heart beat high with pleasure
-because her welcome home was of this joyful
-sort. For the absent school-girl, like her brother, had
-known some fears&mdash;lest the six months’ parting should
-have taught Austin to do without her. The boy had
-proved a poor correspondent; and it was not easy for
-Frances with her warm, unselfish temperament, to<span class="pagenum" id="Page_14">[Pg 14]</span>
-realize that unanswered letters did not necessarily
-signify failing affection.</p>
-
-<p>“That’s the church&mdash;it’s splendid for photographing,
-if only one could get the lines of the tower straight.
-And there’s the rectory alongside. The Rector’s very
-old; but a good sort, like the curate.”</p>
-
-<p>“The curate is Mr. Carlyon, your tutor, isn’t he?
-Oh, Austin, do you like having lessons with him?”
-asked Frances, with intense interest. Her reverence
-for knowledge had grown of late, and she wanted,
-not unnaturally, to find out whether in this direction
-Austin’s steps had progressed with her own.</p>
-
-<p>“I like it well enough. You see,” he added awkwardly,
-“I’m not exactly a grind; one must use one’s
-wits, but I think mine go best with my hands. Only,
-Carlyon was a swell at Oxford, and he’s got a way of
-making one think one wouldn’t mind being a swell
-too.”</p>
-
-<p>Frances looked relieved and quite contented.</p>
-
-<p>“Then he knows a straight ball when he sees one,”
-Austin continued, “and he’s a crack with his bat.
-Then when lessons are on, he doesn’t drone away everlastingly
-about dead-and-gone chaps. There’s one of
-his cranks we all approve of, somehow.”</p>
-
-<p>“What is it?”</p>
-
-<p>“We’ve half an hour every day for what he chooses
-to call ‘current events’. Carlyon tells us what’s
-going on in the world, reads bits out of papers and
-talks them over, and gives marks to the fellows who
-remember best.”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, Austin! I hope you get most marks!” interrupted
-Frances, with the utterly unreasonable ambition<span class="pagenum" id="Page_15">[Pg 15]</span>
-of a sister. Austin felt that he was wanting, and
-replied grumpily:</p>
-
-<p>“Hang it, I’d like to know what chance I have!
-The other chaps hear things at home. Mater won’t
-let me look at a paper, and never talks to me about
-what she reads herself.”</p>
-
-<p>“Never mind,” said Frances, “I’ll hunt out the news
-for you, and read the things up, and send you off all
-ready crammed. I shall like doing it.”</p>
-
-<p>“I know you will,” groaned Austin. “I say,
-Frances, you’ll shine like the sun at our ‘symposia’&mdash;I
-hope you like that pretty word, Ma’am!”</p>
-
-<p>“What are your symposia?” chuckled Frances, beginning
-to think Woodend couldn’t be so much behind
-Haversfield itself.</p>
-
-<p>“Why, on Saturday mornings Carlyon takes his
-boys, and his sister takes her girls, and we’ve a meeting
-in the big rectory dining-room. Then the lot of us
-talk like fits about those blessed ‘current events’
-our respected teachers have been driving into us all
-the week. It’s prime fun, once we get started.
-Carlyon and his sister do the starting. When they’re
-on opposite sides, we’ve rare larks; for they pitch into
-one another like mad&mdash;quite civilly, you know. Then
-we chaps and Miss Carlyon’s crew follow suit, and go
-for one another in fine style. Gracious! You should
-have heard Max Brenton and Florry Fane last Saturday!
-It was our breaking-up day, and we had an
-extra grand symposium. Max and Florry are no end
-good at argufying.”</p>
-
-<p>Frances heard the names of these friends of Austin
-with the pleasant anticipations natural to a sociable<span class="pagenum" id="Page_16">[Pg 16]</span>
-girl just about to make trial of a new home, new
-surroundings, new companions. She hoped this “Max
-and Florry” would be “good” for something besides
-“argufying”&mdash;good for comradeship of the only kind
-possible to a nature whose characteristics were deep-rooted
-and strong. Half-hearted alliances were outside
-Frances’s comprehension; her love and trust must
-be given freely and fully, or not at all.</p>
-
-<p>“In her last letter Mamma told me I was to be one
-of Miss Carlyon’s girls after the holidays. That will
-seem funny at first, now that I have got used to a big
-school. It was nice at Haversfield, Austin. I want
-to stay with Mamma and you, of course, else I should
-like to go back. Miss Cliveden&mdash;my house-mistress&mdash;was
-so jolly. She used to make one feel as if one
-wanted to be of some good, if one could.”</p>
-
-<p>“You can be of lots of good here,” said Austin
-comfortably. “It’s no sense a fellow having a sister
-if she’s away at school. Max says if he had a sister
-he’d think himself lucky, for she would be able to
-teach him how to make a bed properly. That’s a
-thing he often needs to do for his worst cases, and he
-does not quite understand it.”</p>
-
-<p>“What do you mean?”</p>
-
-<p>Austin declined to explain. At the moment he was
-too much occupied with his own affairs to have leisure
-for Max’s. He was eager to convince Frances that
-she could be of supreme use to him personally; and
-Frances, before whose eyes had lately gleamed a
-vision of a wider range for her girlish energies,
-listened, and sympathized, and promised, as only the
-best of sisters could. She was quite sure that Austin<span class="pagenum" id="Page_17">[Pg 17]</span>
-wanted her most of all. He always had wanted her,
-and she never had disappointed him.</p>
-
-<p>They had been brought up together, and educated
-by the same governesses and tutors until a few months
-before this story opens. Then Austin’s childish delicacy
-had for the first time threatened to become
-serious, and his mother had carried him off to London
-for distinguished medical advice. For years Mrs.
-Morland’s home had been in Allerton, a large provincial
-town to which she had first been attracted
-because it was the dwelling-place of an old friend,
-who had since passed away. The London doctors
-recommended a country life for Austin; and, after
-some weeks of search for a suitable spot, Mrs. Morland
-fixed on Woodend, a village which had everything
-desirable in the way of soil, air, and scenery. Her
-household gods were removed from Allerton to Woodend
-in the course of a bright April, and she and her
-son settled down in the pretty home she had bought
-and furnished.</p>
-
-<p>During all this time of unrest, Frances had been
-quietly at work at Haversfield, where she had been
-sent in order that her education might not be interrupted.
-She had spent the Easter holidays with a
-school friend, because at the time her mother was
-superintending the removal to Woodend, and Austin
-was paying a visit to a Scotch cousin.</p>
-
-<p>If Mrs. Morland had guessed under what influences
-her daughter would come, she certainly would not have
-sent her to Haversfield. Not only had she no regard
-for the “learned lady”, but she set no value at all
-upon the womanly accomplishments which were unable<span class="pagenum" id="Page_18">[Pg 18]</span>
-to secure social prestige. Miss Cliveden’s definition of
-“society” would have astonished Mrs. Morland; and
-her gospel of labour, preached with her lips and in
-her life, would have seemed to Frances’s mother
-uniquely dull and quixotic.</p>
-
-<p>Miss Cliveden taught her girls to love work, to love
-it best when done for others, and to reverence all
-work truly and faithfully accomplished. The nobility
-of honest labour was her favourite theme, and the
-allurements of altruistic toil the highest attraction she
-could hold out to her young scholars. As her pupils
-were all in the upper forms of the college, Frances
-was one of the youngest of them, and Miss Cliveden
-took a great liking for the frank-hearted, winning
-lass. Thrown chiefly among the elder girls, Frances
-soon caught their spirit and shared their ambitions,
-while remaining in ways and thoughts a thorough
-child.</p>
-
-<p>By the time Mrs. Morland was comfortably settled
-in Woodend, she began to grow tired of petting and
-coddling a wayward, restless boy. Scotland and the
-country air had brought Austin back to fair health,
-and his bright eyes and rosy cheeks assured his mother
-that her sacrifice had not been in vain. Mrs. Morland
-loved ease of mind and body. She thought it time
-her boy should return to his lesson-books, and that
-Frances&mdash;so soon as her second term at Haversfield
-should be over&mdash;should come home to help him.</p>
-
-<p>The terms of his father’s will had decreed that
-Austin should be educated privately. Mr. Morland had
-disliked public schools. His wife regretted the social
-disadvantage, but could not overrule her husband’s<span class="pagenum" id="Page_19">[Pg 19]</span>
-decision; and she began to face the trouble of looking
-out for a new tutor. Before she had looked long, she
-discovered that Mr. Carlyon, the young curate of
-Woodend church, took pupils; and Austin became one
-of them for the greater part of the summer term.</p>
-
-<p>“What sort of place is Woodend?” asked Frances.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, well&mdash;nice enough. Some jolly fellows among
-the boys, and plenty of girls to match. I dare say
-you’ll like Florry Fane, anyhow. She has lots of
-pluck, and doesn’t bounce, though she’s no end clever.
-Then there’s roly-poly Betty Turner&mdash;and May Gordon&mdash;and
-the First Violin.”</p>
-
-<p>“Who’s the First Violin?”</p>
-
-<p>“We’ve a boys’ and girls’ band, and she’s the leader.
-Everybody calls her the First Violin. She hardly
-moves without her fiddle; and she <i>can</i> play.”</p>
-
-<p>“What about your fiddle? Haven’t you joined the
-band, lazy imp?”</p>
-
-<p>“Had to; Miss Carlyon wouldn’t let me off. Besides,
-it’s good fun. We’ve a master to train us, and he
-gives me lessons alone as well. I practise sometimes,”
-added Austin hastily, “so you needn’t worry.”</p>
-
-<p>Frances felt on this golden afternoon even less inclined
-than usual to “preach”, so she let the fiddle
-pass.</p>
-
-<p>“Are there any poor folks in the village?” she inquired.</p>
-
-<p>“Crowds!&mdash;at least, Max says so. He’s always
-abusing Sir Arthur Fenn&mdash;chap who lives at Fencourt,
-the biggest place about. That’s to say, Fencourt
-and most of Woodend belong to him; but he’s hardly
-ever here. He’s got a grander place somewhere, and<span class="pagenum" id="Page_20">[Pg 20]</span>
-that’s why he doesn’t care much about this one, and
-won’t do much for the people.”</p>
-
-<p>“What a shame!”</p>
-
-<p>“I don’t know,&mdash;they’re such a rough lot, no decent
-folk would want to go near them.”</p>
-
-<p>“I should!” declared Frances warmly. “I’d love to
-try to help people who were very poor and miserable.”</p>
-
-<p>“Gracious!” cried Austin, laughing merrily. “I
-declare, you’re as bad as Max. He’ll show you the
-way about, if you want to be mixed up in charity
-soup and blankets!”</p>
-
-<p>“Why!&mdash;what should a boy know about such
-things?” said Frances, laughing too.</p>
-
-<p>“Max isn’t <i>a</i> boy, as you’ll soon discover. He’s <i>the</i>
-boy. The one and only Max Brenton. My grammar
-doesn’t amount to much, but I know Max is of the
-singular number.”</p>
-
-<p>“Who is he?”</p>
-
-<p>“He’s the son of Doctor Brenton&mdash;the one and only
-son of the one and only doctor!”</p>
-
-<p>“Is Dr. Brenton as singular as Max?”</p>
-
-<p>“More so, my dear!&mdash;yes, if possible, more so!” returned
-Austin, grimacing expressively. “You see,
-they’ve brought each other up, and it’s sort of mixed
-which is which. So they’re ‘the old Doc’ and ‘the
-young Doc’ to all Woodend,&mdash;and a jolly good sort
-they both are!” continued the boy heartily. “If Max
-weren’t always so fearfully busy, he’d be the chummiest
-chum a fellow could want.”</p>
-
-<p>“What is he so busy about?” asked Frances, enjoying
-the description of this mysterious Max.</p>
-
-<p>“Why&mdash;soup and blankets!”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_21">[Pg 21]</span></p>
-
-<p>“Nonsense!”</p>
-
-<p>“Fact.”</p>
-
-<p>“You are a provoking scamp!”</p>
-
-<p>“Respected student of distinguished Haversfield
-(as Florry would say), if you put me on to construe
-for an hour I couldn’t ‘render into tolerable English’
-the sayings and doings of Max Brenton&mdash;the one and
-only Max Brenton! He’s not to be understood. You
-must just take him as you find him; and if you don’t
-meet him to-day, hope you’ll come across him to-morrow.
-And now, don’t you want to know if the
-tennis-court is in good order, and if you’re going to
-have cake for tea?”</p>
-
-<p>Frances laughed, and yielded herself up to home
-matters. For a time the brother and sister exchanged
-question and answer at a great rate, and held a lively
-discussion as to the possibilities of Elveley. Austin
-was full of talk about his chosen playroom and its
-entrancing conveniences. Frances planned the arrangement
-of cunning nooks for her personal possessions,
-and promised to give her whole mind to the study of
-photography, until she had solved the problems presented
-by the camera which had been a present to
-Austin from the Scotch cousin.</p>
-
-<p>The young pair chuckled and chattered like magpies,
-and were so deep in their concerns that a boy, coming
-at full speed round a corner from the village, almost
-ran into them before he attracted their attention.</p>
-
-<p>“Hallo!” cried Austin, “there’s Max!”</p>
-
-<p>“The one and only Max?”</p>
-
-<p>“No other. What’s in the wind now? Small-pox
-or scarlet-fever?”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_22">[Pg 22]</span></p>
-
-<p>“How fast he runs!”</p>
-
-<p>“Max hardly ever walks&mdash;he hasn’t time. Hi!
-Hallo!”</p>
-
-<p>Austin slipped his hand from Frances’s arm, dived
-adroitly on one side, and managed to catch his friend
-in headlong course.</p>
-
-<p>“Hallo!” panted Max, in return. “So sorry, old
-chap; I didn’t see it was you.” He disengaged himself
-and stepped with outstretched hand towards Austin’s
-sister. “And this is Miss Frances?” he continued,
-smiling frankly.</p>
-
-<p>“Rather!” remarked Austin, with a certain gracious
-condescension, as becomes one whose sister is of the
-right sort to make sisterless fellows envious. “I’ve
-been telling her what a singular number you are;
-and she wants to go shares in your soup-and-blanket
-business.”</p>
-
-<p>“It’s awfully jolly of her,” said Max, who had meanwhile
-exchanged with Frances a comrade’s grasp. “We
-wanted some more girls badly in Woodend.”</p>
-
-<p>“Humph!” said Austin slyly.</p>
-
-<p>“At all events, we wanted <i>a</i> girl,” insisted Max.</p>
-
-<p>“Frances isn’t <i>a</i> girl, she’s <i>the</i> girl; the one and
-only Frances, who will soon be the sworn ally of the
-one and only Max.”</p>
-
-<p>“All the better for me!” laughed Max. “Will you
-really, though, Miss Frances?”</p>
-
-<p>“I’d like to,” replied the girl, smiling at this busy
-boy’s pleasant, eager face.</p>
-
-<p>“I’ll hold you to it,” declared Max. “I must say
-good-bye, for see here!”</p>
-
-<p>Laughing heartily, Max tapped his bulging pockets.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_23">[Pg 23]</span></p>
-
-<p>“What is it?” inquired Frances.</p>
-
-<p>“Pills and potions!&mdash;so I must cut!” He lifted his
-cap, sang out a gay farewell, and was off at his former
-excellent pace.</p>
-
-<p>“What a nice boy!” exclaimed Frances, still beaming.
-“At least, of course I don’t know much about him yet,
-but he looks nice.”</p>
-
-<p>“He’s a good sort,” said Austin again, with emphasis.</p>
-
-<p>“Why does he carry his father’s medicines? Hasn’t
-Dr. Brenton a proper person&mdash;?”</p>
-
-<p>“Max thinks he is a proper person.”</p>
-
-<p>“What does he do about them when he’s at school?”</p>
-
-<p>“He doesn’t come to school, except for a few hours
-in the week. He learns classics and mathematics
-with us&mdash;his father has taught him the rest. Dr.
-Brenton couldn’t possibly get on all day without Max.
-You’ll soon understand why. Now, Frances, we’ll be
-in Woodend directly. I hate crawling down a hill
-when I’m hot, so I’m going full pelt till I get to the
-bottom of this one. Don’t you hurry. I’ll wait for
-you there.”</p>
-
-<p>“Will you, though?” demanded Frances with scorn.
-And Austin’s last fears about the effects of Haversfield
-vanished when his sister darted forward, overtook
-him easily, passed him triumphantly, and made her
-entry into Woodend at a speed which showed no
-concern either for her sailor-hat or her dignity.</p>
-
-<p>“I said she was <i>the</i> Frances!” murmured Austin, as
-with a great affectation of indifference he jogged along
-behind.</p>
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_24">[Pg 24]</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_II">CHAPTER II.<br />
-<small>BOYS AND GIRLS TOGETHER.</small></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p>Though he counted the Doctor’s son as first and
-chief, Austin undoubtedly had plenty of friends;
-and since the time of his coming to Woodend he had
-done his best to prepare the way for Frances by industriously
-singing her praises. The young people who
-had managed hitherto to exist in the village without
-either Austin or Frances might have been severely
-bored but for the agreeable curiosity roused by Austin’s
-descriptions of his absent sister. The Woodend boys
-were really anxious to make the acquaintance of so
-remarkable a girl. The Woodend lassies, having a
-good opinion of Austin, were willing to expect great
-things of Austin’s sister. Both boys and girls indulged
-the hope that the new-comer into their little world
-might rouse in it some pleasant stir.</p>
-
-<p>They knew that they needed badly a stimulus of
-some sort to give fresh energy to their rather monotonous
-lives. They had their games and pastimes,
-like other youngsters; but these suffered in attraction
-for want of competition. The cricket-team and tennis-club
-rarely found rivals with whom they might contend
-in honourable warfare. Woodend was not exactly
-remote; but it had a special population of upper-class
-residents, who loved its pure air and fine scenery, and
-had no neighbours of like tastes and habits in the
-villages near at hand. The young folks played and
-worked contentedly enough among themselves as a<span class="pagenum" id="Page_25">[Pg 25]</span>
-rule; but they were growing just a little tired of each
-other, and there was nobody to lead.</p>
-
-<p>The girls&mdash;poor things!&mdash;were in worst case. The
-boys, when they had turned fourteen or fifteen, were
-usually sent to a public school. The girls remained at
-home, with so much time on their hands that they
-could not even enjoy the luxury of being idle&mdash;it was
-too common an experience.</p>
-
-<p>The Carlyons&mdash;Edward and Muriel&mdash;were working,
-in part, a reformation. Edward Carlyon, Master of
-Arts of Oxford University, had established a small
-private school for boys; Muriel Carlyon, sometime
-student of Girton College, and graduate of London,
-had done as much for the girls. The Woodend
-youngsters of good degree flocked to Wood Bank,&mdash;formerly
-the home of an artist,&mdash;where Edward taught
-his boys in the big, dismantled studio, and Muriel
-consecrated a couple of fair-sized rooms to her girls.
-The coming of Austin Morland, who, though only in
-his twelfth year, had a certain talent for leadership,
-had waked up the boys’ schoolroom, and plans for
-the summer holidays had been more ambitious than
-usual.</p>
-
-<p>Frances could not do anything striking for the
-girls’ schoolrooms at present, since they were shut, and
-their presiding genius was away from home. But
-Austin’s sister, finding herself welcomed in a fashion
-which showed how unstinted had been Austin’s recommendations,
-was determined to do her best to
-justify his loyalty. She was soon the happy potentate
-of an acquiescent kingdom, and honestly anxious to
-make good use of her unexpected influence. Besides<span class="pagenum" id="Page_26">[Pg 26]</span>
-being the leader in every frolic, she tried to interest
-herself in everybody’s hobbies and everybody’s fancies.</p>
-
-<p>Most of her new friends belonged to one or other of
-the many juvenile organizations which now make a
-real effort&mdash;whose value may be appreciated by social
-economists of a later date&mdash;to concern themselves in
-the welfare of the poor and suffering. Frances had
-caught from her elder comrades at Haversfield a
-girlish enthusiasm for this kind of toil. She threw
-herself warmly into the diversions of Florry Fane’s
-set&mdash;who could understand poetry, dabble in oil and
-water colours, and write stories. She dressed dolls for
-Betty Turner’s hospital box, she collected butterflies
-and beetles with Guy Gordon, she studied rabbits
-with Frank Temple, she joined the Children’s Orchestra
-and was a great admirer of the First Violin.</p>
-
-<p>But the best of Frances’s heart went into her promised
-alliance with Max Brenton. Max was the
-blithest boy in all Woodend, by far the busiest and
-the most popular. Even Austin Morland, bright of
-face and gay of manner as was the lad, could not, and
-would not, have stepped into the place filled by Max.
-Meet the Doctor’s son when and where you might, you
-were bound to feel happier for having done so.</p>
-
-<p>Elveley was the largest house in Woodend proper;
-it possessed ample garden ground, and neat outbuildings
-in the rear. Its possessor had usually been the
-person of most importance in the village, and thus the
-coming of the new owner had been awaited with
-curiosity. Mrs. Morland had been at some pains to
-send in advance her credentials as to family and
-position. She was a woman who placed extravagant<span class="pagenum" id="Page_27">[Pg 27]</span>
-value on social esteem, and she had voluntarily stunted
-her intelligence and narrowed her views for fear of
-perilling her own prestige by shocking any antique
-prejudice in her neighbours. She had not much sympathy
-with the special affairs of childhood; but when
-she turned aside from her individual interests to see
-how matters went with her boy and girl, she generally
-found reason for complacency.</p>
-
-<p>Now that she had settled in Woodend, it was in
-harmony with her wishes and instincts that Frances
-should be to the girls such a leader as Mrs. Morland
-had become to their elders, and that Austin’s careless
-good-humour should assure his popularity. If her
-children had been dull and commonplace, she would
-have felt herself an injured person. Because they
-were neither, she was ready to be indulgent and compliant.
-They had plenty of pocket-money, and were
-seldom refused a petition; and though they rarely
-spent with their mother more than an hour or so in
-the day, their food and clothing were carefully attended
-to by responsible people, and their education
-was the best within reach. Frances and Austin were
-not aware that they missed anything; and they
-nourished for their mother a love which, if it depended
-rather on tradition than on fact, was sufficiently real
-to make their home dear and fairly bright.</p>
-
-<p>The big playroom in Mrs. Morland’s delightful old
-house soon became the headquarters of every juvenile
-institution. Cricket, football, and tennis clubs kept
-their archives in its table-drawers; its shelves harboured
-a choice lending-library, contributed to by
-every owner of a story-book; its corners saw the<span class="pagenum" id="Page_28">[Pg 28]</span>
-hatching of every plot, harmless or mischievous.
-Further, it was within its walls that Frances&mdash;intent
-at first only on aiding Max, but with wider ambition
-by and by&mdash;founded and maintained her prosperous
-club, the Woodend Society of Altruists.</p>
-
-<p>“I hope the name is fine enough,” remarked Austin
-critically.</p>
-
-<p>“You don’t think it sounds priggish?” inquired
-Frances in alarm. “It’s what the Haversfield girls
-called their club, and I thought we might just copy.”</p>
-
-<p>“Of course, it’s a first-rate name,” declared Max
-kindly.</p>
-
-<p>“What are Altruists?” asked in humble tones a
-small and rosy-cheeked boy.</p>
-
-<p>“They are only people who try to help others,”
-replied Frances; and this simple explanation, given
-with a gentle sincerity of voice and manner, seemed
-to satisfy everybody. Indeed, everybody present at a
-fairly representative meeting of the Woodend young
-folks became an Altruist on the spot.</p>
-
-<p>“What have we got to do?” said the rosy-cheeked
-boy anxiously.</p>
-
-<p>“Sign our names in the book of the Society and
-keep the rules,” said Florry Fane. “Frances must
-sign hers first, because she’s the founder of the club.”</p>
-
-<p>“Florry and I have written down the rules we
-thought might do,” said Frances modestly, “Florry
-is going to read them out, and then if any boy or girl
-will suggest improvements we shall be very much
-obliged.”</p>
-
-<p>But nobody wished to improve the excellent rules
-drawn up by Frances and Florry. The words in which<span class="pagenum" id="Page_29">[Pg 29]</span>
-the Altruist Code was expressed were few, and so well
-chosen that no careless member could pretend either
-to have forgotten or to have misunderstood.</p>
-
-<p>In becoming an Altruist everybody undertook to do
-his or her very best to lighten the loads of dwellers
-within or without the gates of happy Woodend homes.
-This was an ambitiously comprehensive scheme, but
-nothing less thorough would suit Frances and her
-allies. Nor did they intend that their new club
-should exist only on paper; and so their rules provided
-that by appropriate deeds alone could a continued
-membership be ensured.</p>
-
-<p>The boys and girls were so truly in want of a fresh
-sensation to give zest to their holiday hours that they
-were in some danger of riding their new hobby-horse
-to death. The Altruists grew in number and flourished
-exceedingly. They found their parents ready with
-approval and support; and when they had passed
-through an embryo stage of rash philanthropic excitement,
-they settled down into a capital club, whose
-motto of “Help Others” was something more than a
-vain boast. Of course the new Society must have
-funds&mdash;how otherwise provide for necessary outlay?
-Members loyally sacrificed a percentage of pocket-money,
-which was liberally reinforced&mdash;at the instigation
-of Mrs. Morland&mdash;by adult subscriptions. The
-mothers of young Altruists searched their cupboards
-for old linen, blankets, and clothing, wherewith to
-start the Society’s stores. The fathers promised that
-appeals for fruit and flowers should have their best
-consideration. Dr. Brenton sent word through Max
-that he would accept as a “gratis” patient any sick<span class="pagenum" id="Page_30">[Pg 30]</span>
-person tended and cared for by an Altruist. Mrs.
-Morland, well pleased that Frances should enjoy the
-prestige owing to a founder, sent for a carpenter, and
-desired him to make any alterations the children might
-order, with the view of rendering their playroom satisfactory
-Headquarters for their club.</p>
-
-<p>As soon as the Carlyons came home, Muriel was
-waited on by a deputation of her girls, who wanted
-her to be Honorary President of the Altruists. Miss
-Carlyon was very ready to agree, and to give Frances
-credit for a really bright idea.</p>
-
-<p>“I don’t see why your club shouldn’t do ever such
-great things for the Woodend poor folk,” declared
-Muriel warmly. “I shall be proud to be one of you,
-and so will my brother; and you must count on us for
-all the help we can give.”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, Miss Carlyon!” said Frances shyly, “we
-thought perhaps we might just help <i>you</i>&mdash;a little.”</p>
-
-<p>“We’ll help each other, dear. And then we shall be
-Altruists among ourselves. I can assure you, I think,
-besides being useful, we shall be very jolly.”</p>
-
-<p>And so it proved. None of the club meetings were
-more spirited or more mirthful than those at which
-the Honorary President made her appearance; and the
-frequent presence of Edward Carlyon encouraged his
-boys to stand firmly by the Society, and to lose all fear
-that they were “benevolent prigs”, as they had been
-called by Jack Shorter. Jack was the only one of
-Carlyon’s boys who had possessed sufficient unamiability
-to remain outside the club. At last, finding
-himself sent to Coventry, Jack repented and became
-an embarrassingly active Altruist.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_31">[Pg 31]</span></p>
-
-<p>When the Wood Bank schoolrooms opened their
-doors for the autumn term, it was discovered that the
-Carlyons intended their support to be anything but
-“honorary”. They had fitted up a large basement
-room as a workshop for various handicrafts, and there
-the boys and girls learned to make all sorts of things
-for the Society’s stores. Out of doors, a shed held all
-kinds of necessary tools, and the young folks studied
-practical gardening, with intent to aid such villagers
-as might own neglected plots. Sewing-meetings produced
-a wonderful collection of garments, new and
-renovated, which helped to fill Frances’s clothing-cupboard.
-The juvenile choir and orchestra made free
-offers of their services; and lads and lassies with a
-talent for “reading and recitation” were in enormous
-request.</p>
-
-<p>Frances’s days were busy and happy. She enjoyed
-her school-work with Muriel Carlyon, a teacher of the
-class to which she had grown accustomed at Haversfield.
-Muriel’s system of teaching was not without
-originality; and her love of outdoor occupations hindered
-her from possessing the traditional characteristics
-of a blue-stocking. Her brother Edward was a
-muscular, well-built young Englishman, whose college
-triumphs had not prevented respectable attainments
-with scull and bat. The Carlyons took a lively interest
-in their pupils, whom they treated and trained with a
-success which would have astonished primmer pedagogues.
-Their boys and girls trooped to school together,
-and often measured wits or muscles in their class-rooms
-or their play-grounds. Thus their friendships
-were closer and more sympathetic than those of lads<span class="pagenum" id="Page_32">[Pg 32]</span>
-and lassies usually are. They learned to appreciate
-one another’s tastes and dispositions, and to sacrifice
-individual whims to the common good.</p>
-
-<p>Autumn drifted into winter with the coming of a
-bleak November. Football and hockey were in full
-swing in the playing-fields. The little ones had built
-their first snow-man; and the rubbing and oiling of
-skates followed careful studies of the barometer. The
-youngsters were now in some danger of forgetting the
-duties of their Society. Their time had suddenly
-assumed an incalculable value.</p>
-
-<p>It was at this stage of affairs that Max Brenton one
-day made his appearance at the door of the club-room,
-wherein sat Frances busily posting up the Society’s
-accounts.</p>
-
-<p>“If you please,” began Max in a great hurry, “may
-I have a blanket, two flannel petticoats, a three-year-old
-frock, and a pair of very large old boots?”</p>
-
-<p>Frances wrinkled her forehead. “I’m sorry we
-have no flannel petticoats left, owing to a great
-demand. I can manage the other things, except the
-boots. We are quite out of very large boots. Couldn’t
-one of you boys learn shoemaking?”</p>
-
-<p>“I fancy that would be a little rough on the village
-cobbler.”</p>
-
-<p>“But the cobbler will do nothing he is not paid for;
-and poor folks cannot always pay. It would be very
-useful to have a shoemaker of our very own. We
-could buy our leather and make it into enormous
-boots. Gentleman-boots are really hardly any good
-to us.”</p>
-
-<p>“That’s true. But, please, may I have the things?<span class="pagenum" id="Page_33">[Pg 33]</span>
-And I will try my best to persuade somebody to learn
-shoemaking.”</p>
-
-<p>Frances rose, and stepped thoughtfully towards her
-cupboard. Thence, after some searching, she extracted
-a tiny garment of crimson serge, warmly lined and
-neatly finished. To this she added two pairs of knitted
-socks of the same cheerful hue.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, I say!” exclaimed Max, radiant. “May I really
-have these awfully swell things? You girls are
-bricks!”</p>
-
-<p>“You boys helped to buy the stuff. I’m glad you
-like the colour,” continued Frances graciously, “because
-at the last sewing-meeting of our Society we
-decided that for the future all the clothing we make
-shall be scarlet or crimson, if it can be. It was Florry
-Fane’s idea. She said it would be ‘the badge of all
-our tribe’. We shall be able to tell our pensioners
-the moment we see them. For instance, next time I
-meet the little child who is to have this frock, I shall
-think, ‘There goes an Altruist baby!’”</p>
-
-<p>“I see. And next time I come across a hoary old
-chap to whom you’ve given a crimson comforter, I
-shall say, ‘There goes an Altruist antediluvian!’”</p>
-
-<p>“Well,” laughed Frances, “suppose you do? You’ll
-allow that our colour is becoming. It’s bright and
-picturesque; and by and by, when we’ve given away
-lots of crimson things, think how gay Woodend will
-look.”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, it will! As soon as a visitor reaches the
-favoured spot, he’ll cry, ‘Hullo! here’s an Altruist
-village!’”</p>
-
-<p>“I hope he may. Now, tell me whom these things<span class="pagenum" id="Page_34">[Pg 34]</span>
-are for, because I must put the names down in our
-clothing book.”</p>
-
-<p>Max, remembering certain private labours of his own,
-gazed in admiration at Frances’s neat records.</p>
-
-<p>“The frock is for Polly Baker, child of Joseph
-Baker, a dweller in Lumber’s Yard, and sometime a
-tiller of the fields.”</p>
-
-<p>Frances paused, her pen uplifted, and a serious
-expression on her face.</p>
-
-<p>“But, Max, Miss Carlyon says the Altruists oughtn’t
-to help people who won’t help themselves. That
-Joseph Baker is a lazy, selfish, good-for-nothing.”</p>
-
-<p>“I know the gentleman. You’ve described him
-mildly.”</p>
-
-<p>“And Mr. Carlyon has got him work over and over
-again, but he always loses it.”</p>
-
-<p>“No wonder, the drunken scamp!” muttered Max
-under his breath.</p>
-
-<p>“He is as bad as he can be.”</p>
-
-<p>“True, dear Madam Altruist. But that isn’t the
-fault of his daughter Polly, aged three.”</p>
-
-<p>“Still, if Baker finds he can get his children fed
-and clothed for nothing, he will go on spending all his
-money in that dreadful inn in Lumber’s Yard.”</p>
-
-<p>“He will go on doing that anyhow. Mr. Carlyon
-isn’t easily beaten, but he has given up Joseph Baker,
-Esquire. Meanwhile, Baker’s children would starve
-if it were not for charity. Frances, Polly is such a
-game little thing! You wouldn’t believe how she
-stands up to her brute of a father when she sees him
-ill-treat her mother. I’ve delivered her out of Baker’s
-clutches more than once.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_35">[Pg 35]</span></p>
-
-<p>Frances gazed at the speaker, her eyes widely-opened
-and horrified.</p>
-
-<p>“Max! You don’t mean he would hurt that baby?”</p>
-
-<p>“Wouldn’t he? Doesn’t he, if he gets the chance?
-He’s a&mdash;a&mdash;beast! Beg pardon!”</p>
-
-<p>“It’s fearful!” sighed Frances, pausing perforce on
-the threshold of the social problem which had risen
-before her. “He ought to be punished.”</p>
-
-<p>“He will be, when I’m big enough to thrash him,”
-murmured Max; and Frances turned a face flushed
-with sympathy to this chivalrous lad. “But don’t let
-us punish our Altruist baby.”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, Max! When you wheedle&mdash;,” said the Altruist
-secretary, shaking her head. “Here are your things,
-and you must be responsible. Now, in return for your
-pleasant news about Baker, I’ll tell you something
-really nice. I have added up our funds, and I find we
-have quite a lot of money; so I am getting ready a
-list of ‘wants’, and to-morrow we will have a shopping
-expedition. We girls shall need large supplies of
-scarlet flannel and crimson serge to make into clothing
-for our Christmas presents. You boys are sure to
-require things for your workshops. We will take the
-pony-carriage and drive into Exham. As to-morrow
-will be Saturday, not many Altruists will care to leave
-the playing-fields; but you will come, won’t you,
-Max?”</p>
-
-<p>“If Dad doesn’t want me.”</p>
-
-<p>“And there will be Austin and Florry&mdash;four of us.
-You and Austin can get the things for your own
-work while Florry and I buy yards and yards of
-flannel and serge and calico.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_36">[Pg 36]</span></p>
-
-<p>“Will there be room for us boys in the trap coming
-home?” inquired Max meekly. “I’d like to know
-whether, if the cargo weighs down the pony, you mean
-to sacrifice us or the flannel?”</p>
-
-<p>“You, of course!”</p>
-
-<p>“Then I’d better bring provisions for camping out.
-There’s a fall of the barometer, and all the village
-weather-prophets tell me we are to have snow; besides,
-there’s some rough road between here and
-Exham. Look out for storms to-morrow, Frances!
-Now, I’ll be off with my booty. Baker sold to a
-fellow-cad the last frock I begged for Polly; but I’ll
-dare him to touch this beauty. Keep your eyes open,
-and they’ll be gladdened by the sight of the Altruist
-baby!”</p>
-
-<p>Max went away happy. All his father’s poor
-patients enjoyed his personal attentions, and not a
-few considered the Doctor’s son as good an adviser as
-the Doctor himself. Max tried to be discreet, but his
-boyish habit of telling the unvarnished truth to any
-village sneak or bully sometimes brought him into
-awkward predicaments.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_III">CHAPTER III.<br />
-<small>ADVENTURERS FOUR.</small></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p>Surely only youth and health would look forward
-with glorious anticipations to a five-mile drive
-on a bitter winter day, in a little open carriage!</p>
-
-<p>The four adventurous Altruists were certain they<span class="pagenum" id="Page_37">[Pg 37]</span>
-were going to enjoy themselves, and no sooner were
-they fairly on their way than they began to justify
-their own predictions. For the sake of extra excitement,
-they took it in turns to drive; but it was impossible
-for them to take it in turns to talk, so they all
-chattered at once. This did not help the driving,
-which was mixed in character. Nobody could quite
-tell, as the ribbons changed hands, what might be the
-next diversion; and, of course, this uncertainty was
-the best part of the fun. At last the pony settled,
-under the capable guidance of Florry, into a steady
-trot; and the Altruists settled, at the same propitious
-moment, into a steady discussion of their proposed
-Christmas feast for the Woodend villagers.</p>
-
-<p>This feast had been for some weeks under consideration
-at the Society’s meetings, and the arrangement of
-its details was far advanced. The Altruists intended
-that it should be a grand manifesto of their good-will
-to all the working-folk.</p>
-
-<p>“We are to have a present for everybody,” declared
-Austin loudly, “and we boys must do our share. I
-am making my third stool. No one can say that
-stools are not useful things in cottages.”</p>
-
-<p>“But they will not furnish a house,” objected Max;
-“and I want very badly a complete rig-out for a two-roomed
-shanty. I have a man on my list who was
-sold up last week by his Jew of a landlord&mdash;old Fenn.
-Poor Johnson was a decent chap, but when they turned
-him out he just went to the bad.”</p>
-
-<p>“He can’t have gone very far in a week,” remarked
-Austin, who had not taken kindly the allusion to his
-handiwork.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_38">[Pg 38]</span></p>
-
-<p>“He went to Fenn’s Home Farm, and tried to burn
-the ricks. Fortunately he didn’t succeed; and when
-Dad heard he was to be taken up, we went and begged
-Johnson off. We’re going bail for him, that if they’ll
-let him alone he’ll keep straight; and Dad has got him
-some rough work in the gardens. But his wife and
-child had to go to the workhouse; and now the idea
-is to start them all afresh in one of Ventnor’s little
-places. They’ll want only a few things to begin with.
-What do you say, Frances? Shall we give him one
-of Austin’s stools for a Christmas-box?”</p>
-
-<p>“Something else as well,” said Frances, beaming on
-her ally.</p>
-
-<p>“I don’t mind making him an extra big stool, which
-might do for a table,” said Austin graciously.</p>
-
-<p>“Guy is mending-up some old chairs,” said Frances.</p>
-
-<p>“Mamma will let me have one of her patchwork-carpets,”
-said Florry. “She makes them out of odd
-pieces begged from friends, and they are quite warm
-and cheerful.”</p>
-
-<p>“Mrs. Temple offered me an old bedstead and bedding
-only the other day,” cried Frances. “How
-fortunate for poor Johnson! I’ll ask Mamma for a
-chest of drawers.”</p>
-
-<p>“And the Altruists as a body can easily produce a
-‘harlequin’ set of plates and cups and dishes,” said
-Florry.</p>
-
-<p>“I have some spare pots and pans in my stores,”
-added Frances proudly. “I declare, Max, your friend
-sha’n’t wait till Christmas to set up housekeeping!”</p>
-
-<p>“You are all awfully kind,” said Max gratefully.
-The boy’s eyes were actually moist, and he hung his<span class="pagenum" id="Page_39">[Pg 39]</span>
-head; but in a moment had recovered sufficiently to
-shout in vigorous crescendo:</p>
-
-<p>“Your reins are crossed, Florry! Mercy on us,
-we’re in the ditch!”</p>
-
-<p>They were not quite there, thanks to the pony’s
-objections to lead the way. Rough pulled his head
-free indignantly, and was allowed to steer his own
-course in peace.</p>
-
-<p>The Altruist quartette presently arrived safely in
-Exham. Max, who was then the whip, made for a
-respectable inn, where the travellers left the much-enduring
-Rough to take a rest, while they attended
-to business.</p>
-
-<p>“Ladies, do we have the honour of accompanying
-you?” asked Austin, with a grand bow; “or do we go
-off on our own hook?”</p>
-
-<p>“As though we would take you two imps into shops
-with us!” said Frances. “Go and buy your things
-and we’ll get ours, then we can meet at Thorn’s and
-have tea. Thorn is our confectioner, and Mamma said
-we might order what we liked.”</p>
-
-<p>“Good for Mater,” chuckled Austin. “But in the
-meantime, can you girls really do without us?”</p>
-
-<p>“We’ll try to,” said Frances severely; “and mind
-you scamps keep out of mischief. Come on, Florry.”</p>
-
-<p>The girls linked arms and marched off, affecting the
-superior and independent airs so tantalizing to the best
-of boys. Max and Austin watched their departure
-with mischievous eyes.</p>
-
-<p>“They’re too cocky for anything,” declared Austin.</p>
-
-<p>“I believe they’ll buy up all the red stuff in Exham,”
-said Max. “Observe the lofty tilt of Florry’s head.<span class="pagenum" id="Page_40">[Pg 40]</span>
-Mark the aggressive decision of Frances’s step. They’ll
-conquer or die!”</p>
-
-<p>“I say, Max,” giggled irreverent Austin, “let’s tag
-on to them a bit. Our shopping won’t be a scrap of
-fun. We’ve just to leave an order at the timber-yard,
-and call in at the ironmonger’s for nails and screws and
-a few other things. Frances has disappeared into that
-big draper’s, and there goes Florry after her. Let’s
-get through our timber business, and then have a lark
-with the girls. We’ll make the counter-Johnnies sit
-up.”</p>
-
-<p>“Won’t Frances be wild?”</p>
-
-<p>“Not she!&mdash;come on, Max!” Away went the pair,
-arm in arm, with the mincing steps they intended as
-an imitation of their comrades’ sedate town manners.</p>
-
-<p>Frances could bear a good deal, but her soul quailed
-when her eyes lighted on the figures of the two boys
-stealing up the shop in the wake of a frock-coated
-person, of whom they had just inquired where they
-should discover “the young ladies who were buying
-up the establishment’s entire stock of red flannel”.</p>
-
-<p>“We have not yet finished our business,” remarked
-Austin, while he seated himself with easy grace on an
-offered chair; “but we could not resist peeping in as
-we passed to see how you girls were getting on.”</p>
-
-<p>“We have not finished either,” said Frances, regarding
-her brother’s demure face uneasily. “We have
-bought our crimson serge and our calico, but we still
-want scarlet flannel and red knitting-wool. Also
-tapes, buttons, hooks, cottons, and needles.”</p>
-
-<p>“I have bought a bradawl and a pound of French
-nails,” said Austin gravely. “I am yet in need of a<span class="pagenum" id="Page_41">[Pg 41]</span>
-yard-measure, a few miles of string, some boot-buttons,
-a shaving-strop, and a packet of tin-tacks.”</p>
-
-<p>“For my part,” said Max, “I require a lawn-mower,
-a type-writer, a bottle of blacking, and a pork-pie.”</p>
-
-<p>“With these few necessaries,” added Austin, “we
-hope to complete the persecuted Johnson’s start in
-housekeeping. And&mdash;Timbuctoo! I’d nearly forgotten
-his wife’s mangle!”</p>
-
-<p>“A stool and a blanket to be thrown in promiscuous,”
-said Max; “and a few yards of crimson stuff
-for a table-cover would be received with thanks. Ah!
-and we have secured a very nice jam-pot for an ink-bottle.
-Further suggestions gratefully acknowledged.”</p>
-
-<p>“When you boys try to be funny the result is sad,”
-said Frances, feeling her dignity compromised by the
-mirth on the cadaverous countenance of the shop-assistant,
-who had left off serving her in order to
-appreciate the young gentlemen’s sallies. “Come,
-Florry,” continued the ruffled damsel, “let’s try Mason’s
-for the flannel: Miss Carlyon said it was good
-there.”</p>
-
-<p>The petrified assistant, seeing that the stern eyes of
-a superior hard-by were fixed on him, glanced appealingly
-at the boys, but Miss Morland kept sedately on
-her path to the door.</p>
-
-<p>“Won’t he get a wigging!” laughed unrepentant
-Austin, following humbly in the rear. “I say, Max,
-this establishment will lose the Altruist custom. I
-back Mason’s for scarlet flannel!”</p>
-
-<p>But Max was inclined to think the joke weak, and
-positively refused to peril the receipts of the draper
-across the road. Instead, he dragged off Austin to<span class="pagenum" id="Page_42">[Pg 42]</span>
-transact legitimate business; and the ironmonger had
-the benefit of their wit and wisdom for the next few
-minutes.</p>
-
-<p>The girls were chattering briskly as they came out
-of Mason’s.</p>
-
-<p>“It was a splendid bargain,” declared Frances, who,
-as an administrator of charity funds, had taken her
-first lessons in economy. “Fifty yards of scarlet
-flannel for fifty shillings! Did you see what a heap
-more they had of it? The man said it was ‘a manufacturer’s
-stock’.”</p>
-
-<p>“I love manufacturers’ stocks!” ejaculated Florry.</p>
-
-<p>“So do I, when they’re Altruist flannel,” said Frances
-fervently. “Now we had better go to meet the boys
-at Thorn’s. Poor boys! they have had no delicious
-bargains. Perhaps it is a little dull buying nails. I
-wish I hadn’t been huffy with Austin; boys hate prim,
-fussy sisters. I’ll tell you what, Florry, we’ll make it
-up to the poor things. We shall get first to Thorn’s,
-and we’ll order all the goodies they like best. Max
-prefers jam-sandwiches, and Austin likes méringues;
-and they’re both fearfully fond of very plummy cake.
-Thorn’s cake is capital.”</p>
-
-<p>The girls walked on rapidly, and made, as they went,
-plans for the sumptuous entertainment of the boys.</p>
-
-<p>“We’ll heap coals of fire on their heads,” said Florry.
-“They will be torn by an anguished repentance.
-Here we are. Look at those lovely chocolates in the
-window!”</p>
-
-<p>“Let’s have loads of chocolates.”</p>
-
-<p>“I like chocolate-almonds the best,” said Florry
-pensively; “they are superb.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_43">[Pg 43]</span></p>
-
-<p>“The boys like toffy and hardbake and Turkish-delight.
-Do you know, Florry, I read in a tiresome
-book that the real Turkish-delight isn’t a bit like the
-English one! Wasn’t it horrid of the author to say
-so? I’ve never really enjoyed it since.”</p>
-
-<p>“It was cruel.”</p>
-
-<p>“And both Max and Austin love Scotch shortbread.”</p>
-
-<p>“Perhaps Scotch shortbread isn’t a bit like the
-English.”</p>
-
-<p>“It isn’t,” said Frances contemptuously; “but you
-can get the real thing at Thorn’s. Let’s go in. I don’t
-see the boys anywhere, so we shall have time to
-order a beautiful tea for them&mdash;jam-sandwiches, and
-méringues, and plummy cake, and shortbread, and
-toffy, and hardbake, and Turkish-delight. Oh! and
-Bath-buns and gingerbread. I should like a little
-bread-and-butter. The boys think it is not worth
-while to have any bread-and-butter when they are
-out for a lark.”</p>
-
-<p>Frances pushed open the glass door and entered.
-“Florry,” she whispered, “do make haste into the side-room
-and secure the nicest table. Stay! I’ll come too;
-and if we lay a few parcels down nobody will steal our
-chairs. We must have the table next the window,
-it’s such fun watching the carriages and people in the
-street. We can come back to do our ordering.”</p>
-
-<p>The girls advanced boldly to take by storm (if
-necessary) the chosen spot.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh! I say! What&mdash;!”</p>
-
-<p>The most popular table in Thorn’s private tea-room
-was already occupied. On two of the four chairs in
-front of it sat Max and Austin, bolt upright, their<span class="pagenum" id="Page_44">[Pg 44]</span>
-countenances wearing an expression of almost seraphic
-calm. The table was covered with good things. The
-girls looked, and saw jam-sandwiches, méringues, plum-cake,
-shortbread, Bath-buns, gingerbread, and a little&mdash;a
-very little&mdash;bread-and-butter. Glass sweetmeat
-dishes contained chocolate-creams, chocolate-almonds,
-toffy, hardbake, and Turkish-delight. Max mounted
-guard over a laden tea-tray.</p>
-
-<p>No sooner did they behold the astonished faces of
-their comrades than the boys rose, and with their finest
-company manners offered the best places to the girls.</p>
-
-<p>“Ladies,” said Austin, “we hurried here that we
-might have time to order a most beautiful tea for you.
-We have done our utmost. You see before you all the
-goodies you like best; and we have not even forgotten
-that Frances has a weakness for bread-and-butter.”</p>
-
-<p>“Or that Florry adores chocolate-almonds.”</p>
-
-<p>“We wished to show you,” said Austin, “that we bear
-no malice.”</p>
-
-<p>“We wished,” said Max, “to heap coals of fire on
-your heads.”</p>
-
-<hr class="tb" />
-
-<p>The November day had drawn on to dusk before
-Frances could persuade herself and the others that it
-was time to start for home. The boys were despatched
-to fetch the pony-carriage, and requested to call on
-their way back for the biggest parcels, which would be
-awaiting them at the drapers’ shops. Frances and
-Florry summoned a smiling waitress, and asked her to
-fill some bags with the numerous goodies left from
-the feast.</p>
-
-<p>“For the boys are sure to be hungry again before we<span class="pagenum" id="Page_45">[Pg 45]</span>
-reach home,” said Frances. “Snow has been falling for
-the last hour; and we shall have to drive cautiously
-along the country lanes, they are so dark. And poor
-Rough is not properly shod for the snow yet.”</p>
-
-<p>The girls, with their bags and parcels, were standing
-ready at the door of the confectioners, and looking out
-with amused and interested faces as the boys drove
-up.</p>
-
-<p>“I say,” cried Max, “it’s a good thing we brought lots
-of rugs and wraps&mdash;we’re in for a storm.”</p>
-
-<p>“Really a storm, Max?” inquired Frances, feeling
-that she ought to provide prudence for the party.
-“Do you think we shall get home all right with just
-Rough? Oughtn’t we to leave him here and hire a
-proper horse and carriage from the hotel?”</p>
-
-<p>“It might be safer,” admitted Max, “but it would be
-awfully slow.”</p>
-
-<p>“I’m going to drive Rough,” said Austin promptly,
-“come with me who will.”</p>
-
-<p>“I will,” cried Florry, whose eyes sparkled at the
-prospect of the mildest adventure.</p>
-
-<p>“I’ll go with Frances,” said Max quietly.</p>
-
-<p>“We’ll all go together,” decided Frances, satisfied
-with her virtuous suggestion. “Max had better drive,
-though; he knows the roads so well.”</p>
-
-<p>The four packed themselves and their parcels tightly
-into the trap. Rough was already tossing his head in
-disgust with the rapidly-falling snow-flakes, which were
-driven by a bitter north wind into his eyes and ears,
-half-blinding him, and tickling him unpleasantly.
-The boys had proposed that the girls should take the
-front seat, because they would then have the wind<span class="pagenum" id="Page_46">[Pg 46]</span>
-behind them; but Frances insisted on giving her place
-to Austin, who was subject, when he caught cold, to a
-bad kind of sore throat.</p>
-
-<p>The snow, which in the streets of Exham partially
-melted on the ground, already lay thickly on the country
-roads, where it froze as it fell. The pony-carriage had
-hardly turned into the narrow lanes leading in the direction
-of Woodend before the youngsters found that the
-storm, prophesied by Max, was on them. The snow
-was hurled at their heads by a cutting blast, which
-flung the heavy white flakes into deep drifts at the
-sides of the roads most exposed to it. The pace had
-to be very slow and the driving very careful; but
-Max’s attention was lured from his duty as charioteer
-when the merry talk of his companions invited him
-to join their discussions. The quartette were still
-warm and cosy among their rugs, and they were enjoying
-the faint trace of danger which gave zest to their
-adventurous journey.</p>
-
-<p>Rough was not enjoying himself at all. The boys
-had strapped a small blanket over him, but this was
-not much of a protection from a winter storm. At
-length he came to a full stop at the foot of a hill,
-which he greatly objected to tackle with a carriage-load
-behind him. The young people took the hint,
-and sprang out. They were in a sheltered road, with
-trees overhead; but half-way up the hill some branches,
-brittle with frost, were snapped by the gale and blown
-down into the lane. One of the boughs struck Frances,
-another fell on Rough. Neither girl nor pony was
-hurt, but both might have been.</p>
-
-<p>“Hallo!” called out Max, “that was no joke! I<span class="pagenum" id="Page_47">[Pg 47]</span>
-have known serious accidents from falling branches.
-We had better avoid these lanes bordered by great
-trees, and choose the more open roads. You know
-there are two ways to Woodend. The one by Rowdon
-Common is a little further round, but it will be safer
-both for Rough and for us.”</p>
-
-<p>“Then we’ll take it,” said Frances; “for though you
-might get on all right without me if another bough
-came in my direction, I don’t know how you would
-manage without Rough.”</p>
-
-<p>They climbed the rest of the hill, and then again
-settled themselves in the trap. A little further on,
-Max took the turning whence he could guide Rough
-home by the longer route. And now troubles began
-to descend on our Altruists. First, Rough turned
-sulky, and tried to loiter, refusing to respond heartily
-even when the whole quartette shouted encouragement;
-because he knew very well the quickest route
-to Woodend. Next, the carriage-candles began to
-flicker in a manner promising speedy extinction.</p>
-
-<p>“Goodness!” murmured Austin, when this second
-fact was obvious to the party. “The stable-boy told
-me the candles were very short, and wanted to put in
-new ones; but I was in such a hurry, I said they
-would just do.”</p>
-
-<p>There was a chorus of reproachful groans.</p>
-
-<p>“Suppose we put out one of the lights?” suggested
-sensible Florry. “If we burn the two separately,
-they’ll last longer.”</p>
-
-<p>Even this ingenious resource did not greatly prolong
-the time during which the pony and Max were
-able to see their way. When the second candle failed<span class="pagenum" id="Page_48">[Pg 48]</span>
-him, the driver pulled up, and peered forward into
-the darkness.</p>
-
-<p>“If you could see me, my friends,” he remarked
-ruefully, “you would notice that I am looking serious.”</p>
-
-<p>“Then perhaps it’s just as well that the light of
-your countenance has gone out with the candles, Max,”
-said Florry. “If you could see us, you would know
-that we are not particularly cheerful.”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, come!” cried Austin, “let’s keep up our spirits
-somehow. What are you going to do, Max?”</p>
-
-<p>“Lead Rough!” laughed the other boy. “I ought
-to know ‘every foot of the ground’, as people say; but
-it’s only when folks are out in a blinding snowstorm
-on a pitch-dark evening that they discover the shakiness
-of their geography. However, I know we must
-soon turn to the right, and then keep on straight up
-another hill to Rowdon Common. Our road borders
-the Common for half a mile, and then branches off
-downhill again. Once we are clear of the Common,
-we shall be all right.”</p>
-
-<p>They were not to reach that condition very easily.
-Max led Rough onward, and found the necessary turning
-to the right; and along the uphill road the youngsters
-all walked, to lighten the pony’s burden, until
-Frances took alarm on Austin’s account. After much
-persuasion she induced the boy to get back into the
-trap, and Florry to go with him to spare his pride.
-She and Max trudged on side by side. Presently
-both observed that Rough showed signs of distress.
-Though close to the little animal they could hardly
-see him, but they could hear his laboured breathing.</p>
-
-<p>“Hallo! he is going rather lame,” said Max. “Surely<span class="pagenum" id="Page_49">[Pg 49]</span>
-he can’t have had a stone in his shoe all this time?
-We’ll stop and find out.... Why! this is worse than
-a stone&mdash;he has lost a shoe!”</p>
-
-<p>There was nothing to be done now, except to let the
-pony go at his own pace, and keep him to the side
-of the road where the snow lay thinnest. At a very
-leisurely rate the party journeyed up the remainder of
-the hill, Rough stumbling badly every now and then.</p>
-
-<p>“Here we are, at last!” sighed Max, as the road
-again became level, and the increased severity of the
-storm, reaching them across the high, open country,
-told the travellers that they were on the edge of
-Rowdon Common. “We have a rough stone wall on
-one side of us now, and a pretty wide ditch on the
-other; so we must jog along carefully.”</p>
-
-<p>Max and Frances both decided to go on walking;
-and Florry, after whispering persuasions to Austin,
-joined them, in order to relieve Rough a little more.</p>
-
-<p>Poor Austin’s temper suffered from his indignation
-at this attempt on the girls’ part to “coddle” him.
-The liveliest recollections of his latest bad throat never
-sufficed to keep him out of danger if he possibly could
-get into it. Max and his companions just then halted
-for a moment under lee of the wall, intending to give
-Rough a breathing-time; and Austin, in a fit of impatience,
-seized the reins as they hung loose, and tugged
-them heedlessly.</p>
-
-<p>The culprit’s ill-temper vanished as he and the trap
-and the pony swerved all together and turned clean
-over into the ditch, now half-covered by a deep drift.
-Frances and the others, in the better light of the open
-ground, saw the rapid movement of the little carriage,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_50">[Pg 50]</span>
-and for an instant held their breath; then peals of
-laughter from Austin assured them that he was safe,
-and the three rushed to the rescue.</p>
-
-<p>Austin pulled himself out of the snow, and wriggled
-from Frances’s grasp.</p>
-
-<p>“I’m all right, Sis; don’t worry! Damp? Oh, well,
-not particularly. I’m going to help Max to get Rough
-on his legs. This is rough on Rough, isn’t it? Ho, ho!”</p>
-
-<p>But Frances, who knew that her brother was something
-more than “damp”, could hardly speak. Her
-sufferings were far greater than the patient’s when
-Austin had quinsy; and she blamed herself bitterly
-for not insisting on the obviously prudent course she
-had suggested in Exham. A strong carriage and sturdy
-horse would long ago have conveyed the quartette
-safely to Woodend; and now here they were, up on
-the Common, exposed to the force of the storm, and
-with no prospect of speedy escape. Austin would be
-certain to take cold if his damp clothes were not soon
-dried. The poor pony, after his fall and fright, would
-surely be quite disabled.</p>
-
-<p>Indeed, Rough, when again on his feet, stood shivering
-and snorting, and positively refused to move
-further.</p>
-
-<p>“I’m afraid he’s used up,” said Max anxiously; “and
-I think&mdash;really I do&mdash;that we shall be in the same
-plight if we try to struggle against the storm. The
-wind is a perfect hurricane up here, and freezingly
-cold. Girls, I believe we had better spread our macintoshes
-on the snow, roll up in our rugs, and bivouac
-in the shelter of the wall. It is so low it will not
-protect us unless we squat on the ground.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_51">[Pg 51]</span></p>
-
-<p>The youngsters were all in agreement, and at once
-set to work to carry out Max’s plan. The macintoshes
-were spread, the carriage-cushions fetched to provide
-seats, the parcels were ranged to act as “cover” on
-the exposed side, rugs and wraps were dealt out to
-everybody, and the bags of “goodies” were thankfully
-seized. While Austin and the girls finished the camp,
-Max laid the thick skin carriage-mat along Rough’s
-back, fastened it round him with his own blanket,
-and led the pony close up to the wall.</p>
-
-<p>The buns and cakes were distributed by Frances,
-who had no heart to eat, but knew that moaning over
-Austin would not help him. He was wedged in
-tightly between the girls, and submitted like a lamb
-to be enveloped in wraps. Max took the outside place,
-and fed Rough with biscuits.</p>
-
-<p>In spite of all precautions, the little group grew
-colder and damper; in spite of the most energetic
-attempts at cheerfulness, their spirits sank lower.
-The storm showed no signs of abating. While the
-youngsters were slowly being forced to recognize that
-their position was not only uncomfortable but perilous,
-a strong though flickering light, as of a powerful
-lantern swayed by the wind, was seen approaching
-them along the road from the direction of Woodend.
-The four watched it with keen eagerness. It came
-nearer&mdash;came close. It was a lantern, indeed, fixed to
-the front of a great hooded waggon drawn by two
-powerful horses.</p>
-
-<p>The pony-carriage still lay half in, half out of the
-ditch. Max sprang to his feet and ran forward to
-warn the waggoner, who, having caught sight of the<span class="pagenum" id="Page_52">[Pg 52]</span>
-obstructions in his path, was already drawing up by
-the wall. The man was known to Max as a servant
-employed by a big farmer of the neighbourhood, and
-the boy lost no time in shouting to the amazed driver
-a cheery greeting and a peremptory demand for help
-out of his own dilemma. Not many words were
-needed. Job Benson recognized Max, and was quite
-willing to aid him and his companions.</p>
-
-<p>Max rushed back to the others.</p>
-
-<p>“Hurry, Austin! Up with you, girls! Here’s relief
-for the garrison at last! This waggoner is going to
-Rowdon Smithy before turning across country to his
-master’s farm; and he says he will take us as far as
-the smithy, where we shall get safe shelter until we’ve
-a chance to make our way home. We’ll tether Rough
-to the waggon, and the sight of his fellow-gees will
-encourage him to follow them. We must leave the
-trap in the ditch till to-morrow. Now let’s make
-haste, or the horses won’t stand.”</p>
-
-<p>Rugs and shawls and bundles were grasped by the
-willing hands of the rescued travellers. Into the
-great waggon and its welcome shelter climbed the
-girls and boys as best they could, while the good-natured
-driver offered everybody a helping hand and
-heartily bade the whole troop welcome.</p>
-
-<p>“I know the old man at the smithy,” said Max to
-his comrades, “and I’m sure he’ll give us a rest and a
-warm. Dad’s attending him just now; nothing much
-wrong but old age, you know. His name is William
-East, and he has a grandson, Jim, who is no end of a
-nice chap.”</p>
-
-<p>The waggon followed a road across the Common for<span class="pagenum" id="Page_53">[Pg 53]</span>
-a time, and then, turning down a lane to lower ground,
-touched one of the country roads to Exham. Standing
-level with the road, a little back among a group
-of trees, were the cottage and outbuildings of Rowdon
-Smithy.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_IV">CHAPTER IV.<br />
-<small>ROWDON SMITHY.</small></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p>Though the four youngsters fancied that they had
-been wandering for hours in the cold and darkness,
-the time of their relief was early in the evening.
-Work was not yet over for somebody at the smithy.
-The forge was set up in a large building, which looked
-a sort of superior shed, open on the side next to the
-road, and with a paved court, worn by the tread of
-many horses, in front of it. Gazing across the unwalled
-court to the open shed, Frances saw in the
-brilliant light of the smithy fire a young man busily
-engaged with hammer and anvil; his tall, slight figure,
-in rough working dress, bent and raised with almost
-mechanical precision as his supple right arm swung its
-ponderous tool. When the lumbering waggon halted
-before the court, the worker paused in his labour,
-throwing back his head and screening his eyes with
-his free left hand, to gain a better view of the arrival.
-The waggoner called out a hasty summons, and the
-young smith left his forge and quickly crossed the
-yard.</p>
-
-<p>“Anything wrong, Job?”</p>
-
-<p>The lad’s voice was clear and soft, and his speech,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_54">[Pg 54]</span>
-though rustic in expression, conveyed no trace of
-dialect; while his face, now plainly visible in the lantern’s
-glow, appeared a singularly pleasant one. Its
-attraction increased when Max’s lively countenance
-was thrust forward by its owner, and when Max
-shouted a gay greeting.</p>
-
-<p>“Hallo, Jim!&mdash;Jim East! Look out for a sensation!
-Here’s a snowed-up party of four humans and one
-animal come to beg help and shelter!”</p>
-
-<p>Max had jumped down and was pouring out
-explanations in a moment. The young smith listened
-and looked, and shyly doffed his cap, standing bare-headed
-in the driving snow while his eyes rested in
-astonishment on the figures of the two girls.</p>
-
-<p>“The little ladies!” murmured Jim; “they’ve never
-been with you, Master Brenton?”</p>
-
-<p>“Haven’t they, though! They’ve found out what
-a snowstorm on Rowdon Common means, I can tell
-you. But I’m afraid they are very cold and tired,”
-added Max seriously. “I was beginning to think it
-was all up with us when I first caught sight of Job.
-Well, Jim, will you help us?”</p>
-
-<p>“Surely!” exclaimed the lad.</p>
-
-<p>Though evidently bashful, Jim East had nothing
-clownish about him. His manner showed a simple
-courtesy which pleased and reassured the girl-travellers,
-as he stepped close to the waggon and held up
-his strong, lithe arms.</p>
-
-<p>“Come, Missies, let me lift you down, and show you
-the way to grandfather’s cottage. ’Tis but a step;
-and our old Elizabeth, if she’s there, shall wait on you.
-You’ll be sorely stiff with the terrible cold.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_55">[Pg 55]</span></p>
-
-<p>The girls willingly accepted the young smith’s offered
-aid, and were placed with gentle care at Max’s
-side.</p>
-
-<p>“Young master too?” suggested Jim, seeing Austin
-still above him.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, I can get down all right,” said Austin, not too
-civilly. Austin did not appear to advantage when
-brought by circumstances into contact with the class
-he chose to term “cads”. “Here, you chap, just catch
-this baggage, will you? We’ve no end of traps. I’ll
-throw them down.”</p>
-
-<p>Frances blushed with sisterly mortification&mdash;why
-would Austin be so rude and snobbish to this
-worthy young artisan? Surely Jim East was a type
-of those whose humble toil was the crown of honest
-manhood. Certainly Austin was not a model member
-of the Woodend Society of Altruists. But glancing
-apprehensively at young East, lest her brother’s imperious
-commands should make him surly and indignant,
-Frances saw that the lad’s countenance revealed
-nothing but frank good-nature. He gave Austin a
-smiling reply, and would have obeyed him without
-question, had not Max laid a hand on his arm.</p>
-
-<p>“Not a bit, Jim! I’ll see to the baggage. Do you
-get the girls under cover as quickly as you can, there’s
-a good fellow.”</p>
-
-<p>Jim turned to Frances and Florry.</p>
-
-<p>“You’ll come with me, then, Missies? Master Brenton
-knows the way.”</p>
-
-<p>A few paces along the road a low hedge began. This
-bordered a long, narrow, old-fashioned garden, cut
-vertically in precise halves by a flagged pathway<span class="pagenum" id="Page_56">[Pg 56]</span>
-reached through a small green gate. Jim opened the
-gate for the girls, and led them towards a cottage lying
-back from the road at the end of the garden.</p>
-
-<p>Frances, with Florry immediately behind her, stepped
-gladly into the light and shelter of a long passage with
-a door at either end. Another door, in the wall on
-their right, was pushed open by the young smith, whose
-dark eyes glowed with pleasure as he spoke softly to
-someone within:</p>
-
-<p>“Grandfather, here’s little ladies for you&mdash;two little
-ladies! They’ve been like to have lost themselves in
-the storm, so Master Brenton’s been telling me. They’ll
-be best to come in here&mdash;eh, grandfather? And maybe
-they’ll warm themselves with you, till I fetch Elizabeth
-to wait on them.”</p>
-
-<p>Jim stood on one side, his happy excitement controlled
-by an instinctive wish to be quiet and unobtrusive
-in the company of young gentlefolk. The
-two girls, with ready thanks on their lips, passed by
-their conductor into a fair-sized room furnished with
-much homely comfort, and saw in an arm-chair by
-the fire an old man, whose fine head, with its massive
-forehead, keen eyes, and firm mouth, denoted strength
-of will and individual character. William East’s silvery
-locks were quick to command the respect of the
-two girls, who stepped slowly towards their aged
-host.</p>
-
-<p>“Elizabeth has gone home, grandson,” said East,
-speaking in a quavering voice which still retained a
-note of decision and authority, as towards one who
-had been taught prompt obedience. “So you will
-wait on the little ladies yourself. Chairs to the fire<span class="pagenum" id="Page_57">[Pg 57]</span>
-for them, Jim,&mdash;and off with their boots. Then you’ll
-make some hot, strong coffee, and see you’re quick with
-it. These are not the kind as needs to lose themselves
-in snowstorms.” East turned his face to the girls, and
-it softened wonderfully, while he addressed them in
-very different tones: “Come near to the fire, Missies,
-and tell me all about it. Why, you both look fairly
-spent. There, there, dearies&mdash;the recklessness one sees
-in young folk! But sit you down, and be sure you’re
-kindly welcome.”</p>
-
-<p>“You’re very good,” said Frances gratefully. “I
-don’t know why you should be troubled with all of
-us boys and girls. There are four of us, Mr. East,&mdash;and
-a pony. We’ve left the carriage somewhere in
-the snow. I’m afraid we’re a great bother, but you
-must please try not to let us worry you;&mdash;Max Brenton
-has been telling us that you aren’t very well just now,
-and I’m so sorry.”</p>
-
-<p>Frances’s sympathy was sure of appreciation&mdash;it was
-so earnest and sincere, and expressed with the simplest
-good-will. Old East greeted it with many nods and
-smiles, and beckoned Frances to the chair nearest to
-himself. Indeed, he was amazingly pleased to see this
-bright young lady by his side.</p>
-
-<p>Jim waited deftly on both the girls, taking off their
-wet boots and coats, and trying to rub some feeling
-back into their half-frozen feet. Next he went away
-with the boots into the kitchen, and set about making
-coffee in his best style.</p>
-
-<p>Meanwhile Frances and Florry made great friends
-with the ailing grandsire.</p>
-
-<p>“I must tell you our names,” said Frances presently,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_58">[Pg 58]</span>
-when the boys had joined the group in the cottage
-parlour. “Of course you know the Doctor’s son&mdash;everybody
-knows Doctor Max.”</p>
-
-<p>“Ay, he’s his father’s son truly&mdash;I can’t say better
-for him than that.”</p>
-
-<p>“And the boy beside him is my brother Austin.
-Then this is Miss Florry Fane, the best of girls; and I
-am Frances Morland.”</p>
-
-<p>The old man leaned forward suddenly, and seemed
-to scan the speaker’s face with a curious intentness.</p>
-
-<p>“Morland, did you say, my dear? Ah! once I knew
-someone with that name. Does your father live here-abouts?”</p>
-
-<p>“My father is dead. Austin and I live with our
-mother in Woodend; but we have not been here long&mdash;only
-since the spring.”</p>
-
-<p>Frances talked on easily and quietly, fearing to disturb
-East, who, with his face turned from her, gazed
-into the fire. One hand he held across his eyes; the
-other, which rested on his knee, trembled a little. For
-a time he sat thus, hardly speaking, yet evidently
-listening with interest and pleasure to all the young
-girl cared to tell him. When she did hear his voice,
-it addressed her in quavering gentleness:</p>
-
-<p>“And you’ve come to see me, Missy,&mdash;you, so blithe
-and bonnie! The Lord Himself sent you this night to
-gladden my old eyes. Ah! but I’m thankful&mdash;I’m
-thankful! Will you remember, little Missy, when I’m
-gone hence, as your coming brought a blessing with it
-to Rowdon Cottage?”</p>
-
-<div class="figcenter illowp50" id="i-058" style="max-width: 28em;">
- <img class="w100" src="images/i-058.png" alt="" />
- <div class="caption"><p>M432</p>
-<p class="center">“THE OLD MAN LEANED FORWARD SUDDENLY TO SCAN
-THE SPEAKER’S FACE.”</p></div>
-</div>
-
-<p>Frances, moved by this appeal, and somewhat shy&mdash;for<span class="pagenum" id="Page_59">[Pg 59]</span>
-the aged face near her was quivering, and the
-aged voice faltered and broke&mdash;put her small hand
-trustfully on East’s wasted fingers.</p>
-
-<p>“I am glad we came; and you are very kind.
-Mayn’t I come and see you sometimes, with Max?”</p>
-
-<p>“Rarely welcome would you be, little Missy,” said
-the old man, brightening. “And there’s something
-I’d say. If ever my Jim needs kindness, as like
-enough he may, will you try to be good to him?”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh yes, I will,” said Frances soberly, knowing
-that East’s thoughts were anticipating his nearing end
-and his grandson’s consequent loneliness.</p>
-
-<p>“Jim’s one to think much of kindness from little
-ladies,” continued the grandfather wistfully. “I fancy,
-maybe, as I’ve not done well by him. ’Twas my wish
-to bring him up strong and sturdy and independent;
-for, as a wean even, the boy was gentle and soft, and
-fond of daintiness. That’s why I made him a smith by
-trade. Thought I, ‘He’ll learn hardness as he stands
-by the forge and bends the iron to his will’. But no,
-Jim’s craft will never make a man of him.”</p>
-
-<p>“That’s a pity,” said the consoling voice of Max,
-who had drawn near. “A fellow ought to match his
-trade. My trade’s doctoring,&mdash;at least it’s going to
-be; so I don’t miss a chance of practice. It’s not often
-I get a really good thing, though. Still, all my chums
-have promised that if they break an arm they’ll let
-me set it.”</p>
-
-<p>Max, with his cheery laugh, could dispel most
-shadows, but East’s thoughtful gravity did not disappear.
-Frances was drawn across the room by the
-fragments she caught of a conversation between her<span class="pagenum" id="Page_60">[Pg 60]</span>
-brother and the young blacksmith, and East’s eyes
-followed her and watched all her movements.</p>
-
-<p>Jim was begging Austin to come to the kitchen and
-be swathed in blankets while his clothes were drying.
-Not that the working lad would have thought much
-of being in a yet damper condition than was his boy-guest,
-but he had heard Frances confide to his grandfather
-her fears for her brother.</p>
-
-<p>“Do now, young master, do!”</p>
-
-<p>“Catch me!” retorted Austin, more bored than angry;
-“I’m not such a soft. Clear off, I say, Jim East. I
-tell you, I won’t be coddled.”</p>
-
-<p>“Better take a bit of care than lie abed,” argued
-Jim sensibly. “And Missy’s feared for you, sir.”</p>
-
-<p>“Girls always fuss,” muttered the boy, growing
-cross. He pushed aside, with unmannerly roughness,
-young East’s detaining hand, and was making for the
-fireside when Frances intercepted him.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, Austin, how can you be so rude?” whispered
-the girl reproachfully. “Do go with this good-natured
-lad,” she pleaded. “You know how dreadful it is
-when you get a bad throat.”</p>
-
-<p>“As though I’d loaf about his dirty old kitchen and
-be rolled up in smithy blankets!” said Austin, in
-extreme disgust.</p>
-
-<p>He spoke low, but Frances knew that Jim must
-hear, and she coloured deeply in her distress. Her
-brother’s over-fastidiousness on some points always
-made her impatient, but now she felt that he was
-both foolish and ungrateful in repelling kindly advances.
-She allowed Austin to pass, and throw himself
-on the rug before the fire at Florry’s feet; then<span class="pagenum" id="Page_61">[Pg 61]</span>
-she turned to Jim, again apprehensive that his feelings
-might have been hurt by his guest’s unmannerly
-words and ungracious bearing.</p>
-
-<p>Jim’s eyes were on Austin; Jim’s lips smiled as,
-without a touch of jealousy, he recognized in the
-handsome, attractive boy the evidence of the better
-training and opportunities denied to himself.</p>
-
-<p>“Boys are always so tiresome, aren’t they?” said
-Frances, seeing with relief that Jim’s face betrayed no
-sense of injury. “My brother won’t be taken care of,
-you see; though I’m sure if he does have a sore throat,
-he won’t like it.”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, I hope he won’t be ill, Missy,” said Jim. “He
-looks so&mdash;so game, and happy-like. I’d think it wasn’t
-easy to coddle him.”</p>
-
-<p>“It isn’t,” said Frances soberly; “and I don’t want
-him to be a molly&mdash;only I wouldn’t like him to be ill
-again. I’m ever so much obliged to you for offering
-to help him.”</p>
-
-<p>“You’ve no call to thank me, Missy. It wouldn’t
-have been much to do. The pony’s safe in the shed,”
-added the young smith shyly; “I’ll give him a rub
-down and a feed by and by.”</p>
-
-<p>“You are good,” said Frances. “Oh, do you think
-there’s any chance of getting home to-night? All our
-friends will be so anxious if we don’t return till morning,
-though it’s very kind of your grandfather to say
-we may camp here.”</p>
-
-<p>“Indeed and you mustn’t worry, Missy,” said Jim.
-“Sometimes there’s folks passes here much later than
-this; and if you’d not mind mounting into a waggon
-again&mdash;”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_62">[Pg 62]</span></p>
-
-<p>“We wouldn’t mind a bit. I can’t think what
-Mamma will do if she hears nothing about us till
-morning.”</p>
-
-<p>Jim’s young face looked very serious, but he offered no
-further comfort; and Frances, feeling that her low spirits
-might become infectious, tried to divert her mind by
-asking leave to look at a book-case against the wall
-near at hand. While she looked, and wondered a
-little at the class of books she found on the shelves,
-Jim fetched her a cup of hot coffee and placed it on a
-small table by her side. Frances was used to the
-companionship and natural attentions of well-bred
-lads, but it struck her that none of her boy-friends
-could have shown her more courteous respect than she
-was now receiving from this pleasant young rustic.</p>
-
-<p>“Jim,” said the voice of the old grandfather, “fetch
-your fiddle, lad. Maybe the young folks might like
-to hear a tune.”</p>
-
-<p>Austin grimaced expressively behind his hands, but
-only Max saw, and Max joined the girls in polite
-invitations to blushing Jim. The fiddle was brought
-from another room, and its owner, seating himself
-modestly in a dark corner, begged to know what tune
-the little ladies would like best. Florry, guessing that
-the performer’s repertory might be limited, suggested
-“Home, Sweet Home”.</p>
-
-<p>Then Jim surprised his audience, for though his
-rendering was entirely simple, it showed an ear for
-rhythm, a taste for expression, and an unerring correctness
-of pitch.</p>
-
-<p>“He does play in tune,” murmured Austin the critic,
-while the other children thanked the fiddler heartily.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_63">[Pg 63]</span></p>
-
-<p>Jim coloured with gratification to find himself approved,
-and willingly obliged his guests with all their
-favourite popular airs. By the time he had satisfied
-everybody the evening had worn far on; and Jim,
-yielding his fiddle into the hands of Austin, who
-longed to finger the instrument of his fellow-musician,
-went to hold a low-voiced consultation with his
-grandfather.</p>
-
-<p>The result of this talk was the summoning of Frances
-to consider a plan of action, as proposed by the Easts.</p>
-
-<p>“My grandson fears there’s no chance now of a way
-home for you to-night, Missy. The snow is too deep
-for any wise man to take a beast into without necessity.
-I’m thinking ’twere best if you settled yourselves
-down quiet-like, took a bit of supper, and made
-the best of what I can give you. There’ll be a tidy
-room upstairs for the missies, and the young masters will
-sleep soundly on yonder big couch. ’Tis all I can do.”</p>
-
-<p>“Indeed, you are very kind,” said Frances. “Of
-course we shall do splendidly. It’s only because of
-our friends that we mind. My mother is all alone&mdash;except
-for servants,&mdash;and she will be so frightened.
-Then there are Florry’s parents, and the Doctor.”</p>
-
-<p>“You’re right to think of them, Missy,” said the old
-man, whose eyes seemed to shine with a sort of solemn
-joy when they rested on Frances. “And ’twould never
-do to let them go in fear all night. They’d be out
-scouring the country, like as not. There’s Jim will
-set out for Woodend just as soon as he can get ready;
-and he’ll let your friends know you’re safe and well,
-and waiting here till sent for.”</p>
-
-<p>“Jim cross the Common to-night!” cried Max,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_64">[Pg 64]</span>
-coming forward as spokesman for the visitors. “Oh,
-I say, Mr. East! How could he?”</p>
-
-<p>“We mustn’t let him,” said Frances. “I’m sure we
-oughtn’t to.”</p>
-
-<p>“I could go myself rather,” went on Max seriously.
-“It isn’t fair that Jim should suffer for my foolery. I
-ought to have backed up Frances when she wanted to
-hire a trap in Exham.”</p>
-
-<p>“That’s over and done with, master,” said East,
-“and it’s no use to spend your time blaming yourself
-for what was just a bit of a frolic. Jim will go, he’s
-tall and strong and hardy.”</p>
-
-<p>Frances looked at the grandson’s slight figure and
-sensitive face. Jim was healthily spare and wiry, but
-hardly robust. And he must be all in all to his
-grandfather&mdash;the prop of the little home. Her sense
-of justice made her beg hard that the venturesome
-journey to Woodend might not be made; but both the
-Easts, though they tried to reassure their anxious
-young guests, had evidently made up their minds.</p>
-
-<p>“Elizabeth&mdash;our old housekeeper&mdash;lives quite close
-at hand,” said Jim to the girls. “I shall pass her
-cottage, and I’ll bid her come to you, Missies, and see
-to your comfort as well as she can.”</p>
-
-<p>The girls insisted that they needed no waiting-woman,
-but Jim smiled in respectful disagreement
-while he wished them good-night. The room door
-closed softly behind him, and the grandfather, pitying
-the disturbed young faces, told their owners not to
-fret, for Jim would surely come safely back from
-Woodend, though not till long after they were a-bed
-and asleep.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_65">[Pg 65]</span></p>
-
-<p>The snowstorm which had brought with it to our
-youngsters so great an adventure was the talk of the
-countryside for many a week. The roads about Exham
-were impassable for some days, except to sturdy
-rustics or stout farm-horses. Dr. Brenton came to the
-smithy next day in a great waggon (just like Job
-Benson’s rescuing ark), which he had borrowed from
-a Woodend farmer; and with hearty thanks to the
-Easts, and warm acknowledgments of Jim’s pluck and
-consideration, carried off the wanderers to their homes.</p>
-
-<p>“We should like to come again, if we may,” said
-Frances, lingering by the old grandfather for a second
-farewell.</p>
-
-<p>“Ay,” he returned, pressing the girl’s kind little
-hand. “I’m glad I’ve seen you, Missy. Come again.”</p>
-
-<p>“Please!” added Jim from the background. “We’ll
-be proud to have you, Missy. Come again.”</p>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_V">CHAPTER V.<br />
-<small>DOCTOR MAX.</small></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p>The Society of the Altruists was very busy indeed.
-The Christmas entertainment to which allusion
-has been made was a project of Frances Morland’s,
-who, among her other qualifications for the public
-service, possessed the gift of diplomacy. She was
-sincerely anxious to help others, and to enlist her
-friends in the generous enterprise; but she knew that
-the boys and girls of Woodend were no different from<span class="pagenum" id="Page_66">[Pg 66]</span>
-their fellows, and therefore liable to sink gradually
-into a condition of lukewarmness about any scheme
-which did not make a constant appeal to their active
-interest. The lack of some fillip to stir up the young
-people’s energies had already brought about the destruction
-of numerous undertakings in Woodend which
-had made a gallant start, and Frances was determined
-to save her Society from such an untimely fate.</p>
-
-<p>Everybody was pleased with the prospect of giving
-an entertainment in which everybody might play
-some part. The guests were to be the poor of Woodend,
-and the festivity was to take place two days
-before Christmas. Frances suggested this date as best
-suited to the guests, who would doubtless like to
-parade some, at least, of the Altruist presents at their
-own home-gatherings of Christmas-day. Christmas-eve
-was not a possible feast-day, because the Carlyons
-liked their pupils to join in the carol-singing after the
-evening service, and the service itself was one which
-the young people seldom cared to miss. Then there
-was so much to be done at home in the way of decorations
-and private plans.</p>
-
-<p>Therefore, many dwellers in the cottages of Woodend
-were looking forward expectantly to the twenty-third
-of December. Their excitement, however, was
-as nothing in comparison with that of the Altruists.
-Frances had made skilful division of her forces. Some
-were to act in a fairy play, written for the occasion
-by Florry Fane, who intended one day to astonish the
-world of literature; some were painting scenery, preparing
-“properties”, or making dresses for use in the
-play; some were practising solos, duets, and part-songs<span class="pagenum" id="Page_67">[Pg 67]</span>
-for the concert which was to precede the play in the
-evening’s programme. Then there were those whose
-souls inclined not to literature, drama, or music: to
-them fell the task of arranging the commissariat department,
-and the means of distributing gifts so as to
-please everyone.</p>
-
-<p>It was Saturday evening, in the second week of
-December. Up the straggling village road came,
-whistling cheerily, Max Brenton,&mdash;the “man of
-affairs”, as Florry had dubbed him. Max’s well-worn
-coat was buttoned closely, and his crimson
-comforter had been tied, with utter disregard for
-appearances, over his cap, so as to shield his ears. A
-bitter east wind blew about him, and as he went he
-swung his arms vigorously to aid his progress, and
-stamped his feet to resist the clinging snow.</p>
-
-<p>“Hope Dad has got home,” thought the boy fervently.
-“Old Carrots isn’t too lively, and this is a
-regular mucky night. Ugh, what slush! Freezing
-hard, too, now. I said that sudden thaw wouldn’t
-hold. Well, anything’s better than slush&mdash;for us.
-I’m afraid the ninety-year-olds and the babies will
-suffer.”</p>
-
-<p>The Doctor’s son trudged soberly on. He was fresh
-from the playing-fields, tired, cold, and hungry for
-the tea which ought to be waiting him. As he
-trudged, he hoped many things. That Janet had not
-forgotten to order Dad’s steak. That the dining-room
-lamp would not have gone out for the third time that
-week. That the fire would not have gone out to keep
-the lamp company. Janet was eccentric in her dealings
-with lamps and fires, and had a sort of general<span class="pagenum" id="Page_68">[Pg 68]</span>
-idea that Saturday was sacred to the service of the
-kitchen, and not to be wasted over trifling matters
-belonging to “the family’s” part of the dwelling. The
-Doctor and Max had been for a dozen years “the
-family” to whom Janet had consecrated her faithful
-labours. She had been already old when the Doctor
-had found her seated in dry-eyed despair beside the
-bed of her dead husband, and had forthwith bidden
-her to his home, whence the sole servant had departed
-to face the wedded life just over for Janet.</p>
-
-<p>Max had always taken Janet for granted, and had
-ceased to wonder why she never mended the holes in
-his stockings all at once. Janet preferred doing repairs
-in instalments.</p>
-
-<p>“For there may be a toe out here and there, and
-there may not, Master Max,” she would observe; “and
-small odds is it about maybe a toe. But it’s heels I
-was at last mending-night, and it’s heels you’ll find
-darned solid.”</p>
-
-<p>Much anxious study of the mystery which doth
-hedge a needle made Max at last independent of
-Janet’s darning. Not to vex the poor old lady, he
-quietly supplemented her labours with personal industry;
-and when Janet did heels he did toes. Buttons
-he regarded as a trifle, and even a patch&mdash;if no longer
-to be avoided by care and ingenuity&mdash;was not beyond
-his utmost skill.</p>
-
-<p>Max had graver anxieties than darning. There
-were, for instance, the money-box and the account-books.</p>
-
-<p>The Doctor’s income was not to be accurately anticipated,
-but its highest possible total never cost Max<span class="pagenum" id="Page_69">[Pg 69]</span>
-much labour in the way of sending in bills. There
-were so many “gratis” patients. Some were too poor
-to pay save in thanks; some were old friends, whom
-the Doctor could not endure to serve except for love
-alone. When those patients who could pay remembered
-to do so, the Doctor cashed their cheques and
-put the change into the money-box&mdash;leaving out only
-a fixed sum, which went to a fund called by Max
-“Examinations”, and intended to provide for his
-medical studies by and by. It was a great grief to
-the Doctor, and therefore to Max, when inroads had
-to be made into this fund in order to pay the tradesmen’s
-weekly books. Dread of such a necessity made
-the darkest hour of Saturday that which Max gave to
-the family exchequer. His face always wore a portentous
-solemnity when he raised the lid of the
-money-box.</p>
-
-<p>The Doctor’s home was an odd little crib standing
-far back from the road at the very top of a long garden.
-Alongside of the house was a one-stalled stable
-and coach-house combined, with a paved square before
-it and a side-door opening into a lane. Carrots, the
-Doctor’s ancient steed, was of the nondescript red
-colour which had suggested to Max his name, and consequently
-might be seen afar off; a fact that added
-greatly to his popularity with poor patients anxiously
-on the look-out for the Doctor. For years the Doctor
-had trudged afoot on his messages of healing; but a
-small legacy from a wealthy cousin had sufficed for
-the building of the stables and for the purchase of
-Carrots and the trap. The Doctor had friends in
-Woodend who gladly would have made him the owner<span class="pagenum" id="Page_70">[Pg 70]</span>
-of a thoroughbred, a brougham, and a palatial coach-house;
-but there were limits beyond which a poor
-man’s pride permitted not the dearest friends to go.</p>
-
-<p>As Max neared his home he put his best foot forward&mdash;stepped
-more sturdily, whistled more cheerily.
-The lights he watched for had just come into view,
-when he caught the sound of a child’s sobbing somewhere
-in the darkness beyond.</p>
-
-<p>“Hallo! who’s there?&mdash;Hold hard, don’t run away!
-Why, Polly, it isn’t you?”</p>
-
-<p>A very tiny, choked voice replied:</p>
-
-<p>“’Es, Mas’r Max.”</p>
-
-<p>“Gracious! Fancy your mother letting a mite like
-you be out this weather! What are you doing, Polly?”</p>
-
-<p>“Please, Muvver’s felled into the fire and frizzed&mdash;”</p>
-
-<p>“What?”</p>
-
-<p>Polly repeated her news among louder sobs.</p>
-
-<p>“And Muvver said: ‘You go find Dokker’, and I
-comed.”</p>
-
-<p>“You brave little thing!” cried Max; and, stooping,
-he lifted the baby-girl into his arms. “‘Dokker’s’ out,
-Polly,&mdash;at least, I’m afraid he is.” Max had missed
-the light from the Doctor’s sanctum. “But come on,
-and we’ll see.”</p>
-
-<p>Max held Polly close, and ran, wondering meanwhile
-what tragedy had taken place in Lumber’s Yard. The
-yard was the poorest part of Woodend&mdash;a cluster of
-wretched cottages, the property, like most of the village,
-of Sir Arthur Fenn of Fencourt, the absentee
-lord of the manor.</p>
-
-<p>“How did Mother get hurt?” inquired Max.</p>
-
-<p>This query drew forth a rigmarole in baby-English,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_71">[Pg 71]</span>
-whence, by careful reasoning and shrewd deduction,
-Max gathered that Polly’s mother had rushed to the
-soothing of her youngest son, aged six months, had
-fallen across the wooden cradle and dropped against
-the grate. Whether or not the hurts were serious, of
-course the boy could not guess; but he knew the
-necessity for the speedy dressing of burns, and hurried
-on at his best pace.</p>
-
-<p>To save time, Max avoided the front door, and
-darted round to the back&mdash;a region where Janet
-reigned supreme. The kitchen door opened right into
-the yard, and at the door stood Janet, scolding Tim
-the stable-boy, who ought to have been out with the
-Doctor. Tim played truant occasionally&mdash;just by way
-of remembering that he was a boy. At the workhouse,
-where he had been brought up, he never had
-attempted to be anything but elderly.</p>
-
-<p>“Ah, Master Max,” cried Janet, “here you are, sir!&mdash;and
-here’s this young vagabond come back from his
-spree, which I’d make him pay dear for, if I’d my
-way&mdash;but there, the master&mdash;”</p>
-
-<p>“Never mind Tim just now, there’s a good soul. Is
-Dad back? Ah! I thought he wasn’t. Well, Janet,
-just take care of Polly for a bit, will you? I’ll have
-to snatch up a few things and go myself. I’m afraid
-Dad has been kept somewhere, or perhaps Carrots
-can’t get along. Goodness knows!”</p>
-
-<p>Max ran through the house to the surgery, shouting
-explanations while he went, while Janet packed Tim
-off in disgrace to the stables, and proceeded to bestow
-on Polly a share of her own tea. Presently Max came
-flying back with a small bag in one hand.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_72">[Pg 72]</span></p>
-
-<p>“Keep Polly here for an hour, Janet,” the boy called
-out. “I’ll be back by then, and Tim can carry her
-home.”</p>
-
-<p>But the hour passed by and Max did not return.</p>
-
-<p>Down in Lumber’s Yard reigned a degree of excitement
-which seemed keenly enjoyed by the sharers in
-it. The news that Bell Baker had been burned to
-death was the first rumour, but this gradually modified
-itself into something approaching fact. Mrs.
-Baker was a decent woman, whom a bad husband
-kept in a condition of miserable poverty. It was on
-behalf of her little Polly that Max, some weeks earlier,
-had begged from Frances a “three-year-old frock”.</p>
-
-<p>The entry to Lumber’s Yard was by a narrow foot-path,
-and this Max found blocked up by a gesticulating
-group of women. The men were congregated in the
-yard itself&mdash;a three-sided court with tumble-down
-cottages round it.</p>
-
-<p>“’Ere’s Master Max!” was the general cry, as the boy
-ran up the path.</p>
-
-<p>“Out of the way, good folks,” cried Max authoritatively,
-and the women parted to let him through, then
-closed their ranks and followed in a body to the
-Bakers’ door. This Max unceremoniously pushed
-open,&mdash;and then as coolly shut and locked in the face
-of the would-be busybodies. He had seen that the
-one respectable neighbour Mrs. Baker possessed was
-already by the poor woman’s side, and that thus he
-was secure of necessary aid.</p>
-
-<p>The boy’s manner changed when he was fairly in
-possession of the place. He went across to the truckle-bed
-on which the sufferer lay, and, bending over her,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_73">[Pg 73]</span>
-asked softly if he could do anything for her relief.
-The pity of the tender-hearted was in his eyes, the
-skill of the expert in his hands, while he gently cut
-away burned clothing and applied proper dressing to
-the cruel hurts. Max had been thoroughly trained
-by his father in the application of first aid to cases
-of accident, and had found plenty of opportunities to
-make his knowledge of practical use.</p>
-
-<p>No more urgent need than that of Mrs. Baker had
-yet presented itself to his personal care, and after a
-moment’s thought he determined to take a further
-responsibility on his boyish shoulders.</p>
-
-<p>“Where’s Baker?” he asked of the friendly neighbour.</p>
-
-<p>“No need to ask, sir. Where he allus is o’ Saturday
-nights.”</p>
-
-<p>“Well, he mustn’t be allowed to come in here unless
-he’s sober. See?”</p>
-
-<p>“Who’s to keep him out, Master Max? Baker’s a
-bad sort when he’s the worse o’ liquor.”</p>
-
-<p>“Can’t you lock the door and stand a siege?” demanded
-the boy, his eyes sparkling in prospect of such
-a diversion. “But no,” he added, professional prudence
-conquering pugnacious instincts, “that would
-worry and frighten Mrs. Baker.” Max looked down
-thoughtfully on his poor patient, who lay moaning
-in semi-unconsciousness. “I’ll do what I can,” he
-finished, “and you will help me, won’t you, Mrs.
-Lane?”</p>
-
-<p>“Sure an’ I will, sir,” said the good woman heartily.</p>
-
-<p>“Then stay here till my father comes. He’ll tackle
-Joe Baker, if I don’t succeed.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_74">[Pg 74]</span></p>
-
-<p>Max paused only to speak a few words of sympathy
-to Mrs. Baker, and then packed his traps and started
-off.</p>
-
-<p>At the further end of Lumber’s Yard stood a fair-sized
-inn, the “Jolly Dog”, much frequented by the
-lowest class of the male population. It was rented by
-a man named Daniel Luss, whose license had more
-than once been jeopardized by the scenes of rioting
-and drunkenness his premises had witnessed. But
-Luss’s landlord was Sir Arthur Fenn, and Sir Arthur’s
-county influence was great. Luss willingly paid a
-high rent, and the administrators of law and order
-let him alone.</p>
-
-<p>Max ran across the snow-covered yard straight to
-the “Jolly Dog”. There was only one outer door. It
-led to the bar, and to the inn-parlour, where the more
-truculent spirits of Woodend congregated to discuss
-village politics and abuse those neighbours who
-struggled after respectability. Max knocked loudly
-on the open door, but no one appeared. At last, taking
-his courage in his hands, he stepped within. For
-the time the bar was empty, its servitors being busy
-in the kitchen behind, where they enjoyed black tea
-and bloaters and toast to an accompaniment of unparliamentary
-language from the adjacent parlour.</p>
-
-<p>Max hesitated a minute, and his heart beat faster.
-He knew that the men he was going to face were
-rough and lawless&mdash;often savage and cruel. One of
-the worst was Joseph Baker. But the boy recalling
-the face of Baker’s suffering wife, went boldly up to
-the parlour door, pushed it open and walked in.
-There was no surprise for Max in the scene before<span class="pagenum" id="Page_75">[Pg 75]</span>
-him&mdash;groups of sodden men looming through a thick
-cloud of tobacco-smoke, some already in quarrelsome
-mood, some making the roof ring with mirthless
-laughter. The surprise was on the side of the men,
-when, a note of exclamation passing from one to the
-other, they turned their heavy eyes upon the boyish
-figure by the door.</p>
-
-<p>“It’s the young Doc’,” grunted a fellow who had
-entered recently, and was therefore in possession of his
-faculties. “Got ’is tools with ’im too, ain’t he?”</p>
-
-<p>There was a roar of appreciation, and the speaker
-leaned back in his chair to think out another sally.</p>
-
-<p>Max knew that what he wanted to say must be
-said quickly, and, stepping forward, raised his clear
-treble to a tone which he hoped might pierce the
-dullest ears.</p>
-
-<p>“Men, listen to me a moment, will you? I’ve come
-to tell you something you mayn’t have heard. I’m
-telling it especially to one of you&mdash;Joseph Baker.
-Baker is here, isn’t he?”</p>
-
-<p>Max had decided wisely not to heed interruptions,
-but he saw a couple of hands stretched out to drag a
-man from a distant corner, and guessed that the half-obscured,
-tottering figure was that of Baker.</p>
-
-<p>“Yes, there he is. Well then, Baker, and all of
-you&mdash;I’m sorry to say there’s been a dreadful accident,
-and Baker’s wife is badly hurt. She’s suffering fearfully,
-but I think she’ll live, with care. Without care
-she won’t live, and you know she has a little baby and
-three other children. Now, I want Baker to promise
-me he’ll do what he can to keep her quiet and comfortable
-to-night, either by keeping quiet himself when<span class="pagenum" id="Page_76">[Pg 76]</span>
-he gets home, or else by spending the night elsewhere
-and leaving his wife to Mrs. Lane’s care.”</p>
-
-<p>“What’s wrong wi’ Bell?” inquired Baker thickly
-as he stumbled out from his corner. “If it’s some o’
-her bloomin’ nonsense, I’ll make her pay. I’ll&mdash;”</p>
-
-<p>Max broke in and explained clearly the manner of
-the woman’s injury.</p>
-
-<p>“So she’s gone and half-killed herself, has she?”
-cried the husband savagely. “Jist let me git her, an’
-I’ll finish the job. Who’s goin’ to cook my wittles,
-I’d like to know, wi’ her a-shamming in bed? Here,
-mates, I’m off home, but I’ll not be long. Wait till I
-git back, and I’ll tell ye how I’ve settled Bell.”</p>
-
-<p>Max looked at the wretch with scorn and loathing,
-and involuntarily stretched out his arms to bar access
-to the door behind him. Several of Baker’s associates
-grunted applause at the husband’s valorous determination;
-but the majority of the room’s occupants were
-not yet in a state to be without some feeling of
-humanity, and these raised a murmur of shame, of
-which Max took quick advantage. It had become
-evident to the boy that his visit to the “Jolly Dog”
-on behalf of Bell would do more harm than good if
-it sent Baker to her side while she lay unprotected.</p>
-
-<p>“Yes,” cried Max, taking the word from a stout,
-good-natured looking man near to him, “it would be
-a shame, wouldn’t it, not to do all one could for poor
-Mrs. Baker? You know how a burn hurts, even a
-little one; so you can guess how she feels now.” The
-boy paused, longing for some inspiration which might
-serve to delay Joe’s departure. Dr. Brenton might be
-home by now&mdash;would be sure, at the earliest moment,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_77">[Pg 77]</span>
-to hasten after his son. If only Max could hinder
-Baker from leaving the “Jolly Dog” until such time
-as he might be pretty sure of finding his wife protected
-by the Doctor’s presence!</p>
-
-<p>“You’ve been ’elping ’er yerself, master, maybe?”
-asked the stout man, pointing to Max’s bag of “tools”.</p>
-
-<p>“I’ve tried,” said Max briefly.</p>
-
-<p>“Then I say as you’re a rare sort for a bit of a
-younker. Ain’t ’e now, mates?”</p>
-
-<p>Max was surprised, and a little relieved, to hear a
-chorus of approbation.</p>
-
-<p>“An’ I’m blest if we don’t drink yer ’ealth wi’
-three times three. ’Ere, ’Arry, set the young Doc’ in
-the middle o’ the table there, an’ fill ’im a mug to
-’isself.”</p>
-
-<p>In a moment Max, lifted like a feather by ’Arry,
-the giant of Woodend, found himself on the table,
-and raised above the heads of the village revellers.
-A foaming mug was offered to him by the stout man,
-whom the others called Jack.</p>
-
-<p>“Thanks,” said the boy, taking a drink, and handing
-back the mug; “I was thirsty. You’ve reminded
-me that I’ve missed my tea, but it will come just as
-handy later. Before I go, let’s have a lark together.
-Make Baker sit down, some of you; and I’ll call on
-Hal Tatton for a song.”</p>
-
-<p>Baker was dragged back to his corner by half a
-dozen hands, and the men gazed curiously at the brave,
-boyish figure standing erect and masterful on the big
-deal table. He was so far removed from themselves
-in person, in bearing, in habit; his voice echoed with
-so plucky a note, and his eyes met theirs with so<span class="pagenum" id="Page_78">[Pg 78]</span>
-bright an intelligence. What manner of converse
-could they hold with a lad like this?</p>
-
-<p>“Now, Hal,” called out Max imperatively, “you’re
-a good hand at a lively ditty&mdash;let’s have ‘The Boys of
-England’ without ado. I’ll give you your key.”</p>
-
-<p>And Max, not entirely unappreciative of his position,
-started the first verse of the latest popular melody&mdash;a
-“patriotic” song, reeking of battle, and defiance, and
-general jingoism. Hal caught up the air, and Max
-subsided until the correct moment, when he demanded
-a “jolly good chorus”.</p>
-
-<p>The song ended, Hal retired to his seat amid loud
-plaudits, and Max racked his brains for ideas. His
-glance was on an old clock ticking on the mantel-shelf.
-A quarter to eight! Another half-hour and he surely
-might reckon safely on his father’s return home as an
-accomplished fact.</p>
-
-<p>“And then,” concluded the boy in rapid thought,
-“if he hadn’t got to Baker’s cottage, I could fetch him
-before Joe had done any harm. I’m sure that stout
-chap would keep him here a bit if I asked him. The
-thing is, to hold on a while, and then leave this lively
-crew in first-rate temper.”</p>
-
-<p>Max made the best of matters, and, following impulse,
-addressed the company.</p>
-
-<p>“That was a right good song, men, and we’re all
-obliged to Hal for it. Aren’t we? Yes, that’s the way
-to say ‘Thank you’. Well now, what for a change
-before I go? If you like, I’ll tell you a story I read
-somewhere the other day. It’s not long, and it’s no
-end exciting.”</p>
-
-<p>Max told his story accordingly; and if he were at<span class="pagenum" id="Page_79">[Pg 79]</span>
-first gratified by comparative silence and a fair amount
-of attention from his rough audience, he was none the
-less aware of a beating heart as he approached his
-climax. For Max’s tale was a true one, and its chief
-incident&mdash;exciting, as he had promised&mdash;was the rescue
-of an injured wife from her husband’s brutality by a
-band of chivalrous and pitiful rustics. Max almost
-held his breath as he concluded. He had played for
-high stakes, and might have lost everything.</p>
-
-<p>When the boy’s voice ceased, there was absolute
-silence; his hearers had been following him closely.
-Suddenly Baker started from his corner with a savage
-growl.</p>
-
-<p>“’E’s lettin’ on at me, that’s wot ’e is! Do you ’ear
-me, I say? ’E’s told that ’ere story agin me; and
-’anged if I don’t take it out o’ ’im instead o’ Bell!
-No! I’ll git ’im first, an’ Bell arter!”</p>
-
-<p>Baker threw himself furiously towards the table,
-where Max stood, quiet and watchful. He knew that
-he would be helpless in Joe’s clutches, if no one took
-his part.</p>
-
-<p>Then Harry uprose, and stepped carelessly to Baker,
-whom he cast to the floor with one well-directed
-push.</p>
-
-<p>“You’re a plucked ’un,” said the giant, surveying
-Max grimly; “an’ look ’ere, you’re a proper Doc’ an’
-you’ve arned your pay. My mates an’ me”&mdash;Harry
-glanced rapidly round&mdash;“we’ll keep that tale o’ yourn
-in our ’eads to-night. We’ll take turns to watch Bell’s
-door, and&mdash;my word on’t,”&mdash;he thumped his great
-fist on the table,&mdash;“that skunk Joe sha’n’t set ’is foot
-inside till you give ’im leave.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_80">[Pg 80]</span></p>
-
-<p>A roar of confirmation from Harry’s mates set
-Max’s mind at rest.</p>
-
-<p>“Ah, thank you, Harry!” said Max in real gratitude;
-“I thought you’d want to help poor Mrs. Baker.
-And thank you all,” added the boy merrily, “for being
-so kind to me. We had a jolly song, hadn’t we? I
-shall call on Hal Tatton for another next time I see him.”</p>
-
-<p>“You’ll get it so soon as ye asks, master,” returned
-the grinning Tatton. “I’m not forgetting the way ye
-cured that sprained wrist o’ mine&mdash;I’ll stand by Bell.”</p>
-
-<p>“And me!” “And me!” shouted the voices of many
-rough fellows who had met with kindness from the
-good Doctor or his son.</p>
-
-<p>“Then thank you all again, and good-bye!” cried
-Max. The men stood silent, watching him as he went.
-He had brought with him into the wretched place a
-glimpse of brightness, and the loafers of Lumber’s
-Yard were sorry to see him go.</p>
-
-<p>Harry the giant kept his word, and told off his
-retainers to mount guard by turns over the cottage
-where Bell lay moaning. By and by he found it
-simpler to lock Joe Baker into a shed behind his
-cottage, giving him plenty of sacks to keep him warm,
-and a liberal supply of food, collected from the neighbours.
-In this fashion Joe was kept out of mischief
-until Bell was up and about again; when Harry’s
-elementary sense of justice assured him that he had
-kept his bond with Max and had no further right to
-interfere for the present in the marital affairs of the
-Bakers.</p>
-
-<p>During the long hours of his imprisonment, Joe’s
-memory of Max’s successful plan stirred the drunken<span class="pagenum" id="Page_81">[Pg 81]</span>
-scamp to bitter hatred and a passionate desire for
-revenge. But he knew that to raise a finger against
-“the young Doc’” would be to set the whole village
-in a fury; and dread for the results on his own person
-made him sulk and scowl in secret.</p>
-
-<p>Max, on that eventful evening, went from the
-“Jolly Dog” straight back to the Bakers’ cottage.
-There, as he had hoped, he found his father, and the
-pair walked home in company.</p>
-
-<p>First, the Doctor bestowed a little judicious professional
-praise on his son’s surgical handiwork, and
-made a few comments for Max’s future guidance.
-Next, he turned to a fresh topic&mdash;one which, as might
-easily be seen, was at the time very seriously in his
-thoughts.</p>
-
-<p>“I have been to Rowdon to-night, Max.”</p>
-
-<p>“To the smithy, Dad?” asked Max, glancing up
-quickly. “Is old East any better?”</p>
-
-<p>“He never could have been better,” said the Doctor
-quietly; “now he never will be worse. I was in time,
-Max, to see the end. It was very peaceful&mdash;just the
-sleep of old age. There was really no disease. Nature
-had worn herself out.”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, Dad! Poor Jim! Is he all alone?”</p>
-
-<p>“He has his old servant Elizabeth and her crippled
-husband. But the lad’s sensitiveness shrinks instinctively
-from the sort of condolence people of that class
-usually offer. You know what I mean, Max,” continued
-Dr. Brenton hastily. “I don’t mean that the
-sorrow or the sympathy of poor folks is less real than
-that of their betters as the world counts degree. But
-they have different modes of expression&mdash;and&mdash;well,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_82">[Pg 82]</span>
-Jim is not of Elizabeth’s order. I wondered why,
-until to-night. Old East, before he died, solved the
-mystery for me.”</p>
-
-<p>“How, Dad?” asked Max in surprise.</p>
-
-<p>“You’ll know some day, sonny. I may tell you
-only that East didn’t want me to-night as a medicine
-man. He knew I could do nothing for him. Now,
-Max, I should like you to go to the smithy early to-morrow,
-and see what you can do for Jim.”</p>
-
-<p>“I will, of course, Dad.”</p>
-
-<p>“Take him out for a walk&mdash;encourage him to speak
-his heart to you. ’Twill do him good&mdash;poor boy!
-poor boy! I see trials in store for Jim.”</p>
-
-<p>“Perhaps Frances might go with me? She’s the
-best sympathizer I know of. And she liked old East,
-and has seen him several times since the night we
-lost ourselves in the snow. Couldn’t I tell her?”</p>
-
-<p>“Her mother would not let her go, Max,” interrupted
-the Doctor; “I’m quite sure of it. And perhaps,
-for many reasons, it’s better she shouldn’t. But
-by all means tell her of Jim’s loss. Later on it may
-be her lot to console him. Meanwhile, we blundering
-males can but do our best.”</p>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_VI">CHAPTER VI.<br />
-<small>MUSIC AND MUMMING.</small></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p>It was December the twenty-third, and two o’clock
-in the afternoon. Frances and Austin had finished
-their early dinner at their mother’s luncheon-table,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_83">[Pg 83]</span>
-and were hurrying down the road to the school-house,
-where, by grace of the Rector, the Altruists’ entertainment
-was to be given.</p>
-
-<p>“We still have plenty to do,” exclaimed Frances a
-little breathlessly, for the brother and sister were
-walking at a rapid pace. “The benches have to be
-arranged, and the tables laid, and I have one more wig
-to make for the ‘Ten Little Niggers’.”</p>
-
-<p>“Gramercy!” exclaimed Austin; “did I not count
-ten heads, and ten wigs on the heads, at the dress
-rehearsal yesterday?”</p>
-
-<p>“Teddy’s was not a proper wig,” sighed Frances.
-“You know Teddy has not a mother&mdash;or even an
-aunt, or a cousin, or an old nurse&mdash;to do anything of
-that sort for him. His father’s housekeeper is a
-horrid cross old thing, who would not have let Teddy
-act at all if she could have helped it. So I waylaid
-Mr. Bevers, and made him promise that Teddy should
-do anything I liked; and then Florry and I saw to his
-dresses between us. That is how Teddy comes to be
-a little nigger, and a baker-boy, and a fairy-page. He
-is such a darling, and he sings like a cherub. We
-wanted him ever so badly.”</p>
-
-<p>“Girls always contrive to get what they want.
-They just peg away till they do. I will say, though,
-Frances, that they don’t mind going to any amount of
-trouble about it. Fancy making three dresses for one
-little shaver!”</p>
-
-<p>“The baker-boy dress isn’t much&mdash;just a cap and
-apron,&mdash;and the little nigger was easy. The pink satin
-fairy-page was different, of course. Teddy and Gus,
-in pink and blue, look sweet.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_84">[Pg 84]</span></p>
-
-<p>“They are rather fetching,” condescended Austin.
-“And Max’s idea of letting Teddy and Lilla sing the
-opening duet was a jolly good one. I’m not gone on
-babies, but Lilla’s a picture in that old-world thing
-her mother has dressed her up in.”</p>
-
-<p>“She’s a picture as a fairy too,” said Frances;
-“though I think the minuet will be the most picturesque
-bit of the play. Florry is a lovely fairy god-mother,
-isn’t she? I do think she’s clever enough to
-act at the Lyceum!”</p>
-
-<p>“The play’s the thing, undoubtedly, as Mr. Hamlet
-of Denmark remarked. Just wait till you see our
-Travesty, though. I flatter myself we’ll make Woodendites
-sit up. Max and I have worked out a splendid
-blood-curdling duel, with that drop-lunge Mr. Carlyon
-taught us for a finish. You didn’t see it at rehearsal
-yesterday?”</p>
-
-<p>“No, I was called away; but I’m sure it will be
-capital. Max is funny, as <i>Laertes</i>. And Frank Temple
-is a fine <i>King</i>. How lucky it is he had that lovely
-dress of red velvet and ermine!”</p>
-
-<p>“It is a real stage-dress. Frank had an uncle who
-went on the stage and became a famous actor. The
-regal robes belonged to him.”</p>
-
-<p>“Fancy! That is interesting. I wonder what he
-would say if he knew they were going to be worn in
-the Hamlet Travesty.”</p>
-
-<p>“He’d think it jolly cheek.”</p>
-
-<p>“We never could have done the Travesty without
-Mr. Carlyon. Of course, it was his plan that we should
-act it; so I suppose that’s why he has been so much
-interested in it. And Miss Carlyon has stage-managed<span class="pagenum" id="Page_85">[Pg 85]</span>
-Florry’s play for us: she said it was her duty as president
-of the Altruists.&mdash;There’s Betty Turner, Austin.
-Make haste, and we’ll catch her up.”</p>
-
-<p>The active pair soon caught up Betty, who was
-exceedingly plump, and was never seen in a hurry.
-She looked at her friends in mild amazement as they
-pelted down the hill and pulled up one on each side
-of her.</p>
-
-<p>“How you two do excite yourselves!” she observed
-languidly. “Francy’s cheeks are as red as beet-root,
-and Austin will have no breath left for his song.”</p>
-
-<p>“We shouldn’t enjoy anything if we didn’t get
-enthusiastic!” laughed Frances. “And isn’t this the
-great occasion&mdash;the Altruists’ field-day?”</p>
-
-<p>“I shall have to leave the club, you make me so
-hot!” chuckled Betty. “I feel like building a snow-man
-when I look at you. At least, somebody else
-might build him for me, while I watched. The sensation
-would be equally cooling.”</p>
-
-<p>“And not nearly so fatiguing,” said Austin. “Won’t
-you enjoy filling a hundred tea-cups twice over, Betty?”</p>
-
-<p>“Catch me, indeed! I sha’n’t do the pouring out&mdash;that’s
-for May and Violet. They like it. Especially
-May. She has a genius for mathematics, and will be
-able to solve the problem of how many spoonfuls of
-tea to the pot, and how many pots to the tea-tableful
-of old women.”</p>
-
-<p>“Give ’em plenty,” urged Austin. “Tibby Prout
-told me she hadn’t tasted tea this winter.”</p>
-
-<p>“Tibby Prout!” repeated Betty meditatively. “I’ll
-keep my eye on Tibby: she shall have six cups. Just
-write her name here, Austin.” Betty pulled a notebook<span class="pagenum" id="Page_86">[Pg 86]</span>
-and pencil from her pocket. “It is so tiring to
-remember names.”</p>
-
-<p>“You’ll have to remember to look in your notebook;
-and then you’ll have to remember why the name
-of Tibby Prout is written there; and then you’ll have
-to remember why I, and not you, have written it.”</p>
-
-<p>“So I shall!” agreed Betty mournfully; and with
-an air of great depression she turned in at the school-house
-gate.</p>
-
-<p>“‘A plump and pleasing person’,” whispered Austin
-mischievously in his sister’s ear. “It’s a good thing
-she’s amiable, as there’s so much of her!”</p>
-
-<p>The boy ran off, laughing, to greet Max, who was
-just coming up to the gate. In his company came
-“Harry” the giant, a broad grin on his stolid face.</p>
-
-<p>“See whom I’ve brought!” exclaimed Max, when
-greetings and confidences had passed between the
-chums. “You needn’t worry any longer about the
-benches, Frances. Harry has promised to arrange
-them all, just as you like.”</p>
-
-<p>“That is kind of you, Harry,” said the girl, looking
-at the rustic with the frank kindliness which acted
-like a charm on her poorer neighbours, and made them
-her faithful allies. “I just wanted somebody very
-strong and rather patient. It will take a good while
-to move the benches, but it would have taken the
-boys twice as long as it will take you.”</p>
-
-<p>“Never fear, Miss,” said the giant heartily; “I’ll turn
-this ’ere place upside-down in ’arf an hour, if so be as
-you want it.”</p>
-
-<p>Then they all set busily to work. The school-house
-contained one large room, of which the upper part<span class="pagenum" id="Page_87">[Pg 87]</span>
-possessed a platform which was used for all sorts of
-village entertainments, such as penny-readings and
-magic-lantern shows. The young Altruist carpenters
-had rigged-up a plain screen of wood above and at
-the sides of the platform, and this, when hung with
-drapery, took the place of a proscenium, and was fitted
-with a curtain which would draw up and down.
-There were two entrances, right and left of the stage,
-and simple appliances to hold the simple scenery.
-Not much scope was given, perhaps, for elaborate
-effects; but Miss Carlyon as stage-manager, and
-Florry as dramatist, had used their wits, and some of
-their contrivances were wonderfully ingenious. They
-had availed themselves, too, of such opportunities as
-were offered by the command of a passage running
-from one stage-door to the other, outside the room.
-Here they marshalled their processions, and assembled
-their hidden choir, and even found room for one or
-two members of the orchestra when these were wanted
-to discourse music at moving moments of the performances.</p>
-
-<p>Owing to the length of the programme, the proceedings
-were to begin at four o’clock, with a generous
-tea. Before the hour arrived the Carlyons made their
-appearance, and were immediately in the thick of
-everything. Edward, his long coat flying behind him,
-dashed hither and thither in response to agonized calls
-from boys in difficulties; while Muriel gave helping
-hands to her girls, until the preparations for tea were
-complete.</p>
-
-<p>Every Altruist wore a crimson badge, and a similar
-one was presented to every guest on entrance. The<span class="pagenum" id="Page_88">[Pg 88]</span>
-stage-hangings were crimson; the Christmas greetings
-hung up on the walls were fashioned in crimson letters
-on a white ground. Of course the room was prettily
-decorated with green-stuffs and berries, and the long
-tables grouped in the background were ornamented
-with lovely flowers. Altogether, the aspect of the
-room was distinctly festive when, as the clock struck
-four, the doors were thrown open and the guests began
-to pour in. Men, women, and children&mdash;all had been
-invited; and for once the denizens of Lumber’s Yard
-mingled with the better-class cottagers. Bell Baker,
-still pale, and poorly-clad, was brought under the care
-of the Doctor himself, who had borrowed a bath-chair,
-and packed his suffering charge into it. With Bell
-came her three eldest children; the baby was being
-cared for by an enterprising cottage-woman, who had
-decided to stay at home from the Altruist Feast and
-“take in” babies at a penny the head! The resulting
-fortune in shillings was a satisfactory consolation to
-her for the loss of her treat.</p>
-
-<p>The Altruist fund might have fallen short of the
-demands made on it for the expenses of the grand
-entertainment, had it not been amply supplemented
-by those well-to-do inhabitants of Woodend who were
-interested in the undertaking. The feasts proper&mdash;both
-tea and supper&mdash;were “entirely provided by
-voluntary contributions”, as Frances had proudly
-announced at the last meeting of the Society. The
-rector offered fifty pounds of beef; Miss Carlyon’s
-cookery-class made a score of plum-puddings and a
-hundred mince-pies, the materials coming from the
-kitchens of Altruists’ mothers; the oranges and apples<span class="pagenum" id="Page_89">[Pg 89]</span>
-and almonds and raisins, with such trifles as bon-bons
-and sweets, were sent in by various Altruists’ fathers.
-Mrs. Morland promised fifty pounds of cake, and as
-Austin was allowed to do the ordering it was as
-plummy as Christmas cake knows how to be. In this
-way gifts rapidly mounted up; and by the time it
-became necessary to reckon up the funds, Frances
-found that she had only sugar to provide!</p>
-
-<p>This was very cheering to the young leader of the
-Altruists, who had dreaded having to check the bounding
-ambition of her associates. The sewing-meetings
-had done great things with scarlet flannel and crimson
-wool; but in this direction, also, the grown-ups were
-kind. Mrs. Morland, who had quietly assumed the
-headship of Woodend society, dropped polite hints at
-dinner-parties and distributed confidences at “At
-Homes”. It became generally understood that all
-contributions of new and useful clothing would be
-thankfully received in the club-room. Perhaps Mrs.
-Morland’s patronage did less for the cause than did
-the popularity of her daughter. Frances was everybody’s
-favourite; and the pleasure of receiving her
-earnest thanks, and seeing the joyful light in her grave
-gray eyes, sent many a Woodend matron and maid to
-the making of shirts.</p>
-
-<p>The Carlyons had determined privately to run no
-risk of usurping the credit which belonged of right to
-the originators of the entertainment; and they kept
-very much behind the scenes during the evening,
-except when sharing the labours of the party told off
-to preserve order and see that all the guests were comfortably
-placed. Tea over, and the tables cleared, the<span class="pagenum" id="Page_90">[Pg 90]</span>
-orchestra struck up a lively medley of popular tunes,
-while the company were ranged on the benches that
-Harry had set in two rows, facing the stage, in the
-upper part of the long room. Behind these benches
-was a small space, and then a few rows of chairs
-for the families and friends of the Altruists, who were
-to be permitted to view the performances in consideration
-of their liberal help.</p>
-
-<p>When all were seated, and quiet reigned in the
-neighbourhood of the empty tea-tables, the orchestra
-ceased to make melody, and Miss Carlyon, slipping
-round from the back, took her place before the piano,
-the fifteen-year-old Pianist of the band retiring modestly
-to a three-legged stool that she shared with the
-fourteen-year-old First Violin. The footlights were
-turned up, the gas in the auditorium was turned
-down; on the whole audience fell the hush of expectancy.
-Miss Carlyon played a few bars of a simple
-children’s song; then the curtain swayed backward
-a little to allow two performers to step before it.</p>
-
-<div class="figcenter illowp50" id="i-091" style="max-width: 28em;">
- <img class="w100" src="images/i-091.png" alt="" />
- <div class="caption"><p>M432</p>
-<p class="center">“A STORY WE BRING YOU FROM FAËRY LAND.”</p></div>
-</div>
-
-<p>First came Teddy Bevers, beautiful to behold in his
-pink satin tunic trimmed with swansdown, lace ruffles,
-pink silk stockings, and buckled shoes. His dark
-curls bobbed merrily all over his little head, as, holding
-his pink hat with its white plume behind him, he
-bowed low to another small figure tripping after him.
-Lilla Turner was a tiny, slender maiden, just the
-opposite of plump Betty, her sister and slave; she
-wore a short petticoat of quilted white satin, and a
-Watteau bodice and panier of white and gold brocade.
-Lilla returned Teddy’s bow with a sweeping curtsey,
-then took his offered hand, and the little pair paced
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_91">[Pg 91]</span>solemnly to the front and made a profound salute to
-the audience. Both sang prettily; and Miss Carlyon’s
-careful teaching had given them a clear enunciation,
-which made the words of their prologue audible
-throughout the room:</p>
-
-<div class="poetry-container">
-<div class="poetry">
- <div class="stanza">
- <div class="verse indent0">“A story we bring you from Faëry Land,</div>
- <div class="verse indent2">A story of gallant, and maiden, and sprite;</div>
- <div class="verse indent0">And we ask you to lend us a favouring hand,</div>
- <div class="verse indent2">While we tell it, and sing it, and act it to-night.</div>
- <div class="verse indent4">List, list to our story of maiden and fay,</div>
- <div class="verse indent4">Of prince, knight, and peasant; oh, listen, we pray!”</div>
- </div>
-</div>
-</div>
-
-<p>Teddy and Lilla continued, through three verses, to
-entreat the indulgence of an audience already disposed
-to be more than kind; then the salutes were sedately
-repeated, and the little couple vanished amid enraptured
-applause. The beauty and grace of the small actors
-had warmed the hearts of the workaday folk to whom
-they sang, and the Woodend villagers demanded an
-encore with all their hands and tongues.</p>
-
-<p>The programme was long enough already; and,
-besides, Florry’s sense of dramatic fitness made her
-look on a repetition of her prologue as something like
-barbarism. So Teddy and Lilla were told to go on
-again and bow their acknowledgments; which they
-did, kissing their hands ere they finally retired.</p>
-
-<p>They had paved the way admirably for the others,
-and the fairy play was throughout a brilliant success.
-The curtain was rung down on a most picturesque
-tableau, while Max burned red fire at the wings, and
-the orchestra discoursed sweet music. Three times the
-curtain was raised before the audience would be satisfied;
-and even then there were calls for the “author”,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_92">[Pg 92]</span>
-and Florry was pulled on to the stage by a group of
-enthusiastic little fairies.</p>
-
-<p>A big sigh of satisfaction seemed to come from
-everybody; and the onlookers were still assuring each
-other that nothing could beat the fairy play, when the
-orchestra struck up a familiar melody. All the boys
-on the benches began to hum appreciatively; and the
-curtain slowly rose, while across the stage in a couple
-of bounds sprang the First Little Nigger. His age was
-twelve, his face and hands were sooty-black; he wore
-a costume of scarlet-and-white striped cotton jacket,
-green knickerbockers, one scarlet and one white stocking,
-a white collar of enormous proportions, and a lovely
-horse-hair wig. After him came his nine brothers, in
-similar raiment, and in gradations of size, which ended
-in Teddy Bevers, who informed his hearers that he was
-the “Tenth Little Nigger Boy!”</p>
-
-<p>Mr. Carlyon had written a new version of the historic
-ditty&mdash;a version strictly topical, and full of harmless
-local allusions, which won peals of laughter from the
-benches. The actors had been taught some amusing
-by-play; and their antics drew shrieks of delight from
-small boys and girls, who had gaped in uncomprehending
-wonderment at the Fairy Godmother. It was of
-no use to try to refuse an encore for the Ten Little Niggers,
-so Mr. Carlyon sent them on again to repeat their
-fun and frolic for the benefit of the little ones in front.</p>
-
-<p>The niggers had brought the younger portion of the
-audience into such an uproarious condition that the
-feelings of the First Violin were sadly tried by the hubbub
-amid which she stepped on to the platform. But
-now, if ever, Woodend was on its good behaviour; and,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_93">[Pg 93]</span>
-as the elders wanted to “hear the music”, they coaxed
-and scolded the juniors into a restless silence. However,
-the melting strains of Raff’s “Cavatina” were not
-beyond the appreciation of anybody; and those who
-did not admire her plaintive performance for its own
-sake, were full of wonder at the skill of the First Violin.
-The next item on the programme was a vocal duet by
-Frances and her brother. Austin sang well in a
-charmingly fresh treble, with which his sister’s alto
-blended very prettily; and the pair had practised most
-conscientiously. This was the only number of the
-programme in which Frances’s name appeared. The
-girl had declined to be put down for anything which
-would give her prominence, because she knew her
-mother would prefer to see Austin to the fore, and
-Frances had a delicate instinct which warned her not
-to court jealousy by claiming too much for the Morland
-family. Austin had played one of the best parts
-in the fairy piece, was to play <i>Hamlet</i> in some scenes
-selected by Mr. Carlyon from Poole’s “Travesty”, and
-besides his duet with Frances, had a solo to sing. Nobody
-grudged the bright, good-natured boy his many
-appearances, but Frances felt that they ought to suffice
-for both.</p>
-
-<p>The concert swung gaily on its way. The First Little
-Nigger, still sooty of face and brilliant of attire, sang
-<i>Hard times come again no more</i> to his own banjo
-accompaniment, and was rewarded by the sight of
-many pocket-handkerchiefs surreptitiously drawn
-forth. There was a flute solo from Guy Gordon, a
-musician whose fancy usually hovered between the
-jew’s-harp and the concertina; but on this occasion he<span class="pagenum" id="Page_94">[Pg 94]</span>
-gave a “Romance” for his more classical instrument,
-and moved to emulation every rustic owner of a penny
-whistle. Three little lads, dressed as sailor-boys, were
-immensely popular in a nautical ditty, which cast a
-general defiance at everybody who might presume to
-dispute the sovereignty of <i>The Mistress of the Sea</i>;
-and three little girls with three little brooms joined in
-a <i>Housemaid’s Complaint</i>, which set forth in touching
-terms the sufferings of domestics who were compelled
-to be up by ten, and to dine on cold mutton and
-fried potatoes. Songs, humorous and pathetic, filled
-up the concert programme, until it terminated in a
-costume chorus, <i>How to make a Cake</i>.</p>
-
-<p>This item was an exemplification of the picturesque
-possibilities of familiar things. A table in
-the middle of the stage was presided over by Betty,
-attired in print frock, cap, and apron. In front of
-her on the table stood a big basin. To her entered
-a train of boy and girl cooks, carrying aloft bags
-and plates containing materials for cake-making. A
-lively song, descriptive of the action, accompanied
-Betty’s demonstration of the results of her cookery
-studies; the cake was mixed, kneaded, disposed of
-in a tin, and proudly borne off to an imaginary
-stove by Guy Gordon, the biggest baker. The song
-continued, descriptive of the delightful anticipations
-of the cake-makers; and when Guy returned carrying
-a huge plum-cake, this was promptly cut into
-slices by Betty and distributed among her helpers,
-who, munching under difficulties, marched round the
-stage to a triumphant chorus of “<i>We’ll show you how
-to eat it!</i>”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_95">[Pg 95]</span></p>
-
-<p>Max was to appear as <i>Laertes</i> in the Travesty, and
-had hitherto taken no more distinguished part in the
-entertainment than the playing of what it pleased him
-to call “twentieth fiddle” in the orchestra. But he
-now found greatness thrust upon him. No sooner
-had the cooks acknowledged their call and vanished,
-than Harry the giant uprose in his place, and boldly
-addressed Mr. Carlyon.</p>
-
-<p>“Axing parding, sir, if I may make so bold, there’s
-some of us ’ere&mdash;me and my mates&mdash;wot knows as
-’ow the young Doc’ can sing a rare good song. And
-we takes the liberty of askin’ Master Max to favour
-us.”</p>
-
-<p>Harry’s speech created an immediate sensation; but
-his sentiments were upheld by prolonged applause from
-his “mates” and the audience generally.</p>
-
-<p>Edward Carlyon successfully maintained a strict
-impartiality in his dealings with his pupils; but in
-his heart of hearts he kept a special corner for Max
-Brenton. Well pleased with Harry’s request, he leant
-towards the “twentieth fiddle”, and said:</p>
-
-<p>“You hear, Max? You’re honoured by a distinct
-invitation; so up with you to the platform and let’s
-hear what you can do!”</p>
-
-<p>Max, covered with blushes, was pushed forward by
-the entire orchestra, while Carlyon seated himself in
-front of the piano.</p>
-
-<p>“What shall it be, lad?&mdash;<i>The Old Brigade</i>, I think.
-Muriel, will you tell the boys and girls behind to provide
-Max with a chorus?”</p>
-
-<p>Max plucked up courage, and obeyed. His slight
-figure, in its trim Eton suit, stood out bravely on the<span class="pagenum" id="Page_96">[Pg 96]</span>
-platform, reminding Harry and one or two others of
-another evening when the boy had sung “against
-time” to save a woman from suffering.</p>
-
-<p>All the Altruists knew <i>The Old Brigade</i>, and had
-chimed in with a chorus many a time when the Carlyons’
-young choristers had held their merry practices
-in the boys’ school-room. So the gallant song went
-with splendid spirit, and when it reached its last verse
-the chorus was reinforced by the greater number of
-the audience, who proceeded rapturously to encore
-themselves.</p>
-
-<p>Max’s song was an excellent finish to the concert;
-and then the onlookers were allowed a few minutes to
-recover their breath and discuss the performance, while
-the stage was made ready for the Travesty.</p>
-
-<p>In front reigned mirth, satisfaction, and pleasing
-hopes of more good things to come. Behind, the aspect
-of affairs had changed suddenly. At the end of Max’s
-song a letter was handed to Carlyon, whose face, as
-he read, became a proclamation of disaster. He was
-in the little room at the end of the passage, which had
-been made ready for the use of the performers when
-off the platform; and round him had gathered the boys
-and girls who were to figure in the Travesty.</p>
-
-<p>“Bad news, youngsters,” said Carlyon dismally.
-“The first hitch in our evening’s entertainment. I
-wondered why Frank Temple was so late in arriving.
-This letter&mdash;which evidently ought to have reached
-me before&mdash;is to tell me that Mr. and Mrs. Temple
-have been summoned by telegram to Mr. Temple’s
-home, where his father is lying dangerously ill. The
-boy was named in the telegram&mdash;his grandfather had<span class="pagenum" id="Page_97">[Pg 97]</span>
-asked for him; so of course he has gone with his
-parents. Now,” continued Carlyon, looking at the
-blank faces before him, “I know that all of you will
-feel very much for Frank; but just at present we
-must think also of the poor folk in the school-room,
-who are waiting patiently for your appearance. What
-shall we do? Shall we give up the Travesty? Or
-will someone go on and read the part of the <i>King</i>?”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, don’t stop the play! Let’s act!” cried some.</p>
-
-<p>“Max and Austin’s fencing-match is so funny!” cried
-others.</p>
-
-<p>“Well, I think myself we ought to proceed, and do
-our best. The question is, who can read the <i>King</i>?
-It must be someone who knows something about the
-piece&mdash;”</p>
-
-<p>“Frances!” exclaimed Max immediately. “Frances
-has been at all the rehearsals; and she has often read
-the <i>King’s</i> part when she was hearing Austin and me
-say ours!”</p>
-
-<p>Frances at first held back; but when she saw that
-she was really the best person to fill the breach, she
-made no more ado, but began to look about for a
-costume.</p>
-
-<p>“If only Frank had thought of sending his,” said
-Max, regretful of the crimson velvet and ermine. “It
-would have done quite nicely for Frances. The tunic
-would have covered her frock.”</p>
-
-<p>“We can hardly borrow it without leave, though.
-Well, I must let you settle the knotty point of costume
-for yourselves, youngsters, while I help my sister with
-the stage.”</p>
-
-<p>Carlyon rushed off, nodding encouragingly to<span class="pagenum" id="Page_98">[Pg 98]</span>
-Frances, who had her eyes on the play-book and
-on every corner of the room in turn. Suddenly she
-darted over to a table covered by a crimson cloth.</p>
-
-<p>“Hurrah!” she cried. “Here’s my tunic. A little
-ingenuity will soon drape it gracefully about my
-kingly person.”</p>
-
-<p>Frances had seized the table-cover; and now, amid
-peals of laughter, she began, with Austin’s assistance,
-to pin herself into it. Max vanished from the room,
-returning in three minutes with two articles borrowed
-from friends among the Altruists’ relations in the
-audience.</p>
-
-<p>“See, Frances! This fur-lined cape will make you
-a lovely cloak, and this fur tippet, put on back to
-front, will be your regal collar. About your neck and
-waist we will dispose the fairy prince’s gold chains,
-and he shall lend you his sword, likewise his cap.”</p>
-
-<p>“Not his cap,” amended Austin, who was dancing a
-triumphant jig round his sister. “Frank left his crown
-here yesterday after rehearsal, and Frances can wear
-that.”</p>
-
-<p>“And her sleeves will look all right. What a good
-thing your frock is of black velvet, Frances!”</p>
-
-<p>By the time the young costumiers had finished they
-had turned out quite an effective <i>King</i>. Frances’s
-dark hair, waving to her shoulders, was pronounced
-“a first-rate wig” when the regal crown had been
-fitted on. The Carlyons declared the new <i>King</i> to
-be admirably attired; and Frances, relieved of anxiety
-about her costume, entered fully into the fun.</p>
-
-<p>“I’m a ‘king of shreds and patches’ like Shakespeare’s
-man,” she chuckled; “but so long as my<span class="pagenum" id="Page_99">[Pg 99]</span>
-various garments hold together, I don’t mind! Max,
-if I could get a few minutes to look through this
-long speech, I believe I could manage without the
-book. I’ve heard Frank say his part ever so often.”</p>
-
-<p>“You’ve helped everybody, Frances,” said Max, remembering
-gratefully his own indebtedness, “and now
-you’re going to shine yourself. You’ll have time to
-read up your part before you go on.”</p>
-
-<p>The spirit of true burlesque is rare among amateurs;
-but youngsters who act for the fun of the thing, and
-not merely to “show off”, are often capable of excellent
-comedy. Carlyon had chosen with care the boys and
-girls who were to perform in the Travesty, and had
-trained them sufficiently but not too much. Entering
-completely into the humour of parody, one and all
-acted with plenty of vigour and without a trace of
-self-consciousness. Max and Austin had arranged a
-serio-comic fencing-match, which was brought to a
-melodramatic finish by a clever rapier trick. Frances’s
-play with the poisoned cup sent Betty, the lackadaisical
-<i>Queen</i>, into a series of private giggles, which she was
-compelled to conceal by an unexpectedly rapid demise.
-At last the curtain rang down on Austin’s farewell
-speech.</p>
-
-<p>The boys and girls who during the long evening had
-figured on the platform assembled in the green-room
-for a brief chatter over their experiences. They were
-in high spirits and honestly happy; for they felt that
-they had done their best, and that their best had
-given several bright and pleasant hours to folks whose
-lives were but dull and gray.</p>
-
-<p>Buns, sandwiches, and lemonade provided the<span class="pagenum" id="Page_100">[Pg 100]</span>
-Altruists’ modest refreshment. They had thoroughly
-earned their supper, but they hurried through it in
-order to make an appearance at the feast-tables of
-their guests. There was neither time nor place for
-change of dress; so the actors in their motley garb
-now mingled with their audience, greatly to the
-latter’s delight. Sweets and bon-bons tasted twice as
-good when handed round by Teddy in pink satin,
-and Lilla in white; and a whole troop of little fairies
-dispensed almonds and raisins at a lavish rate. The
-movement of the guests to the supper-tables at the end
-of the room was the signal for the retirement of upper-class
-Woodend to the neighbourhood of the platform,
-whence it watched its young people justifying their
-motto, “Help Others”.</p>
-
-<p>“Austin,” whispered Frances, “aren’t you sorry poor
-Jim isn’t here?”</p>
-
-<p>“Jim?” questioned her brother. “Why, wouldn’t he
-have been a cut above these good folk?”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, yes, of course. He wouldn’t need anyone to
-give him supper or a woollen comforter, I suppose.
-But he could have seen the acting, and he would have
-helped us.”</p>
-
-<p>“Really, Frances, you are ridiculous. You have such
-a fancy for Jim&mdash;as though we could have had a fellow
-like that tagging on to us all the evening.”</p>
-
-<p>“I could have put up with him very well,” returned
-Frances calmly; “and he would have been very useful.
-Don’t <i>you</i> be ridiculous, Austin.”</p>
-
-<p>Austin muttered something about not wanting “loafing
-cads” in his vicinity; and was called so severely to
-task for his unmannerly epithet that he retired to<span class="pagenum" id="Page_101">[Pg 101]</span>
-grumble mildly in Max’s ear. But Max, too, liked
-Jim, and regretted the lad’s absence and the cause of
-it. He was sure that Frances was thinking pitifully
-of Jim’s lonely Christmas, and his sympathy was with
-Frances, not with her brother. Austin saw that his
-grumble must seek another sympathizer, and while
-looking for one, he noticed an old man’s empty plate,
-and flew to fulfil the duty of an Altruist host.</p>
-
-<p>Supper was followed by a distribution of gifts. The
-presents numbered two for each person, and the ambition
-of the society had decreed that they should be
-strictly useful and of a kind to give some real comfort
-to the recipients. Thus, flannel shirts, knitted vests
-and socks, and cardigan jackets were handed to the
-men; while the women received warm skirts, bodices,
-and petticoats, “overall” aprons, and woollen shawls.
-Crimson was the hue of most of the clothing, and
-Max’s prophecy concerning the Altruist village seemed
-on the way to fulfilment. Thanks came heartily and
-in full measure from the delighted guests; and when
-their best spokesman had been put forward to offer
-the gratitude of the poor of Woodend to “the young
-ladies and gentlemen what had shown them a kindness
-they’d never forget”, good-byes became general, the
-village-folk trooped out, and the happy evening was
-really over.</p>
-
-<hr class="tb" />
-
-<p>Mrs. Morland went home alone in her carriage,
-promising to send it back for Frances and Austin, who
-were to take Max with them and set him down at his
-father’s gate. A wonderful amount of consideration
-from Woodend invalids had left Dr. Brenton free for a<span class="pagenum" id="Page_102">[Pg 102]</span>
-whole evening, and among the Altruist audience not one
-had been happier than he. Now he went off with his
-borrowed bath-chair and its weakly occupant, meaning
-not only to see poor Mrs. Baker safely indoors, but to
-satisfy himself that her husband, who had stayed
-sulking at home, was propitiated by the present of
-warm shirts and socks which Frances had chosen as
-the likeliest pacifiers.</p>
-
-<p>The boys were still in their fancy dress, and obliged
-to wait in the school-room for Mrs. Morland’s carriage;
-but Frances, in her cosy frock and jacket, could defy
-the snow without, and she accompanied some of her
-friends to the gate and saw them off. As the last
-carriage full of boys and girls rolled smoothly away,
-she still stood thoughtfully by the roadside. Frances
-was thoroughly content; her heart seemed full of peace
-and good-will to all the world, and lifting her face to
-the moonlit sky, she searched half-consciously for those
-old friends Orion and the Plough, while her happy
-young face smiled in memory of all the joys that
-evening had brought for her.</p>
-
-<p>“She does look kind!” mused a lad hidden in the
-shadow of some bushes opposite. “Kind and gentle
-and good! It was worth while to tramp from Rowdon
-to see Miss Frances’s face to-night. She has been
-making folks happy, as her way is, God bless her!
-I was afraid before I came,&mdash;but now I’m glad. Miss
-Frances will be kind, I know she will. The boy’s
-different, and I doubt he’ll be against me; but what
-shall I care, if Missy is kind?”</p>
-
-<p>Jim East lifted his head, and stood erect and
-brave.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_103">[Pg 103]</span></p>
-
-<p>“Nay, what should I care, with all the world against
-me, so long as Missy was kind?”</p>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_VII">CHAPTER VII.<br />
-<small>PHOTOGRAPHERS ABROAD.</small></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p>Mrs. Morland, as may have been gathered, was
-in a sense an indulgent mother, and her children
-lacked nothing necessary for their health or their
-comfort. Her personal interest in their private concerns,
-their hobbies, their undertakings, their studies,
-was regulated entirely by what she estimated as social
-opinion&mdash;by the effect which the particular hobby or
-pursuit in question might have on the position of
-Frances and of Austin among their juvenile fellows,
-and in the eyes of Mrs. Morland’s own acquaintances.</p>
-
-<p>Thus, she had almost from the first set the seal of her
-approval on the Society of the Altruists; because she
-observed that Frances, as founder and leader of that
-energetic body, had secured a kind of sovereignty over
-her comrades; also, that the majority of the better-class
-Woodendites spoke well of the young people’s
-efforts, and gave honour to Frances as the inspirer of
-all their best intentions. Greater still was the credit
-given to the girl for the modesty which made her
-obviously unaware of the good opinions she had won
-from her mother’s friends, and for the unselfishness
-which made her eager to admire the generous labours
-of her supporters; and Mrs. Morland was careful to do<span class="pagenum" id="Page_104">[Pg 104]</span>
-nothing to make Frances more self-conscious, and
-therefore less attractive to critical eyes.</p>
-
-<p>At home, the mother was content to give an
-occasional peep into the club-room when a meeting
-was in full swing, and to subscribe liberally when
-funds were requisitioned; abroad, she was fond of
-allusions to “my lassie’s up-to-date fancies,&mdash;which
-really, you know, are quite amusingly altruistic”.
-Mrs. Morland was by no means a popular person,
-in spite of her local distinction. Woodend happened
-to be favoured with, for its size, an unusually large
-number of well-to-do residents; and among these, by
-birth, by fortune, by knowledge of the world, Mrs.
-Morland had an undoubted prominence. When qualities
-of head and heart were considered, her claims
-were less readily admitted.</p>
-
-<p>Yet she was, in a degree, an able woman, though
-her talents were purely social, and she had no sympathy
-with art or with letters except in so far as
-they might help to secure social consideration. Austin
-inherited a share of his mother’s gifts, and was naturally
-her favourite child. In Frances she detected all
-those qualities which had least appealed to her in her
-husband’s character; but as most people seemed to
-find these traits admirable, she gave them toleration
-on account of their value in the eyes of others.</p>
-
-<p>Christmas-day dawned in what the girls and boys
-of Woodend called “proper weather”&mdash;snow under
-foot, clear blue sky and sunshine overhead. Frances
-and Austin had worked hard on Christmas-eve at
-church decorations, proving themselves Muriel Carlyon’s
-best allies. Their mother viewed without enthusiasm<span class="pagenum" id="Page_105">[Pg 105]</span>
-the ornamentation of her pictures, furniture,
-and walls, when the materials were holly and fir.
-Indeed, she called such time-honoured greenstuff
-“messy nonsense”, which soiled whatever it touched
-when fresh, and covered the floors with litter when
-dry. In church, she found it unnecessary to disapprove
-of anything which had the sanctity of tradition
-to support its use; and so she willingly granted Muriel’s
-request that the two youngsters might be spared to
-help her, and allowed to share her luncheon in order
-to save the time spent in going home.</p>
-
-<p>Muriel Carlyon was a popular person both in school
-and out of it, but she certainly shone as a holiday
-companion. She was as invariably ready to interest
-herself in the latest schemes of harmless frolic as in
-the soberer matters of daily life and duty, and had
-been quite as enthusiastic as any of her pupils over
-the plans for the great entertainment, quite as delighted
-at its triumphant success. There were a few
-among her younger friends who knew that her sympathies
-could go deeper still, that she could sorrow with
-the sorrowing, and point the way to seek for comfort.</p>
-
-<p>The old rector, Dr. Stansby, looked on Edward and
-Muriel Carlyon almost as a son and daughter. They
-spent with him all they could of their scanty leisure,
-and held it a pleasant duty to see that a sense of
-growing infirmity should not touch his peace of mind.
-No parish matter could be neglected while these two
-workers watched over affairs, and Edward tackled
-bravely the few abuses which old-fashioned prejudices
-had rendered unassailable in the days when Dr.
-Stansby had laboured alone.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_106">[Pg 106]</span></p>
-
-<p>The brightness of the Christmas morning with
-which my story is concerned was reflected in the faces
-of Mrs. Morland’s pair of youngsters as they ran into
-the breakfast-room to see what fate had sent them.
-Their mother followed at leisure, her simple winter
-morning-gown falling gracefully about her stately
-person. She never had been known to be in a hurry;
-and of late years the assured comfort of her circumstances,
-and the small demands made on her for sustained
-exertion, had weakened further her naturally
-inert disposition. But she had a smiling face for her
-children when they sprang back to throw their arms
-about her and offer grateful kisses.</p>
-
-<p>Before Austin’s place at table stood a beautiful
-enlarging camera, which would surely be a priceless
-help in the practice of the “dark art”; he found, too,
-a fine array of photographic plates and papers, and
-the latest thing in “print-washers”, as a gift from
-his sister. All these matters being of moment in
-regard to his latest hobby, the boy was certain that
-no present could have pleased him better. Frances
-found herself the possessor of a beautiful writing-case,
-fitted with everything necessary and unnecessary.
-Austin had amused himself and Max vastly
-by a special journey to Exham in order to select
-his present, which now astonished his sister’s eyes.
-It was a plain wicker work-basket of enormous proportions;
-and half an hour of coaxing had induced
-Muriel Carlyon to line the monster with crimson silk,
-on which were stitched at regular intervals great white
-letters:</p>
-
-<p>“FRANCES THE ALTRUIST”.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_107">[Pg 107]</span></p>
-
-<p>The peals of laughter with which Frances received
-this offering, and in which Austin joined, almost
-upset Mrs. Morland’s equanimity; but just as she
-began to think of frowning, the lively couple calmed
-down and pounced on the row of new story-books,
-which were to be a joint possession.</p>
-
-<p>Frances remembered for long afterwards the special
-peacefulness and happiness which seemed to mark
-the morning of that Christmas-day. Never had she
-more thoroughly enjoyed the service in the old Woodend
-church, with the rector’s benign face seeming to
-greet each well-known member of his congregation,
-and Edward Carlyon reading the familiar prayers,
-and Muriel accompanying on the organ her well-trained
-choir of boys and men. The choristers were
-recruited chiefly from Mr. Carlyon’s pupils, so that
-Austin was the soloist that morning, and sang with
-bird-like clearness a vocal hymn of joy and praise.</p>
-
-<p>The children dined late with their mother on great
-occasions, and now, after a luncheon of sandwiches,
-mince-pies, jelly, and cream, they hurried out for a
-run which might assist digestion. Austin carried his
-camera, for he pined to get a snow-effect, and thought
-that the view of Woodend village from the elevation
-on which his mother’s house stood would answer
-admirably for a subject.</p>
-
-<p>“It wasn’t worth while to bring my camera-case,”
-announced the boy, as he darted round from a side-door
-his arms burdened with impedimenta. “You
-won’t mind carrying something, will you, Frances,
-as it’s such a little way we’re going?”</p>
-
-<p>“I always carry something,” replied his sister<span class="pagenum" id="Page_108">[Pg 108]</span>
-calmly; “and I would have come to help you collect
-your baggage if Mater hadn’t called me back to write
-a letter for her. It was only a little letter, but it took
-time. Everything takes time. I wish the days were
-twice as long.”</p>
-
-<p>“Well, as they’re at their shortest now, and we’ve
-only two hours of light before us, we’d better scurry.
-There, I’ve dropped my dark cloth, and I can’t stoop
-to pick it up.”</p>
-
-<p>“Mercy! Are your dark slides in it?”</p>
-
-<p>“No, better luck.”</p>
-
-<p>“But ought you to carry them without any covering?
-I’m sure light will get in and fog the plates
-when the sun shines like this.”</p>
-
-<p>“It’s December sun,” said Austin testily. “And
-what’s the use of calling the slides ‘dark’ if they let
-in the light?”</p>
-
-<p>“I don’t know; but surely you remember last week,
-that waster you got&mdash;”</p>
-
-<p>“If you’re going to begin by talking about
-wasters&mdash;!”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, never mind, dear!” cried Frances hastily,
-remembering that Austin’s “wasters”, as he called
-his spoilt plates, were sore points. The glory of his
-few photographic successes could hardly, as yet, be
-said to atone for the bitterness of almost universal
-failure.</p>
-
-<p>Austin had pulled three dark slides from under one
-arm, a tripod from under the other, and had held towards
-Frances the racked-out camera he had hugged
-to his breast.</p>
-
-<p>“If you’ll carry this tricky thing I’ll be awfully<span class="pagenum" id="Page_109">[Pg 109]</span>
-obliged,” he said piteously. “I’m in mortal fear of
-dropping it and smashing my lens.”</p>
-
-<p>“All right!” agreed Frances. “Wrap the slides in
-the dark cloth and I’ll take them also. That’s the
-way. Now, let’s run.”</p>
-
-<p>So Austin shouldered the tripod, and off they went.
-Down the carriage-drive to the gate, and then along
-the road overlooking the village till they reached the
-desired spot. Here they cried a halt, and Austin set
-up his tripod.</p>
-
-<p>“No cap on the lens!” exclaimed Frances in dismay.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, crikey! Why didn’t you tell me when I
-handed you the wretched thing?”</p>
-
-<p>“I never looked at the lens. I thought you would
-have made sure you had everything before you came
-downstairs. Not that I need have thought so,” added
-Frances grimly. “Last time, you forgot the dark
-cloth; and the time before, when Max was with us,
-don’t you remember&mdash;?”</p>
-
-<p>“There you are again with your ‘rememberings’!”
-muttered Austin. “A fellow can’t be expected to
-keep his wits about him with you and Max chattering
-like fun.”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, I dare say!” laughed Frances. “Here, take the
-camera, and I’ll run back for the cap.”</p>
-
-<p>“Hang it, can’t I use my hand? I’m sure I’d cover
-the lens all right.”</p>
-
-<p>“I’m sure you wouldn’t! Wait, and I won’t be
-long.”</p>
-
-<p>Frances scudded away, but when she had gone almost
-out of sight, suddenly turned and scudded back again.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_110">[Pg 110]</span></p>
-
-<p>“I suppose you have filled the slides?” she inquired.</p>
-
-<p>“Filled them!” ejaculated Austin. “Why,” he began
-lamely, “weren’t they full? I never thought of
-that. And I want slow plates.”</p>
-
-<p>“You dreadful goose!” cried Frances; and picking
-up the slides, she raced away again.</p>
-
-<p>Arrived in the dark-room, she found that only one
-of the double slides possessed its piece of black card
-for dividing the two plates. A search for the missing
-necessaries delayed her a good deal, and might have
-ruffled her temper had she not become resigned to
-photographic muddles.</p>
-
-<p>“Here I am at last!” she remarked cheerfully, as
-she came up to Austin, who remained seated in philosophic
-calm on the top of a five-barred gate. “There
-were no cards in two of the slides.”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh!” remarked Austin, “I thought perhaps you’d
-lost the cap.”</p>
-
-<p>“<i>I</i> had lost it!”</p>
-
-<p>“Well&mdash;it might have lost itself. Thank you ever
-so much for going.”</p>
-
-<p>“Let’s make a start, Austin. The sun’s sinking
-down into the mist.”</p>
-
-<p>“That’s all right. It says in my photographic handbook
-there are ‘immense possibilities in mist and
-cloud’; and also, that ‘there is pictorial value in a gate
-or a stile carefully placed’. Now, I haven’t been
-wasting my time while you’ve been away; I’ve been
-thinking over what that chap wrote. And I’ve made
-up my mind to get the mist and the cloud and this
-gate into my photograph.”</p>
-
-<p>“Likewise the windmill, the group of poplars, and<span class="pagenum" id="Page_111">[Pg 111]</span>
-the whole expanse of Nature, I presume?” observed
-Frances sarcastically.</p>
-
-<p>“I dare say I could edge in the poplars&mdash;my lens
-has a wide field,” said the photographer. “The windmill
-is behind our backs.”</p>
-
-<p>“I thought you were going to take the village.
-And you can’t see the village through the gate or over
-it. You must open the gate and go into the field to
-get the view we wanted.”</p>
-
-<p>“Humph! I believe I’ll give up the village in
-favour of the gate. I’m certain I can ‘carefully place’
-the gate on my ‘neg.’, so as to give it ‘pictorial value’;
-and a gate is easier than a whole village. Besides,
-the cloud and the mist will go in of themselves, not to
-mention your poplars.”</p>
-
-<p>“Get your beloved gate on the ground-glass, and
-we’ll settle.”</p>
-
-<p>This Austin proceeded to do, while Frances patiently
-held the cap&mdash;the sixth which had been bought for
-this particular camera. Each of the remaining five
-had been dropped and trodden into a shapeless mass
-in what its owner called “moments of remarkable
-enthusiasm”. Anticipating such a moment, Frances
-thought it well to watch over the survivor.</p>
-
-<p>“I’m doing my best,” announced the operator from
-the enveloping folds of his dark cloth, “but those poplars
-are awful worrying. They don’t work in nicely
-with the gate when it’s ‘carefully placed’.”</p>
-
-<p>“Leave them out.”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, not when I’ve promised you,” said Austin
-courteously. “There, I’ve focussed the lot somehow.
-Just take a peep, Sis, and admire my work.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_112">[Pg 112]</span></p>
-
-<p>Frances accordingly concealed the greater part of
-her person from view beneath the dark cloth&mdash;which,
-it may be noted, was of proportions as Brobdignagian
-as Frances’s work-basket, in order to elude the light
-which like a fiend seemed to pursue Austin’s dark slides.</p>
-
-<p>“I see the gate on the extreme left,” commented the
-critic, “and half the poplars on the extreme right, and
-a long strip of hedge cutting the picture nearly in two,
-and a foreground muddled into nothing&mdash;”</p>
-
-<p>“You must have a muddled foreground,” interrupted
-Austin. “It’s artistic.”</p>
-
-<p>“Well, I like to tell a bush from a wall myself,”
-said Frances; “but I suppose you’re an impressionist,
-like those people your photographer-man writes
-about. There’s plenty of cloud and mist, Austin; and
-if you don’t think a picture with just a gate and poplars,
-and a hedge and an impressionist foreground,
-rather dull&mdash;”</p>
-
-<p>“I’d have liked a figure or two, ‘to give interest’,”
-admitted the handbook student. “Of course I can
-put you in.”</p>
-
-<p>Frances groaned. She always was “put in”,&mdash;with
-frightsome results.</p>
-
-<p>“Hallo!” shouted Austin just then, “here come two
-jolly figures for me!”</p>
-
-<p>Frances looked, and saw Max Brenton and Betty
-Turner tramping through the snow at a pace dictated
-by Betty’s aversion to undue haste. Max lugged a
-big basket in one hand and a small one in the other,
-and was trying to keep up his circulation by whistling
-vigorously. Betty was pensive, and disinclined at the
-moment for conversation.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_113">[Pg 113]</span></p>
-
-<p>As soon as the two pairs of youngsters hailed each
-other from afar, they began, after the fashion of their
-age and kind, to rush together as though they had
-been opposing currents of electricity. They met with
-a bump and a shock and a great deal of laughter.</p>
-
-<p>“We were just coming to you,” said Betty. “At
-least, I was. Mamma has some friends staying with
-her, and this morning each of them gave me something
-for our Society stores&mdash;”</p>
-
-<p>“How kind of them!”</p>
-
-<p>“It was rather decent. So I thought I’d like you
-to have the things, as it’s Christmas-day; and the
-servants were fearfully busy, so I just took the basket
-to bring it myself. Coming up the hill I got so hot
-and tired, and I just sat down on my basket&mdash;”</p>
-
-<p>“And might have been sitting there yet!” ejaculated
-Max tragically.</p>
-
-<p>“Only Max came and helped me up, and carried the
-basket. It was nice of him, only he’s always in such
-a hurry. In the other basket, the little one, he has
-some nonsense of his own&mdash;”</p>
-
-<p>“That’s what she calls Dad’s prescriptions.”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, I hope they’re not ‘every four hours’ bottles!”
-cried Austin. “Do look, Max. Perhaps, by luck,
-they’re ‘at bed-time’ potions. I want you and Betty
-to be figures for me.”</p>
-
-<p>“Got out the camera? My, what larks!”</p>
-
-<p>The boys immediately set off at the best pace permitted
-by the baskets, Austin giving a hand with the
-altruistic burden. The girls followed, at Betty’s leisure.</p>
-
-<p>“There’s no hurry about Dad’s things,” remarked
-Max, setting his load down by the roadside and dashing<span class="pagenum" id="Page_114">[Pg 114]</span>
-at the camera. Max could be enthusiastic with
-anybody. “What are you taking, old fellow? The
-lens doesn’t seem to be pointing anywhere.”</p>
-
-<p>“It’s pointing at a pictorial gate, an impressionist
-foreground, half a group of poplars, and any amount
-of mist and cloud ‘thrown in’. Frances actually says
-my view will be dull!”</p>
-
-<p>“Let’s look.”</p>
-
-<p>Max accordingly popped under the cloth, and presently
-emerged with a somewhat puzzled and dejected
-appearance.</p>
-
-<p>“I suppose it’s all right,” he remarked humbly to
-the owner of the camera; “though things do seem a
-little mixed in front.”</p>
-
-<p>“Poor Max! He doesn’t appreciate the charms of
-impressionism,” said Frances, coming up arm in arm
-with the serene Betty.</p>
-
-<p>“Ha! there’s another figure for me!” cried Austin
-next. “My star’s overhead this afternoon. Fly, Max,
-and tell Florry to hurry up. She’s the very thing for a
-photograph. There’s ‘pictorial value’ in any girl with
-long hair and an animated expression.”</p>
-
-<p>Max “flew” as desired; and, while he ran&mdash;by way of
-saving time,&mdash;acquainted Florry at the top of his voice
-with the honour in store for her. Florry naturally flew
-to meet the honour, reached Max midway, caught his
-hand, and dashed wildly back. They landed, at full
-pelt, in the middle of Frances, Betty, Austin, the
-camera, and the baskets. In the result, Austin and
-the smaller basket became as mixed as the impressionist
-foreground.</p>
-
-<p>“Goodness!” said the boy ruefully, picking himself<span class="pagenum" id="Page_115">[Pg 115]</span>
-up. “I’ve squashed your basket, Max, and all your
-father’s things are running out in streams!”</p>
-
-<p>The entire company precipitated themselves on the
-snow to examine the ruin.</p>
-
-<p>“It wasn’t medicine&mdash;it was port-wine,” confessed
-Max in sorrow; “Dad was sending it to old Briggs.
-Janet had made him some jelly and stuff, too. You
-needn’t mind, though, Austin; it was my fault.”</p>
-
-<p>“Bosh!”</p>
-
-<p>“You needn’t mind, either of you,” said Frances.
-“Mamma will give us some more port-wine, and we’ll
-beg a jelly from cook.”</p>
-
-<p>“Thank you,” said Max fervently. “You’re awfully
-kind, Frances,&mdash;Frances the Altruist!”</p>
-
-<p>“Now for the figures!” Austin sprang with recovered
-glee to his camera. “You’d better all stand
-nicely up against my carefully-arranged gate.”</p>
-
-<p>“But why should we all stand up against a gate?”
-objected Betty. “Let half of us, at least, sit down.”</p>
-
-<p>“Why should you sit down in the snow?” inquired
-Austin sensibly. “I should say that, for choice, you’d
-rather stand up.”</p>
-
-<p>“I could sit on my basket,” murmured Betty. But
-she allowed Austin to “place” her, as carefully as any
-handbook could desire, exactly against the middle of
-the gate, with Florry and Max on either hand.</p>
-
-<p>“Aren’t we a bit stiff?” suggested Max mildly.
-“Mightn’t I sit on top of the gate, instead of standing
-in a row with the girls? Or, as Betty likes sitting,
-couldn’t she mount the gate?”</p>
-
-<p>“Catch me!” cried Betty.</p>
-
-<p>“I’d hold you on,” said Max accommodatingly.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_116">[Pg 116]</span></p>
-
-<p>“No, indeed!” said Austin severely; “Betty would
-block out my best clouds. And if you held her on,
-Max, I couldn’t take your eyes. I don’t fancy portraits
-when you can’t see the folks’ eyes.”</p>
-
-<p>“I could turn my face to you,” said Max persuasively,
-with a lingering fondness for his bright idea.</p>
-
-<p>Austin was immovable in his determination to arrange
-his friends in line, and to photograph all the
-eyes they could present to his camera.</p>
-
-<p>Finally, after the usual agonized commands to his
-sitters, Austin reached the vital moment and removed
-the cap from his lens. He remained then in a state of
-frantic uncertainty as to when he should put it on
-again; and remained uncertain so long that, before he
-could settle the important point, the six eyes watching
-his changeful countenance and palpitating person began
-to twinkle, and Betty giggled outright.</p>
-
-<p>“There!” said the photographer, with the calmness
-of despair, “that’s another plate done for!”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, I’m so sorry!” said Betty penitently.</p>
-
-<p>“It isn’t as though it would have been a common
-picture either,” continued Austin stonily; “we’ve lost
-a really good thing. Not so much a snow-effect as a
-figure-study, with mist and clouds and poplars.”</p>
-
-<p>Betty was overwhelmed with shame.</p>
-
-<p>“If only I could have made up my mind!” broke
-out the artist bitterly. “If only I could have made
-up my mind a moment sooner, I should have capped
-the lens and saved my best picture!”</p>
-
-<p>“Austin dear,” remarked Frances quietly, “you
-have six plates in your slides.”</p>
-
-<p>This simple speech effected an immediate transformation.<span class="pagenum" id="Page_117">[Pg 117]</span>
-Austin remembered that his little all in the
-way of plates had not been torn from him. Betty
-recovered her spirits, and having magnanimously
-offered to “stand out, in case she spoilt another”, was
-warmly pressed to remain in and be immortalized.
-Frances suggested that, after removing the cap, Austin
-should count ten under his breath, and then do the
-deed. Florry added the useful hint that if Betty did
-not fix her gaze on the photographer’s worried countenance
-she might be better able to control her own.</p>
-
-<p>“Very well,” said Austin graciously, “you may turn
-your head just a trifle, Betty, and stare at that fir-tree.
-But I must have your eyes on the camera, Florry;
-and I’d like one or two of your curling locks pulled
-over your shoulder to show in front. I want to take
-your long hair and your animated expression. I believe,”
-finished Austin joyfully, “this picture will be
-better than the other. I hadn’t remembered the ‘pictorial
-value’ of Florry’s curls!”</p>
-
-<p>After several agitated moments, the photographer
-announced that his mission was accomplished.</p>
-
-<p>“I don’t believe any of you turned a hair,” he remarked
-gratefully. “I’m no end obliged to you. Let’s
-all tear off home and develop this plate.”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, Austin!” remonstrated Frances; “you’re always
-in such a hurry! Do let’s take some more pictures
-first.”</p>
-
-<p>“All right. I’ll tell you what. We’ve six plates;
-one’s spoilt, and one’s properly exposed. That leaves
-four: one for each of you. I’ll sit on the gate, and
-watch you take them. Only do be a little quick, for
-I’m burning to develop my beautiful figure-study.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_118">[Pg 118]</span></p>
-
-<p>A chorus of thanks applauded this generosity;
-though, to tell truth, Austin’s possessions were always
-freely at the disposal of everybody. All the present
-party of friends knew enough of the photographic art
-to be able to “take” something&mdash;what, they were not
-quite sure until their work had gone through “development”
-at the hands of Austin or Frances.</p>
-
-<p>Frances now announced that her choice of subject
-should be the village of Woodend, from the brow of
-the hill whereon she stood. Betty wished to take a
-portrait of Frances and Florry. Max was already
-focussing Austin, as the latter perched on the gate,&mdash;“so
-as to give the girls time to think”. Florry declined
-to disclose her purpose till her comrades had had their
-turns.</p>
-
-<p>Austin’s eyes beamed with good-humoured triumph,
-as he obligingly turned them full on his friend; and
-Max “took” the eyes and their owner without any
-discomfiting entreaties for attention and tiresome
-worry about detail.</p>
-
-<p>Betty was so charmed with Austin’s pose that she
-insisted on Frances and Florry displacing him and
-mounting the gate.</p>
-
-<p>“I shall take you large,” she observed ambitiously;
-“just as big as I can get you on to the ground-glass.”</p>
-
-<p>The sitters made anguished efforts to keep still
-while Betty, who despised haste in photographic
-exposure as in everything, counted sixty aloud.</p>
-
-<p>“I’ve given my plate a minute,” she said with satisfaction.
-“Now something’s sure to come up.”</p>
-
-<p>Frances carried the camera into the field, and
-focussed her “view”.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_119">[Pg 119]</span></p>
-
-<p>“Oh, put in a few figures to give interest!” begged
-Austin. “My handbook says they’re an enormous improvement
-to a quiet country landscape.”</p>
-
-<p>“Well, if Max doesn’t mind, he might just run
-across the field to that stile leading to the brook. He
-could be crossing over it, as though he were going to
-the village by the short cut.&mdash;When you’re half over
-it, Max, you might stand still, and&mdash;and&mdash;just try to
-look like moving.”</p>
-
-<p>Max ran to execute the required task, and his
-dramatic instincts brought him to a pause in an attitude
-quite suggestive of motion.</p>
-
-<p>“But he’s got his back to us,” objected Austin
-loudly. “We can’t see his eyes. Hi, Max! Turn
-round, I say!”</p>
-
-<p>“No, no!” shouted Frances. “Keep still!&mdash;I couldn’t
-see his eyes if he turned this way, Austin; he’s too far
-off. This is a view, not a portrait.”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh!” said Austin in disgust; “you could easily
-have made it a figure-study.”</p>
-
-<p>Frances, however, appeared satisfied, and speedily
-recalled Max. To Florry now fell the post of responsibility,
-and the last plate.</p>
-
-<p>Florry, as dramatist, author, poet, painter, and
-musician, was easily first among the artistic youth of
-Woodend. Her social qualities were as naught in the
-eyes of Mrs. Morland, for she did not understand how
-to appear “to advantage” before select circles of her
-elders, and among her fellows she held her many gifts
-as the property of all. When the universal voice demanded
-it, Florry emerged from her shell, and wrote,
-painted, or played to order, without even the affectation<span class="pagenum" id="Page_120">[Pg 120]</span>
-of incompetence. She was the sole darling of a refined
-and modest home, where her talents were wisely
-nourished and never overstrained.</p>
-
-<p>Florry, with a thoughtful brow, now delivered
-herself:</p>
-
-<p>“I wish you would all go and look at Max’s basket
-again.”</p>
-
-<p>“Why? What for?”</p>
-
-<p>“I mean, just as you did before. Frances and
-Betty squatting anyhow in the snow; Austin standing
-up with his legs apart, his cap pushed back, his hands
-in his pockets, and looking awfully ashamed of himself;
-Max down on one knee, holding the broken
-bottle, and with such a dismal face.” Florry caught
-hold of the camera and led the way back to the roadside.
-She had an idea.</p>
-
-<p>“It will be a picture&mdash;we’ll call it ‘Disaster!’,” she
-went on rapidly. “Frances and Betty will be showing
-each other the wasted jelly and beef-tea. It won’t
-be acting&mdash;it will be real.”</p>
-
-<p>The young people threw themselves with their
-usual enthusiasm into Florry’s plan. As they grouped
-on the snow, Florry, who was careful of details, requested
-Austin to turn up his collar in consideration
-of the wintry atmosphere she wished to preserve in
-the composition of her picture, and implored him to
-look at the ruin he had wrought, and not to stare,
-round-eyed, at the camera.</p>
-
-<p>“Is it a quick plate?” she asked him.</p>
-
-<p>“No;&mdash;I’m sorry. My handbook says slow plates
-are best for snow-effects; and when we came out, I
-meant&mdash;”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_121">[Pg 121]</span></p>
-
-<p>“Never mind! Just wait a moment, as quiet as
-you can, while I draw my shutter. But when I say
-‘Now!’ mind you don’t wink an eye.”</p>
-
-<p>“Winking an eye,” began Austin eagerly, “wouldn’t
-show on a slow plate. It&mdash;”</p>
-
-<p>“Hush&mdash;sh&mdash;sh! We sha’n’t hear Florry’s ‘Now!’”</p>
-
-<p>The group waited and listened.</p>
-
-<p>“I’ve done,” said Florry calmly. And she capped
-her lens as she spoke.</p>
-
-<p>“Why, you never said ‘Now’!”</p>
-
-<p>“And I’m not going to. I wasn’t likely to let you
-all look like statues.”</p>
-
-<p>“We’ve been ‘took’ unawares!” cried Austin, dancing
-wildly round Max and the basket.</p>
-
-<p>“Florry’s a base deceiver!” said Frances, chuckling
-over the little ruse. “Now we’ll pack our traps and
-learn our fate in the dark-room.”</p>
-
-<p>Subsequent proceedings in the ammonia-perfumed
-apartment need not be here described, but I give the
-result.</p>
-
-<p>Austin’s developed plate revealed the distressing
-fact that a trifling twist of the camera had caused the
-disappearance of the half-group of poplars. There
-remained to him the gate, with a tin-soldier row of
-diminutive figures in front of it&mdash;their backs to the
-fading light, and their faces consequently indistinguishable
-as to eyes and all other features; a long stretch
-of hedge, running aimlessly across the picture to the
-right as though seeking a lost vanishing-point; a foreground
-more mixed than the most ardent impressionist
-could have believed possible; and a dark expanse of
-nothing where the mist and clouds ought to have been.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_122">[Pg 122]</span></p>
-
-<p>Max had three portraits of Austin. That is to
-say, his figure faithfully represented Austin at three
-different moments, as the model had oscillated on his
-slippery perch.</p>
-
-<p>Betty’s desire for size had given her two gigantic
-heads, which acknowledged her leisurely exposure by
-deliberately fading away before her anxious eyes, leaving
-her with a coal-black plate and a disappointed soul.</p>
-
-<p>Frances’s lights were a little hard and her shadows
-a little heavy; but Woodend village loomed with no
-more than artistic vagueness on her plate, and her
-short exposure had preserved her mist and clouds.
-And Max’s far-off figure was quite life-like. Frances
-hoped that her negative would, after all, yield a decent
-print, and Austin was consoled by the thought that
-Woodend village had been photographed at last.</p>
-
-<p>There was no light in the dark-room save that
-which came from Austin’s ruby lamp, and a flickering
-reflection through the red-paned window of the
-waning day without. Frances developed Florry’s
-plate with friendly care, and announced results to
-the group peering over her shoulders.</p>
-
-<p>“It’s coming up!” was the first exciting news.
-(Don’t press so, Austin dear; you’re shaking my arm,
-and I can’t rock the dish properly.) “Oh, it’s coming
-up all over, quite slowly, and ever so nicely! Not
-those splashes of black here and there&mdash;which just
-mean fearfully high high-lights, and nothing else in
-particular,&mdash;and not black fog everywhere, like poor
-Betty’s. Oh, it’s coming more, it’s getting plain! There’s
-Austin’s furry collar, and Betty’s woolley cloud, and
-Max’s black collar&mdash;I mean, his white collar showing<span class="pagenum" id="Page_123">[Pg 123]</span>
-black! And there’s the basket, and the broken bottle,
-and the spoilt jelly! It’s lovely! I think all the
-details have come out now. Shall I stop?”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, no!” pleaded Austin. “Make it pretty dense,
-then we’ll see ourselves through the back.”</p>
-
-<p>So Frances resigned herself to future slow printing,
-and developed a good, strong negative, which, when
-fixed, rinsed, carried out to the brightest light attainable,
-and examined through the back over a black
-cloth, was found to reveal a delightfully natural presentment
-of the agitated group round about the broken
-basket.</p>
-
-<p>Austin gazed long, and drew a tremendous breath.</p>
-
-<p>“It’s a dream!” he murmured low, and turned away
-full-hearted.</p>
-
-<p>This triumph and Frances’s modest success were
-carefully consigned to the plate-washer beneath the
-running tap, the “wasters” were thrown aside, and
-the troop of boys and girls departed to secure the
-replenishment of Max’s stores.</p>
-
-<p>Then the young folks prepared to separate. It was
-Christmas-day, and long absence from home was
-impossible. Max was due at the cottage of old Briggs,
-and Frances and Austin must set him on his way. So
-down the drive to the gate pelted the lively four,
-promising themselves many more exciting hours with
-the wizard camera, which could turn a roadside accident
-into a “dream”.</p>
-
-<p>Frances was still standing outside the gate, giving
-a last wave to her retreating friends, when she caught
-sight of a dark figure advancing from the direction
-of the village.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_124">[Pg 124]</span></p>
-
-<p>“Austin,” she called to her brother, “do come here.
-I believe I see poor Jim East. Yes, I’m sure it’s he.
-Fancy! Oh, poor Jim! Let’s stay and speak to him.”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, I don’t know. I don’t feel like saying&mdash;things.”</p>
-
-<p>“Don’t be so unkind. Surely we can show we’re
-sorry?”</p>
-
-<p>“Well, you do the talking, then. I’ll stick here in
-the shade till I see what he looks like.”</p>
-
-<p>“He’s walking very slowly. I’m sure he’s sad.
-Oh, poor Jim!”</p>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_VIII">CHAPTER VIII.<br />
-<small>JIM EAST.</small></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p>Jim East, in his dark-hued mourning garments,
-had from afar appeared sad indeed in the eyes of
-Frances. As he came nearer, she saw signs not of
-sadness alone, but of sensations more strange to the
-girlish onlooker. The sorrow he had just experienced
-could hardly account for the wistful expression in the
-lad’s face, or for a certain hopefulness in his bearing.
-Jim was coming forward to meet, with what courage
-he could command, the crucial moment of his young
-life. He was trying to assure himself that he had a
-right to expect that the ordeal would pass and leave
-him happy.</p>
-
-<p>“He is very lonely,” reflected Frances pityingly;
-“he has begun to feel that he is lonely. I wish I
-could comfort him, but I don’t know how.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_125">[Pg 125]</span></p>
-
-<p>Setting aside all possibility of administering comfort,
-it must surely be a simple thing to condole and
-sympathize with Jim. Frances felt that she could do
-both, for she had sincerely liked the old grandfather,
-and was glad now to recall the sacrificed holiday hours
-for which he had thanked her with moist eyes and
-grateful lips. She took a step forward lest Jim should
-pass her with his usual quiet salute, but she saw that
-this had not been his intention. He turned a little,
-even before she moved, and directed his course to her
-without hesitation.</p>
-
-<p>“She will be kind,” thought the lad as his gaze
-rested on Frances, and she greeted him with a smile.
-“Grandfather was right, he said she would be kind.
-If only she knew how I want her to be kind!”</p>
-
-<p>Jim’s yearning was no more translatable through
-his face than was his simple trust in a girl’s faith.
-Frances had left him the treasured belief that in her
-sight his work, however humble, was honourable; himself,
-however lowly, above reproach. She had not
-forced on him, as had Austin, more than once, the
-recognition of differences of class, habit, and attainment.
-These, she knew, were obvious enough to
-modest Jim. Instead, she had shown him a gracious
-friendliness which had roused the lad to wondering
-gratitude; while her intelligent interest in his monotonous
-labour had given it value apart from bread-winning
-necessity.</p>
-
-<p>Jim, in his ill-fitting cloth suit of rustic cut, was in
-Frances’s eyes a much more pretentious and less
-picturesque figure than Jim the blacksmith working
-at his forge. A little half-conscious regret that Jim<span class="pagenum" id="Page_126">[Pg 126]</span>
-himself was likely to hold a contrary opinion was
-promptly stifled by the remembrance that in his case,
-at least, the wearing of mourning garb was no meaningless
-form.</p>
-
-<p>“Good-evening, Jim!” Frances’s right hand rested
-lightly on the half-opened gate which bounded the
-carriage-drive to Elveley. “I’m glad you’re here. I’ve
-wanted to tell you how very sorry I am for your
-trouble. It isn’t only I, either; all of us boys and girls
-are sorry. Your grandfather was always good to us;
-and we liked him, ever so much. Of course,” she
-went on gravely, “I know that we can’t feel as you
-do, because you miss him all day long. But you won’t
-forget, will you, when you are sad and lonely, that
-we are sorry too?”</p>
-
-<p>“No, Missy,” said Jim in a low voice, “I won’t forget;
-and I thank you kindly for speaking so.”</p>
-
-<p>“Then you will try to cheer up, won’t you, Jim?
-And we will all come to see your dear smithy; and
-you must come sometimes to our meetings and help
-us with the village-boys.”</p>
-
-<p>A scrape of Austin’s foot on the gravel warned
-Frances of his strong objection; but at that moment
-his sister’s thoughts were echoing the quavering tones
-of an old man’s voice, begging her, when Jim should
-be left solitary, to be kind to the lonely lad.</p>
-
-<p>“We hope you will come to help us,” persisted the
-girl.</p>
-
-<p>“I’ll do anything as you may wish,” Jim replied.
-“I’ll be proud to serve you, Missy.” He lifted his
-head then; the gentleness of Frances’s accents moving
-him to look to her face in search of help for the better<span class="pagenum" id="Page_127">[Pg 127]</span>
-meeting of his fate. The lad was in sore need of
-some encouragement, for he knew that the errand
-which had brought him to Elveley this Christmas-day
-was one that might well startle, if it did not repel,
-his listener. And above all things Jim dreaded to
-see Frances’s pain or to hear her reproach. The
-position he now occupied was intolerable to the boy’s
-sensitive nature. But guessing instinctively that in
-telling his story the simplest words would be the best,
-and the briefest phrases the most acceptable, Jim
-began his explanations without any sort of pretence
-at ingenious circumlocution.</p>
-
-<p>“I came to see you this afternoon, Missy, because
-of something you don’t know about&mdash;something Grandfather
-told me just before he died. I’m feared&mdash;I’m
-feared it isn’t what you’ll wish to hear. Grandfather
-told the doctor, too; but not till he’d promised to keep
-quiet. Grandfather wished me to tell you myself.
-He wished me to tell you on Christmas-day, because
-then, he said, folks thought kinder of everyone, let
-alone their own kindred. So I’ve been waiting all
-day, but somehow I couldn’t bear to come. I wanted
-to come, but I was feared, in case Grandfather was
-wrong when he said you would be kind. He bade me
-speak first to you.”</p>
-
-<p>“Jim,” said Frances slowly, though her heart beat
-fast, “I don’t understand you in the very least.”</p>
-
-<p>“Likely not, Missy. But it’s true what Grandfather
-told me, and I’ve brought the papers, as he wished, for
-Madam to see.”</p>
-
-<p>“For my mother to see?” asked Frances wonderingly.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_128">[Pg 128]</span></p>
-
-<p>“Ay, Missy. And,” added Jim, with a sudden,
-natural break in his self-control, “won’t you please
-try to be kind to me? I’m your own father’s son.”</p>
-
-<p>“What!” exclaimed Frances, drawing back against
-the gate. “Jim! You! What do you mean?”</p>
-
-<p>“I’m Mr. Morland’s eldest son,” said Jim, in hurried
-tones, vibrating with mingled hope and fear. The hope
-was built on memory alone, the fear was roused by
-the shrinking dread he had fancied present in Frances’s
-face and voice.</p>
-
-<p>“My mother was Martha East, Grandfather’s only
-daughter,&mdash;there had been one son, who had died.
-My mother wished to marry Mr. Morland, but Grandfather
-wouldn’t let her, for fear he’d tire of her; so
-they ran away, and married without leave. Mr. Morland
-was good to Mother, and they were very happy.”</p>
-
-<p>Jim paused a moment, in keen distress, for he saw
-that Frances had grown white, and that she trembled
-as she leant for support against the gate.</p>
-
-<p>“Not long before he married, Mr. Morland had promised
-a great Society in London to go for them to some
-country where he had travelled, and try to find out
-something they wanted to know. So when the time
-came he was obliged to go right away to some place
-in Asia; and before he went he took my mother to her
-old home&mdash;for he had no relations of his own&mdash;and
-begged Grandfather to take care of her till he came
-back. When he’d been away three months, word
-came to England that he’d been lost&mdash;taken prisoner,
-and carried off by some robber-tribes. There was no
-more heard of him, and Mother began to fret and pine,
-for it was said he’d never come home again. Mother<span class="pagenum" id="Page_129">[Pg 129]</span>
-lived only a few months after she’d got the news.
-She said she couldn’t live without her husband. I was
-born two months before she died.”</p>
-
-<p>Jim hesitated, his voice faltering again as he glanced
-at Frances’s face, in which the dread was now too clear
-to allow of mistake. The hopefulness left the lad’s tones
-altogether, and he finished his story in nervous haste.</p>
-
-<p>“They thought I’d die too, but I didn’t; and Grandfather,
-being alone, except for me, was glad I lived.
-Mother had called me Austin after my father, and
-James after her brother; but Grandfather always
-called me Jim. He’d loved his daughter dearly, but
-he was proud, and didn’t like her having married
-among gentlefolk, who’d look down on him as just a
-rough farmer. So, seeing he thought as my father was
-dead, as well as my mother, he reckoned he’d keep me
-and bring me up a working-man.</p>
-
-<p>“I was six months old when Mr. Morland came
-back. He had been rescued by some travellers, who
-had been sent to search for him. When Grandfather
-heard the news, he made up his mind as he’d keep
-me still, and he did. They said in the certificate as
-my mother had died of a fever that was about the
-village where Grandfather lived then; and Grandfather
-took this paper and went to town to meet my
-father, and told him how Mother had died, but never
-a word about me. My father was dreadfully grieved
-not to find his wife waiting for him; and Grandfather
-told him&mdash;quite true&mdash;how she’d always loved him,
-and fretted after him, and spoken of him tender at
-the last.</p>
-
-<p>“Then Grandfather took me away to the north, but<span class="pagenum" id="Page_130">[Pg 130]</span>
-he always managed to know where my father was.
-He knew when Mr. Morland married again, and that
-he had children, and when he died. And a few months
-ago, knowing he was failing in health and soon to leave
-me, he began to think as he oughtn’t to have kept me
-away from my father’s folk, so that I’d be left all alone
-in the world; and he found out where you were living,
-and bought Rowdon Smithy so that we could settle
-near you. He meant that some day I should come to
-you and beg you to be good to me.” Jim’s eyes and
-voice pleaded eloquently. “I’m your brother, Missy!
-your own father’s son. I’ll always care for you and
-little master if you’ll let me. I’d be proud to work
-for you, only”&mdash;Jim sighed forlornly&mdash;“there’s naught
-you need.”</p>
-
-<p>Frances stood silent and utterly confused. She
-might have fancied that Jim’s sorrow had turned his
-brain, but for his intense earnestness and the straightforward
-way in which he had told his strange story.
-Again, she remembered facts which gave the story
-corroboration. For instance, the old grandfather’s
-solemn expressions of pleasure and satisfaction that
-he had seen her, and his evident delight in witnessing
-any kindness she had shown to his boy. Then
-Frances knew that her father had been a distinguished
-member of a learned Society, and in his youth
-had travelled far to serve the cause of science. She
-had heard of his romantic imprisonment and rescue;
-and though she never had been told that he had been
-married twice, she saw that in this respect Jim’s
-statements might easily be true. Her father had died
-while she was very young, and her mother might not<span class="pagenum" id="Page_131">[Pg 131]</span>
-have cared to speak, to a mere child, of her own
-predecessor.</p>
-
-<p>As she hesitated, painfully conscious of Jim’s troubled
-and searching glances, she was relieved to hear her
-brother step forward. What Austin would say she
-could not guess, but at least his words might help her
-own. The boy did not turn to her for prompting,
-though he stood by her side, his face flushed and disturbed.</p>
-
-<p>“Is it all true, Jim East,&mdash;what you’ve been telling
-my sister?”</p>
-
-<p>Austin’s tone was masterful, and by no means suggestive
-of a willingness to believe; but it served to
-rouse Jim’s pride, which had refused to help its owner
-hitherto. The lad gained self-command, and after
-answering Austin’s question with a simple “Yes”,
-turned again pointedly to Frances for some sort of
-comment. The girl felt that she must speak. Her
-perceptions were always quick, though they gained in
-force from her reluctance to hold them final; and now
-her confusion vanished before the overwhelming certainty
-that Jim had spoken the truth&mdash;that he, the
-uneducated, shy young blacksmith, his face roughened
-with exposure, his hands hard with toil, was indeed
-her own father’s son, and her kin in blood.</p>
-
-<p>“It is all true,” said Jim once more.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh!” cried Frances passionately; “Oh, Jim, I hope
-it is not true!”</p>
-
-<p>“Not true!” repeated Jim blankly. “You hope it is
-not true, Missy? Why?&mdash;I’m rough, maybe,&mdash;but I’d
-never be rough to you. It is true, Missy; I’ve the
-papers to show Madam. I’m your father’s eldest child.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_132">[Pg 132]</span></p>
-
-<p>Jim’s trembling hands sought vaguely in his pockets.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, don’t say it&mdash;don’t say it!” went on Frances,
-in extremity of fear and distress. “It&mdash;it couldn’t
-make any difference if it were true,&mdash;don’t you see?
-We’re not alike in&mdash;in anything; we never could be
-alike now. Oh, I don’t know how it sounds&mdash;what I’m
-saying! I dare say it’s horrid, and conceited, and&mdash;and&mdash;not
-fair. But it wasn’t we who settled whose
-you should be; and it’s your grandfather’s fault, not
-ours!” Frances hurried out her words as though her
-own ears were ashamed to listen to them. “He kept
-you back&mdash;he wouldn’t let you belong to Papa,&mdash;and
-now he wants you to come to us, when it’s too late.”</p>
-
-<p>“Too late?” echoed Jim.</p>
-
-<p>“Yes, it’s too late!” repeated Frances almost fiercely;
-“you belong to your mother’s people, not to us. You
-know there is&mdash;a difference. If we were all little, it
-wouldn’t matter; but Austin and I are too old not to
-feel&mdash;to feel&mdash;”</p>
-
-<p>“To feel shame of me, Missy?” suggested Jim
-quietly.</p>
-
-<p>The peasant lad was standing erect and calm, and
-his grave eyes hardly hinted at the agony which had
-come to him with the breaking of his happy dream.
-If his imagination had idealized this young sister of
-his, as well as a future which, in truth, would have
-been impossible as he had pictured it, he could find
-blame for no one save himself. His memory still
-dwelt tenderly on his grandfather, and he now wondered
-how he ever could have supposed that the
-daintily-reared young Morlands would have a thought
-of toleration for him and his claim of brotherhood.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_133">[Pg 133]</span></p>
-
-<p>“How can we help feeling ashamed? It’s not our
-fault!” reiterated Frances bitterly.</p>
-
-<p>“You didn’t feel shame to speak to me at the
-smithy,” said Jim.</p>
-
-<p>Then Frances, hardly knowing how to account for
-sensations of repulsion which she knew to be unworthy,
-broke into child-like tears.</p>
-
-<p>“You&mdash;you were a very nice blacksmith,” she
-sobbed, “and your house was clean and tidy, and we
-liked to see the forge.”</p>
-
-<p>“But we don’t exactly want a blacksmith-brother?”
-added Austin interrogatively, while he looked curiously
-at his sister.</p>
-
-<p>Frances seized his hand, and tugged it nervously.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, Austin, come away!”</p>
-
-<p>“Wait,” interrupted Jim, in a dull voice; “won’t you
-stay till I’ve seen Madam? I promised Grandfather I’d
-see Madam, and show her the papers, to prove he’d told
-true. Mayhap she won’t turn from me,&mdash;won’t you wait?”</p>
-
-<p>“I can’t!” murmured Frances, shrinking as Jim advanced.
-“And Mamma will only be angry if you go
-to her.”</p>
-
-<p>“I don’t see why she should be angry,” said Austin,
-who was the best controlled of the three. “Go up to
-the front door, Jim East, and they’ll let you in. Then
-you’ll see our mother. I’ll wait here.”</p>
-
-<p>“Austin, come with me!” begged Frances.</p>
-
-<p>“No&mdash;I’ll wait here.”</p>
-
-<hr class="tb" />
-
-<p>Mrs. Morland laid the papers aside with a little
-well-bred gesture of courtesy. Careless her examination
-of them had seemed to Jim; but in reality she<span class="pagenum" id="Page_134">[Pg 134]</span>
-had grasped their contents accurately, and had no
-doubt that they were genuine. The stately, beautifully-dressed
-woman leaned back in her luxurious
-chair, and her fine eyes, which had forgotten their
-youthful softness, scanned Jim from head to foot.
-She seemed to find his appearance amusing.</p>
-
-<p>“My good lad,” she said, in her clear, refined voice,
-“I am quite aware that I was Mr. Morland’s second
-wife, and that his first was beneath him in station.
-He was an honourable man, and he told me all the
-facts of his pretty rustic idyll. I believe that he even
-told me that the young woman’s name was Martha
-East. In any case, there is no reason why her name
-should not have been Martha East. Nor is there any
-reason why she should not have left a child. I do
-not wish to profess incredulity concerning your statement
-that you are Martha East’s son, and that your
-existence was hidden deliberately from Mr. Morland
-by your grandfather. Such an action would, of course,
-be underhand and selfish; but one does not expect
-from the uneducated classes a great refinement of
-motive or honesty of conduct. It would be unreasonable
-to do so. It would have been unreasonable, for
-instance, if I had supposed that, when this piece of
-news was communicated to you, you would have
-resolved to spare Mr. Morland’s other children the
-pain and annoyance of hearing it also. That would
-have been the sort of conduct I could have had the
-right to expect only from a gentleman. Your grandfather’s
-training would naturally teach you differently.
-It would incline you to take the course which promised
-most gain to yourself.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_135">[Pg 135]</span></p>
-
-<p>Jim raised his eyes and looked steadily at the
-speaker.</p>
-
-<p>“I do not blame you,” continued Mrs. Morland, with
-a quick movement of deprecation; “your behaviour
-has been according to your lights. It makes it the
-more easy for me to credit your story, which has,
-however, no concern for me or my children. As your
-grandfather probably knew, Mr. Morland was not a
-land-owner, and his fortune was absolutely at his own
-disposal. Consequently, his will would hold good; and
-the discovery of an elder child would in no way affect
-his provision for my son and daughter.”</p>
-
-<p>“Madam&mdash;Madam,” said Jim sternly, “you have no
-right to think as I was wanting the money!”</p>
-
-<p>“Then what did you want?” asked Mrs. Morland,
-smiling slightly. “You wished, perhaps, that I should
-adopt you&mdash;take you to live here, as my children’s
-equal and companion?”</p>
-
-<p>“No,” said Jim, speaking firmly and bravely, “I did
-not wish that. I only hoped as you’d allow I belonged
-to them, and had a right to care for them, and&mdash;they
-for me.”</p>
-
-<p>“Poor boy, you are quite modest and nice! I am
-afraid you do not precisely understand social distinctions.
-Your grandfather made choice of your
-future position for you, when he concealed your birth
-from my husband. You have been brought up a
-working-man; and it would be impossible, as it is quite
-unnecessary, for you to fit yourself for any other kind
-of life.”</p>
-
-<p>“I had no thought of doing so,” said Jim, maintaining
-his composure in spite of failing heart.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_136">[Pg 136]</span></p>
-
-<p>“I have no doubt that when you come to reflect,
-you will see matters in a sensible light. For your
-sake, I am sorry that your grandfather, having kept
-silence so long to suit his own convenience, did not
-keep it to the end to suit yours. You would have
-been happier without this foolish revelation, which I
-advise you speedily to forget. I will say nothing more
-about your coming here; you have merely obeyed your
-grandfather’s selfish wish. But there is something I
-must say concerning the future.”</p>
-
-<p>Mrs. Morland raised herself, and, leaning forward,
-spoke in a firm, distinct tone, very different from her
-previous cynical indifference.</p>
-
-<p>“You must understand, once for all, that I can
-allow no sort of acquaintanceship between you and
-my children. They are mine, and I have the right to
-decide what is best for them. They have, I believe,
-shown you some kindness&mdash;in return, I readily admit,
-for kindness shown to them by your grandfather. You
-and they are therefore quits, and I wish all intercourse
-between you and them to cease from this moment. I
-understand that your grandfather bought for you a
-cottage and workshop at a place called Rowdon, not
-far from here, and that he provided for you according
-to the needs of the station in which he brought you
-up?”</p>
-
-<p>“Ay, Madam.”</p>
-
-<p>“To some extent, then, he justified his conduct.
-Well, in the same way I have bought a house here, I
-have placed my children at a school where they are
-happy, I have surrounded them with the comforts, the
-pleasures, the luxuries, to which they are accustomed.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_137">[Pg 137]</span></p>
-
-<p>Mrs. Morland stumbled for a second, as her eyes
-rested on the rough clothing and labour-hardened
-hands of her husband’s eldest son. But if there was
-an opening for reproach, Jim did not avail himself of
-it.</p>
-
-<p>“I do not envy them their better fortune, Madam.
-Indeed, I do not.”</p>
-
-<p>“You have no occasion to. If you have missed what
-you might have had, it has been no fault of theirs or
-mine. I have settled here, in my own house, and my
-children are learning to love their home. You, perhaps,
-are attached to yours. I have no wish to suggest
-that you should go elsewhere, and I should prefer not
-to do so myself. At the same time, my resolve that
-you and they shall hold no intercourse is unalterable;
-and I will rather break up my home than have its
-peace destroyed. If you will give me your promise to
-keep silence on this purely private matter&mdash;which
-never ought to have been brought forward&mdash;and to
-refrain from forcing yourself on my children, there is
-no reason why you and they should not rest undisturbed.”</p>
-
-<p>Mrs. Morland waited in an anxiety to which her
-manner gave no clue.</p>
-
-<p>“I never thought of telling anyone,” said Jim simply.
-“I never meant to come here against your will. I’ll
-promise, as you wish.”</p>
-
-<p>He picked up the papers Mrs. Morland had laid
-aside, and thrust them back into his pocket. The
-young blacksmith would have been puzzled to know
-what was meant by theories of life and analyses of
-conduct; but he did not lack intelligence, and he perceived<span class="pagenum" id="Page_138">[Pg 138]</span>
-that he was being treated unworthily by his
-father’s widow. For the two children he had lately
-left he had no condemnation, though from them had
-come the only stabs which had reached his heart.</p>
-
-<p>“I’ll go now, Madam,” he said. “I’ve done as my
-grandfather bade me, and I hope you’ve seen as he
-spoke true.”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes,” reflected Mrs. Morland, while Jim was closing
-the door softly behind him, “the wretched old man
-did ‘speak true’! That boy has his father’s eyes and
-expression&mdash;he is like Frances. None of those marvellous
-resemblances one reads of in story-books, of
-course; but there are sometimes traces which recall
-personalities more closely than a stronger likeness
-would. I hope, I hope against hope, that he’ll keep
-his word! If he’s his father’s son, he will.”</p>
-
-<hr class="tb" />
-
-<p>Down by the garden-gate Frances and Austin Morland
-awaited Jim’s return. Frances had striven hard
-to draw her brother away; but as he would neither
-leave his post nor talk to her, she remained by his
-side, acutely miserable. With tongues inactive, the
-girl and boy thought the more. Frances felt a self-accusing
-shame which she could not escape and did
-not know how to justify. She was not old enough
-to probe her nature with searching finger, and find
-there that very sensitiveness to the opinions of others
-which she always had thought so poor a thing. She
-wondered only why the sudden appearance of a
-blacksmith-brother should seem so great a misfortune
-to her&mdash;to her whom her friends had nicknamed
-“Frances the Altruist”, who had appeared to have<span class="pagenum" id="Page_139">[Pg 139]</span>
-a mission for the better instruction of less liberal-minded
-persons! She was a sinner against her own
-code, a traitor to her own cause.</p>
-
-<p>Frances did not tell herself these facts: she merely
-felt them in a kind of vague disturbance. Self-consciousness
-is not a fault bred in public schools;
-and the influence which, though brief in duration, had
-so strongly affected her, had not tended to develop
-unchildlike self-introspection.</p>
-
-<p>“Here he comes.”</p>
-
-<p>Austin spoke at last, and his sister, with a little
-shiver, drew close to him. The boy laid his hand on
-her arm, in a gesture which was at once affectionate
-and protecting.</p>
-
-<p>“Never mind, Sis. We can’t help things happening.”</p>
-
-<p>Jim’s footsteps drew close. The lad had forgotten
-Austin’s promise, and in the gathering darkness did
-not quickly see the watchers by the gate. He gazed
-straight before him as he came, and would have
-passed the two Morlands had Austin not stepped
-forward.</p>
-
-<p>“You’ve seen my mother, then?”</p>
-
-<p>Jim, with a start, looked at the speaker, not knowing
-what his own face revealed.</p>
-
-<p>“Yes&mdash;I’ve seen Madam.”</p>
-
-<p>“You showed her those papers&mdash;whatever they were?
-Did she believe what you said?”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes. It didn’t make any difference. I’d rather be
-going, please,” added Jim, trying to open the gate on
-which Austin had laid his hands.</p>
-
-<p>“Stay!... No, never mind! I’ll ask Mamma<span class="pagenum" id="Page_140">[Pg 140]</span>
-myself.” Austin opened the gate, mounted it, and
-swung out with it into the roadway. From this convenient
-perch he fixed a steady and observant gaze
-on the figure of the unwelcome visitor.</p>
-
-<p>“We might have said good-bye to him?” queried
-Frances in a shaking voice.</p>
-
-<p>“Perhaps&mdash;if we’d meant it,” returned Austin carelessly.
-“Frances, I’m going to Mamma. You come
-too.”</p>
-
-<p>So Austin led the way. Mrs. Morland had already
-sent a servant to look for her children, and they met
-the man on the steps.</p>
-
-<p>In the drawing-room Austin put his questions
-straight.</p>
-
-<p>“Jim East has been here, hasn’t he, Mater? He has
-been telling Frances and me queer things. Are they
-true?”</p>
-
-<p>“How am I to know what he has told you, my
-darling?” asked Mrs. Morland diplomatically.</p>
-
-<p>“He told you too, didn’t he? He said he was our
-brother.”</p>
-
-<p>“Your half-brother, dearest,” corrected Mrs. Morland
-gently. “A mixed relationship merely. You
-need not remember it.”</p>
-
-<p>“Is it true? Is he our father’s son?”</p>
-
-<p>“I believe he is. I shall make inquiries, of course,
-but I have no doubt they will confirm his story. He
-brought proofs which appeared to me sufficient; some
-letters of your father’s, for instance.”</p>
-
-<p>There was a brief pause, while Austin stood thoughtful,
-and Frances scanned her mother’s face.</p>
-
-<p>“I tell you these things, children,” continued Mrs.<span class="pagenum" id="Page_141">[Pg 141]</span>
-Morland composedly, “because I wish you to understand
-the position clearly, and also my wishes with
-regard to it. This poor lad is probably your half-brother,
-but he has been brought up apart from you,
-and you and he have nothing in common. There
-are many reasons why I could not possibly allow
-you to be intimate with him. Such persons have
-different thoughts and feelings, and use different
-language, from any I could allow you to become
-accustomed to.”</p>
-
-<p>Austin looked steadily at his mother.</p>
-
-<p>“I’ve seen Jim East&mdash;no! I suppose it’s Jim Morland!&mdash;a
-good many times, Mater. I don’t know about
-his ‘thoughts and feelings’, but I’ve never heard him
-say a word you wouldn’t have liked us to listen to.”</p>
-
-<p>Frances saw her brother glance at her for confirmation,
-and murmured lamely: “No, he always spoke
-nicely.”</p>
-
-<p>“I am glad to hear it,” said Mrs. Morland drily.
-“That lessens my regret at having let you both come
-in contact with your poorer neighbours. Indirectly,
-we owe all this nuisance to your fads and nonsense,
-Frances.”</p>
-
-<p>“Mamma,” said the girl, colouring, “Jim’s grandfather
-evidently meant to send him here some day.
-Mr. East came to live at Rowdon on purpose.”</p>
-
-<p>“It is horrible to think we have lived under a sort
-of espionage,” said Mrs. Morland impetuously. “The
-old man’s conduct, from first to last, was disgraceful.
-Let me never hear you speak of him again. And let
-me hear no more of the wretched boy he left behind.
-Austin and Frances, you will give me your word of<span class="pagenum" id="Page_142">[Pg 142]</span>
-honour that you will not again visit Rowdon Smithy,
-and that if you come across that lad anywhere you
-will take no sort of notice of him. You understand
-me?”</p>
-
-<p>Frances murmured a reply.</p>
-
-<p>“Then I have your distinct promise, Frances?”</p>
-
-<p>The girl knew that her brother was watching her.
-He, of course, would follow where she led.</p>
-
-<p>“Yes, Mamma.”</p>
-
-<p>“Yours also, Austin?”</p>
-
-<p>“Well, ... no.” The boy threw back his head
-with a proud motion. “See, Mater, I don’t want to be
-cheeky, or to vex you ... and what you say may
-be all right for Frances. She’s a girl; and though I
-can’t see what harm she’d come to at the smithy, I
-suppose she’s got to stay at home if you want her to.
-But I don’t care twopence about charity, and humble
-neighbours, and Altruists&mdash;except to please Frances,
-and join in any lark that’s going. I’ll cut the lot if
-you like. But if Jim is Jim Morland and our brother&mdash;half
-or whole&mdash;I’m not going to cut <i>him</i>. That
-would make me a jolly cad, anyhow.”</p>
-
-<p>Austin, who was certainly innocent of any desire
-for melodramatic effect, stopped abruptly, the better
-to observe his hearers. Frances had dropped her face
-between her hands&mdash;now, why on earth, Austin asked
-himself, had she done that? Mrs. Morland had started
-upright, angry and bewildered. What was the matter
-with her? Did she suppose&mdash;did anyone suppose&mdash;a
-fellow was going to cut his own brother?</p>
-
-<p>“Austin!” exclaimed Mrs. Morland, “do I understand
-that you threaten to disobey me? Do you wish<span class="pagenum" id="Page_143">[Pg 143]</span>
-to make me miserable, and bring shame upon us all?
-Don’t imagine I shall allow you to do it. You are
-only a child, and utterly incapable of judging for
-yourself on so important a matter. You will simply
-do as I order you. By and by, when you come of
-age, you can of course throw my authority aside. In
-the meantime you are entirely under my control. I
-forbid you to speak again to this young blacksmith.
-That is enough.”</p>
-
-<p>Mrs. Morland leant back on her cushions almost
-overcome. Her agitation was very real; for though
-Austin had not interrupted her, she had seen no sign
-of yielding on his handsome, boyish face&mdash;out of
-which, as she had spoken, had passed all the carelessness
-and all the pride.</p>
-
-<p>“Mater&mdash;I don’t know how to tell you properly&mdash;but
-I think you’d speak differently if you had seen
-Jim at the gate just now. Frances had chucked him
-up, you know, when he came first; and then you had
-chucked him up, and he was going away without a
-word. He looked awfully <i>down</i>. I thought it was
-hard lines.”</p>
-
-<p>Austin pushed away, with an abrupt, half-nervous
-movement, the chair across which he had been leaning,
-and thrust his hands into his pockets. He was a
-typical little Englishman&mdash;a boy of that nation which
-despises demonstrations of sentiment; but there was
-an honest flush on his cheeks.</p>
-
-<p>“Look here, Mater,” he continued, “don’t you believe
-that if our father were alive he’d take Jim home
-this very minute? Wouldn’t he have him here with
-us, and treat him just the same?”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_144">[Pg 144]</span></p>
-
-<p>Mrs. Morland sat speechless.</p>
-
-<p>“I think he would,” said Austin soberly; “I truly
-do. And,” he continued, a delicate instinct prompting
-him, “I can’t tell why you don’t; only, of course,
-I don’t know about all the things you know of. I’m
-just settling about myself. I saw Jim going away,
-looking <i>down</i>, and I meant to ask you to send someone
-to fetch him back.”</p>
-
-<p>“Austin!”</p>
-
-<p>“Why not?”</p>
-
-<p>“Because,” said Mrs. Morland indignantly, “I will
-not hear of such a thing. Do you suppose I will have
-all Woodend sneering at my blacksmith-stepson?”</p>
-
-<p>The boy kicked a stool vehemently.</p>
-
-<p>“Well, I won’t ask what isn’t any good. But I’d like
-to go after him myself, and say&mdash;something. And I
-think I’ll go.”</p>
-
-<p>“Austin! you&mdash;”</p>
-
-<p>“I think I’ll just go.”</p>
-
-<p>The boy was near to the door. He reached it in a
-few quick, firm steps, turned, waved his hand smilingly,
-and went.</p>
-
-<p>Mrs. Morland sprang up and moved some paces after
-him, then, with a helpless sigh, moved towards Frances.
-Why did not she run to stop the daring offender?</p>
-
-<p>But Frances had sunk into a chair, and was sobbing
-bitterly. Shrugging her shoulders, Mrs. Morland
-stepped rapidly to the bell and rang it.</p>
-
-<p>“John,” she said to the servant who appeared at the
-door, “I wish you to try to catch Master Austin. He
-has just left the room, and has, I think, gone out of
-doors.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_145">[Pg 145]</span></p>
-
-<p>“I saw Master Austin in the hall just now, ma’am.”</p>
-
-<p>“Make haste, then, and bring him back.”</p>
-
-<p>John hurried off, much exercised in his mind concerning
-his mistress’s distressed manner; and though
-used to a dignified pace, he fairly ran down the carriage-drive,
-threw back the gate, and stood gazing, now this
-way, now that.</p>
-
-<p>“Can hardly have got out of sight in this time,”
-reflected the puzzled servant. “Well! if that isn’t
-the sound of a pony coming down the drive! Master
-Austin must have got the beast saddled double-quick.
-What’s our young gentleman up to, I’d like to know?
-Well, I’ve got to stop him, I suppose.”</p>
-
-<p>John stood prepared in the middle of the gateway;
-and as Austin trotted into close quarters the servant
-explained his mistress’s orders.</p>
-
-<p>“Look here, John,” said Austin, his eyes glowing
-with mischief, “I’ve an excellent regard for you, and
-I’d be sincerely sorry to cut short your valuable career.
-But if you don’t move a bit to one side I’m afraid I’ll
-make short work of you. I’m going through that gate
-this instant!”</p>
-
-<p>As he spoke the boy touched his pony; the plucky
-little animal sprang forward, John sprang backward,
-and with a joyous laugh Austin was off down the road
-at full gallop.</p>
-
-<hr class="tb" />
-
-<p>Jim tramped steadily through Woodend village,
-noting his whereabouts only when his heedless progression
-brought him to a stop in the deep snow
-gathered at the sides of the pathways, or sent him
-floundering against wall or fence half-hidden in the<span class="pagenum" id="Page_146">[Pg 146]</span>
-heavy shadows. His thoughts kept him company, and
-shut out intrusive sensations concerning the white
-world around him. The lights blinked through the
-trees from the houses standing back among their
-gardens, and the sounds of mirthful family meetings
-strayed sometimes to the lad’s ears. It was Christmas-day&mdash;the
-day on which, so old Bill East had said, folks’
-hearts beat tenderly for all their kin. Lower down
-the valley cottage-homes stood humbly in their tiny
-plots; and the windows, often uncurtained, revealed the
-rough comfort within. Homes of another sort&mdash;as
-those of Lumber’s Yard&mdash;lay back from view: among
-them Dr. Brenton and Max were paying a round of
-Christmas calls before settling down for the evening
-they never cared to spend apart.</p>
-
-<p>Jim tramped on. He had reached the entry to
-Lumber’s Yard, where a knot of the male residents
-had gathered for a sociable chat until it should be
-time to repair to the parlour of the “Jolly Dog”. One
-of the men called out to Jim, whose face was just then
-visible in the light from an open cottage-door. The
-lad heard the gruff greeting,&mdash;it came from Harry the
-Giant,&mdash;and the well-meant invitation which followed it.</p>
-
-<p>“Why, Jim East, you’re looking rarely glum and
-peckish! Cheer up, lad. Come wi’ me, and ’ave
-summat hot to hearten ye. We’re all agoing into the
-“Dog” this minnit. Come along wi’ us.”</p>
-
-<p>Jim paused irresolutely. Before his mental vision
-loomed the smithy, infinitely dreary; no welcome
-awaiting him save from four-footed friends. The old
-woman who kept the place clean and cooked meals for<span class="pagenum" id="Page_147">[Pg 147]</span>
-the Easts had begged a holiday, which had been granted
-cheerfully. Jim shivered as he thought of the lonely
-rooms.</p>
-
-<p>It was a searching moment for the poor lad. The
-cruel rebuffs of his kindred had cut him to the heart;
-more than that, they had threatened the ruin of his
-moral sense. If he were a creature so repellent in the
-eyes of those to whom his inner self had turned with
-instinctive yearning, surely he must have been mistaken
-in supposing that his nature could have qualities in
-common with theirs. Beauty of form, colour, or sound
-had always roused in him a glow of happiness, in
-which, during the last fortnight, he had tried&mdash;with a
-kind of grateful wonder&mdash;to recognize some latent
-refinement such as he supposed to be the inalienable
-possession of the gently born and bred.</p>
-
-<p>He was the son of one whom even his grandfather
-had admitted to be a gallant and honourable gentleman.
-He was the brother of Frances, with her
-gracious manner and gentle speech, and of Austin,
-whose gay courtesy towards his girl-playmates had
-secured Jim’s respectful admiration. But since Frances
-and Austin would have none of him, whither should
-he turn? Could he carry into his lonely, loveless life
-that higher purpose which would teach him, without
-help or sympathy, to shun the base and impure, and
-to cling to the thing which is right? Or must he
-sink, sink at once and for ever, to the level of such as
-these?... Jim dragged his thoughts from the
-memory of the beautiful home from which he had
-just been banished, and forced his eyes to rest intelligently<span class="pagenum" id="Page_148">[Pg 148]</span>
-on the slouching figures blocking the entry to
-Lumber’s Yard.</p>
-
-<p>“Thank you, Harry;”&mdash;the lad’s voice had an unusual
-firmness&mdash;“you are kind, but I must be getting home.”</p>
-
-<p>“There’s none to greet ye now,” persisted the giant
-good-naturedly. “Change your mind, and come wi’ us.”</p>
-
-<p>“I can’t,” said Jim quietly. “Good-night, and thank
-you, Harry.”</p>
-
-<p>More arguments, some rough, some jeering, followed
-him as he shook his head and walked on towards the
-darkening lanes beyond the village bounds. He chose
-mechanically the shortest way to Rowdon; and he
-had just turned into a by-road overhung by leafless
-elms, when a galloping pony caught him up, and was
-reined in with a jerk by his side.</p>
-
-<p>“Jim!”</p>
-
-<p>The lad started violently, and turned in amazement
-to see Austin Morland leaning from his saddle with
-hand outstretched.</p>
-
-<p>“Jim! I’ve come after you. Shake hands, old
-fellow.”</p>
-
-<p>Jim, still staring, obeyed half-consciously. The grip
-exchanged by the brothers satisfied Austin, and sent
-through Jim a strange thrill of joy.</p>
-
-<p>“I can’t quite make out things yet,” continued the
-younger boy, a little shy, but wholly friendly; “my
-mind’s a bit mixed, I fancy. But I know one thing&mdash;if
-you’re Jim Morland, we’ve got to stick to each other.
-Eh?”</p>
-
-<p>Jim muttered a choky affirmative.</p>
-
-<p>“Well, you are Jim Morland. Mater says so; and<span class="pagenum" id="Page_149">[Pg 149]</span>
-if she seems fussy at first, you and I aren’t going to
-worry. Perhaps she’ll come round. Anyhow, we’ll
-stick to each other. Eh?”</p>
-
-<p>“Ay&mdash;I’d give the world for you. I’ll not forget.”</p>
-
-<p>“If I could, I’d come with you now. But Frances
-and I can’t leave the Mater to-night. You see, Jim,
-don’t you?”</p>
-
-<p>“Dear lad, I’d not have you come.”</p>
-
-<p>“But you will have me&mdash;ever so often. Whether
-you like it or not. I’ve holidays now. See, Jim!
-I’ll come to-morrow, in the afternoon quite early.
-Will you look out for me?”</p>
-
-<p>“Will I not?”</p>
-
-<p>“Then good-bye now. Because of Frances and
-the Mater, you know. Don’t mope to-night, there’s a
-good fellow. I’ll come to-morrow, and won’t I wake
-you up! Shake hands again! Now I’m off. Good-bye,
-brother Jim!”</p>
-
-<p>The swift pony and his rider vanished. Jim Morland
-stood where they had left him, and his head sunk
-in his hands. Who shall despise him if, in his overwrought
-condition, he sobbed for very happiness?</p>
-
-<p>“And to think I nearly missed him! Ah, if I’d
-gone along of Harry! Thank God I didn’t.... I’d
-never go now. I’d never do aught to make him feel
-shame of me. I’ll care for him always&mdash;ay, and for
-Missy too!... He called me ‘brother Jim’, God
-bless him!”</p>
-
-<p>Jim went on through the darkness. At the smithy
-he found that Elizabeth had returned, made up his fire,
-and laid his table. Jim wandered about, too happy to<span class="pagenum" id="Page_150">[Pg 150]</span>
-eat. He was no longer alone in the world: he had a
-small brother, who was coming to see him to-morrow,
-and on many morrows. (Jim hardly paused to wonder
-how Austin had contrived to overcome his mother’s
-objections.) At last the lad dragged a chair to the
-blazing fire in the kitchen. His dog crouched at his
-feet. His great black tom-cat purred at his elbow.
-His fiddle invited a song of thanksgiving to which his
-heart piped its cheerful chorus.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_IX">CHAPTER IX.<br />
-<small>FRANCES FALTERS.</small></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p>On the following day Austin paid his promised visit
-to Rowdon Smithy. There was no deceit in
-the boy, and he proclaimed his intention openly at
-home. The contest on the subject between himself and
-his mother was sharp and brief: Austin gained the
-day. Mrs. Morland had no idea how to enforce her
-commands, for she had at her disposal no means of
-coercion. Had it been possible to send her son to
-school, she would have taken this step immediately;
-but her husband’s objections stood in the way. There
-were no near relatives to whose charge she might, for
-a time, have consigned the little rebel, save the Scotch
-cousin with whom Austin had spent the last Easter
-holidays; and this cousin had gone to Australia to
-take up sheep-farming, in hopes of making a fortune,
-marrying, and settling down as an antipodean millionaire.<span class="pagenum" id="Page_151">[Pg 151]</span>
-Meanwhile, he was making short work of his
-patrimony; and Mrs. Morland did not exactly see her
-way to employ him as jailer.</p>
-
-<p>A settlement between the opposed forces was brought
-about by the wise diplomacy of Austin. The boy had
-always found that he had more than enough to do in
-taking care of his own conscience, and it did not for a
-moment occur to him that he was the appointed keeper
-of anybody else’s. Least of all was he inclined to try
-to dictate to his mother and Frances on points of duty
-or conduct; if only they would let him alone, he was
-quite willing to be equally tolerant.</p>
-
-<p>So Austin struck a bargain. His visits to the
-smithy were to be permitted, in return for a promise
-that he would not enlighten Woodend as to Jim’s
-revelations. Austin claimed one exception&mdash;he must
-and would tell Max everything. Dr. Brenton knew
-already; and the doctor and Max had no secrets from
-one another; so that Max, most likely, was already in
-possession of the strange news. Anyway, Austin
-could not shut out from his confidence his special chum.</p>
-
-<p>Mrs. Morland made the best of the matter, and secured
-for the present her own peace of mind by holding
-an interview with Max’s eccentric father.</p>
-
-<p>“Eccentric” Dr. Brenton certainly was in the eyes
-of Mrs. Morland, who had not hitherto entrusted the
-health of herself or her children to a medical man not
-possessed of a carriage and pair. The high esteem in
-which the Doctor was held by the gentle-people as well
-as the working-folk of Woodend had roused first her
-curiosity and then her scorn.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_152">[Pg 152]</span></p>
-
-<p>“You must look more closely, dear Madam,” the
-old-fashioned Rector had said to her, “and beneath
-Brenton’s shabby coat you will see the spreading of an
-angel’s wings.”</p>
-
-<p>“I think not, sir,” Edward Carlyon had differed
-quietly; “beneath the shabby coat you’ll see only a
-shabbier waistcoat. The wings can wait a bit: we
-want the man.”</p>
-
-<p>Mrs. Morland was persuaded that she could secure
-the Doctor’s silence, and indeed she did so. But she
-did not forget, during a whole uncomfortable day, the
-“eccentric” man’s look as he bowed agreement to her
-request. Dr. Brenton heartily wished Jim well, and
-he knew that Mrs. Morland’s departure from Woodend
-would in no way help the lad; but while he handed
-his visitor to her carriage with punctilious courtesy,
-he wondered what manner of woman this was who
-could stoop to inflict so great an injustice.</p>
-
-<p>Though in the case of Austin Mrs. Morland gave
-way to what seemed to be necessity, she was careful
-to hold Frances to her promise. And Frances wavered
-miserably between the two parties, in this house divided
-against itself. Of one thing she was sure&mdash;she could
-not have taken the half-measures which had satisfied
-Austin. Had Frances acknowledged her brother at all,
-she must have acknowledged him to all the world.
-The feeling that in this respect Austin had fallen
-short of consistency warped her sympathy with his
-actions, and to some extent seemed to justify her own.
-She, surely, was at least consistent.</p>
-
-<p>When poor Frances reached this stage in her meditations,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_153">[Pg 153]</span>
-she began to falter. She remembered that
-she was still the leader of the Altruists, and that a
-score of boys and girls paid her real homage as the
-inspirer of deeds of self-denial and mercy. When the
-Carlyons’ school reopened after the Christmas vacation,
-Muriel’s pupils began slowly to detect some
-changes in their popular comrade. The girls with
-whom she had seemed hitherto to have least in
-common were those who now met eagerly her tardy
-advances. To be sought as friend and playfellow
-by Frances Morland had been a happy distinction
-to any of Miss Carlyon’s little band. Frances had
-never affected superiority, and it was impossible to
-suspect her of vanity; but her clear gray eyes had
-appeared to look beneath the surface, and to choose
-with unerring confidence the best natures as those most
-akin to her own. Her gentle sincerity had appealed
-to every loyal heart and won its ungrudging recognition.</p>
-
-<p>Now, in the society of her former favourites, she
-was dull and ill at ease; and when her new friends
-gathered round her, only too ready to hail her as leader,
-her instinctive contempt for the offered loyalty made
-her capricious and even tyrannical. Muriel Carlyon,
-who watched over her pupils with a very real tolerance
-and sympathy, knew a pang of disappointment
-as she saw Frances apparently content to reach a
-lower plane in character and conduct.</p>
-
-<p>At home, the girl’s altered demeanour was not less
-apparent than at school. Her influence over Austin
-must have gone for ever, she told herself, or he could<span class="pagenum" id="Page_154">[Pg 154]</span>
-not have differed from her on a point which was surely
-a test of individuality; and having so made up her
-mind, she soon brought about the state of things which
-had been purely imaginary. It was true that Austin
-had begun to spend a good deal of his leisure at the
-smithy, but he would at any time have given his
-sister’s affairs the preference. Now, however, Frances
-no longer invited his willing aid. The chemicals and
-dishes in the dark-room, once so fascinating, were
-thick with dust, since Austin found photography “no
-fun” without Frances. Prints had duly been taken
-from the two negatives which had been the Christmas-day
-successes, and Florry’s group and Frances’s
-landscape had been admired by half Woodend. But
-Frances could not endure the sight of either; and
-when copies were begged, no coaxing or pleading from
-Austin would induce his sister to help him to take
-them.</p>
-
-<p>The boy laid aside his camera and took up his
-fiddle. His patient teacher, a young Exham musician,
-was delighted with his sudden progress; and Mrs.
-Morland smiled complacently while she whispered to
-her friends:</p>
-
-<p>“Yes, Austin has always been musical&mdash;so like his
-dear father. Mr. Morland had quite a reputation as
-an amateur violinist. The Amati that is now Austin’s
-was once his. It gives me so much pleasure to see
-my dear boy take up in earnest the study of his
-instrument.”</p>
-
-<p>On reception days Mrs. Morland’s servants were
-sent to playroom and garden in search of the juvenile<span class="pagenum" id="Page_155">[Pg 155]</span>
-prodigy, but their efforts were vain. Austin’s performances
-were strictly private&mdash;private to himself
-and his brother Jim. For Jim’s sake he listened to
-his teacher’s instructions, and strove, in half-hours of
-self-sacrificial practice, to communicate those instructions
-to his own finger-tips. Then, later on, he could
-pass them on to Jim. And Jim sat willingly at
-Austin’s feet in the art and science of music, and
-found no evening dull on which he could pore over
-the exercise-books his brother had brought him, and
-repeat again and again on his own poor instrument
-some passage whose difficulty Austin had tried to help
-him to overcome.</p>
-
-<p>For many weeks matters held to the same course,
-and the Easter holidays came round to complete the
-year of Mrs. Morland’s residence in Woodend. Jim
-had kept his promise, and had not sought to make
-public the secret of his birth; and Dr. Brenton and
-Max and Austin had proved equally faithful.</p>
-
-<p>Max’s training, as much as his natural endowment,
-had given him a large heart and a most tolerant judgment.
-He was “all things to all men” in the best
-sense. With this true friend, Austin attempted no
-concealments, and felt that, without disloyalty, he
-might venture on a discussion of the one epoch-marking
-experience of his young life. He even tried
-to win from Max some opinion as to Frances’s share
-in Jim’s dismissal and banishment.</p>
-
-<p>“For it wasn’t a scrap like her,” remarked Austin
-in a puzzled voice; “Frances has always been such a
-stickler about justice and that, you know. Goodness!<span class="pagenum" id="Page_156">[Pg 156]</span>
-she’s down like a shot on a chap who doesn’t play
-fair&mdash;”</p>
-
-<p>“She used to be,” amended Max diffidently. The
-talk was of another fellow’s sister, and he trusted his
-tongue would remember its duty. “The other day,
-when Lal slanged Guy because Guy won that prize
-Lal wanted, I believe every girl except Frances slanged
-Lal in his turn for his sneakiness.”</p>
-
-<p>“My! wasn’t there a jolly row!” said Austin, chuckling
-at the recollection. “Ten of ’em all together giving
-it hot to that skunk Lal!”</p>
-
-<p>“Frances would have led the assault once on a time.”
-Max smiled, remembering not Lal’s rating only, but
-many occasions when Austin’s sister had exchanged
-her usual serenity for hot contempt of conduct base
-and ungenerous.</p>
-
-<p>“Yes, she would,” assented Austin slowly. “And
-that’s what I can’t make out&mdash;why she’s so different
-now.”</p>
-
-<p>“I think it’s because she’s so really fair and straight,”
-said Max in a sober voice, which breathed chivalrous
-determination to believe in the absent Frances. “And
-if she knows all the time that she isn’t exactly fair to
-Jim, she won’t want to come out strong about ‘justice’
-when other folks trip.”</p>
-
-<p>Austin nodded his head in agreement. “That’s it!
-Besides, she’s a girl, and girls are cranky things; a
-fellow never knows quite how to take ’em.”</p>
-
-<p>“Not a fellow’s own sister?” queried Max, with
-interest.</p>
-
-<p>“Bless you, no,” replied Austin, shaking his head<span class="pagenum" id="Page_157">[Pg 157]</span>
-this time, and speaking with conviction. “Why, I
-could make out any other chap’s sister better than I
-can make out Frances. But of course,” he added,
-sitting very erect, “Frances isn’t a common girl. She’s
-not so understandable as the rest of the lot, even.”</p>
-
-<p>“Do you know,” began Max seriously, “what she
-told me yesterday? She said she thought she’d have
-to give up being an Altruist!”</p>
-
-<p>“No!” exclaimed Austin.</p>
-
-<p>“She did! And I said: ‘Oh, Frances! don’t break
-up our club. It’s the first of our Woodend things
-which has gone on and been a success.’ And she said:
-‘Of course it will go on, and far better without me.’
-And I asked her why; and she said something, very
-low, about the nicest sort of girls&mdash;the girls who were
-the best Altruists&mdash;not caring for her as they used to
-do; and that they didn’t come so much to the meetings,
-and that she thought they would if she weren’t the
-leader.”</p>
-
-<p>“Well,” said Austin, in a crestfallen tone, “fancy
-Frances chucking up her beloved Society! She trots
-about with the Mater, too, ever so much more than
-she used to do, and it’s a bad sign. Imagine Frances
-sitting in a drawing-room, wearing her best togs,
-when she might be playing hockey with us!”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes&mdash;fancy!” echoed Max dismally.</p>
-
-<p>“She goes out to tea, like any silly, when she might
-be making bromides with me in the dark-room.”</p>
-
-<p>“Well, she gave me two pinafores out of the Altruists’
-stores last week,” said Max, brightening; “she’s been so
-stand-off lately I was afraid to beg.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_158">[Pg 158]</span></p>
-
-<p>“Perhaps things will pick up,” said Austin. “I
-know what would make them do it soonest.”</p>
-
-<p>“What?”</p>
-
-<p>“Why, for the Mater to find out what a jolly good
-fellow Jim is, and make it up with him. Then Frances
-could follow suit, without any humble pie. There’s
-nothing a girl hates so much as having to own she’s in
-the wrong.”</p>
-
-<hr class="tb" />
-
-<p>The kindness he received from his young brother
-sank deeply into Jim’s heart, and went far to heal it
-of the soreness left by Frances’s repudiation of his
-plea for a kinsman’s position. Jim, as he truly put
-it, “thought the world of the lad”, and was almost
-pathetically proud of his handsome face and gallant
-bearing. During the prevalence of the bleak March
-winds Austin caught cold, and had one of his bad
-throats; and Jim was miserable all day and all night,
-except when Max was with him, assuring him that
-the boy was “getting on splendidly”, and promising
-to deliver to the interesting invalid every kind of
-affectionate message, supplemented by such gifts as
-were within Jim’s reach.</p>
-
-<p>Austin got well, and resumed his custom of riding
-to the smithy at least two or three days a week. The
-first time he went after his convalescence, he received
-from Jim a welcome which he never could forget.
-The elder lad’s wet eyes, shaking hands, and broken
-voice were evidence enough of his clinging love for
-the younger; and Austin realized, with some sobering
-emotion, that to his brother he was infinitely dear.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_159">[Pg 159]</span></p>
-
-<p>A closer relationship grew between them. When the
-occasion served, they had long talks, and learned to
-know one another. Jim’s simple manliness of thought
-and deed roused in Austin a respect which kept down
-his secret impatience with his brother’s extreme tenderness
-of heart. Austin felt dimly that Jim ought to be
-resentful of the harsh decree which shut him out from
-the ease and luxury of the home at Elveley, and
-denied him the advantages due to his father’s son.
-He even tried to “stir Jim up a bit”, and encourage
-him to stand out against the powers that were.</p>
-
-<p>“I don’t know what’s mine,” remarked Austin one
-day, after much pondering over matters which had
-forced themselves on his boyish consideration, “but
-I’m sure you ought to have most of it. Why don’t
-you pluck up, Jim, and say so? Then you could study
-and go to college as you’d like to; and you’re such a
-grind, you’d come out an awful swell, and make the
-Mater and Frances proud of you!”</p>
-
-<p>To his surprise, Jim turned from him with a pained
-expression, and leaning against the window, murmured:</p>
-
-<p>“Lad, lad! Do you think I’d take aught from you?”</p>
-
-<p>“It wouldn’t be from me, really,” persisted Austin.
-“It would be only having what’s rightfully yours. Well,
-there! Don’t mope, Jim! Come on and give us another
-lesson in shoeing. I believe I’ll soon be able to tackle
-a gee all by myself. Won’t it be larks when I can!”</p>
-
-<p>Austin presently realized his ambition; and a fine
-dray-horse was proudly shod by a young gentleman
-in spotless flannels, while his admiring elder brother
-looked on to prompt and praise. Mrs. Morland was<span class="pagenum" id="Page_160">[Pg 160]</span>
-spared the knowledge of this achievement; but Austin
-confided it to Frances without hesitation. Frances’s
-native love of consistency moved her to vindicate her
-chosen position by a hot reproof of Austin for his unconventional
-conduct.</p>
-
-<p>“Well!” said the boy, profoundly bored, “you don’t
-stick to your own opinions, Miss Frances. Wasn’t it
-you who used to talk about any honest work being
-noble and beautiful, and all that tommy-rot? Now I
-don’t say shoeing horses is noble work, or beautiful, or
-anything. I just say it’s first-rate fun!”</p>
-
-<p>And Austin turned on his heel and went off.</p>
-
-<p>“There!” thought Frances bitterly, “he has gone
-away; he never stays with me now. He isn’t a bit
-my boy any longer. He’s Jim’s. Oh, how I wish
-we never had come to Woodend! But Jim says his
-grandfather always managed to know where we lived.
-How horrid it seems! I wish I’d been different to
-Jim. He looked so sorry. I think&mdash;I think I hurt
-him. I wish I were brave, and didn’t feel ashamed for
-people to know I had a blacksmith for a brother! I
-hate to think of anyone pitying us about Jim, and
-sneering at his funny clothes and way of speaking!
-I know I’m a ‘snob’, and that Miss Cliveden would
-scorn me now; but I can’t help it.”</p>
-
-<p>Doubt of herself made Frances doubtful of others,
-and she began to show signs of developing that unlucky
-sort of suspicion which searches motives with intent
-to prove itself in the right. Her common-sense told
-her that the best of her girl-friends could not despise
-her for conduct of which they knew nothing; yet she,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_161">[Pg 161]</span>
-who had been above all things frank and sincere, now
-continually imagined slights and offences on the part
-of her favourite comrades. But Frances had been too
-well liked to be readily regarded as an outsider by
-any of Muriel Carlyon’s brightest and busiest lassies.</p>
-
-<p>It was not until, in a mood of hopeless discontent,
-she carried out her purpose of deserting the flourishing
-Society she had founded with so much energy
-and success, that a deputation of alarmed and amazed
-damsels pursued Miss Carlyon into her private sitting-room,
-and demanded that she should, then and there,
-tell them what could be the matter with Frances.</p>
-
-<p>“She called a meeting in the schoolroom after
-hours!” cried Florry Fane breathlessly; “it was to
-let us know that she wasn’t going to be our leader
-any more! She said we should do better without her,
-and she proposed that I should be the Altruist secretary&mdash;as
-though any one could take Frances’s place!”</p>
-
-<p>“It is true,” said the First Violin&mdash;a pensive maid
-known to her elders as Dorothy Gray,&mdash;“that we
-have not attended the meetings so regularly as we
-used to; but that was all because Frances has seemed
-so different.”</p>
-
-<p>“In what way ‘different’?” queried Miss Carlyon
-quietly.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh! in every way. She used to talk such a lot
-about helping people, and to be full of plans for all
-sorts of ways to make our Society some real good to
-the Woodend poor folks. We were going to have a
-bazaar in the summer, and build a club-room which
-would be open in the evenings and entice the men<span class="pagenum" id="Page_162">[Pg 162]</span>
-from that dreadful inn at Lumber’s Yard. It was to
-be a secret until we had held another meeting.”</p>
-
-<p>“I thought you were bringing me some news,
-Dorothy.”</p>
-
-<p>“Of course we were going to tell you all about it
-before we decided anything.”</p>
-
-<p>“Well, dear. And must the project fall through?”</p>
-
-<p>“Why, I suppose so. We could not get on without
-Frances. She is so good at arranging and managing.
-Besides, it would seem so strange and unfriendly to
-throw ourselves into anything heartily with Frances
-out in the cold.”</p>
-
-<p>“But if Frances has chosen that uncomfortable
-position?”</p>
-
-<p>“Can’t we get her away from it? Do help us, Miss
-Carlyon!”</p>
-
-<p>There was a minute’s silence, while Muriel watched
-observantly the half-dozen young faces turned eagerly
-to hers.</p>
-
-<p>“My dears,” she said soberly, “I am with you in
-your surprise at the change in Frances, and in your
-natural longing to understand it and to win your
-friend back to her old ways. Let us put our heads
-together, and see what we can do. First, let us ask
-Florry, who has been so much with Frances, whether
-she can suggest any reason for the lassie’s whims.”</p>
-
-<p>“I don’t think I can,” said Florry slowly; “you see,
-she isn’t the kind of girl to back out of things in
-order to be flattered and fussed over, and begged to go
-on with them. Frances isn’t a bit vain. She’s too
-much in earnest.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_163">[Pg 163]</span></p>
-
-<p>The other girls assented in chorus.</p>
-
-<p>“Can her mother have raised objections to her doing
-so much for your Society? Mrs. Morland is taking
-Frances about with her more than she used to do, and
-she may wish her daughter to use her leisure differently.”</p>
-
-<p>Florry shook her head. “No&mdash;it can’t be that.
-Frances told me her mother had promised to help with
-our bazaar, and to persuade her friends to work for it.
-We should hardly have gone on thinking about it
-else,” added Florry bluntly, “because the Woodend
-people all follow Mrs. Morland like sheep.”</p>
-
-<p>“We needn’t criticise our elders on that point,” said
-plump Betty Turner, “for we all follow Frances like
-sheep. Why not? Someone must lead.”</p>
-
-<p>“And Mrs. Morland’s leadership has been used most
-kindly on behalf of the Altruists,” said Miss Carlyon
-gently. “No doubt it would serve the bazaar to good
-purpose, and I still hope your grand plan may be
-triumphantly worked out. And now, dear girls, as
-you cannot clear up the mystery of Frances’s behaviour,
-may I, without discouraging you, own that
-you mustn’t look to me for enlightenment? If there
-is anything behind, I am not in Frances’s confidence;
-I can judge only from what appears on the surface.
-Isn’t it possible that the very honours you have thrust
-upon her&mdash;the popularity, the responsibility&mdash;may
-have become something of a strain? Perhaps she may
-feel that, for a time at least, she would rather remain
-in the background, while those who have learned to
-imitate her courage and energy may take their turn<span class="pagenum" id="Page_164">[Pg 164]</span>
-in coming to the front. In any case, I can’t help
-believing that your best course will be to persist in
-your gallant undertakings, and to let our Frances
-see that her efforts have not been thrown away.
-She has borne the burden and the heat of the day,
-and she may flag for awhile only to spring forward
-more gladly and willingly after a well-earned
-rest.”</p>
-
-<p>“But our Society!&mdash;our Club, without Frances!”</p>
-
-<p>“Must go on and prosper, if only to maintain its
-founder’s credit. If your Club-room at Elveley is no
-longer available, you shall hold your meetings here.
-Persevere, lassies, persevere! And before long&mdash;I feel
-sure of it&mdash;Frances the Altruist shall be again in your
-midst.”</p>
-
-<p>The news that her daughter had abandoned her pet
-hobby was quite a shock to Mrs. Morland, who had so
-long been accustomed to see her children to the fore
-in every juvenile scheme, that she could not recognize
-the value of a light hidden under a bushel. She reproached
-Frances long and scornfully for her voluntary
-abdication of her small queenship; but the girl
-listened in silence, and with an expression of weariness
-and indifference which increased her mother’s
-vexation. Mrs. Morland felt the disappointment and
-chagrin Austin and Frances were causing her all the
-more because such sensations were so new and strange.
-She had always congratulated herself on the possession
-of a pair of youngsters who were made for future
-social success. And here was Austin, of his own
-choice, spending half his play-hours at a vulgar smithy.<span class="pagenum" id="Page_165">[Pg 165]</span>
-And here was Frances handing over her girlish
-honours to Florry Fane.</p>
-
-<p>Mrs. Morland’s fretting and the children’s divided
-interests made of Elveley a different home. The three
-members of the little family were drifting apart slowly
-and steadily. During Austin’s short illness, mother
-and daughter drew nearer in the press of a common
-anxiety; but as soon as the boy was about again, and
-galloping his pony to and from Rowdon Smithy, he
-seemed to become once more a being outside Frances’s
-world.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_X">CHAPTER X.<br />
-<small>TROUBLE AT ELVELEY.</small></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p>It was August, and the evenings were sultry and
-oppressive after burning summer days. At Rowdon
-Smithy there was always some coolness, borrowed
-from the adjacent moorland, and helped by a situation
-exposed on northern and eastern sides. So, when
-dusk drew on, and Jim’s work might, as a rule, be
-considered over, the young smith used to sit in his
-trellised porch, with book in hand or violin on shoulder,
-and enjoy such breezes as were to be had. The place
-pleased him for several reasons. It had been a favourite
-resting-spot of his grandfather’s, it caught the latest
-beams of the sun setting across the Common, and it
-commanded a fair stretch of the road by which Austin
-might be expected to come.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_166">[Pg 166]</span></p>
-
-<p>Austin came now oftener than of old. Jim sometimes
-wondered why: he had, as it seemed to him, so
-little entertainment to offer to his brother.</p>
-
-<p>On a particular evening of this sunny August, Jim sat,
-as usual, in the cottage-porch. His hands were busy
-with his fiddle, his eyes were bent over a sheet of
-music which Austin had lent to him. Jim had changed
-much during the last few months. His face and figure
-had matured and grown manlier; he was dressed with
-more care, and had the fresh, “clean” look peculiar to
-upper-class Englishmen. There was but slight trace
-of the peasant about him, and his homely language
-sounded pleasantly enough in his soft, clear voice&mdash;which
-even to Austin’s ears was quaintly reminiscent
-of Frances’s sweet tones. His manners and bearing
-were seldom at fault; for old William East had known
-something of the ways of gentle-people, and, acknowledging
-within himself a duty owed to the lad’s
-deceived father, had taken pains to shield Jim from
-bad example and to encourage his natural refinement.
-The sorrow of his bereavement, and the keen pain
-of his rejection at the hands of his sister and stepmother,
-had indeed saddened his young face; but they
-had also deepened and strengthened his character, in
-teaching him to stand alone.</p>
-
-<p>The sound of a trotting pony advancing along the
-hard, white country road broke in on Jim’s peaceful
-studies and caught his attention. Hoping that the
-nearing rider might be Austin, Jim sprang to his feet,
-laid aside his fiddle, and swung briskly down the
-garden-path to the gate. As he went, he saw that his<span class="pagenum" id="Page_167">[Pg 167]</span>
-young brother was putting his pony to the gallop, with
-evident impatience to reach his journey’s end. Jim
-threw wide the gate, and stepped out on to the roadway
-in time to wave a welcome to his visitor. Then
-he saw that Austin’s sunburnt cheeks had lost their
-ruddy colour, and that his eyes looked scared and
-strange as from a nervous shock.</p>
-
-<p>“Why, Austin! What’s up, lad?” asked the elder
-brother anxiously. “There’s surely something wrong.”</p>
-
-<p>“Everything’s wrong, Jim! Everything’s dreadful!
-You’d never guess what’s happened at home! Don’t
-try: I’d rather tell straight out. Perhaps I shall feel
-better when you know, too!”</p>
-
-<p>“It’s no harm to Madam or Missy?”</p>
-
-<p>“Harm to all of us, I think, Jim. At least, Mother
-says we’re beggars! Isn’t that harm enough? Jim,
-don’t stand and stare like that!”</p>
-
-<p>Jim pulled himself together. “I was frighted, lad,&mdash;feared
-to think of what you might mean. ‘Beggars!’
-Surely not ‘beggars’!”</p>
-
-<p>Austin laughed roughly. Child as he was, the
-trouble which had overtaken him, and the way in
-which it had been met, had affected him strongly.</p>
-
-<p>“Well, Mater says so: and I suppose she knows.
-Jim, I’ll ride round to the shed and fasten up Rough
-first of all.”</p>
-
-<p>“I’ll come with you,” said the other briefly; and
-they made the short journey in silence. When the
-pony had been safely tethered, Austin caught Jim by
-the arm and dragged him off.</p>
-
-<p>“Not indoors!” said the boy impatiently. “I feel<span class="pagenum" id="Page_168">[Pg 168]</span>
-choked already. Let’s go to the orchard. Oh, how jolly
-quiet and cool it is here! At home&mdash;.”</p>
-
-<p>Austin paused, and held his tongue perseveringly
-until the brothers had gained a favourite retreat in
-the pleasantest nook among the old apple-trees. Jim,
-even then, forbore to question, guessing that his young
-brother’s nerves were strung to a pitch which would
-not bear further tension. With considerate kindness
-the elder lad forced back, out of sight, his own fears
-and forebodings.</p>
-
-<p>Austin threw himself on the ground with a long-drawn
-breath of relief. The calm of his surroundings
-and the friendly presence of his brother brought a
-happy sense of protection to the overwrought lad.</p>
-
-<p>“Now I’ll tell everything,” he said, drawing near to
-Jim, who immediately put an arm about him. “Only
-I can’t explain very well, because I don’t half understand
-myself. It was this morning it happened. A
-man came from London to see Mamma; so he was
-taken to the library, and she went there to speak to
-him. The library has a French window opening on to
-the lawn, and Frances and I were sitting together in
-the garden, quite near the library window. We could
-hear Mamma and the man talking, but not well enough
-to know what they were saying, so we did not think
-we need move away. Presently we did hear something:
-we heard Mamma say plainly, in a queer, high
-voice, ‘Then I and my children are paupers!’ Frances
-jumped up, and so did I; and we both ran to the
-library window. It wasn’t what Mamma had said; it
-was the way she spoke. Jim, it would have scared<span class="pagenum" id="Page_169">[Pg 169]</span>
-you. Just as we got to the house we heard a sort of
-cry. Well, we pushed open the window in a jiffey;
-and there was Mamma, lying all of a heap in her chair,
-and the strange man standing beside her, looking
-frightened out of his wits. And he said to us: ‘I’ve
-brought your mother bad news, but I couldn’t help it;
-I’ve nothing to do with the matter. The governor
-sent me down from town to tell her, because he thought
-it would come easier that way than in a letter or a
-telegram.’ Of course we didn’t know what he meant,
-and we didn’t much mind, we were so awfully scared
-about Mater.”</p>
-
-<p>“Madam had fainted?” questioned Jim in a low
-voice.</p>
-
-<p>“Yes. We called her maid, and brought her round;
-while the man vanished into the garden, saying he’d
-stay there a while in case he was wanted again. I’d
-have told him to cut back to his precious ‘governor’,
-only Frances wouldn’t let me. And as soon as Mamma
-could speak she asked for the London man, and in he
-came. I must say he looked sorry; and he didn’t
-seem to like it when Mamma said she wished him to
-tell Frances and me exactly what he had told her.
-Then&mdash;oh, Jim! I can’t remember half his long speech.
-It was all about deeds, and securities, and fraudulent
-trustees, and creditors. There was a man who had
-charge of all our money&mdash;Mamma’s and Frances’s and
-mine,&mdash;and was to manage for us till I was twenty-one.
-Papa had made him ‘trustee’. He had always given
-Mamma plenty of money for everything she needed,
-and she had never thought anything was wrong.<span class="pagenum" id="Page_170">[Pg 170]</span>
-But a while ago he wanted to make more money for
-himself; and first he used only what was his own, and
-lost it; then he began to use ours, and lost that.
-When nearly all ours was lost, and he knew he must
-soon be found out, he managed to get hold of what
-was left of Papa’s money, and then he ran away. So
-he has gone; and we shall never find him, or get back
-what he stole.”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh!” exclaimed Jim breathlessly, “what a sore,
-sore trial for Madam! Does she bear up, dear lad?”</p>
-
-<p>“No,” replied Austin gloomily; “and that’s the
-worst of it all. Mamma seems so very&mdash;queer. She
-sits and moans and groans, and tells Frances and me
-over and over again that we’re just beggars, and must
-go to the workhouse. Jim!” added Austin, with a
-break in his voice, and a childlike dread which made
-him shiver nervously, “Jim! must we really do that?”</p>
-
-<p>“No, dear lad, no. Why, Madam has her beautiful
-house anyway. She told me she’d bought it.”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes; but it isn’t all paid for,” said Austin, shaking
-his head. “The London man said Mamma’s trustee
-hadn’t paid for lots of things. Elveley is to be sold
-and all that’s in it; and even then Mamma won’t be
-able to pay everybody.”</p>
-
-<p>“I can’t hardly take it in,” muttered Jim. “Are
-you sure it’s as bad as you say?”</p>
-
-<p>“I’m sure enough,” said Austin bitterly, “seeing
-Mamma has said it all over and over again. Frances
-and I have stayed with her,” continued the lad,
-throwing up his arms wearily; “but this evening I
-thought I must come here for a bit, or I’d&mdash;I’d howl!<span class="pagenum" id="Page_171">[Pg 171]</span>
-Jim, you can’t guess what it’s like, at home. Mamma
-can’t do anything but groan.”</p>
-
-<p>“But Madam has many friends?” suggested Jim
-hopefully.</p>
-
-<p>“What’s the good of friends? They can’t find our
-trustee&mdash;or make our money come back again. And
-we’ve no relations except Cousin Walter, and he’s in
-Australia, sheep-farming. Don’t I wish I could go to
-Australia, and have heaps of land, and millions of
-sheep!” Austin closed his eyes, the better to call up
-a vision of plenty. “But Cousin Walter’s a failure
-out there: he can’t help us.”</p>
-
-<p>“There’s surely someone,” said Jim, unable to think
-of the stately, handsome owner of Elveley as friendless,
-penniless, and homeless. The lad might have
-been pardoned a gleam of satisfaction at the ruin
-which had overtaken the woman who had treated him
-with contemptuous indifference, and shown no intention
-of acknowledging his just claim to a share of his
-father’s property. But Jim was guiltless of resentment,
-and the inherent chivalry of his nature rose up
-in indignant pity at the blow dealt to the widow and
-orphans.</p>
-
-<p>Jim thought much and deeply, but he wisely said
-little in the meantime, preferring deeds to words.
-Austin succeeded in convincing him that in Mrs. Morland’s
-sight, at least, her case was desperate; and Jim
-the simple-minded could only marvel how so many
-years of prosperity and social success could have been
-unfruitful of a single friend attached and loyal enough
-to come forward with counsel and help.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_172">[Pg 172]</span></p>
-
-<p>“There must be someone,” he repeated, with conviction.
-“Austin, lad, this is too soon to talk so hopeless-like.
-Mayhap your mother is fair dazed with the
-shock, and too upset to think clear. Keep up heart,
-dear lad, and cheer Madam and Missy too. Tell them
-as all must come right.”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, Jim!” broke out Austin, “I wish you would
-come to Elveley and make some sense of things! It’s
-so awfully bothering to go on not knowing what will
-really happen, and with Mater not able to tell us.
-Jim, do come home with me now!”</p>
-
-<p>“Dear lad, I’d come with you gladly, but I haven’t
-the right&mdash;yet. I promised your mother I wouldn’t
-tell who I was; and what would folks think to see
-Jim East the blacksmith meddling with Madam’s
-affairs? No, it would just worry her more if I should
-venture&mdash;it would make things harder for her to see
-me there. I mayn’t do it, lad. It’s terrible vexing to
-know I mayn’t.”</p>
-
-<p>Jim’s reluctance was so evidently reasonable and
-unselfish that Austin forbore to press his entreaty.
-Instead, he allowed himself to be comforted and encouraged
-by all the arguments for hope and cheerfulness
-which Jim could draw from his imagination. At
-the smithy, Austin always felt happy and at peace.
-The difficulty was to tear himself away and go back
-to the home whence peace and happiness had fled.</p>
-
-<hr class="tb" />
-
-<p>Mrs. Morland, as has been said, was not personally
-popular in the village where she had made her home.
-Woodend was, in a sense, old-fashioned, and it had<span class="pagenum" id="Page_173">[Pg 173]</span>
-acquiesced quietly in her assumption of leadership in
-all that concerned its small social matters, but it had
-not learned to like her. Though its upper-class community
-was no less charitable than others similarly
-placed, there were not a few old residents who heard
-the story of the Morland downfall, as it affected the
-mistress of Elveley, with hardly more than a conventional
-murmur of regret. But when her children were
-under discussion the case was different. Everyone
-liked the bright girl and boy, everyone grieved at the
-tragic calamity which must so greatly change their lives.</p>
-
-<p>Still, there were some neighbours able and willing
-to show Mrs. Morland kindness and sympathy. These
-sought her out at the earliest moment that good taste
-allowed, and frankly offered to be of service; but the
-poor woman, completely overwhelmed by the extent
-of the disaster, rejected their overtures with angry
-scorn. Naturally, her well-meaning friends retired
-precipitately, determining that she should be left to
-take her own course.</p>
-
-<p>What that course should be Mrs. Morland did not
-even attempt to decide. The creditors who had insisted
-on the sale of Elveley wished to show the innocent
-debtor some consideration, and informed her that
-she might continue to occupy the house for three weeks.
-The Rector, who was not to be driven away by any
-rebuffs, listened patiently to the outpourings of bitter
-invective against her fraudulent trustee, which seemed
-the only relief Mrs. Morland could discover. The
-kindly, gentle old man was too infirm to fight an
-injured woman’s battles; but Edward Carlyon persuaded<span class="pagenum" id="Page_174">[Pg 174]</span>
-Mrs. Morland to put her affairs in the hands of
-a competent solicitor, who might make the best terms
-possible with her creditors.</p>
-
-<p>The three weeks of grace had almost slipped by,
-and still no provision had been made for the future of
-the little family. Frances and Austin seldom left
-their mother, though in her presence they were acutely
-miserable. They were young and vigorous, and, after
-they had recovered from the shock of misfortune, they
-were eager to be up and doing. Both girl and boy
-implored their mother to speak&mdash;to tell them what her
-plans might be, so that they might help forward any
-arrangements she had made. But Mrs. Morland declared
-herself incapable of action, and was not moved
-even by the pale and anxious faces of the harassed
-pair who were ready to take the field in her behalf.</p>
-
-<p>It was an awakening period for the two young Morlands.
-Hitherto they had felt a childlike security in
-the capacity of a mother’s protecting love and care.
-The world’s struggles and trials had seemed far removed
-from the sheltered comfort of their home. Now,
-the arm that had encircled and shielded them had
-been suddenly removed, and the onset of trouble found
-them defenseless.</p>
-
-<p>“If only we knew what was going to become of us,”
-sighed Frances in Miss Carlyon’s ear. “It is so
-dreadful to feel day after day passing and not to have
-the least idea what Mamma will do. Sometimes
-Austin and I think she really does not understand
-that we must leave Elveley immediately; but if we
-try to talk about it she will not listen.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_175">[Pg 175]</span></p>
-
-<p>“Dear child, your mother has received a very heavy
-blow. Who can wonder if it has prostrated her?”</p>
-
-<p>Miss Carlyon’s tone was extremely pitiful, though she
-could hardly think without impatience of the crushed,
-broken woman who, even for the sake of her children,
-would not rouse herself out of her state of despondency.
-The girl and boy whose future had promised to be so
-bright were surely the chief sufferers; but Mrs. Morland’s
-pride saw as yet only her personal defeat&mdash;her
-loss of position, her coming poverty.</p>
-
-<p>“I know how very hard it is for Mamma,” said
-Frances; “Austin and I would scarcely mind at all if
-only Mamma need not lose all her things. I do want
-to help her, but she says I am just a girl, and of no use.
-And Austin is not grown-up yet. Oh, Miss Carlyon,
-is there no work I can do? I think I could take care
-of children, and I would do anything.”</p>
-
-<p>“Dear Frances, you are so young to leave home.”</p>
-
-<p>“Should I have to leave home? I don’t think I
-could bear to go quite away among strangers. What
-would Austin do?”</p>
-
-<p>“What, indeed? And how could your mother part
-from her only daughter? Your place is at home,
-darling.”</p>
-
-<p>“I don’t know,” said Frances in a shaky voice. “I
-don’t seem much good to Mamma; and perhaps, after
-all, Austin would not mind now. He does not want
-me as he used to.”</p>
-
-<p>“How is that?” asked Miss Carlyon gently, while
-she stroked the girl’s bent head.</p>
-
-<p>“It is because I am different,” said Frances dejectedly.<span class="pagenum" id="Page_176">[Pg 176]</span>
-“I have been mean and horrid, and Austin
-knows.”</p>
-
-<p>Muriel Carlyon remained silent, half-expecting that
-her young favourite would open her heart, and give
-her confidence to her friend. But Frances’s tongue
-was tied by her promise to her mother; though, in
-this time of trial, when sight seemed clearer and duty
-plainer, she did long to cast away the burden of deceit
-and tell the truth before all the world.</p>
-
-<p>“Do you think anyone would take me as a nursery
-governess, Miss Carlyon?” asked the girl presently.</p>
-
-<p>“No, dear, I do not. People do not engage little
-maids of fourteen for posts of responsibility.”</p>
-
-<p>“I am nearly fifteen. Of course I know that is not
-old, but I could put up my hair.”</p>
-
-<p>Muriel replied with a loving kiss.</p>
-
-<p>“I might try a grey wig,” suggested Frances, throwing
-her arms round her friend; “and spectacles, you
-know,&mdash;like a girl in a story-book.”</p>
-
-<p>“Even then, I am afraid, you would be nothing but
-a dear young lass, by no means formidable enough to
-pose as a governess.”</p>
-
-<p>“You are formidable,” said Frances, hugging Miss
-Carlyon close. “And your hair is not grey, but pretty
-brown curls; and you look, oh! ever so young and
-jolly! It cheers me up just to see you.”</p>
-
-<p>“Have that cheer as often as you will, darling; and
-believe it doesn’t make troubles lighter to meet them
-with a gloomy face.”</p>
-
-<p>“Ah! that’s what Florry says.”</p>
-
-<p>“Florry is a first-rate philosopher&mdash;an unconscious<span class="pagenum" id="Page_177">[Pg 177]</span>
-preacher, too, of the gospel of plain living and high
-thinking.”</p>
-
-<p>“I’ll tell you how she argues&mdash;you know she loves
-to argue. This is exactly what she said:&mdash;‘If you
-don’t have such a big house, you needn’t mind, for
-you can’t be in more than one room at a time. And
-if you don’t have grand dinners, you needn’t mind, for
-boys and girls come in only for dessert, and grown-ups
-just have indigestion. And if you’ve only one best
-frock and one worst one, you needn’t mind, for it will
-save the bother of thinking what you’ll put on.’ It
-sounds quite sensible, really. I don’t think I do mind
-being poor, for myself. Just for Mamma and Austin.”</p>
-
-<p>“Perhaps Mamma and Austin may learn to be equally
-philosophical. At all events, dear, you can go on trying
-to show them the bright side of things.”</p>
-
-<p>“If there were a bright side!” said Frances. “I must
-try to see it myself first.”</p>
-
-<p>“Suppose I could help you there?” said Muriel,
-smiling rather oddly.</p>
-
-<p>“Could you?”</p>
-
-<p>“Well&mdash;think. Since the sad day of your trial,
-dear, which of your friends have been most eager to
-seek you out&mdash;which have been careful to hold aloof?”</p>
-
-<p>Muriel watched the changing expression of the girl’s
-intelligent face.</p>
-
-<p>“Ah!” said Frances at last, in a low, happy voice,
-“I know what you mean. Thank you, Miss Carlyon.
-Of course you knew, you could not help seeing, how
-the girls I used to like the best have seemed, ever
-since Christmas, to be far jollier without me.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_178">[Pg 178]</span></p>
-
-<p>“Only because you made them believe that you
-were jollier without them.”</p>
-
-<p>“Did I?” said Frances, with real surprise. “I
-thought it was because I was dull and stupid. So I
-tried to make friends with the others, but it never
-seemed the same. And now all my old chums have
-come back to me, and the new ones have stayed away.
-Oh, yes, Miss Carlyon, there <i>is</i> a bright side. Only, I
-didn’t know where to look for it.”</p>
-
-<hr class="tb" />
-
-<p>It was the evening of the third day before the one
-on which Elveley, and the major portion of its contents,
-were to be put up to auction. Mrs. Morland sat
-alone in her private sitting-room; a small and
-beautifully-furnished apartment where, during the last
-weeks, she had hidden herself from all eyes which she
-considered malicious or inquisitive. She knew she was
-not a popular woman; but she had preferred to mere
-popularity the more exclusive gratification which could
-be obtained by a determined and successful insistence
-on superiority. So long as she could be a leader, Mrs.
-Morland cared not whether her train followed her
-willingly or not. Thus, among her acquaintances, she
-had not tried to make a single friend.</p>
-
-<p>The disaster which would have been heavy to most
-women was appalling to her. So far, she had refused
-to face facts, and had met her children’s timid protests
-either with indifference or anger. But that very afternoon,
-the boy and girl&mdash;coming hand in hand, for
-mutual encouragement&mdash;had made a fresh attempt to
-persuade her to listen to them; and though she had<span class="pagenum" id="Page_179">[Pg 179]</span>
-fairly driven them away by her harsh and bitter
-replies, she had not been able to forget the wretchedness
-in their young faces. It was true, of course, what
-they had said: in three days they would have no roof
-to cover their heads.</p>
-
-<p>Austin, on leaving his mother, rushed to the stable,
-had his pony saddled, and galloped off to Rowdon.
-He had promised that his brother should know that
-day how matters stood; and it seemed to Austin that
-matters were at desperation-point.</p>
-
-<p>Mrs. Morland remained alone. Round her were the
-evidences of her lost prosperity, and her eyes roved
-from one to another of her possessions, while her brain
-worked busily, and her long, slender fingers played
-with the pretty toys on a delicately-carved and inlaid
-table by her side. The children’s appeal had at last
-roused her, and consternation was taking the place of
-lethargy. Frances had implored her to speak: but
-after all, what could she say? What refuge was open
-to her, that pride could let her accept? More than
-one of her neighbours&mdash;the Rector first of them&mdash;had
-courteously offered her and her children a temporary
-home; but the idea of lingering on in Woodend, an
-object of careless pity to those whom she had compelled
-to a certain admiration, was hateful, even insupportable,
-to the suffering woman.</p>
-
-<p>Her thoughts were still dwelling on what seemed
-to her an indignity impossible of endurance, when a
-servant brought a visitor to her door, and left him, at
-his own request, to enter unannounced.</p>
-
-<p>“Who’s that?” demanded Mrs. Morland sharply, as<span class="pagenum" id="Page_180">[Pg 180]</span>
-the figure of young Jim Morland began to take shape
-in the distant shadows of the room.</p>
-
-<p>Jim stepped forward, and with a word of greeting
-quietly proclaimed himself. He had been warned by
-Austin of the mood in which he was likely to find his
-stepmother; and the latent chivalry of his nature was
-now prepared to resist all inclinations towards impatience
-or resentment. In Jim’s simple creed a woman’s
-misfortune rendered her sacred.</p>
-
-<p>“Please forgive me for venturing, Madam,” began
-the lad respectfully; “I’m feared you’ll not be over-pleased
-as I should come just now. I’m here because
-Austin told me of your trouble, and I wanted to see
-what I could do.”</p>
-
-<p>“What you could do!” exclaimed Mrs. Morland,
-remembering bitterly enough that her stepson was of
-age now; that, had she treated him justly, and made
-over to him the share of his father’s property which
-was morally his right when he reached his majority,
-he would have been able, and probably willing, to
-help her to good purpose. “What can you do, pray?
-Take my son, and teach him the trade of a blacksmith?”</p>
-
-<p>“He has pluck enough,” replied Jim gently. “And
-he would think it no shame to do aught which would
-help you or his sister. But of course that’s for me
-to do. I am the eldest: and&mdash;though I feel sore-like
-to vex you, Madam,&mdash;I’ve come now to claim my
-rights.”</p>
-
-<p>“Your rights?” queried Mrs. Morland, thinking of
-her husband’s lost thousands.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_181">[Pg 181]</span></p>
-
-<p>“Yes. I’ve waited&mdash;knowing as you and Missy
-thought shame of me&mdash;to see if you had better plans.
-But now I’ve come, because my brother and sister are
-in need of someone to care for them.” Jim moved
-nearer, and laid his strong brown hand on the dainty
-inlaid table: Mrs. Morland almost shivered to see it
-there. “I claim the right to care for them. Madam,
-this time you can’t say me nay&mdash;it <i>is</i> my right.”</p>
-
-<p>“My good boy,” said Mrs. Morland petulantly, “don’t
-try to be bombastic if you want me to hear you out.
-Please say what you have come to say, as quickly as
-you can.”</p>
-
-<p>“I’d best be quick,” said Jim, unmoved; “for I doubt
-not you are tired and worried: and if I could”&mdash;the
-lad’s eyes rested softly on his stepmother’s hard-drawn
-features&mdash;“I’d like to bring you some ease. You
-know as I’ve a little house, Madam. ’Tis a small
-place, but tidy-like; and there’s a big orchard behind.
-And since my brother and sister must soon
-leave their home, I’d have them come to mine and be
-king and queen of it. I’d be proud to see them
-there.”</p>
-
-<p>“No doubt,” said Mrs. Morland grimly; “but the
-joys of cottage life are not quite in their line.”</p>
-
-<p>“Madam,” said Jim earnestly, “you must listen to
-me now. The others are too young to do aught, and
-it’s not for them to feel the world’s roughness. You
-do not like as folks should know their brother’s just a
-blacksmith and the home he has to offer them just a
-poor cottage. I do not say as that’s not reason in a
-way, and no fault of yours. But if, when this place is<span class="pagenum" id="Page_182">[Pg 182]</span>
-sold, you will not let me take them to Rowdon, where
-are they to go?”</p>
-
-<p>Mrs. Morland sat still awhile, without replying,
-while her fingers tapped nervously the polished surface
-of the little table. Her demeanour had changed somewhat
-during Jim’s brief speech, for she had been
-obliged to recognize that his words were the expression
-of his heart’s true feeling, and that she had now
-no hard or revengeful nature to deal with. However
-unworthy might be her estimate of the causes which
-prompted Jim’s present attitude, she began to see in
-the lad possibilities that would render more tolerable
-the necessity for owning him.</p>
-
-<p>“Where are they to go?” asked Jim again, with
-increased gentleness.</p>
-
-<p>“They will go with me,” said Mrs. Morland bitterly,
-“to the workhouse, I suppose!”</p>
-
-<p>“They will go with you, of course,” said Jim, leaning
-forward, and speaking in a tone of the most persuasive
-softness his peasant tongue could command. “What
-would they do without you? But I’ve a home for you
-all at Rowdon&mdash;and&mdash;indeed, I’ll make it as trim as I
-can.”</p>
-
-<p>He glanced at the beautiful and costly things about
-him, and sighed inwardly. His common-sense taught
-him that a woman who had been bred amid such
-surroundings could hardly be contented at Rowdon
-Smithy. When Jim Morland pressed his invitation
-on his stepmother, he guessed that he was passing
-sentence on all his future peace of mind. With his
-brother and sister alone, he might have hoped, some<span class="pagenum" id="Page_183">[Pg 183]</span>
-day, to be happy: they were very young, and youth
-readily accepts its circumstances. Austin, at least,
-would quickly have been at home. But Frances!&mdash;Jim
-wondered if he could bear the daily sight of his
-sister’s shrinking repugnance; and how might he ever
-hope to overcome it while Frances remained under the
-influence of this suspicious, ungracious nature?</p>
-
-<p>“I’ll do my best,” continued the lad gravely; “and
-mayhap Rowdon will serve for a home till I can earn
-more and provide a better. Come, then, Madam, if it
-please you; and the children will make it home-like.”</p>
-
-<p>The impulse to believe the best of Jim, to give him
-the credit of a magnanimous proposal, was stronger
-with Mrs. Morland at that moment than she could
-have imagined. Some words of acknowledgment were
-rising to her lips when her eyes lighted on her stepson’s
-rough hand, so near her own delicate fingers, and
-in a rapid glance she noted his rustic dress, while her
-pride rose passionately at the thought of recognizing
-him as a kinsman. Her better instincts were choked
-at once by a sensation of overwhelming dislike and
-scorn. Mrs. Morland knew that she was ungenerous;
-but she easily persuaded herself that, without loss of
-self-respect, she could deal to Jim a certain measure
-of fairness in compensation for lack of generosity.
-He would be satisfied, no doubt, if, in return for the
-refuge he offered, she gave him the name but not the
-place of a son.</p>
-
-<p>“If I go to Rowdon,” she said deliberately, “you
-will, of course, expect me to acknowledge your identity
-as my husband’s child?”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_184">[Pg 184]</span></p>
-
-<p>Jim flushed deeply: his stepmother’s words contained
-a hint of motive on his part which he had a
-right to resent.</p>
-
-<p>“I make no bargains, Madam!” said the young
-workman sternly. “Come to Rowdon, and call me
-what you please.”</p>
-
-<p>“You have claimed your ‘rights’ as a brother,” said
-Mrs. Morland, smiling slightly; “and besides, my
-friends are, as you know, not so dull as to believe I
-should go by choice to live at Rowdon Smithy, or that
-you offered me a home there out of pure benevolence.
-Perhaps, James,” she continued more seriously, “we
-shall understand each other better if we do strike a
-bargain. We can put the matter on a business footing
-between ourselves, and leave the rest of the world
-to supply the sentiment. Well, then, I accept your
-offer of a temporary home: in return, I agree to place
-in the Rector’s hands a written acknowledgment of
-your right to bear your father’s name.”</p>
-
-<p>“Madam,” said Jim coldly, his patience strained to
-the uttermost, “you know right well as I’ve the means
-of proving who I am, if so be as I wanted to do it,
-without a word from you. ’Twas to save you and
-Missy what you held to be shame that I’ve kept so
-long a name as was never really my own. There’ll be
-no bargaining on my side. Call me East or Morland
-as it pleases you; I’ll count your wish as it might be
-my father’s, and be your son or not as you choose. I’ll
-not presume on your choice either way,” added Jim,
-borrowing for once a little of his companion’s bitterness;
-“I’m not likely to forget as you’d never give me<span class="pagenum" id="Page_185">[Pg 185]</span>
-a mother’s love.... I’d not expect it, neither,” he
-went on, recovering his softer speech, “no more than I
-look for Missy to remember as it’s not my fault I’m
-just a rough fellow. The little lad ... the little
-lad”&mdash;Jim’s brave voice trembled&mdash;“he’s different: he
-sees through things somehow.... Madam,” finished
-Jim, looking straight at his stepmother, “I think the
-world of the little lad!”</p>
-
-<p>“Boys are so ready to make friends,” said Mrs.
-Morland, moved in spite of her prejudices, and striving
-to shake off an uncomfortable sense of defeat. “Well,
-James, I am not so insensible of your good intentions
-as you fancy. I never was quick to give affection, so
-you need not take it amiss if I am not demonstrative.
-I dare say we shall manage to put up with one
-another. Whether as part of a bargain or not, I shall
-certainly desire that you be known for the future by
-your proper name. And perhaps,” added the speaker,
-as the better side of her nature asserted itself, “you
-may not despise a different undertaking on my part.
-It is unlikely that you and I shall draw together&mdash;there
-is no tie of blood to help us, and I frankly confess
-to thinking the time too late. But I give you my
-promise to do nothing to hinder you from winning
-the children’s liking, if it has value in your eyes.”</p>
-
-<p>Jim silently bent his head.</p>
-
-<p>“They are very miserable,” continued Mrs. Morland,
-“and you are about to give them some sort of comfort.
-Your chance with them ought to be a good one.”</p>
-
-<p>“I’d rather,” said Jim steadily, “as they did not
-think of things that way. They’re just children, and<span class="pagenum" id="Page_186">[Pg 186]</span>
-shouldn’t know what trouble means, when there’s
-grown folk to save them. Then, will you please tell
-them as we’ve arranged?”</p>
-
-<p>“Why not do that yourself?” Mrs. Morland rose,
-and her spirits answering to a relief of mind she could
-not all at once realize, she moved with her old grace
-and dignity towards the door. “Come with me,
-James. You shall be introduced as the future head of
-the house to your brother and sister. I shall leave
-you to give the necessary orders about our movements.
-<i>La reine est morte</i>&mdash;that is, she’s going to
-retire into private life!”</p>
-
-<p>Mrs. Morland led the way to the children’s sitting-room;
-but only Austin was there. He had lingered,
-nervously anxious about the result of Jim’s visit to
-Elveley; but Frances had already gone for comfort
-and counsel to her friend Miss Carlyon. To Austin
-his mother formally announced her decision as to the
-future.</p>
-
-<p>“Your brother means to be good to you,” she said,
-with an attempt at cheerfulness; “you must try to
-thank him better than I have done.”</p>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_XI">CHAPTER XI.<br />
-<small>THE HEAD OF THE HOUSE.</small></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p>It fell to the lot of Austin to tell his sister of Jim’s
-plan for their settlement at Rowdon Smithy.
-Jim had resolutely declined to wait at Elveley long<span class="pagenum" id="Page_187">[Pg 187]</span>
-enough to be the bearer of his own news. He was
-beset with misgivings as to the results of the course
-to which he had persuaded his stepmother to agree;
-and yet he knew that by no other means could he
-possibly provide, even in the humblest way, for his
-kinsfolk.</p>
-
-<p>He had been reared by a masterful, self-contained
-man, who had exacted unmurmuring obedience, and
-had seldom encouraged individual thought and action.
-Thus Jim Morland, at twenty-one, was hardly more
-than a boy in essential matters; and the responsibility
-of “head of the house”, suddenly thrust on him, was
-enough to press heavily on his immature character.
-He learned, as time passed, to draw on the fundamental
-independence of his nature; but at first he found himself
-capable only of doing what lay to his hand&mdash;of
-planning as best he might for the present comfort of
-his little family, while he trusted that his path might
-some day grow less dim.</p>
-
-<p>His interview with Mrs. Morland had been really a
-trial to the sensitive, country-bred lad; and he could
-not find courage to witness his sister’s reception of the
-tidings he supposed would come to her as a fresh
-calamity. Jim suffered here for his pardonable moral
-cowardice; for even Austin, who knew how Frances
-had drooped under the burden of suspense and uncertainty,
-was surprised at the relief she showed when
-he had explained what lay before her. Frances rose
-to the occasion like the plucky lass she always had
-tried to be. That very evening she began to work
-at the necessary packing; and her mother, hearing the<span class="pagenum" id="Page_188">[Pg 188]</span>
-girl’s cheerful voice when she came for instructions,
-felt an unreasonable impatience because what she
-would herself so greatly miss seemed to have small
-value in her children’s eyes.</p>
-
-<p>Frances was not in the least insensible to the worth
-of what she was leaving behind, but out of the depths
-of her late despondency it was good to rise to a level
-whence she might look bravely and gratefully on the
-possibilities of the future. In the first place, she knew
-that the question of acknowledging her brother was
-at last settled beyond dispute, and that the injustice
-done to him was to be removed, however tardily. She
-had done nothing to bring this about, and she was
-quick to see that atonement on her own part must be
-of another sort&mdash;if, indeed, there were any compensation
-Jim would care to accept. She could at least
-take heed that she did not now mistake her brother’s
-motives, or under-estimate the sacrifice he was ready
-to make. He had shown himself capable of chivalrous
-forgiveness, and the higher part of her nature was
-eager to respond.</p>
-
-<p>Frances’s admiration and her longing to make
-amends were freely confessed to Muriel Carlyon, who
-sympathized with both, and had good counsel to give.</p>
-
-<p>“Don’t overwhelm the boy with formal apologies
-and embarrassing praises, dear child. You would only
-make him uncomfortable. Try to let him see that you
-like and trust him, and want to help him all you can.
-It’s no light duty he has undertaken. You, more than
-anybody, can make it a pleasant one.”</p>
-
-<p>When Frances came to attempt the putting in practice<span class="pagenum" id="Page_189">[Pg 189]</span>
-of her friend’s advice, she found an obstacle in the
-barrier of shyness and constraint which the unlucky
-past had raised between her and her elder brother.
-Jim was obviously uneasy in her presence&mdash;dreading,
-poor fellow, a criticism which he had every reason to
-think would be to his disadvantage. He came to
-Elveley, during the three days of waiting, as little as
-he could; though, as Mrs. Morland seemed determined
-to fulfil literally her expressed intention of “retiring
-into private life”, he was obliged to act for her at
-every point, to give all necessary orders about the
-removal, and to interview, as her appointed representative,
-all persons who had business with her. Jim
-did his utmost; but at Elveley he grew each moment
-more weary and dispirited, as he recognized more and
-more clearly the difference between the surroundings
-to which his stepmother and her children had been
-accustomed and those into which he had offered to
-take them. He kept his forebodings secret, but they
-worried him none the less.</p>
-
-<p>The long-continued trouble had at last brought
-Frances one comfort which made amends for everything.
-It had given Austin&mdash;the old Austin&mdash;back
-to her, and had shown the lad at his best. His
-manly instincts had come into evidence, and he had
-hovered patiently about his mother and sister, assuring
-them that he would soon be grown-up, and able to
-work for them. Then they would all be happy again.
-Meanwhile&mdash;as growing-up is a slow process&mdash;he was
-content to leave to Jim the ordering of affairs. He
-knew that he meant from the beginning to do his<span class="pagenum" id="Page_190">[Pg 190]</span>
-share, but he wisely refrained from informing his
-mother that his accomplishment of horse-shoeing was
-at length to “come in handy”.</p>
-
-<p>Frances, too, had laid her plans, and meant to be a
-busy little housewife. She had confided to Muriel
-Carlyon all the doubts and difficulties which had made
-her hold aloof from her favourite comrades, even to
-the extent of deserting her cherished Society; and now,
-feeling that at last she possessed no worrying secrets
-and was fairly on the road to recover her self-respect,
-Frances rejoiced in the possession of a true friend to
-whom she might turn for the encouragement she could
-not find at home. On the day before the departure
-from Elveley, she paid a “farewell” visit (only Muriel
-scouted the word “farewell”) to Woodbank, and entertained
-herself and her companion with a discussion of
-her coming diversions.</p>
-
-<p>“I am going to be ever so useful,” she announced
-blithely. “It wasn’t for nothing, after all, that we
-girls started our Club. We’ve learned to cook and to
-iron, and I’ve not forgotten your lessons in cutting-out.
-I can make my own frocks and things, and the boys’
-shirts.&mdash;I call Austin and Jim ‘the boys’,” she went on
-with a little flush, “so that I may get used to thinking
-of them together.”</p>
-
-<p>“You know where to come for help, darling.”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes, thank you. Oh, I’m so glad we’re going to
-Rowdon, not to some quite strange place, far away
-from you and the girls! Miss Carlyon, we had a little
-bit of good news this morning. Mamma’s lawyer wrote
-to tell her that the people who have made her sell<span class="pagenum" id="Page_191">[Pg 191]</span>
-Elveley are going to let her keep some of her favourite
-books and pictures and furniture&mdash;anything she likes
-up to a certain value&mdash;and some of her glass and
-silver. And Austin and I may have all our very own
-things: so that Austin is going to take his cameras,
-and Jim has promised him a dark-room. That will be
-so nice for him, won’t it? He has a fine stock of plates
-and chemicals, and we must make them last as long as
-we can. They’ll keep a good while. Most of Mamma’s
-things were chosen and packed at once, and have gone
-away to-day. Austin went with them, to help Jim.”</p>
-
-<p>“You would have known, far better than your
-brothers, how to arrange the rooms as your mother
-would like best.”</p>
-
-<p>“I shall have some time to-morrow,” said Frances,
-colouring. “Mamma will not leave Elveley till the
-last thing, but I can go to Rowdon early in the day.”</p>
-
-<p>“And you will go by yourself?”</p>
-
-<p>“No&mdash;Florry is coming with me.” Frances admitted
-rather awkwardly this evidence of the shy
-feeling which made her avoid the sole company of
-Jim. “We are going to unpack and put away all the
-clothing, and finish Mamma’s sitting-room ready for
-her. Jim has been kind about the sitting-room. He
-has made Mamma understand that it is to be quite her
-own; he has moved out of it the old things which
-used to be there, and has put them into the room
-opposite, where he keeps all sorts of tools and some
-of the materials for his work. I remember very well
-when we went to Rowdon Cottage&mdash;that’s what they
-call the little house beside the smithy&mdash;Jim’s grandfather<span class="pagenum" id="Page_192">[Pg 192]</span>
-inviting us to look into ‘Jim’s den’. It was
-neat and nice, only it had no proper furniture except
-tables and chairs. There were loads of shelves in it.
-I do love shelves!”</p>
-
-<p>Muriel Carlyon laughed with pleasure to see the
-girl’s cheeks grow pink as she pictured to herself a
-real workshop, with entrancing rows of tools, a carpenter’s
-bench, apparatus for various kindred handicrafts,
-and a floor littered with fresh-smelling shavings
-and sawdust.</p>
-
-<p>“It was a jolly ‘den’!” continued Frances; “and if&mdash;if
-I do get friends with Jim, I know I shall beg
-admittance sometimes to his treasure-chamber. I
-shouldn’t wonder if Austin had a corner of it all to
-himself. Jim is very fond of Austin. I’m certain he
-is, though I’ve hardly seen them together. You could
-tell by the way they look at one another.”</p>
-
-<p>“Well, dear, you must have a corner of your
-mother’s sitting-room.”</p>
-
-<p>Frances shook her head. “Mamma would be miserable
-if there were any litter about her, she likes everything
-spick and span. And, you know, Austin and I
-do want her to be as happy as she can. It is so very,
-very dreadful for her&mdash;” Frances paused awkwardly
-“I mean, it is dreadful to give up the nice things
-she has been used to for such a long time.”</p>
-
-<p>“It is, darling; indeed it is.”</p>
-
-<p>“So I thought if only she could have her own
-rooms filled with her own things she might not miss
-what she has to leave&mdash;at least, not so much. And
-when Jim told her she must count the sitting-room<span class="pagenum" id="Page_193">[Pg 193]</span>
-quite for herself, it did seem possible to make that
-pretty. Then the room above it is to be hers too. It
-is a pity, but I must take a corner of that. I am
-afraid Mamma will dislike sharing her bedroom,
-especially as her furniture will fill it up so; but we
-can’t help it. There are only four rooms upstairs, and
-the two back ones are tiny places, not big enough for
-anyone to sleep in. One will be for our boxes, and
-the other is full of lumber already. The second bedroom
-is for the boys. Austin and I are to have our
-own little beds, so they won’t take up much room.”</p>
-
-<p>Muriel listened to all these confidences and to many
-more before she allowed Frances to leave her. She
-knew that the girl was in real need of a woman’s
-sympathy and encouragement, and she hoped by
-judicious counsel to make the entry on a new and
-strange life a little easier for her favourite. Miss
-Carlyon was quite as fond of planning and contriving
-as were any of her young folk; she meant to do her
-full share in helping forward Frances’s ambitions, and
-to see that none of her girls had more of her personal
-help and affection than the lass who was so ready and
-eager to conquer fate.</p>
-
-<hr class="tb" />
-
-<p>The lights in Rowdon Cottage burned throughout
-that last night of Jim Morland’s solitary life. The
-hours of dusk and darkness and dawning were few
-and short to the busy lad, who worked steadily and
-with intention during every moment they gave him.
-Jim’s eyes were already fairly-well opened to the
-nature of the burden he had taken on his young<span class="pagenum" id="Page_194">[Pg 194]</span>
-shoulders. He had accepted in a spirit Mrs. Morland
-had not dreamed of, her injunction that he should
-consider himself the head of the little family.</p>
-
-<p>He knew that he must be, first of all, the bread-winner.
-Jim’s calculations as to ways and means
-were already completed, and he had reckoned up the
-average of his earnings, added the result to the sum
-which came to him from the provision made by his
-grandfather, and decided that he might count on a
-weekly income of thirty-five shillings.</p>
-
-<p>Jim was not ignorant enough to suppose that this
-amount could allow for any save the simplest methods
-of housekeeping, even when supplemented by garden
-produce and home-reared poultry. The old woman
-who did his cooking and housework expected only a
-small wage, but this, and her food, made a serious item
-of expenditure; and poor Jim wondered anxiously
-whether her blundering ways would be tolerated by
-his fastidious stepmother. Jim was not prone to hard
-judgments, but he was not a fool; and he had seen
-that Mrs. Morland could be both unjust and unreasonable.
-He knew, only too surely, how Frances had
-shrunk from contact with himself; and argued that
-she would be predisposed to despise his cottage
-home.</p>
-
-<p>The lad grew hot and cold by turns as he anticipated
-his inability to satisfy their expectations; and
-at last came to the wise decision that he would, at
-the outset, make confession of his modest means, and
-avoid the worse pain of raising hopes he could not
-fulfil.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_195">[Pg 195]</span></p>
-
-<p>“For I must not run into debt,” pondered Jim. “I
-promised grandfather I never would do that.”</p>
-
-<p>Even without the remembered promise to admonish
-him, Jim was not cast in the mould of those people
-who can look their just creditors unblushingly in the
-face.</p>
-
-<p>When morning brought his elderly housekeeper, the
-lad nerved himself for an ordeal. This was no less a
-matter than an important parley with old Elizabeth
-Macbean. Elizabeth was a Scotswoman, and an excellent
-domestic according to her lights; but her gaunt,
-angular person and strong-featured countenance were
-not prepossessing, and Jim was nervously anxious lest
-she should give offence by her independent speech
-and manners. To old East and his grandson her
-civility had never fallen short; she had looked on
-them as her superiors simply because they employed
-her, and she had even shown a kind of motherly
-interest in her younger master. But Jim recollected
-that Elizabeth had heard with compressed lips and
-scowling brow the facts he had found it necessary to
-tell her about the changed affairs of Rowdon Cottage;
-so he was not without qualms as he prepared to add to
-his news at this latest possible moment. His gentle
-nature made him shrink from inflicting pain, and he
-feared he was about to hurt well-meaning old Elizabeth.
-Fortunately, Jim had no mixed notions on the
-score of duty; and it seemed to him now that his duty
-was plain.</p>
-
-<p>He left Elizabeth to go about her morning work as
-usual, and was careful to do justice to the simple<span class="pagenum" id="Page_196">[Pg 196]</span>
-breakfast prepared for him. Home-baked scones and
-new-laid eggs were excellent fare in Jim’s opinion;
-and he rose from the table refreshed and strengthened
-in spite of his long night of toil.</p>
-
-<p>“I don’t think as anything could be better than
-your scones, Elizabeth,” said Jim, from a discreet post
-at the kitchen door. “You’ll let me have some every
-day when the children come, won’t you? I’m sure
-they’ll like your scones, Elizabeth.”</p>
-
-<p>“I’ll see what I can dae. Whiles they have nae
-butter-milk up at the fairm.”</p>
-
-<p>The tone of Mrs. Macbean’s voice was not promising,
-and her attitude, as, shovel in hand, she “made up”
-her fire, was positively militant. Jim drew on his
-reserve fund of determination and stood his ground.</p>
-
-<p>“Well, can you spare a moment, Elizabeth? I have
-something to tell you.”</p>
-
-<p>“I hae thocht that,” replied Mrs. Macbean, with
-disconcerting promptitude.</p>
-
-<p>“And I hope you won’t take it unkind,” added Jim.</p>
-
-<p>“I’ll mak nae promises,” snapped Elizabeth.</p>
-
-<div class="figcenter illowp50" id="i-197" style="max-width: 28em;">
- <img class="w100" src="images/i-197.png" alt="" />
- <div class="caption"><p>M432</p>
-<p class="center">“NAY, ELIZABETH,” SAID JIM KINDLY, “THERE’S NO NEED FOR
-LOCKING UP.”</p></div>
-</div>
-
-<p>“Anyway, I must say it,” continued the lad gravely.
-“You know, Elizabeth, as there’s ladies coming here
-to-day. I’ve told you all about it, and how, though
-they’re my very own folk (Jim held his head proudly),
-they’ve been brought up different. I’m wanting, most
-of all, as they shall feel this cottage home-like, and so
-I’d not have them miss, more than I can help, all
-they’ve had to give up. You’ve always managed for
-grandfather and me, Elizabeth; and you’ve served us
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_197">[Pg 197]</span>faithful, as I’ll never forget. But when my stepmother
-and my half-sister come (Jim was faithfully
-exact), they’ll be mistresses here. I want you to go to
-one of them every day for orders, and do your best to
-please them.”</p>
-
-<p>Jim held his breath.</p>
-
-<p>“Jist as ye please, sir,” was the sole response of
-Elizabeth; and thrusting one hand deeply into a
-serviceable pocket, she dragged out, with ostentatious
-indifference, a small bunch of keys, and flung them
-clatteringly on to the kitchen-table.</p>
-
-<p>“Nay, Elizabeth,” said Jim kindly, “there’s no need
-for locking up, and I’m sure the ladies won’t wish it.
-Keep the keys, and give me your promise as you’ll
-help me all you can. I’m a bit worried and sore-hearted,
-Elizabeth.”</p>
-
-<p>“There’s nae doot aboot that,” returned the old
-dame, though evidently mollified. “I hae watched
-ye ever since ye telt me o’ the happenings at the
-grand hoose yonder, where your fine leddy mither
-and sister wear their silks an’ satins; and I hae seen
-the speirit gang oot o’ ye. But I’ll dae your wull,
-maister.”</p>
-
-<p>“That’ll be all right, then, Elizabeth,” said Jim,
-sighing in relief of spirit. “You’ve made the cottage
-beautiful clean and fresh-like, and I’m sure you’ll
-keep things nice.”</p>
-
-<p>Then Mrs. Macbean uplifted her long person after a
-final dash at the coals, and emphasized her speech
-with her loaded shovel.</p>
-
-<p>“I hae served gentlefolk afore,” she remarked
-grimly; “and I’m no needin’ tellin’ as to hoo I’ll<span class="pagenum" id="Page_198">[Pg 198]</span>
-serve them the noo. There’s ae thing mair. I hae
-kent, lang afore ye hae telt me onything, Maister Jim,
-that ye were come o’ gentle folk yersel. Ye hae a’
-the look o’ it; and I’m thinkin’ it’s a peety.”</p>
-
-<p>With these uncompromising words, Mrs. Macbean
-flung the contents of her shovel on the fire, snatched
-up a broom, and vanished through the back door.
-Jim sighed again, and went off to give the rooms
-a final inspection. His last visit was to the “den”
-of which Frances had told Miss Carlyon. Thence he
-emerged with a strange glimmer of a smile on his lips.</p>
-
-<p>As he stepped to the threshold of the front door,
-which stood wide open to the warm August airs, he
-saw a sight which made him halt irresolutely, while
-his pulses throbbed in sheer nervous excitement.</p>
-
-<p>A couple of girls had just reached the gate, and
-were pacing slowly up the path between the glowing
-flower-beds: as they came, they pointed out eagerly
-to one another old favourites they could recognize
-among the cared-for luxuriance of the borders.</p>
-
-<p>“See!” said the sweet, clear voice of Frances, “isn’t
-that a splendid clump of southernwood? And those
-deep purple pansies&mdash;I love them!”</p>
-
-<p>Jim caught his breath sharply. If Frances could
-“love” anything about Rowdon!</p>
-
-<p>“What darling snapdragons&mdash;white and yellow and
-red!”</p>
-
-<p>“And those briar roses&mdash;aren’t they late?”</p>
-
-<p>The girls bent low to enjoy the varied fragrance.
-Jim felt something in his throat, and for a moment
-saw the pretty girlish figures through a mist. A<span class="pagenum" id="Page_199">[Pg 199]</span>
-sudden access of joy filled his heart. Could it be that
-his home was to know the familiar presence of such
-as these? Could anything he had to offer be worthy
-of their soft eyes and dainty hands? He gazed, in a
-happiness he could not have explained, at the gracious
-picture before him. Only a pair of charming English
-lassies; but for simple Jim they were an inspiration
-to love all that was highest, purest, worthiest.</p>
-
-<p>Florry Fane lifted her head, and caught sight of
-Frances’s “blacksmith-brother”. Florry did not keep
-her intellect for book-studies, and she called on it now
-to help the situation.</p>
-
-<p>“Hallo!” she exclaimed merrily, “there’s Jim! I
-shall run and ask him to tell me the name of that
-pretty blue flower!”</p>
-
-<p>She hurried on, and before Frances could overtake
-her had gained the porch, and held out her hand to
-Jim, who stood waiting there.</p>
-
-<p>“Good-morning, Mr. Morland!” said Florry, in gay
-greeting; “we’ve come to make ourselves tremendously
-useful. We’ve great big aprons in this bag,
-and Austin has lent us a hammer and a packet of
-nails. We mean business, you see.”</p>
-
-<p>Jim took the kind little hand, and bade Florry
-welcome with most respectful courtesy. It was good
-of her to call him by his father’s name; but, being
-Frances’s friend, she was, of course, a queen among
-girls.</p>
-
-<p>Frances came up, and finding the ice thus broken,
-managed to greet Jim easily enough. The three
-talked for a few moments in the porch.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_200">[Pg 200]</span></p>
-
-<p>“Now we must go in and set to work,” declared
-Florry presently; and Jim stood aside that she might
-lead the way; then, as Frances made a shy motion to
-follow, he detained his sister by a slight gesture.</p>
-
-<p>“I hope as you’ll find things right, Missy,” said the
-youth in a low voice. “I’ve a lot of work to do in the
-smithy yonder, and I’ll be there all day most like.
-Elizabeth will bring me something to eat; and so&mdash;so&mdash;the
-place’ll be clear, if you and Miss Fane wish to
-stay. I bade Elizabeth ask what you’d fancy,”&mdash;Jim
-coloured, and added with some effort,&mdash;“and you won’t
-forget, Missy, as you’re mistress here.”</p>
-
-<p>Frances wanted to say something kind and appreciative;
-but while she watched her brother’s nervousness
-her own came back to her, and she searched
-vainly for words which might make an approach to
-frank confidence between them seem possible. Jim
-saw only her hesitation, and hastily concluding that
-his forebodings had been justified, stepped quietly out
-of the porch and took the side-path to the smithy.</p>
-
-<p>“I believe it will always be like this,” thought
-Frances, as she gazed remorsefully after her brother’s
-tall, well set-up figure. “I wonder why I’m such a
-silly? I wish he wouldn’t call me ‘Missy’. I wish I
-could tell him nicely&mdash;so that he wouldn’t be vexed&mdash;that
-he ought to say ‘Frances’, as Austin does. Austin
-would know how to do it, but that’s because he behaved
-kindly and fairly and has nothing to be
-ashamed of. And Jim has been so good to us, so
-generous and forgiving; I ought to be proud of him&mdash;and
-I think I am, deep down in my heart. It’s the top<span class="pagenum" id="Page_201">[Pg 201]</span>
-part of me that’s so ungracious and horrid. How
-stupid to be shy, when he’s my own brother! Shall
-I ever be sensible about it?”</p>
-
-<p>Just as Frances reached this plaintive speculation
-her friend’s patience gave way, and Florry, who had
-ventured on a peep into the sitting-room, came back
-to fetch the loiterer.</p>
-
-<p>“It looks quite nice already,” said Florry cheerfully.
-“There really isn’t much for us to do, except the
-‘etceteras’.” She dragged Frances forcibly into Mrs.
-Morland’s future sanctum. “See! even the curtains
-have been put up; and don’t they hang nicely? One
-of your brothers has ideas, Frances! I wonder which
-of them ‘disposed’ that drapery?”</p>
-
-<p>“Not Austin; he wouldn’t be bothered!” laughed
-Frances. “The room does look pretty. Those soft
-gray walls are such a nice background for the pictures.
-It was kind of the creditor-people to let Mamma keep
-some of her pictures and china, wasn’t it?”</p>
-
-<p>“I suppose so,” said Florry soberly. “But as your
-mother wasn’t really a bit to blame&mdash;”</p>
-
-<p>“Don’t! Miss Carlyon says the more I ‘nurse a
-grievance’ the worse things will seem. I’m certain
-she’s right; for I begin to feel my ‘angry passions
-rise’ the moment I give them a chance.”</p>
-
-<p>“Come, then&mdash;to business! Here are two suggestive-looking
-boxes already unfastened for us. What lurks
-within, fellow-conspirator?”</p>
-
-<p>“Nothing very mysterious. Only a few special
-treasures of Mamma’s, and some of her books, and
-other odds and ends. There’s the empty book-case in<span class="pagenum" id="Page_202">[Pg 202]</span>
-that corner. Good Austin! He has remembered to put
-up the brackets and small shelves for the china.”</p>
-
-<p>“Isn’t that a pretty little overmantel? I don’t
-recollect seeing it at Elveley. What dainty carving!”</p>
-
-<p>“It never was at Elveley,” said Frances, in a puzzled
-voice; “and it is pretty. Those two long shelves will
-be lovely for photographs and the little figures papa
-brought from India. Oh! the overmantel is a blessing.
-Let’s make haste to fill it.”</p>
-
-<p>“No&mdash;I’ll do the books, and leave you the treasures.
-Ah, what a jolly Browning! Isn’t this binding perfect?
-Hallo! it’s Rivière’s! Frances, you’re a lucky
-girl. It ought to make you amiable to live with this.”</p>
-
-<p>“Goose! I like a binding I can handle. I wouldn’t
-give my own Browning for that; though I own that
-Rivière, like our unknown genius of the curtains, has
-‘ideas’.”</p>
-
-<p>“Here’s an edition of Jane Austen in crimson
-morocco. Frances, I wouldn’t have Jane Austen in
-crimson. She ought to be bound in French gray, or
-‘puce’, or anything old-fashioned and sweet. Never
-mind; here she goes, dear old thing! When we’ve
-finished with this room, Francy, do let’s unpack your
-treasures. I helped you to pack them, so I shall
-know just where everything is.”</p>
-
-<p>Frances shook her head. “I told Austin to send my
-boxes to the little place upstairs. There’s no room for
-their contents anywhere.”</p>
-
-<p>Florry looked unmistakably crestfallen.</p>
-
-<p>“You see, this is the only sitting-room besides Jim’s
-den,” continued Frances hastily; “and Mamma and I<span class="pagenum" id="Page_203">[Pg 203]</span>
-have to share a bedroom. I’ve been wondering where
-I shall pop my mammoth work-basket.”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, Frances! Your beautiful Altruist basket!”
-Florry saw her friend wince, and, running across the
-room, threw her arms about the other lassie and
-hugged her close. “Come back to us, Francy dear!
-oh, do! You were the first Altruist, and the best&mdash;”</p>
-
-<p>“Ah, no, no!” cried Frances, with a tremble in her
-voice; “I was just a great humbug&mdash;a mean pretender!”</p>
-
-<p>“You never were. You started it all; and, Frances,
-it has been of some use to Woodend. The Rector says
-so, and Mr. Carlyon, and Dr. Brenton, and&mdash;Max. If
-Max says so&mdash;who would dispute Max? Francy, all
-the girls and boys want you to come back.”</p>
-
-<p>“I can’t till I’m gooder,” said Frances, wavering between
-sobs and smiles. “I’m a shabby, horrid thing!
-Florry, don’t let’s talk of those jolly old times&mdash;before
-last Christmas. See! I’m going to work hard. I won’t
-say another word till I’ve finished.”</p>
-
-<p>Florry could both see and hear that the resolve was
-a wise one; so she went sedately back to her books,
-and was in the thick of “business” when the sitting-room
-door was pushed open and Mrs. Macbean entered.</p>
-
-<p>The girls at once greeted the old woman,&mdash;whom
-they had seen more than once when they had paid
-holiday visits to the smithy,&mdash;with a pleasant word
-and smile.</p>
-
-<p>“I hae made a bit dinner for ye, Missies,” said
-Elizabeth, striving after the manners she considered
-due to gentlefolk, “and I hae pit doon the table-claith,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_204">[Pg 204]</span>
-as the maister’s bidding was, in the room on
-the ither side o’ the passage. Maybe ye’ll ring the
-bell yonder when ye’re minded for me to serve ye.”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, Elizabeth, you are good!” said Frances gratefully.
-“We meant to go home for dinner; but it is a
-long way, isn’t it, Florry?”</p>
-
-<p>“Rather! And we’ve such lots to do. Elizabeth&mdash;best
-of Elizabeths!&mdash;do say we are to have some of
-those delicious scones you brought to us once when we
-came here to plague you!”</p>
-
-<p>“Surely ye’ll no be minding on my bits o’ scones,
-Missy?” inquired Mrs. Macbean graciously. “The
-likes o’ you lassies I never did see! Weel, I’ve nae
-doot I can obleege ye; and ye’ll likely no refuse a
-whang o’ the cream cheese that the fairm-wife sent
-till the maister this morning. Come awa’ wi’ ye,
-Missies, ben the ither room, and I’ll bring the dishes
-in. It’s one o’clock&mdash;late eneuch for bairns.”</p>
-
-<p>Elizabeth bustled away, secretly well pleased that it
-was once more her lot to wait on gentlefolk. Perhaps
-there was in the peasant woman’s nature a strain of
-sympathy which, if it made her jealous for her
-“maister’s” rights and dignity, was no less capable of
-appreciating the trouble which had fallen on Jim’s
-“fine leddy mither and sister”.</p>
-
-<p>The girls ran upstairs to wash their dusty hands,
-and chased each other down again amid peals of
-laughter, which brought indulgent smiles to Mrs. Macbean’s
-face and sent her with good-will to her serving.</p>
-
-<p>“Fancy dining in Jim’s den!” laughed Frances,
-pausing at the door. “We shall need to use the sitting-room<span class="pagenum" id="Page_205">[Pg 205]</span>
-for meals, I suppose, when we’ve a proper table
-there. I’m glad we’re going in here to-day. It’s a
-lovely place, Florry,&mdash;all shelves and saw-dust, and
-dear little saws and hammers and things. Don’t you
-like a carpenter’s shop? I do. I always envied the
-boy Altruists&mdash;”</p>
-
-<p>Frances, having by this time led the way into “Jim’s
-den”, stood just beyond the threshold, too absolutely
-surprised at what she now saw to remember after
-what fashion she had envied the boys. The room had
-undergone a transformation. The walls had been
-freshly covered with a pretty paper; the wide, latticed
-windows had been hung with dainty Madras muslin,
-with sage-green draperies at either side to be drawn
-across at night. The carpet was of the same soft tint,
-and so were the furnishings of two or three wicker
-chairs placed at cosy points. The deep window-seat
-held a couple of big cushions of yellow silk, and was
-thickly padded, and covered to match the chairs. On
-a table close to the window stood the Altruist work-basket.
-Most of the shelves which Frances had
-admired still ran along the walls, and on them were
-neatly ranged, not the paraphernalia of handicrafts,
-but the many special possessions of Frances and Austin.
-Their own treasured volumes filled two plain book-cases,
-whence had been banished the hoarded sum of
-Jim’s library.</p>
-
-<p>Before her eyes had taken in half the details,
-Frances turned to Florry and exclaimed impetuously:
-“Oh, what made him do this? How could he? Jim
-has given up his den to us!”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_206">[Pg 206]</span></p>
-
-<p>“He is a brick!” said Florry heartily. “Now you
-know where your things are going, Frances. I believe
-they are all here. There’s your mother’s Christmas
-present”&mdash;Florry pointed to the desk on a side-table
-spread with the children’s writing materials. “There’s
-your easel, and your paint-boxes are on the shelf close
-at hand. What’s behind that inviting-looking curtain
-hung between those two shelves?”</p>
-
-<p>“Austin’s photographic things,” replied Frances,
-peeping; “here are his cameras, plates, papers, chemicals,
-and everything. He is to use the bath-room for
-developing; he has been covering the window with
-red stuff. Fancy a bath-room in a cottage like this!
-Jim’s grandfather built it out at the back.”</p>
-
-<p>“Austin will be very much obliged to him.”</p>
-
-<p>“Florry,” said Frances, a troubled look in her eyes,
-“I don’t think Austin and I ought to take this room
-from Jim. He cannot possibly have anywhere else to
-go. I think I will just find my way to the smithy
-this very moment, and talk to him about it.”</p>
-
-<p>“Good!” returned Florry equably; “I will e’en to that
-cosy window-seat and watch for your return.”</p>
-
-<p>Frances departed in a hurry for fear of failing
-courage; and Florry, who had something to say, but
-was in no haste to say it, carried a book to the window
-and felt herself at home.</p>
-
-<p>Jim stood by his anvil, making, with level, well-aimed
-blows, rough nails for farmers’ use. He had flung off
-his coat and waistcoat, rolled up his sleeves, and donned
-a leathern apron. It was Jim the blacksmith on whose
-hardy toil Frances cast shy and interested eyes. He<span class="pagenum" id="Page_207">[Pg 207]</span>
-did not look so unapproachable as she had expected;
-but it was evident that her coming had startled him.
-The lad laid down his hammer, however, and stepped
-forward at once.</p>
-
-<p>“You want me, Missy?” he said quickly, with an
-undefined hope that his sister might be about to
-command his willing service.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh no!” said Frances; “I didn’t mean to interrupt
-you&mdash;at least, only for a minute. I came to say that&mdash;that
-Florry and I have been looking at your
-room&mdash;”</p>
-
-<p>Jim was hungering for a word of satisfaction. If,
-indeed, he had pleased Frances, surely he might dare
-to hope that he had not begun amiss.</p>
-
-<p>“You used to have so many things there,” continued
-Frances, her self-possession deserting her as she noted
-the expression of her brother’s grave young face. “I
-don’t think Austin and I ought to be so much in
-your way.”</p>
-
-<p>“You could never be that, Missy,” said Jim, whose
-spirits sank unaccountably at the painful courtesy of
-Frances’s manner. “It’ll be right for you to have a
-little place where you’ll feel private-like, and know
-as nobody will interfere.”</p>
-
-<p>“You are kind, Jim,” said Frances; and the girl
-hung her head in shame that no warmer words would
-come at her bidding.</p>
-
-<p>“Surely not,” said Jim dejectedly. “There’s no talk
-of kindness so long as I can do aught&mdash;” Jim hesitated,
-fearing to offend by some obtrusively brother-like
-speech, and his pleading glance fell at the sight of<span class="pagenum" id="Page_208">[Pg 208]</span>
-Frances’s averted head. “There, Missy,” he continued
-gently; “don’t you go for to trouble yourself about
-my bits of things. I’ve a deal more room for them
-in the big shed behind here; and they’ll be handier
-to get at. You’ve no call to think twice of them.”</p>
-
-<p>Then Frances stepped close, and laid her hand on
-Jim’s arm.</p>
-
-<p>“You are kind&mdash;and good,” she said earnestly. “I
-don’t know why you should take us in here, and
-bother about us at all.”</p>
-
-<p>“Don’t, Missy!” murmured Jim, keenly wounded.
-“Who should care for you and the little lad, if not
-me?”</p>
-
-<p>“Nobody would, Jim; nobody. And I don’t see
-why you should. But indeed I do want to help, and
-to share the work all I can. I shall soon find out&mdash;and
-I’ll beg Elizabeth to teach me.”</p>
-
-<p>“No!&mdash;no!” Jim was touched at his tenderest
-point. “You’ll do naught here but what pleases you,
-Missy. ’Tis for men to work and make beautiful
-homes for their lady-folk.”</p>
-
-<p>“Girls work now as well as boys, Jim,” returned
-Frances rather wistfully. She had been wont to
-dream of the life-work which should be hers some
-day&mdash;of voluntary, altruistic toil among the poor and
-suffering of the great city; not of humdrum daily
-tasks which could claim no more fascinating name
-than the prosaic one of duty.</p>
-
-<p>“I cannot see as that’s right, Missy,” said Jim; and
-Frances looked with a certain pity at this lad born
-out of due time&mdash;this old-fashioned believer in the<span class="pagenum" id="Page_209">[Pg 209]</span>
-right of woman to be worked for, and set apart and
-worshipped. If he could have heard Miss Cliveden’s
-impassioned voice as she urged her pupils to remember
-their sacred claim to share with men the glorious task
-of making history!</p>
-
-<p>Jim was utterly out of date. He bent his head and
-kissed reverently the little fingers resting on his arm;
-then caught up his hammer and began afresh to work
-for his “lady-folk” with all his peasant might.</p>
-
-<p>Frances went slowly back to her comrade.</p>
-
-<p>“Jim will make us keep the room,” said the girl
-with conviction; “and I do not believe I even thanked
-him properly.”</p>
-
-<p>“I wouldn’t worry him with gratitude,” remarked
-Florry the philosopher. “I would just clear a corner
-for him and ask him to occupy it. I fancy he would
-like that better than thankings.”</p>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_XII">CHAPTER XII.<br />
-<small>A GENTLEMAN-BLACKSMITH.</small></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p>The energy of the Altruists languished a good deal
-during the long summer vacation. Edward and
-Muriel Carlyon went on a six-weeks’ visit to a relative
-in the north, and enjoyed themselves mightily after a
-year of hard work. Edward’s black coat did not
-hinder him from tasting the happiness peculiar to the
-sportsman-naturalist; and Muriel’s governessing had
-not taken the charm from her tramps through heather<span class="pagenum" id="Page_210">[Pg 210]</span>
-and bracken. A good many of the younger Altruists
-were off to the seaside: those that remained in Woodend
-voted it ridiculous to attend meetings over which
-there was nobody in particular to preside.</p>
-
-<p>Florry Fane received a long-hoped-for invitation
-to visit an aunt who had settled in Normandy, whence
-she was in the habit of making frequent excursions to
-continental cities. The chance of seeing Paris, Rome,
-and Florence was suddenly flashed before Florry’s
-dazed eyes, and her parents prepared to miss for a
-couple of months, at least, the light of their quiet
-home. Frances Morland did not learn till long afterwards
-that Florry had turned resolutely from the
-offered treat because she would not leave her friend in
-the hour of trouble.</p>
-
-<p>“Paris must wait,” said Florry, “till Frances is
-happy again.”</p>
-
-<p>The self-denying little Altruist proved that no
-meetings were necessary to hold her to the accepted
-motto of her Society. Hardly a day passed without
-the appearance at Rowdon of her bright face and
-helpful hands. Jim’s heart grew lighter directly he
-heard “Miss Fane’s” voice. It was good to hear for
-its own sake, and then it meant the best of comradeship
-for Frances.</p>
-
-<p>The Society sent another delegate to do its work at
-the smithy. Max and Florry frequently travelled the
-three miles together, arguing as they went with a
-vivacity learned at the school “symposia”. They
-never convinced one another, but it was all the better
-to be able to look forward to a fresh bout of disagreeing<span class="pagenum" id="Page_211">[Pg 211]</span>
-next time. Sometimes they walked, sometimes
-they rode with a friendly farmer or begged a lift in
-the Doctor’s trap. Journey as they might, they always
-turned up smiling, contented, and in hot dispute.</p>
-
-<p>It was Max’s fair season at Woodend; the season
-when his many public concerns made least demand on
-him, and he was most free to remember private interests.
-His invalids were at their best; his poor folk
-were recovering from the effects of the burning heat
-in their stuffy rooms, and were still independent of
-warm clothing. Moreover, a wealthy valetudinarian
-had bought Elveley, and was demanding a daily visit
-from Dr. Brenton. Max ventured to anticipate the
-consequent fees, and on his own responsibility borrowed
-from the “Examinations” fund the wherewithal
-to present the dog-cart with a new rug and its owner
-with a new overcoat. Dr. Brenton retaliated by ordering
-for Max a trim Eton suit&mdash;challenging the chancellor
-of the exchequer to refuse to pay for it, and in
-so doing to ruin his father’s credit. Then the unconventional
-pair attired themselves festively, and beamed
-at each other in the joy of their reciprocal liberality.</p>
-
-<p>Max and Austin were always merry at the smithy,
-and they did their best to make Jim merry likewise.
-With fervent good-will they wielded the hammer, and
-smote the anvil, and practised horse-shoeing until their
-teacher pronounced them adepts. Sometimes they
-dragged Jim off to the common, where they had cut
-and rolled a decent pitch for their cricket. Jim could
-play, of course, but his science was behind theirs. It
-seemed to the boys a fair return for lessons in horse-shoeing<span class="pagenum" id="Page_212">[Pg 212]</span>
-when their hints, added to natural quickness
-of eye and hand, had made of Jim a most respectable
-bowler.</p>
-
-<p>The Morland family had by this time fairly settled
-at Rowdon, and accepted, after their varying fashion,
-the fresh order of their lives. The first excitement of
-change and bustle was over, and with it had gone the
-impression of relief from pressing disaster, as well as
-the sense of unrest and adventure which had served
-to dispel fruitless broodings and cast a glamour of
-romance over the new cottage-home. Frances and
-Austin were too busy and too active to sink back into
-despondency; but their mother suffered acutely&mdash;all
-the more acutely because she shut herself and her
-gloom out of the reach of the kindliest sympathizers.</p>
-
-<p>Loneliness and misery rendered her harsh and intolerant
-to the youngsters who longed to comfort her.
-She was irritated by seeing her own children seemingly
-happy and contented, and by witnessing the small
-<i>gaucheries</i> of her stepson’s harmless rusticity. Jim,
-better able than the younger ones to understand her
-condition, bore her sharp reproofs and covert sneers
-with determined self-control. They hurt him none
-the less; and he suspected that he was despised for
-the very efforts after a dutiful bearing which cost
-him so much: but he never had cherished any hope
-of pleasing or satisfying his stepmother, and was
-grateful that she kept her promise of not intervening
-between him and his brother and sister.</p>
-
-<p>It was true that she had not much opportunity of
-doing so, for the three young people were seldom together.<span class="pagenum" id="Page_213">[Pg 213]</span>
-Frances found plenty of ways in which she
-could help Elizabeth; who was willing to be relieved
-of lighter duties, though she would not for worlds
-have allowed her young mistress to do anything she
-could make time to do herself. Then there were
-studies to be kept up, books to be read on the recommendation
-of Miss Carlyon or Florry, old friends
-to be visited in spare hours, and the family mending
-to be attended to.</p>
-
-<p>Jim was an excellent craftsman, as his neighbours
-had soon discovered; but working alone, and with only
-the simplest appliances, he could not attempt the
-higher branches of a smith’s trade. He had constant
-employment, but no greater returns than any other
-skilled artisan could depend on; and after the first
-month of his new life had gone by he began to be
-tormented by anxiety as to ways and means. Part of
-his weekly income came from his small invested
-capital, and on the latter he soon found he must draw
-to meet household expenses. This meant, by and by,
-a reduction on the interest paid to him in consideration
-of his grandfather’s savings, and a consequent
-lessening of his resources.</p>
-
-<p>When Mrs. Morland had first come to Rowdon, he
-had told her frankly the amount of his income, and
-had suggested that she should have control over it and
-make the housekeeping her own charge. Most women
-would have been touched by the offer, which was
-surely honourable to the lad who made it.</p>
-
-<p>“My good boy,” replied Mrs. Morland, “you really
-must excuse me from undertaking the management of<span class="pagenum" id="Page_214">[Pg 214]</span>
-your house and the responsibility of your wealth. I
-have never learned how to spend pennies, and I have
-no idea when porridge and herrings are in season. I
-might order by mistake a halfpenny-worth too much
-milk, and then where would you be? No, believe
-me, you will manage far better yourself. Or stay, it
-might amuse Frances to play with sixpences, and she
-is terribly conscientious. No doubt she would calculate
-the required milk to a drop. I have always felt
-sure she had a genius for figures, since she told me she
-“kept the accounts” of that funny little Society she
-started and got tired of. Children always get tired
-of everything; but Frances might find housekeeping
-quite a pleasant entertainment for a time. Go and
-ask her, James. And do try to avoid grimacing. It
-makes me quite uncomfortable to see that frowning
-brow and those tightly-drawn lips. So like some
-melodramatic, middle-class novel. Run away, boy.
-Ta-ta.”</p>
-
-<p>Jim’s courage, after this rebuff, was not equal to the
-task of approaching Frances, and his sister would
-have heard nothing of the interview if Mrs. Morland
-had not diverted herself by giving Frances a special
-version of it. The girl listened in silence, and with
-half-acknowledged regret on Jim’s behalf. Frances
-felt instinctively that Jim had made an honest advance,
-and that he had been unworthily answered.</p>
-
-<p>She was sorry that time did not prove correct her
-mother’s prophecy that her brother would come to her
-next; and she debated anxiously with herself whether
-he would be vexed if she were to offer to try her own<span class="pagenum" id="Page_215">[Pg 215]</span>
-prentice hand at the ordering of the cottage affairs.
-Jim had certainly invited her to remember that she
-was “mistress” at Rowdon; there could be no undaughterly
-presumption in filling the place her mother
-had refused.</p>
-
-<p>Frances decided that Jim had better be the one to
-open the question; but Jim held his tongue, and bore
-his own burdens. He had been accustomed to leave
-the provisioning of his little household to Elizabeth,
-and to pay the weekly bills without investigation.
-Now he found that he must not only investigate, but
-urge on Mrs. Macbean the strictest economy. Even
-then, as has been said, his income must be supplemented
-somehow.</p>
-
-<p>Further, the lad worried himself about the arrested
-education of his young brother and sister. At first it
-was undivided happiness to have Austin so constantly
-at his side, and to catch glimpses of Frances tending
-the flowers or feeding the chickens. But when he
-found his brother obstinately determined to help in
-the smithy, and discovered that his sister actually
-made beds and dusted rooms, he began to accuse himself
-of grossly neglected duties.</p>
-
-<p>Edward and Muriel Carlyon had sought out Mrs.
-Morland on their return home, and had begged her in
-most tactful fashion to let them keep their two pupils
-without payment of school-fees. Mrs. Morland’s pride
-had not been sufficient to render her quite blind to
-the value of the opportunity; but she had tried to
-save her self-esteem by leaving the matter for the
-children’s own settlement. Austin and Frances were<span class="pagenum" id="Page_216">[Pg 216]</span>
-not blind either, and they saw more clearly now than
-before what a good education might mean to them.
-They had talked the subject over together, they had
-invited the counsel of Florry and Max. It was significant
-that they did not seek their mother’s advice.
-Finally, they went to Woodbank in company, and
-put their concerns bravely and fully before their two
-kindly friends and teachers.</p>
-
-<p>Frances and Austin did not go back to school, but
-they went twice a week to Woodbank for private
-lessons in modern languages, classics, and mathematics,
-and studied at home between whiles. Every evening
-they spent at least a couple of hours over their books,
-and found chances for music and drawing as best they
-could in the daytime.</p>
-
-<p>It was this custom which led, one evening in
-November, to an unexpected development in the
-quiet life of Rowdon Cottage. The boy and girl
-(Austin being the chief spokesman) had persuaded
-Jim that they would not accept sole rights in his old
-“den”. He must spend there his few hours of leisure,
-and a book-case brought from Elveley should be consecrated
-to his library. Jim at first availed himself
-but sparingly of his opportunities. Usually he
-worked all the early part of the evening in the smithy
-or the shed, and later on disappeared into the little
-lumber attic where he had disposed the tools and
-materials for his wood-carving. But sometimes he
-would slip quietly into the children’s room&mdash;the study,
-as they chose to call it,&mdash;and after a respectful, interested
-glance at the pair of young students seated<span class="pagenum" id="Page_217">[Pg 217]</span>
-opposite one another, with the shaded lamp between
-them, at the round table, would take a book from his
-shelf and try to remember that he was one of the
-family.</p>
-
-<p>On the evening in question, Frances had noticed
-that Jim had betaken himself to his own corner
-with a volume which she had seen with some surprise
-to be Green’s <i>Short History of the English
-People</i>. The lad read steadily for an hour or so, and
-Frances, each time she looked up, saw that his attention
-was firmly fixed on the page. But presently Jim
-leaned back in his chair, his book rested on his knee,
-and his eyes were turned towards the round table with
-an expression which his sister found uncomfortably
-suggestive of some latent longing. She hesitated for
-a moment, and then said diffidently:</p>
-
-<p>“Don’t you like your book, Jim?”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes, but I’ve finished it, thank you, Missy.”</p>
-
-<p>Jim had not learned to say “Frances”; but “Missy”,
-as he pronounced it, had the accents of a pet-name,
-and his sister had ceased to find fault with it.</p>
-
-<p>“Fancy! You must read fast. Can you remember
-all those names and things? I do think it’s difficult.”</p>
-
-<p>“I’ve read this book three times,” said Jim gently.
-He had read, ever since he could remember, all the
-historical works he could get hold of. “I ought to
-remember it now, Missy.”</p>
-
-<p>“Do you want to?” asked Frances curiously.</p>
-
-<p>“Ay&mdash;surely. Else, what good to be an Englishman?”</p>
-
-<p>“Jim,” began Frances after anxious cogitation, “would<span class="pagenum" id="Page_218">[Pg 218]</span>
-you like&mdash;would you care&mdash;to study with Austin and
-me?” The girl flushed a little as she went on hurriedly:
-“There are heaps of things I dare say you know far
-more about than we do; but there are some ... and
-Papa would have liked....”</p>
-
-<p>Poor Frances stopped in awkward fear of hurting
-the lowly-reared brother.</p>
-
-<p>She need not have paused. The words were hardly
-spoken when Jim’s face lighted up with eager pleasure.</p>
-
-<p>“Missy&mdash;I’d love it! Oh, would you&mdash;could you&mdash;?”</p>
-
-<p>“Of course we could,” interrupted Austin with a
-merry laugh. “Jim, old man, you are an eccentric.
-Fancy meeting a fellow who needn’t stew at lessons,
-and actually wants to! Come to the table this very
-minute!” Austin flew to drag up a third chair
-and force Jim into it. “Now then, what’s it to be
-first&mdash;classics or mathematics?”</p>
-
-<p>“Austin, don’t worry, dear,” said Frances, seeing
-that Jim’s breath came fast from the excitement of
-what was to him a momentous opportunity. “Tell
-Jim the lessons we have at Woodbank, then he can
-choose what he would like best.”</p>
-
-<p>Then Jim seized his chance and spoke.</p>
-
-<p>“I’d like best to learn to speak right, Missy,” said
-the youth earnestly; “so as you’d have no need, some
-day, to feel shame of me.”</p>
-
-<p>It was a hard thing to say, but Jim got through it.</p>
-
-<p>Frances was on the point of disclaiming vehemently.
-She was checked by the certainty that her brother
-would not believe her. Had she not long ago proved
-him right?</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_219">[Pg 219]</span></p>
-
-<p>“Humph!” said Austin, again filling the breach;
-“that’s in your line, Sis. ‘Grammar and Analysis’,
-and all that twaddle. I hate the stuff.”</p>
-
-<p>“Very well,” agreed Frances quickly, “Jim and I
-will study subjects and objects; and you’ll see, sir, <i>my</i>
-pupil won’t hate them.”</p>
-
-<p>“And you’ll see, miss, that <i>my</i> pupil will cross the
-<i>Pons Asinorum</i> with a leap and a bound.”</p>
-
-<p>“<i>My</i> pupil will read Latin without a crib.”</p>
-
-<p>“<i>My</i> pupil will parley-voo frangsay like a gay
-moonseer.”</p>
-
-<p>“You ridiculous boy!”</p>
-
-<p>“You cockaleekie girl!”</p>
-
-<p>Austin flung his arm round his brother’s shoulders
-and hugged them with a will.</p>
-
-<p>“Don’t mind us, Jim,” he said. “We must lark
-a bit, and so must you. We’ll be awful strict teachers,
-and give you a hundred lines every time you miss a
-question. But you may wink one eye between whiles.”</p>
-
-<p>Austin’s mirth drowned Jim’s attempted thanks.
-But the younger boy suddenly became sober, and
-thrusting his Euclid under Jim’s eyes, entered on a
-careful explanation of certain well-known axioms
-necessary to the comprehension of the First Proposition.
-Then Frances delivered a lucid lecture on the
-Nominative Case. Finally, Jim carried off a couple
-of lesson-books to his corner, and set to work to
-recall half-forgotten rudiments learned long ago at
-elementary schools, and to assure himself that he never
-would disgrace the pair of accomplished scholars he
-had left at the round table.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_220">[Pg 220]</span></p>
-
-<p>Elizabeth kept a divided opinion with regard to
-Mrs. Morland, but the discords feared by Jim were not
-heard at Rowdon Cottage. The chief reason for the
-comparative harmony which reigned between kitchen
-and sitting-room was the undisguised satisfaction of
-Mrs. Macbean in being again in contact with gentle-people,
-and in seeing her young master recognized as
-one of them. It is to be feared that her estimation of
-“gentlefolk” was strictly conventional, and that in her
-heart of hearts she thought all the more of her “fine
-leddy” mistress because Mrs. Morland never dreamed
-of soiling her fingers over household matters, but
-maintained a dignified privacy among the remnants
-of her former prosperity.</p>
-
-<p>Elizabeth found that a late dinner was expected
-as a matter of course. Here, there might have
-been a difficulty, since the old woman had been
-in the habit of going home to her “gudeman” as
-soon as she had served Jim’s tea and “tidied up”.
-But while ordering dinner for half-past eight, Mrs.
-Morland happened to mention that her stepson would
-dine with her; and Elizabeth immediately became
-complaisant.</p>
-
-<p>Jim’s soul grew faint within him when he was
-informed of the coming ordeal&mdash;a dinner <i>à deux</i> with
-his stepmother. A refusal was on the poor lad’s lips,
-but he held it back. He could do nothing, he supposed,
-to narrow the gulf between himself and his father’s
-second wife; but he had determined that no act or
-word of his should make the gulf wider. He assented
-quietly to Mrs. Morland’s peremptory demand for his<span class="pagenum" id="Page_221">[Pg 221]</span>
-company in the sitting-room at half-past eight, and
-promised meekly enough to don his Sunday suit before
-he ventured to present himself.</p>
-
-<p>He imagined that his stepmother’s request was
-prompted solely by a desire to “teach him manners”,
-and so render him a little more presentable to her
-friends; but in this he did Mrs. Morland less than
-justice. She was slow to act in matters for any reason
-displeasing to her; but having once taken a step in
-any direction, she did not care to turn back. She
-had been, in her own limited sense, in earnest
-when she had said that she would henceforth regard
-Jim as the head of the family. She meant him to
-endure to the full the penalties attaching at present
-to the unenviable position, and would not strain a
-nerve to lighten his load; but she intended also to see
-that a certain respect and consideration should be
-offered him by everyone except herself, and it was a
-part of her plan that he should be found in her company
-on fitting occasions.</p>
-
-<p>The family meals were served in the children’s
-study, but at none of these was the mother present.
-Her breakfast was carried up to her bedroom, and she
-lunched alone in her sitting-room. It was Austin’s
-duty to take her cup backward and forward across
-the passage at the children’s tea-hour. After dinner
-Frances and Austin were ordered to appear for
-dessert. Thus Mrs. Morland attempted to retain
-among her present surroundings some of the customs
-and restrictions of the life she had been used
-to; though the imitation might be a faint likeness of<span class="pagenum" id="Page_222">[Pg 222]</span>
-the model, and the result pathetic rather than impressive.</p>
-
-<p>The various courses of the meal were perhaps only
-Scotch broth, broiled chicken, and rice-pudding, and
-the dessert a dish of apples and another of nuts.
-But the glass, china, and silver were the joy of
-Elizabeth’s soul; and the simple food must be served
-most daintily. Jim was right in anticipating severe
-drilling and remorseless fault-finding; yet, taking all
-in wise humility, he had sense to acknowledge that
-the experience had its value. He soon learned to
-satisfy Mrs. Morland’s requirements as to his comportment
-at table, and his association with her and
-her children taught him quickly to note the errors in
-his speech and to correct them for himself.</p>
-
-<p>“The lad is no dullard,” admitted the victorious
-stepmother in her thoughts; “he will be a gentleman
-before he knows it. A gentleman-blacksmith! Delightful
-absurdity! Oh, shall we never escape from
-this dreadful place!”</p>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_XIII">CHAPTER XIII.<br />
-<small>“MISSY.”</small></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p>After Christmas the winter arrived in earnest&mdash;such
-a winter as England seldom sees. Day after
-day keen “black” frost and bitter east wind brought
-hard suffering to the poor. Jim banished Austin from
-the smithy, and more than once the boy and his sister<span class="pagenum" id="Page_223">[Pg 223]</span>
-were prevented from paying their visits to Woodbank,
-and were reduced to “hearing each other” say their
-well-prepared lessons. Florry was not seen at Rowdon
-for a week at a time. Max came, of course; but
-Max in greatcoat, comforter, and gaiters could defy
-the weather.</p>
-
-<p>Not so Austin; yet Austin, rash as ever, would
-not stay indoors. Thus Jim got into disgrace; he
-was condemned utterly as an aider and abettor of his
-brother’s defiance of prudence. Jim it was who sharpened
-and cleaned and polished Austin’s old skates,
-by way of helping the younger lad to forget that
-he was to have had a new pair that year. Jim it
-was who announced that Rowdon Pond was bearing.
-Jim it was who, having reasonable fears of the results
-when Austin mooned listlessly about the lanes, suggested
-the brisk exercise of skating as an excellent
-way of keeping boyish blood in circulation.</p>
-
-<p>Frances always declared that it was running out
-without cap or overcoat, and standing in draughts,
-and lingering for last words with Max at the gate,
-which did it. But Mrs. Morland blamed Jim and the
-pond; and Jim went for a fortnight with heavy
-pain at his heart and fresh anxiety on his mind. For
-he accepted Mrs. Morland’s view: and Austin was
-very ill. Austin had not had so bad a throat for a
-long time. He suffered much, poor boy; and Jim,
-looking at him, suffered more. Dr. Brenton came
-daily, and Doctor Max spent hours by the bedside.</p>
-
-<p>Jim was night-nurse, at his own humble, imploring
-request. In vain did Frances remind her mother that<span class="pagenum" id="Page_224">[Pg 224]</span>
-the “head of the house” went to his post after a long
-day’s work. Mrs. Morland’s face was stony as she
-declined to accept any excuses for the culprit. Jim
-was the person at fault, and it was obviously just that
-he should suffer for his sin. Jim thankfully bore this
-sort of punishment, and tended Austin through the
-night hours,&mdash;when pain and weakness made the
-boy restless and irritable,&mdash;with infinite tenderness
-and patience. Francis begged to be allowed to share
-the watch, but Mrs. Morland was inexorable. She
-required her daughter’s help in the sick-room during
-the day, and Frances must take her usual rest or she
-certainly would break down.</p>
-
-<p>Frances thought “breaking down” more likely to
-be Jim’s lot, as she watched her elder brother’s face,
-with its haggard eyes, heavy from ceaseless fatigue,
-and noted how worry and care were setting on his
-brow their ineffaceable lines. Indeed, the extra burden
-of Austin’s illness was leaving marks of its weight,
-and Jim’s slight figure bowed beneath it.</p>
-
-<p>But the trial was over presently. Austin was
-better, he became convalescent; he must be carried
-downstairs in Jim’s own arms, and be coddled and
-spoiled in the warmest corner of the study. Jim
-thought no self-denial too hard, no service too exacting;
-and Austin would hardly have been mortal boy
-had he never taken advantage of his willing slave.</p>
-
-<p>When fear and trouble on Austin’s personal behalf
-were ended, a dreadful sequel began. Bedroom fires
-night and day made inroads into the coal-supply, and
-invalid luxuries ran up expensive bills. Mrs. Morland’s<span class="pagenum" id="Page_225">[Pg 225]</span>
-demands had not been unreasonable with regard to
-her own table; but when Austin’s nourishment was
-in question she ordered lavishly, hardly requiring
-Jim’s entreaty that she would see that her boy lacked
-nothing. During convalescence the lad’s appetite was
-tempted with difficulty, and Jim’s only fear was lest
-the port-wine should not be strong or plentiful
-enough. Afterwards, however, the wine must be paid
-for.</p>
-
-<p>Jim took to sitting up late in his corner under the
-roof,&mdash;how late nobody guessed; for Austin, in his
-well-warmed bedroom, was always fast asleep when
-his brother stole in. But the hard winter told on
-trade, and Jim knew nothing of the best markets for
-his wood-carving. He was glad to sell his dainty
-work for a trifle to a little hook-nosed Jew who kept
-a small “curiosity-shop” in Exham.</p>
-
-<p>Jim reminded himself that he was now a man, and
-that a man worth his salt ought to be able to maintain
-his family&mdash;especially his “lady-folk”&mdash;in comfort.
-He could not bring himself to suggest further “stinting”
-to Elizabeth. The lad seemed possessed with a
-feverish activity. He went to the farmers round
-about, and found all sorts of odd pieces of work with
-which to fill up every minute not required by his
-special trade. Anything to earn a few shillings, and
-to delay that borrowing from capital and lessening of
-interest which must surely some day bring ruin on
-the little home where he sheltered his cherished
-kindred.</p>
-
-<p>Jim hid his troubles with desperate courage, but<span class="pagenum" id="Page_226">[Pg 226]</span>
-there was somebody who was not entirely deceived.
-Frances had not forgotten that first interview between
-Jim and his stepmother on the latter’s coming to
-Rowdon, and her clear sense had taught her to suspect
-that the finances of the cottage were giving her
-elder brother some reason for his harassed look. The
-girl longed to ease his burden, but she did not know
-how to invite his confidence. The constraint between
-them had not lessened sufficiently to allow Frances
-the opportunity of penetrating his carefully-concealed
-secret.</p>
-
-<p>At last chance played poor Jim a trick, and he
-stood revealed.</p>
-
-<p>“Austin,” said Frances one evening, looking up from
-her books, “do you know where Jim is? It’s so
-frightfully cold to-night&mdash;surely he can’t be in the
-smithy still?”</p>
-
-<p>“I hope not. I wish I could go to see.”</p>
-
-<p>“You mustn’t, indeed. The wind cuts like a lash,
-and the place where Jim works is right open to it.”</p>
-
-<p>“Well, it’s hard lines for a fellow to be mewed up
-here. Frances, it’s Saturday. Jim is always late on
-Saturdays.”</p>
-
-<p>“He’s late every night now, I think. He just gives
-himself time to dress for dinner; and after dinner he
-spends half an hour studying with us, then he
-vanishes upstairs. And he hardly eats anything; he’s
-getting quite thin.” There was a hint of tears in
-the girl’s voice, though she did not add aloud her
-conviction&mdash;“I believe he goes without, to leave more
-for us.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_227">[Pg 227]</span></p>
-
-<p>“We must look after him better,” said Austin
-uneasily. “He’s such a right-down good chap, he
-never thinks of himself.”</p>
-
-<p>“No, never. I’ll go and look after him now, Austin.
-I’ll make him come to the warm room.”</p>
-
-<p>Frances wrapped herself in a woollen shawl, borrowed
-Austin’s “Tam-o’-Shanter”, and went out softly
-at the front door. Down the side-path, over a thick
-carpet of snow, she crept stealthily into view of the
-smithy. The fires were out: clearly Jim had left his
-forge. She kept the pathway, and skirted the larger
-building to reach the closed-in shed behind it, where
-stood the carpenter’s bench. Here Jim often worked
-after regular hours, and here she found him to-night.</p>
-
-<p>The girl peeped in through the small window, and
-at once saw her brother, seated on a rough stool by a
-rough trestle-table. A few books and papers were
-spread before him, but he was not examining them,
-though Frances could see that they were account-books
-and bills. Jim’s arms rested on the table, his hands
-supported his upturned face, which, in the light of
-his little lamp, looked rigid in its blank misery.</p>
-
-<p>For a moment Frances was startled; then the sight
-of the papers, and the recollection of many things,
-brought home to her the truth of her recent suspicions.
-Now, if ever, was the time to speak. If Jim were
-vexed by her interference, he still might be persuaded
-to explain his position; and then surely it would be
-her right to try to help him.</p>
-
-<p>Frances opened the shed door softly, and closed it
-behind her when she had passed in. The place was<span class="pagenum" id="Page_228">[Pg 228]</span>
-bitterly cold. Jim’s face looked pinched and wan as
-he turned and gazed at her in dumb surprise. His
-hands, moving mechanically, swept the bills together
-with an instinctive effort to hide them; but Frances,
-walking straight to his side, pointed deliberately to
-the little heap of crushed papers.</p>
-
-<p>“Jim, I’ve caught you at last!”</p>
-
-<p>“Missy!” ejaculated Jim, and gazing still at the
-determined intruder he stumbled on to his feet.</p>
-
-<p>“Yes, I’ve caught you, so you needn’t attempt to
-get off telling the truth!” The girl feared that the
-laboured jocularity of her tone wasn’t much of a
-success, and continued with a natural quiver in her
-voice: “Oh, Jim, you mustn’t think I’m quite blind, or
-that I don’t care. I’ve seen for a long time back how
-worried you have been, and I’ve guessed that something
-must have gone wrong.”</p>
-
-<p>“I’m sorry, Missy,” said Jim, in a low voice. “I
-suppose I’m a coward, or I shouldn’t show so plainly
-when I’ve a little difficulty to meet. But I didn’t
-know that anyone&mdash;that you would notice.” The lad’s
-eyes grew very soft. “You must please forgive me,
-Missy.”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, Jim,” exclaimed Frances, perplexed by this
-disarming entreaty, “I wish you wouldn’t talk like
-that! Do&mdash;do tell me what’s wrong!”</p>
-
-<p>“It’s not anything for you to know, Missy. Indeed,
-it’s just my own affair&mdash;I’d not trouble you with it.
-Don’t mind me if I seem a bit downhearted now and
-again. I’m just a rough fellow, and forget my duty
-sometimes, like as not.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_229">[Pg 229]</span></p>
-
-<p>“No, Jim, you remember it far too well. You make
-all the horrid things your duty, and won’t understand
-that Austin and I want to go shares. And I will
-know. So now, Jim, tell me.”</p>
-
-<p>Frances persisted with argument and entreaty until
-she had drawn her brother’s secret from his lips.
-Having learned the facts, she set to work energetically
-to propose a remedy.</p>
-
-<p>“We must not spend so much, Jim,” she remarked,
-knitting her brows seriously. She now occupied the
-stool, Jim standing by her side with all the air of a
-conscious defaulter. “It will never do to keep on
-drawing from your capital. I understand about ‘capital
-and interest’ quite well&mdash;really I do. I know that
-if capital grows less, so will the interest. We don’t
-want our interest less, so we mustn’t touch our capital.”
-(Jim’s eyes brightened as he heard the plural possessive.)
-“Now,” Frances went on, “listen to me, and
-don’t interrupt, and don’t contradict. I sha’n’t allow
-you to contradict! We can do without Elizabeth,
-and we must.”</p>
-
-<p>“Why, Missy&mdash;”</p>
-
-<p>“Be quiet, Jim! I like Elizabeth ever so much; but
-she costs a good deal, and we won’t keep her. She will
-easily get another place; for I’ll tell Miss Carlyon about
-her, and what an old dear she is.” Jim smiled forlornly
-at the epithet applied to angular Mrs. Macbean.
-“You see, it’s wicked to employ people you can’t
-afford to pay; and I’m sure we can’t afford to pay
-Elizabeth.”</p>
-
-<p>Jim clenched his hands behind his back. They<span class="pagenum" id="Page_230">[Pg 230]</span>
-were strong, capable hands; why, oh why, could he
-not fill them with gold for Missy!</p>
-
-<p>“We can do quite well without her,” persisted
-Frances, her courage rising bravely to the emergency.
-Jim watched the kindling of the girl’s intelligent face,
-and wondered whether he had known before that
-gentle-voiced Missy possessed so plucky a spirit.
-“She&mdash;or someone else&mdash;might come, perhaps, once
-a week: to wash, you know, Jim, and to clean the
-kitchen. I shall do the rest.”</p>
-
-<p>“You!” gasped Jim.</p>
-
-<p>“Of course. I can cook and sweep and dust&mdash;yes,
-and I’ll learn to scrub. Why not?”</p>
-
-<p>“No, Missy. Oh, don’t put that shame on me!”
-muttered Jim, in an agony of mental distress. “’Tis
-no work for little ladies: and a man ought to bear the
-burdens by himself. I’ll get more to do&mdash;indeed I
-will! You sha’n’t need to worry, if only you’ll not say
-Elizabeth must go.”</p>
-
-<p>“But I do say it, Jim,” said Frances solemnly; “I
-wish I could send you to Haversfield, and let Miss
-Cliveden talk to you. She’d show you what a goose
-you were to think ladies&mdash;no, gentlewomen&mdash;are disgraced
-by work. Why, loads of splendid, clever
-women earn their own living; and I’ve always thought
-I’d love to earn mine. Look at Miss Carlyon&mdash;she
-isn’t ashamed to work for herself, and not be a burden
-to her brother.”</p>
-
-<p>“But her work’s so different, Missy,” pleaded Jim.</p>
-
-<p>“As if that mattered! Still, if you think it does,
-and won’t let me help here, I’ll try another plan. I’m<span class="pagenum" id="Page_231">[Pg 231]</span>
-fifteen now, and I dare say I might teach little children.
-Mrs. Stanley wants a nursery governess, Max says. I
-shall beg her to take me.”</p>
-
-<p>“Missy!” Jim’s tone was now one of the blankest,
-most thorough dismay. “Go away from home&mdash;leave
-Rowdon” murmured the lad incredulously. “Why,
-’twould take all the light from the place. You’d never&mdash;Missy!&mdash;you’d
-never do it?”</p>
-
-<p>“I’ll have to, if you won’t be reasonable,” said
-Frances severely. “Of course I’d rather stay here,
-and teach just you, and look after Austin, and take
-care of Mamma. But if you won’t let me&mdash;”</p>
-
-<p>“Missy,” said Jim nervously, “you know you’re
-mistress at Rowdon. I won’t say&mdash;anything. But
-oh, don’t go away!”</p>
-
-<p>Frances discreetly followed up her advantage, and
-made her brother promise to dismiss Elizabeth with
-the usual notice. It was to be done in the kindest,
-most appreciative way; and Mrs. Macbean was to be
-asked if she would care to have another situation
-found for her, or if she would take daily work, and
-keep Saturdays for the cottage.</p>
-
-<p>Then Jim was requested to put away the tiresome
-bills, and go indoors and get his lessons ready at once.</p>
-
-<p>It was his first experience of his sister as “mistress”.
-Never before had she assumed the voice of the dictator,
-never before had she ordered him about. Jim felt
-that he liked it.</p>
-
-<hr class="tb" />
-
-<p>And now little Frances the Altruist was indeed a
-woman of affairs. Jim kept his word, and after the<span class="pagenum" id="Page_232">[Pg 232]</span>
-reluctant departure of Elizabeth attempted no remonstrance;
-he tried faithfully to control his feelings
-when he saw his sister cook and sweep and dust.
-Only, if she rose early, he rose earlier; and she never
-came down to find a fireless, uncared-for grate. Her
-cans were filled with water, her scuttles with coal,
-before her light step could be heard on the stairs.</p>
-
-<p>After due thought, Frances had decided that Austin
-should share Jim’s secret.</p>
-
-<p>“It won’t do him any harm to know all Jim has
-tried to do for us,” she reflected wisely; “and I think,
-somehow, it will help him to be manly and brave
-himself.”</p>
-
-<p>So Austin was told, and received the news with
-preternatural gravity.</p>
-
-<p>“All right, Sis! Jim can keep his hair on; he
-sha’n’t be ruined yet awhile, if we know it. Peace to
-the shades of the departed Elizabeth! You’ll boss the
-show, and I’ll be second in command.”</p>
-
-<p>Mrs. Morland, also, received a communication from
-Frances. Jim was forthwith sent for&mdash;being suspected
-of having a weaker will than the one she had just
-encountered,&mdash;and obliged to listen to keen upbraiding,
-even to merciless taunts. Jim, pale and suffering, could
-reply only that Mrs. Morland’s opinions were humbly
-acknowledged as his own; and that if Missy could be
-induced to abandon her scheme, he would thankfully
-support motherly authority.</p>
-
-<p>But Frances the Altruist took her own way.</p>
-
-<p>The young people of Rowdon Cottage formed themselves
-into a sort of household league, and speedily<span class="pagenum" id="Page_233">[Pg 233]</span>
-discovered the benefits of co-operation. Jim toiled
-early and late; but his trouble shared was trouble
-lightened by at least one appreciable fact&mdash;the absence
-of need for further concealment. His distress of mind
-at the sight of his fellow-toilers grew no less, in spite
-of arguments drawn unconsciously from the propaganda
-of enlightened social economists; but his love
-for those two children who thus bravely tried to help
-him grew greater, and taught him more, day by day.</p>
-
-<p>Frances had found her contentment, and was “happy
-again”. Her loyal friend Florry might now have
-roamed the Continent, if this desired consummation
-had indeed sufficed to send her there. But happy,
-busy Frances was more than ever a companion to be
-sought by a girl who never had been otherwise than
-happy and busy. Florry “begged lifts” from Dr.
-Brenton oftener than ever, and enjoyed her part in
-the cookery and housework quite as much as she
-enjoyed the talks about books and the comparisons of
-lessons which came in between, when folks wanted a
-rest.</p>
-
-<p>Austin was positively refused regular employment
-as maid-of-all-work, so he kept on the look-out and
-seized his chances. At night he would prowl about
-in search of the family boots, and would hide them in
-a secret nook, so that in the morning he might try his
-hand at a new and original system of “blacking”.
-He would creep through the house, gather up the
-mats in a swoop, and depart, chuckling, to do mighty
-execution in the back-yard. Max, if on the spot, of
-course assisted like a man and a brother. Frances<span class="pagenum" id="Page_234">[Pg 234]</span>
-only had to hint that any special cleansing process
-was under consideration, and three young Altruists
-got ready for the fray.</p>
-
-<hr class="tb" />
-
-<p>“Hi, old man! How’s that for a carpet?”</p>
-
-<p>Jim, anxious-eyed but smiling, professed profound
-admiration, and disappeared within his shed.</p>
-
-<p>It was an April afternoon. Max and Austin, armed
-with flat sticks, stood on either side of a well-stretched
-rope, whereon hung the study carpet. The Altruists
-were spring-cleaning, and Rowdon Cottage resounded
-with their songs of triumph. Jim had timidly suggested
-Elizabeth as a helper, but the idea had been
-rejected with scorn.</p>
-
-<p>Kind Mrs. Fane had taken a hint from Florry, and
-had carried off Mrs. Morland to spend a week with
-her&mdash;“while the children amused themselves turning
-everything upside down”. Florry went to Rowdon to
-keep Frances company, by way of exchange of guests;
-and other Altruists dropped in promiscuously to “lend
-a hand”. It was the Easter holidays, so persons of
-leisure were free to make themselves useful.</p>
-
-<p>Max and Austin stood wiping their fevered brows
-and admiring their work. They were on the drying-green,
-which widened out into an orchard that was
-the pride of Rowdon Cottage. Presently to the green
-entered a little procession.</p>
-
-<p>Firstly, Guy Gordon, bearing a pile of footstools,
-and thumping the top one energetically as he marched
-to a whistled war-song. Next, Florry, carrying
-cushions many and various. Then, Frances, with an<span class="pagenum" id="Page_235">[Pg 235]</span>
-armful of curtains. Next, the small and rosy-cheeked
-boy&mdash;brother to Guy&mdash;who long ago had inquired of
-Frances, “What is an Altruist?” Bertie bore nothing
-except himself, and found the task sufficient, for indeed
-he was plumper than Betty Turner. Last of all
-came Betty herself, with a basket of stockings and
-socks. Betty had volunteered to bring the cottage
-darning and mending up to date as her contribution
-to the proceedings. One can sit very comfortably on
-a bank under a tree while one darns the family hose.</p>
-
-<p>Then arose a very Babel. The various persons of
-the procession betook themselves to convenient spots
-in the orchard, and set about their business. Guy
-deposited his footstools on the grass, and thrusting a
-stick into the hand of small Bertie, left him with the
-laconic order:</p>
-
-<p>“See there isn’t a grain of dust in them when I get
-back!”</p>
-
-<p>Then off flew Guy to the carpet-beating, which was
-more inspiriting than footstools. The flat sticks started
-afresh to the tune of “Three Jolly Sailor Boys”, roared
-in lusty trebles. Frances, with Florry’s aid, shook
-her curtains, Betty seated herself picturesquely out
-of reach of the dust, Bertie banged away to his heart’s
-content, and the orchard echoed the drying-green in
-a rousing chorus. Round about, the fruit-trees, in all
-their loveliness of pink and white, averted the dazzling
-April sunshine. Betty, among the violets and primroses,
-examined heels and toes with critical attention,
-while her voice joined involuntarily in the “Sailor
-Boys”.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_236">[Pg 236]</span></p>
-
-<p>“Isn’t it jolly?” demanded Max, during a pause for
-breath. “Here’s an Altruist entertainment given
-gratis and for nothing to the ducks and chickens!
-Now, then, girls, it’s your turn to lead off. Let’s have
-something sweet!”</p>
-
-<p>Frances started Mendelssohn’s “Farewell to the
-Forest”, and Miss Carlyon’s “Selected Choir” gave
-three parts in melodious first and second treble and
-alto. Jim brought his work to the door of his shed
-and listened happily. The sound of the young voices,
-ringing through the clear spring air, came to his ears
-as a reminder of his changed conditions, which had in
-them much of trouble, yet more of joy.</p>
-
-<p>Back and forward between cottage and orchard
-went the merry troop through the long afternoon.
-A very respectable amount of work had been got
-through when, at half-past five, Frances called a halt
-for tea.</p>
-
-<p>By common consent the pleasant meal was taken
-out of doors, under the apple-boughs. The girls went
-into the house, cut bread-and-butter, and piled plates
-with scones and cakes, while the boys spread the cloth
-and fetched and carried. All the visiting Altruists
-had brought contributions to the feast, but Elizabeth’s
-scones, left at the door with Mrs. Macbean’s respectful
-duty, were in chief demand.</p>
-
-<p>“Good old Elizabeth!” chuckled Austin. “She’s a
-first-rater. She bakes scones once a week, and never
-forgets ‘Mr. Jim’. I say, Mr. Jim, here’s a second
-supply, well-buttered. Finished? What rot! Pull
-him down, Max, and send up his cup!”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_237">[Pg 237]</span></p>
-
-<p>“I made this cake myself, Jim,” whispered Florry.
-“It’s ever so sweet&mdash;and all boys like sweet things.”</p>
-
-<p>Jim, always grateful for Florry’s simple friendliness,
-found he could eat the cake nicely. He was next
-supplied with an egg, which Guy’s hen had been
-obliging enough to lay, and Betty to boil, on purpose
-for him. Frances would be hurt if he did not do
-justice to her home-made brown bread. Altogether,
-the youngsters took care that Jim’s tea was a hearty
-one. The lad had dropped, some time ago, the idea
-that these girls and boys might despise the blacksmith-brother.
-He knew, without any sentimental demonstrativeness
-on their part, that they all accounted
-him “a brick”, and he tried earnestly to deserve the
-flattering compliment. He did not know how industriously
-Frances and Austin sang his praises, and
-with what honest pride they spoke of the hard and
-self-denying toil which set so high an example that
-they could not but be up and struggling to follow it.</p>
-
-<p>Tea over, work began again, and lasted till the
-shadows lengthening “from each westward thing”
-brought the Altruists’ busy day to a close. The
-visitors straggled homeward, with Frances, Florry,
-and Austin travelling as far as the Common to speed
-them on their way. They were very tired, and very
-jolly, and very well pleased with themselves. Who
-could say that spring-cleaning had not its aspects
-picturesque and poetic? Who could deny these virtuous
-labourers the right to rouse the echoes with
-a song of parting, and with yet another to the next
-good meeting?</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_238">[Pg 238]</span></p>
-
-<p>Austin ran all the way home that he might coax
-Jim out for a peaceful stroll. Frances and Florry,
-left together, exchanged confidences and opinions after
-their manner. At length, among desultory talk, Florry
-suddenly opened a brisk campaign.</p>
-
-<p>“Frances, do you remember saying, when you first
-went to Rowdon, that you couldn’t come back to our
-Society&mdash;your Society&mdash;till you were gooder?”</p>
-
-<p>Frances assented doubtfully.</p>
-
-<p>“Well, you’re just as much gooder as any mortal
-girl wants to be.”</p>
-
-<p>Frances kept expressive silence.</p>
-
-<p>“If you were any gooder than you are now, I should
-be certain you were falling into a decline. Anyway,
-you’re an Altruist of Altruists, if our motto counts for
-anything, for I’m sure you ‘help others’ all day long.
-We’ve a meeting to-morrow evening. I am going over
-to it, and I mean to take you with me, and Austin
-too. It’s a mixed meeting&mdash;girls and boys; and afterwards
-we’ve a choir practice.”</p>
-
-<p>Frances’s eyes kindled as she heard of these remembered
-joys. She was by no means unhealthily self-introspective
-by nature; and since she had repented
-her unworthy treatment of Jim, and done her best to
-make amends, the load of sensitive shame and humiliation
-had seemed to fall from her heart. Need she
-longer hold aloof from the comrades to whom she had
-once ventured to speak&mdash;parrot-like, as it now appeared
-to her awakened sense, and ignorant of real issues&mdash;such
-brave words of fellowship and admiration towards
-all those who did worthily the world’s exacting work?<span class="pagenum" id="Page_239">[Pg 239]</span>
-Might she not again take her place among them, better
-instructed and less ready to instruct?</p>
-
-<p>Florry found that persuasion was not needed.
-Frances was too sincere to profess a belief in difficulties
-which time had swept away. She replied,
-very truthfully and willingly, that she longed to refill
-the Altruist work-basket.</p>
-
-<p>“I could give odd half-hours to it, you know, Florry.
-The mornings are so light now, I could easily rise a
-little earlier.”</p>
-
-<p>“Mamma says it is always the busy people who do
-the most. Oh, dear Frances, I am so glad! You will
-see, to-morrow, how badly you have been missed.”</p>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_XIV">CHAPTER XIV.<br />
-<small>MRS. MORLAND’S TRIO.</small></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p>Mrs. Morland, in a sober evening dress of black
-silk, inhabited her sitting-room in solitary state.
-The nest her children’s love had prepared for her was
-fresh and sweet as an Altruist spring-cleaning could
-make it; and its occupant, surrounded by pretty and
-dainty things, looked in no want of pity as she sat by
-her cosy fireside, a volume of Tennyson in her hands.
-Yet on this particular evening the leisurely reader
-seemed not entirely at ease. Her eyes wandered continually
-from her book, and the expression of her
-face had for once lost its satisfaction with self and
-impatience with the rest of the world. In thought as<span class="pagenum" id="Page_240">[Pg 240]</span>
-in act Mrs. Morland was slow to admit novelty; but
-a simple occurrence of the afternoon had touched her
-imagination, and inclined her to observe intelligently
-various matters which helped to make the small sum
-of her daily experience.</p>
-
-<p>A little earlier she had been entertaining visitors&mdash;only
-Muriel and Edward Carlyon. But those young
-people possessed alert and vigorous individualities
-which were apt to leave a track where they had been.
-They talked well on a good many subjects, and had
-the pleasant knack of choosing those subjects with due
-regard to their company. Mrs. Morland liked them
-both, and was by no means insensible to the kindness
-which had made Frances and Austin their pupils
-still. So she had listened graciously, and spoken a few
-appropriate words of thanks when the brother and
-sister had warmly commended her children’s progress.</p>
-
-<p>“How proud you must be of them!” Miss Carlyon
-had exclaimed, determined to do her favourites justice.
-“Do you know, I think no one ever had a brighter trio
-than yours.”</p>
-
-<p>Mrs. Morland stiffened perceptibly as she heard the
-word “trio”.</p>
-
-<p>“My two children always have given me every satisfaction,”
-she replied with emphasis.</p>
-
-<p>“Never more than now, I am sure,” said Muriel
-gently.</p>
-
-<p>“Jim is a first-rate fellow,” remarked Edward.
-“Boyish for his years, perhaps, and overpoweringly
-conscientious. But I believe, when he goes out into
-the world, he will make his mark.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_241">[Pg 241]</span></p>
-
-<p>“He is a worthy, unassuming lad,” said Mrs. Morland
-indifferently. “I should hardly have credited him
-with more than an average share of brains. Of course,
-I readily admit that he has had no advantages.”</p>
-
-<p>Edward gaily contested the point, arguing that in
-learning to use his hands as well as his head, Jim had
-provided himself with two forces instead of one to aid
-him in doing battle with difficulties. Mrs. Morland
-declined to show interest in Jim, but she listened
-courteously to her stepson’s praises, and left her combatant
-in possession of the field.</p>
-
-<p>The two visitors were disarmed, and began to think
-they might hitherto have done their hostess injustice
-on some points at least. They had walked out of set
-purpose to Rowdon that afternoon, after stirring up
-each other, as their habit was, to undertake a doubtful
-errand. They were wondering now whether they might
-not hope&mdash;with the mother in this gracious mood&mdash;to
-make that errand something of a success.</p>
-
-<p>“And how is Frances, our own dear Altruist?” questioned
-Muriel presently. “I thought yesterday that
-she was looking pale and tired.”</p>
-
-<p>“Indeed! I have not heard her complain. She has
-excellent health, fortunately, and is altogether stronger
-than Austin.”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, Austin will make a sturdy fellow by and by,”
-said Carlyon cheerily.</p>
-
-<p>“Meanwhile,” said Muriel tentatively, “I hope our
-pair of pickles aren’t overdoing it? You will forgive
-me, Mrs. Morland, I’m sure, if I intrude on you with
-selfish anxieties. You see, Edward and I can’t contemplate<span class="pagenum" id="Page_242">[Pg 242]</span>
-with equanimity the loss of our pupils, and
-Frances has been telling me that she is afraid she
-must give up some of her studies.”</p>
-
-<p>Mrs. Morland flushed angrily. “She has said nothing
-of the kind to me.”</p>
-
-<p>“She would not wish to worry you,” added Muriel
-in haste; “and she did not speak definitely&mdash;only, I
-understood it was a question between home duties and
-school lessons. As Frances has passed the Oxford
-Junior Locals, I wanted her to get ready for the
-Senior; but if she has not time for the necessary
-preparation, there is no more to be said.”</p>
-
-<p>“I had a scholarship in view for Austin,” said
-Carlyon, before Mrs. Morland could speak. The brother
-and sister felt themselves on thorny ground, and feared
-a retreat might be forced on them. “It would help to
-take him to the University. Still, he is right to stick
-to his sister.”</p>
-
-<p>“You mustn’t let our foolish ambitions vex you,
-dear Mrs. Morland,” said Muriel, rising to lay her
-hand with a pretty gesture on the elder woman’s arm.
-“If our young people choose the better part, we can
-only love them all the more, and be all the more proud
-of them. They will learn a great deal in helping Jim.
-Do you know, I am quite jealous of Frances’s success
-as a rival teacher? Now, Edward, you and I must
-run away. We are due at the rectory at six o’clock.”</p>
-
-<p>The visitors said good-bye to a very stately, monosyllabic
-hostess, whose geniality had vanished, and
-left moroseness behind. At first Mrs. Morland was
-strongly moved to summon Frances for a severe<span class="pagenum" id="Page_243">[Pg 243]</span>
-lecture, but she felt herself handicapped by her
-ignorance as to the truth. She had no real knowledge
-of the manner in which her children spent their days;
-and had objected to the work they had undertaken, in
-Elizabeth’s place, on account of its nature, not because
-she realized its amount. But if it were indeed the
-case that sweeping and scrubbing had absorbed the
-hours due to Latin and mathematics, in what direction
-could she exercise her authority? Somebody must
-sweep and scrub, if the spotlessness on which Mrs.
-Morland tacitly insisted were to be maintained at
-Rowdon Cottage.</p>
-
-<p>For a time, indignation with her “trio” and their
-too officious friends occupied Mrs. Morland’s thoughts
-entirely; but compunctions were stirring her memory,
-and she began to recall more exactly, and to examine
-more thoroughly, the few remarks her late visitors
-had made. She wondered whether she had indeed left
-it to an outsider to notice that Frances looked “pale
-and tired”, and why her girl and boy should not have
-come first of all to their mother with their doubts as
-to their ability to keep up their lessons. Mrs. Morland
-had seen plainly that the Carlyons had spoken with
-some trepidation and fear of giving offence. She felt
-obliged to admit that they had not willingly broken
-the laws of good taste, but had made an honest effort
-to serve their young friends by letting fall such hints
-as might induce the children’s mother to give more
-attention to their affairs.</p>
-
-<p>Mrs. Morland’s thoughts were still dwelling on these
-matters, when the door opened softly and Frances<span class="pagenum" id="Page_244">[Pg 244]</span>
-entered, carrying a snowy table-cloth of finest damask,
-such as it was Elizabeth’s pride to handle. Next came
-Austin, with a folding-stand and butler’s tray, which
-he set up close to the door. Mrs. Morland was seated
-so that she could face her children, and she watched
-them furtively from the cover of her fan. The young
-pair were so unaccustomed to attract their mother’s
-notice while about their daily duties that they behaved
-as though she were as deep in Tennyson as they supposed
-her to be.</p>
-
-<p>Frances deftly spread the cloth, while Austin fussed
-gravely over his tray. Presently they began to lay
-the covers for two, and to deck the table with pretty
-crystal and silver. There were no “specimen” vases,
-but they had a big bowl filled with white narcissus
-and ivy for a centre-piece.</p>
-
-<p>“Is Jim ready?” questioned Frances in a low voice.
-“I have no soup to-day, but Mr. Carlyon brought a
-lovely pair of soles, and I have fried them most beautifully.
-Mamma likes fried soles. Jim is so thoughtful,
-he is sure to remember to say he won’t have any; then
-there will be one left for Mamma’s breakfast.”</p>
-
-<p>“Good!” said Austin laconically. “Isn’t there anything
-for Jim?”</p>
-
-<p>“Silly! Of course there is! I made rissoles out of
-that cold beef.”</p>
-
-<p>Austin sighed.</p>
-
-<p>“I have kept one back for you, dear,” said Frances
-quickly. “I know you hate cold beef. You shall eat
-that delicious rissole while I dish the pudding.”</p>
-
-<p>The two now wrangled in undertones as to which<span class="pagenum" id="Page_245">[Pg 245]</span>
-should enjoy the comparative dainty of a rissole, and
-Mrs. Morland laughed behind her fan until she feared
-detection. Finally, Austin decided that the morsel
-should be halved, and the preparations then proceeded
-in uninterrupted solemnity.</p>
-
-<p>“Is Jim ready?” inquired Frances again. “My soles
-will be spoilt if dinner is kept waiting.”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, Jim’s all right. He’s turning out the potatoes.”</p>
-
-<p>“Austin! Last time Jim meddled with the potatoes
-he let one drop into the ashes&mdash;and he nearly spoiled
-his best coat!”</p>
-
-<p>“Well, if he’s such a duffer he must go without,
-himself.”</p>
-
-<p>“I shall fly to the rescue. Oh, Austin, you promised
-to mix the fresh mustard!”</p>
-
-<p>“Crikey! So I did! I’ll do it now, in half a
-jiffey.”</p>
-
-<p>“Come then; it’s half-past eight already!”</p>
-
-<p>Frances retired in haste to the kitchen, packed Jim
-off to the sitting-room, and served up her three courses
-in fine style. Mrs. Morland, intent on observations,
-dined almost in silence; and Jim, amazed to find
-neither his mind nor his manners undergoing improvement,
-wondered nervously of what heinous offence he
-had been guilty unawares. Austin brought in the
-dishes, and waited at table with the utmost confidence
-and resource. It was his little joke to call himself
-Adolphus the page-boy, in which character he indulged
-in various small witticisms, chiefly, it must be owned,
-for the benefit of Frances. When he had placed a
-scanty dessert before his mother, he went off, to reappear<span class="pagenum" id="Page_246">[Pg 246]</span>
-immediately in Frances’s wake in his own
-character of Master Austin Morland.</p>
-
-<p>He wore an evening suit of black velvet, which,
-having been made eighteen months before, was an
-exceedingly tight fit for its owner. Mrs. Morland
-now became aware of the fact, and felt a sudden
-qualm as she anticipated the time when the children’s
-stock of good, well-made clothing would be finally
-worn out or outgrown. She determined to put off,
-for that evening at least, her intended demand for the
-immediate re-engagement of Elizabeth, and the release
-of Frances from “household drudgery”. She would
-hardly have acknowledged that a part of that forbearing
-resolution was due to the awakened eyes
-with which she now regarded the third of her “trio”.
-Jim’s face was pale and tired beyond all possibility
-of concealment.</p>
-
-<p>The meal was ended. Mrs. Morland returned to her
-Tennyson, and the trio returned to their various tasks.
-For more than an hour the solitary woman sat on by
-her fireside deep in thought. Glancing up, at length,
-she saw that her clock pointed to a quarter-past ten,
-and it occurred to her that the children had not yet
-come to bid her good-night. Rising with a little shiver,
-for the room was growing chilly, she crossed the
-passage to the study, and, opening the door gently,
-peered in. The three students were gathered together,
-to share the light of the single small lamp. Frances
-was correcting an exercise for Jim, who listened intently
-while she lucidly explained his mistakes. Austin
-struggled with Greek verbs, repeating them under his<span class="pagenum" id="Page_247">[Pg 247]</span>
-breath, while he held his hands to his ears, and rocked
-his body to and fro, after the familiar fashion of
-industrious schoolboys.</p>
-
-<p>Consternation took the place of contentment when
-Mrs. Morland made the young folks aware of her
-presence by inquiring whether they knew the hour.</p>
-
-<p>“It is a quarter-past ten,” she remarked, her voice
-falling on a guilty silence. “You know, Frances and
-Austin, I do not like you to be up later than ten.”</p>
-
-<p>“We have nearly finished, Mamma. We go to Woodbank
-to-morrow, and we shall not have our lessons
-ready unless we do them to-night.”</p>
-
-<p>“Why not, pray? Are there no morning hours
-before you? And what is this I hear from Miss
-Carlyon, Frances? Have you really taken it upon
-yourself to tell her, without first consulting me, that
-you are prepared to dispense with her kind help?”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, Mamma,” exclaimed Frances, “Miss Carlyon
-could not have thought&mdash;. Indeed, I didn’t say it that
-way!”</p>
-
-<p>“Perhaps not,” said Mrs. Morland, half-ashamed of
-her injustice; “but you said it in some way, and I am
-very much annoyed. A child like you has no business
-to decide for herself whether she will or will not
-accept so great a favour.”</p>
-
-<p>“I only didn’t want to worry you, Mamma; and I
-didn’t think&mdash;I didn’t guess you would mind about
-my lessons.”</p>
-
-<p>“I dare say your intentions were good, Frances,” said
-Mrs. Morland less sharply; “but you certainly should
-have come to me first. You cannot really have been<span class="pagenum" id="Page_248">[Pg 248]</span>
-so foolish as to suppose that I am indifferent about
-your studies. They may be of the utmost importance
-to you some day.”</p>
-
-<p>“I know,” said Frances eagerly. “So, won’t you let
-me sit up a little later sometimes?”</p>
-
-<p>“I can’t do that, for the best of reasons. You rise&mdash;as
-I know to my cost&mdash;very early; and I must
-insist on your taking proper rest. But I see no
-obstacle to your finding plenty of opportunity for
-study in the daytime. What is it that comes in the
-way?”</p>
-
-<p>Frances glanced up at Jim, and meeting his troubled
-look answered pleadingly:</p>
-
-<p>“I’ll tell you all about it when you come upstairs
-to-night, Mamma dear. Won’t that do?”</p>
-
-<p>“Very well,” replied Mrs. Morland, feeling a new
-and strange reluctance to prolong the discomfort she
-had brought to the industrious little group. Memory
-again spoke in her ears with Miss Carlyon’s voice the
-familiar words about choosing the better part. She
-went back to her room, stirred the smouldering fire,
-and sank into her luxurious chair. Something&mdash;could
-it be conscience?&mdash;was stirring fiercely within her;
-and qualities long dormant rose up and cried her
-shame.</p>
-
-<p>She had been alone but a few minutes when Jim
-came into the room. The lad, still white and weary-eyed,
-moved with his quiet, undisturbing step to Mrs.
-Morland’s side.</p>
-
-<p>“I wanted to tell you something,” he began diffidently;
-“something perhaps you don’t know. It is<span class="pagenum" id="Page_249">[Pg 249]</span>
-that, for a good while back, the children have been
-helping me&mdash;teaching me, I mean, besides learning
-their own lessons. I wanted so much to learn, that
-I’m afraid I forgot how I was taking up their time;
-but indeed I never guessed that Missy was going to
-leave off any of her lessons with Miss Carlyon. Of
-course I will manage so that she need not. I hope
-you won’t worry, or be vexed with Missy. It’s all my
-fault.”</p>
-
-<p>“And how do you propose to ‘manage’, as you say?”</p>
-
-<p>Mrs. Morland’s keen gaze fell steadily on her stepson’s
-face.</p>
-
-<p>“I will not let Missy be troubled with me,” said Jim.
-“That will make some difference.”</p>
-
-<p>“But you want to learn?”</p>
-
-<p>“Ay. I will learn, too, somehow, but not at the
-children’s cost. I can do a smith’s work without
-Latin; but my brother and sister are to be something
-different.”</p>
-
-<p>“You are resolved on that?”</p>
-
-<p>“Ay.”</p>
-
-<p>“And if they do not teach you, they will have time
-for their own studies?”</p>
-
-<p>“I cannot tell that; but I can easily get up an hour
-earlier and help more in the house.”</p>
-
-<p>“When do you rise now, James?”</p>
-
-<p>“Not till five,” replied Jim eagerly. “It would be
-nothing to rise at four.”</p>
-
-<p>“But if my ears haven’t deceived me, I’ve heard
-stealthy steps going to your bedroom at one, and even
-two, in the morning.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_250">[Pg 250]</span></p>
-
-<p>Jim stood detected and confused.</p>
-
-<p>“Well,” said Mrs. Morland calmly, “I’ll think over
-matters and let you know if I agree to your ingenious
-plan. Meanwhile, James, I would rather you went to
-bed a little earlier and rose a little later. And I
-object to your giving up your lessons with the children.
-I have no doubt that in helping you they help themselves;
-but in any case I wish you to go on remembering
-that if you are a blacksmith you are also a
-gentleman.”</p>
-
-<p>Mrs. Morland enjoyed the knowledge that her stepson
-was utterly astonished and subdued; and she
-went on in the same level tone:</p>
-
-<p>“I never was more convinced of the latter fact than
-I am this evening. Now, good-night, James! Go to
-bed, and get rid of that headache.”</p>
-
-<hr class="tb" />
-
-<p>During the whole of the following couple of days
-Mrs. Morland displayed an unwonted activity, though
-in a direction her children found terribly discomfiting.
-On this or that pretext she contrived to maintain a
-careful watch on everybody’s movements, and some
-of the youngsters’ most cherished and harmless secrets
-were dragged to light. Thus, Frances was surprised
-by her mother in the act of “washing out” certain
-dainty frills which it always had been supposed were
-left to Mrs. Macbean’s tender mercies. Austin was
-discovered peeling potatoes in the study, whither he
-had been banished for fear of draughts, while Jim
-cleaned the kitchen windows. And Jim’s feelings may
-be imagined when his workshop was invaded by the<span class="pagenum" id="Page_251">[Pg 251]</span>
-stately presence of his stepmother, who had donned a
-shawl and wandered through the darkness merely to
-inquire if he happened to know whether a quarter to
-ten were the correct time.</p>
-
-<p>Mrs. Morland’s inspection was thorough enough to
-supply her with a basis of facts whereon to build
-further meditations and resolutions. Perhaps the
-latter were confirmed by a conversation she overheard
-through a door left ajar accidentally:</p>
-
-<p>“I say, Frances, isn’t the Mater getting awfully spry?
-She has been going about no end the last two days.”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes. She seems ever so much better and stronger,
-doesn’t she? Wouldn’t it be jolly if she would come
-for a walk with us sometimes, and go visiting a little,
-as she used to? She wouldn’t always be so dull if she
-had more change.”</p>
-
-<p>“She came and watched me feed my chickens this
-morning. Fancy! she said she had no idea I had gone
-in for poultry rearing! I believe I must have forgotten
-to tell her about it. I showed her my ducklings, too,
-and promised her one for dinner soon.”</p>
-
-<p>“Mamma asked me where I had learned to make
-such nice puddings. Wasn’t it dear of her to notice?
-I shall turn out lovely pancakes to-night&mdash;she likes
-pancakes.”</p>
-
-<p>“Anybody would like your pancakes. May I have
-the little burnt one at the end?”</p>
-
-<p>“You unkind boy, it isn’t always burnt! Perhaps
-I’ll give you a whole proper one for a treat, as you
-provide the eggs.”</p>
-
-<p>On the third day after the Carlyons’ visit, Mrs.<span class="pagenum" id="Page_252">[Pg 252]</span>
-Morland once more surprised the little housewife and
-her male servitors. They were at breakfast in the
-kitchen; for Frances, to save coal, had decreed that the
-study fire should not be lighted in the early morning.</p>
-
-<p>“Is this an innovation, young people?” demanded
-the newcomer amiably. “Thank you, James; I will
-take Austin’s chair, and he can fetch another. Really”&mdash;and
-Mrs. Morland glanced critically round the bright,
-clean kitchen&mdash;“you look remarkably comfortable here.
-Your copper pans do you credit, Frances.”</p>
-
-<p>“Jim scoured the pans, Mamma dear,” said the girl,
-recovering from the shock of discovery. “And I do
-think they’re pretty. Mayn’t I give you some tea?
-Oh no! not this, of course&mdash;I’ll make some fresh.”</p>
-
-<p>“Nonsense! I’m sure you can spare me a cup of
-yours. That tea-pot has immense capacity, and if
-these lads haven’t drained it&mdash;”</p>
-
-<p>“Why, there’s lots,” said Austin, lifting the lid of
-the big brown pot. “Only, you see, Mater, it’s&mdash;it’s a
-little nurseryfied. Frances doesn’t approve of strong
-tea for our youthful digestions. I’ve plenty of boiling
-water in my kettle, and you shall have a special
-brew.”</p>
-
-<p>Jim had risen quietly and placed a small clothes-horse,
-over which he had thrown a cloth, between
-Mrs. Morland and the fire. Meanwhile his stepmother,
-with a swift glance that escaped detection, had surveyed
-the young people’s fare. A home-baked loaf, a
-plate of scones, butter, and marmalade. For Austin
-alone, a boiled egg. All set out with exquisite cleanliness,
-and appetizing enough in itself, but hardly<span class="pagenum" id="Page_253">[Pg 253]</span>
-sufficient preparation for a long and hard day’s
-work.</p>
-
-<p>“Frances has found some dainty for my breakfast-tray
-each morning,” reflected Mrs. Morland, and at
-that moment Frances spoke.</p>
-
-<p>“Your kidneys are still in the larder, Mamma.
-Would you like them cooked sooner than usual since
-you are down so early?”</p>
-
-<p>“They will do nicely for dinner,” said Mrs. Morland.
-“I am going to breakfast with you, and cannot
-possibly resist those scones any longer.”</p>
-
-<p>The amazed silence of the group may not have been
-entirely complimentary, but Mrs. Morland seemed unconcerned,
-and forced speech on “James” by inquiring
-whether he were responsible for the shining dish-covers
-as well as the copper pans. The freshly-made
-tea was praised generously; and altogether Mrs. Morland
-showed a welcome disposition to admire everything.</p>
-
-<p>Breakfast over, the workers of the family prepared
-to set about their usual duties. Jim went off to the
-forge, Austin departed to feed his chickens, Frances
-began to clear the breakfast-table.</p>
-
-<p>“I have been thinking,” said Mrs. Morland, while
-she helped to gather together cups and plates, “that
-for the future Jim and I will dine with you children
-in the middle of the day.”</p>
-
-<p>“Mamma!” exclaimed Frances, standing statue-like
-in her amazement.</p>
-
-<p>“It would be at least an hour’s saving of your time&mdash;oh!
-more than that. However simple your cookery,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_254">[Pg 254]</span>
-it must require a good deal of attention; then, there is
-the serving, and after all the washing of dishes and
-pans. Why, child, we have hit in a moment on the
-solution of your difficulty.”</p>
-
-<p>“You never have been used to an early dinner,”
-said Frances in a troubled voice; “you would hate
-it.”</p>
-
-<p>“It could not really make the slightest difference to
-me now,” declared the mother. “When I visited and
-received visitors, things naturally were arranged according
-to custom.”</p>
-
-<p>“But, Mamma,” said Frances wistfully, “why should
-you not visit again? The people worth knowing
-wouldn’t like us a bit the less because we live in a
-cottage instead of at Elveley. It is not as though we
-had done anything wrong. All your favourite friends
-have called since you have been here&mdash;”</p>
-
-<p>“Called!” interrupted Mrs. Morland vehemently
-“yes&mdash;to pry into my affairs and gossip over my
-changed circumstances. Ah! Frances, you don’t know
-the world yet, thank Heaven; you look on it still with
-a girl’s eyes, thoughtless and ignorant. No, you must
-not attempt to question my judgment in such matters.
-I could not endure to be pitied.”</p>
-
-<p>“Nor I, Mamma.”</p>
-
-<p>“Then don’t put your acquaintances to the test,”
-said Mrs. Morland bitterly.</p>
-
-<p>Frances looked up with clear, wondering eyes.</p>
-
-<p>“Would you rather I did not go to our Altruist
-meetings, then, Mamma? You know, I’ve joined our
-little club again lately. Of course, all the girls understand<span class="pagenum" id="Page_255">[Pg 255]</span>
-that I can be with them only once in a way, and
-that I can’t make things for our stores, but they don’t
-seem to mind.”</p>
-
-<p>A smile of pleasure brightened the girl’s face as she
-recalled the enthusiasm which had greeted her return
-to the Altruists.</p>
-
-<p>“By all means go to your meetings, child. It was
-not by my wish that you left off doing so. And by
-all means attend regularly, and get what fun you can
-in your dull life. As to the work, you shall not be
-entirely empty-handed. You and I will set up a
-work-basket between us; and if we have no new
-material, we can alter and cut down our own old
-clothes.”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, Mamma, that would be lovely!” said Frances
-gratefully.</p>
-
-<p>“I will look over your wardrobe this afternoon and
-bring down some of the things you have quite outgrown.
-And, my dear, I wish you to consider the
-matter of our meals as settled. We will all dine
-together, and we shall have nice long evenings. Why,
-the Altruist work-basket will be a positive blessing to
-me. You young people mustn’t be surprised if I pay
-a visit to your study sometimes; it is just a little
-lonely in my room after dark. I will sew while you
-are busy with your lessons, and then we shall save a
-fire. We might let the kitchen fire go out now and
-then after tea, and keep one in the sitting-room, so
-that we could have an hour or two’s music. James
-has a nice voice&mdash;you must teach him to sing.” ...</p>
-
-<p>“Mamma!&mdash;mamma darling!” Frances had flown<span class="pagenum" id="Page_256">[Pg 256]</span>
-to Mrs. Morland. Their cheeks were pressed together,
-their arms were about one another.</p>
-
-<p>“There&mdash;you silly child! I have been thinking the
-old mother has been out of everything long enough.
-Run away to your bedrooms; and before you go, lend
-me your biggest apron. You shall see that I will
-soon master the professional manner of washing
-breakfast-cups.”</p>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_XV">CHAPTER XV.<br />
-<small>POLLY’S DELIVERER.</small></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p>“Max,” said Dr. Brenton from the hall door, “can
-you take a case for me this afternoon?” The
-Doctor’s eyes twinkled as he spoke, for his son’s professional
-aid furnished him with plenty of opportunity
-for the harmless jesting enjoyed by both. “Of course,
-I mean if your own private practice permits.”</p>
-
-<p>“Thank you,” replied Max gravely; “I believe I’ve
-nothing serious on. My distinguished services are
-entirely at your disposal. Is it toothache or measles?
-I’m great at measles.”</p>
-
-<p>“I’m sorry I can’t give you a turn with your
-speciality. It’s just a broken arm. But there was
-some chance of fever; and the boy’s mother is such a
-fool she can’t even take his temperature, or I might
-have told her to send me word how he did&mdash;”</p>
-
-<p>“Pardon me, but who’s the boy?”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh! why, young Brown, at Appleton Farm.”</p>
-
-<p>Max whistled. “Hallo! that’s a six-mile trot.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_257">[Pg 257]</span></p>
-
-<p>“Yes, and I don’t know how you’re to get there. I
-can’t spare the trap, for I’ve to go twice as far in the
-other direction.”</p>
-
-<p>“Never mind ways and means,” said Max cheerily.
-“As Appleton isn’t out of our planet, I suppose I can
-reach it somehow.”</p>
-
-<p>“Wait a bit, though, my boy,” said the Doctor,
-stepping out on to the gravel path and laying his
-hand on Max’s shoulder. “This is Wednesday, and I
-don’t want to spoil any little plan for your friends’
-holiday afternoon. Was there a spree in view?”</p>
-
-<p>“Nothing you need bother about, Dad,” replied
-Max, raising his bright face. “I was just going over
-to Rowdon with this pansy-root for Frances. I forgot
-to grub up the thing in the morning, so I’m getting it
-now.”</p>
-
-<p>“You always enjoy a few hours at Rowdon,” said
-the Doctor regretfully. “Perhaps, after all, I might
-get back in time to tackle Appleton myself.”</p>
-
-<p>“No, you mightn’t. You’ll be tired enough as it is,
-after being out half last night. Don’t you worry,
-Dad, I’ll see to Brown.”</p>
-
-<p>“It won’t matter how late you visit him. You
-could have a game first, lad. Rowdon is not much off
-the road to Appleton. Suppose you went there first?”</p>
-
-<p>“Good idea! If Austin’s in trim, I dare say he’ll go
-on with me. Frances too, maybe. Off you go, Dad,
-and don’t fidget about Brown. I’ll settle him and his
-temperature.”</p>
-
-<p>So off the Doctor went, as easy in his mind as his
-young son’s care could make him. And Max dug up<span class="pagenum" id="Page_258">[Pg 258]</span>
-his root, wrapped it neatly in brown paper, and made
-ready for the tramp to Rowdon.</p>
-
-<p>Austin was “in trim” and volunteered his company
-to Appleton. Frances and her mother had arranged
-to give the afternoon to the Altruist work-basket;
-but they invited Max to come back to tea at the
-cottage, and to play a game at cricket on the Common
-afterwards. The boys did their walk in good time,
-found Brown’s temperature normal and his arm doing
-well, and then strolled homeward at a leisurely pace.</p>
-
-<p>“How are things going in the village?” inquired
-Austin, as they neared Rowdon, and topics of more
-personal interest had been pretty well exhausted.
-“Has your father got old Fenn to do anything for
-Lumber’s Yard?”</p>
-
-<p>“Fenn! Not he. But the folks themselves are
-looking up. Carlyon has been hammering away at
-them a long time, as you know, and most of them
-are a shade more respectable in consequence. At
-least, they are beginning to show some disgust with
-that beast Baker, which is a sign of a return to
-decency.”</p>
-
-<p>“Has Baker been doing anything fresh lately?”</p>
-
-<p>“Anything fresh in the way of brutality is hardly
-within Mr. Joe Baker’s power. He’s an out-and-out
-right-down waster, and I told him so yesterday for
-the fiftieth time.”</p>
-
-<p>“What was he doing?”</p>
-
-<p>“Mauling that tiny mite Polly. Fortunately Harry
-the Giant heard the child yell, and went to her help
-just as I got there. I couldn’t help treating Baker to<span class="pagenum" id="Page_259">[Pg 259]</span>
-a few home truths, and I wish you’d seen his scowls
-and heard the pleasant things he promised me.”</p>
-
-<p>“Beast! But I say, Max, don’t put yourself in his
-way in a lonely lane on a dark night. He doesn’t
-love you.”</p>
-
-<p>Max’s expressive “Ugh!” closed the subject.</p>
-
-<p>The tea-table, presided over by Mrs. Morland, was
-surrounded that evening by a lively little company.
-Austin and Max gave a mirthful version of their
-encounter with Mrs. Brown, concerning the beef-tea
-they had ventured to criticise; and quiet Jim, whose
-sense of humour was undergoing cultivation, chuckled
-over the boys’ small witticisms. Max’s long walk had
-not robbed cricket of attraction. As soon as tea had
-been cleared away, the youngsters dragged Jim off to
-the Common; and even Mrs. Morland was cajoled into
-coming with them to look on and keep the score.</p>
-
-<p>But it was a really tired-out lad who, when dusk
-was deepening into darkness, bade Frances and Austin
-good-bye on the further side of the Common. Max
-would not let his friends come further, for he meant
-to cover a good part of the remaining distance at a
-swinging trot, which might, he hoped, compel his
-aching legs to do their duty. And for a time they
-did it nobly; but presently fatigue compelled the boy
-to slow down to a steady walk, which made reflection
-easier. Max’s thoughts were usually good company,
-and on this particular evening he had abundant food
-for them.</p>
-
-<p>Max Brenton was nearing his fifteenth birthday,
-and his busy, capable life held promise of early<span class="pagenum" id="Page_260">[Pg 260]</span>
-maturity. Though still a very boyish boy, he had in
-his many quiet hours developed a power of concentration
-and resolute temper, which inclined him to wider
-schemes of activity than boyhood often learns to contemplate.
-It was only the strength and depth of his
-affections&mdash;in which alone Max was child-like&mdash;that
-rendered it possible for him to look forward without
-impatience to a career consecrated to the service of
-Woodend.</p>
-
-<p>Max would have preferred a broader outlook and a
-brisker scene for his energies. But he knew that a
-partnership with his son was Dr. Brenton’s wildest
-dream of future happiness and prosperity, and Max
-could not imagine himself bringing defeat to his
-father’s plan. How often had they talked it over
-together! and how gaily had Max anticipated his
-triumphant return to his little country home with the
-honours of the schools bound thick about his brows!
-By that time Dad would want someone to do the
-night-work, and share the responsibility of difficult
-cases; and who should help him, who ever had helped
-him, but Max?</p>
-
-<p>The boy smiled as, moving rapidly through the
-evening darkness, he reminded himself afresh of all
-these things. Then the smile faded, and a quick
-sigh expressed the lurking regret of his growing
-years. For a while his thoughts soared to all conceivable
-heights of medical distinction; and he wondered
-whether, had his path not been inexorably
-prepared for him, he might have climbed to better
-purpose some other way.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_261">[Pg 261]</span></p>
-
-<p>Max’s thoughts still dwelt lingeringly on the opportunities
-present-day conditions afford to the specialist
-in any profession, as he drew within sight of the
-straggling cottages of Woodend village. The first of
-all was a neat little one-storeyed tenement, where
-dwelt poor Mrs. Baker’s aged father and mother. Of
-late the couple had often tried to shelter Bell and her
-little ones during outbreaks of Joe Baker’s drunken
-fury; and more than once the fugitives had been
-pursued to their place of refuge by their persecutor.
-Max recalled these facts while his eyes caught through
-the trees the glimmer of lights below him in the valley;
-and by a natural sequence of thought, he remembered
-also his morning encounter with Joe.</p>
-
-<p>“He was in one of his worst moods,” meditated the
-boy; “and if the ‘Jolly Dog’ has seen any more of
-him since, I expect his wife will be in danger to-night.
-I declare, I’ve half a mind to look in on her father
-and give him a word of warning. He might fetch
-the children, anyhow.”</p>
-
-<p>Max looked again at the light in old Baring’s
-distant window, and decided to carry out his plan.
-A little further on he turned into the lane where,
-many months ago, Austin Morland’s galloping pony
-had caught up “brother Jim”. The overhanging trees
-behind tall wooden palings added to the natural darkness
-of the hour and place; and it was not till his eyes
-had grown accustomed to the gloom that he detected
-a tiny figure stumbling towards him up the path.
-When the child came close, Max saw that it was little
-five-year-old Polly Baker.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_262">[Pg 262]</span></p>
-
-<p>“Hallo!” sang out Max; “you again, small kid!
-What are you doing here?”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, Mas’r Max! Mas’r Max!” The child flung
-herself at the lad, and clung to him desperately. “He’s
-after me, Father is! Don’t let him have me! Please
-don’t, Mas’r Max!”</p>
-
-<p>The boy lifted the little child in his arms, and tried
-to soothe her. He felt that her frail body was palpitating
-with the terror which had already made her
-baby face wizened and old. A mighty wrath surged
-into Max’s heart. Polly’s trembling fingers tugging
-weakly at his jacket called all his manliest instincts
-into vigour.</p>
-
-<p>He easily made out the child’s broken words of
-explanation. Baker had been turned away from the
-“Jolly Dog” as being dangerous to its other frequenters,
-and in malicious rage had lurched home and
-set about beating wife and children indiscriminately.
-Neighbours had come to the rescue, and had seen
-that Bell was safely housed with a friend, while her
-children were sent under escort to their grandfather
-Baring. For a time Baker had remained indoors,
-nursing his wrongs; then, not daring to interfere with
-Bell, since Harry the Giant was mounting guard over
-her, he had set out in the dark to wreak his fury on
-the Barings and their helpless charges.</p>
-
-<p>His coming had sent Polly and the other little ones
-into paroxysms of terror, and they had flown for
-shelter out to the friendly night. Baker was drunk
-enough to be dangerous, without having in the least
-lost control over his senses. Little Polly, whose baby<span class="pagenum" id="Page_263">[Pg 263]</span>
-fist had sometimes been raised in defence of her
-mother, was always his favourite victim; and the
-child now gasped in Max’s ear her certainty that her
-father had seen and followed her. If he had been
-sure she was right, Max would have turned instantly,
-and have run back up the lane to some trusty villager’s
-dwelling; but before he could persuade himself to
-this course, events proved Polly’s fear to be justified.
-Round the corner into the lane came Baker, running
-at full speed, with sufficient certainty of gait to assure
-Max that he would have no helpless drunkard to deal
-with.</p>
-
-<p>Even then, Max knew that he could escape, without
-Polly. Max was fleet of foot; but the clinging grasp
-of the childish fingers and the weight of the little
-quivering body were enough to give the advantage to
-Baker in an uphill race. Max had but a minute for
-reflection, and he determined to try to dodge Baker,
-slip past him, and make a dash for the village.
-Running downhill, he thought he might outstrip the
-enemy, should he give chase; and there would be
-the chance of meeting help in the more frequented
-road.</p>
-
-<p>Max had hardly resolved on the attempt, when he
-knew it had failed. Baker made a cunning feint of
-speeding by, then flung himself to one side and fairly
-pinned Max against the palings. In a twinkling the
-boy had twisted himself free, and set down his burden
-with a whispered “Run for it, Polly! Run back to
-the village, fast!”</p>
-
-<p>Max’s fear was all for the baby girl, and his one<span class="pagenum" id="Page_264">[Pg 264]</span>
-thought now was to gain time for her escape. Therefore
-he made no attempt to secure his own, but threw
-all his strength into the effort to hold back Polly’s
-father, who, with threats which chilled Max’s blood,
-addressed thickly to the flying child, was trying to
-hurl himself after her. The strong young arms of
-Polly’s defender were not so easily shaken off; and as
-the little flickering feet carried their owner round the
-corner and out of sight, Baker turned his attention to
-revenge.</p>
-
-<p>Max’s vigour was already nearly spent, and his
-danger had been obvious to him from the beginning of
-the unequal struggle. Baker’s hatred of “the young
-Doc”, first called into active existence on the night
-when the boy’s manœuvres had successfully combated
-his own brutal designs, had increased continually ever
-since. It was Max’s interference, and Max’s personal
-popularity, which had made the denizens of Lumber’s
-Yard band themselves into a sort of bodyguard to
-protect Baker’s ill-used wife and children. It was Max
-who had again and again assailed the drunkard and
-bully with words of biting contempt. It was Max
-who had that very morning boldly threatened to
-obtain legal redress for Bell and her little ones should
-their cruel tyrant persecute them once more.</p>
-
-<p>Now the man had the boy in his power. Max could
-not do much in self-defence. He tried to hit out, but
-Baker, seizing his arms, flung him back against the
-fence, and, pinning him there with one hand, struck at
-him furiously with the other. Even then Max’s thoughts
-were with the escaping child, and he clung desperately<span class="pagenum" id="Page_265">[Pg 265]</span>
-to the arm which held him during the few moments of
-blinding pain before he dropped. Baker was not made
-of the stuff which spares a fallen foe. His heavy
-nailed boots did a ruffian’s work on the prostrate body
-of Max Brenton.</p>
-
-<hr class="tb" />
-
-<p>Little Polly fled as for dear life along the village
-road. She passed her grandfather’s house, which had
-proved so poor a shelter; she gave no heed to bystanders
-at cottage-gates; she did not dare to pause
-even when a friendly voice addressed her. Deep in
-her baby heart was a fear, not for herself alone; and
-she flew on and on, her fluttering breath panting between
-her white lips, her scared eyes gleaming with
-terror above her colourless cheeks. Her way soon led
-her by large houses set far back in their beautiful
-gardens, and at the gate of one of these a boy stood
-waiting for a comrade.</p>
-
-<p>“Hallo, Polly! What’s the scare, youngster? Stop,
-and let’s hear.”</p>
-
-<p>Every Altruist was Polly’s friend, and knew the
-story of her wretched home. So now at last the child
-ventured to check her headlong pace, and to give voice
-to her baby fears. This lad, she knew, was Guy
-Gordon&mdash;he who could make cunning use of the
-strange silver flute, he whose pockets kept stores of
-sweets for tiny, crimson-frocked girls. Guy was the
-friend of Polly’s young deities&mdash;Max and Austin,
-Frances and Florry. To him the child now turned
-with a despairing cry.</p>
-
-<p>“Mas’r Max! Oh, it’s Mas’r Max!”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_266">[Pg 266]</span></p>
-
-<p>“No, it’s Mas’r Guy!” laughed the boy good-naturedly.
-“What’s up, Trots?”</p>
-
-<p>“Save him, p’ease save Mas’r Max! Father’s got
-him in the dark lane far away. Father’ll kill Mas’r
-Max!”</p>
-
-<p>“Polly! What!&mdash;what do you mean, child? Your
-father, and Max! Where?”</p>
-
-<p>Guy knew, like the rest of his small world, the
-hatred felt by Baker for the Doctor’s son; and while
-the boy tried to assure himself that there was no use
-in heeding incoherent babble from a mere baby like
-Polly, a horrible dread swept across his mind.</p>
-
-<p>“Father’s got him! Oh, Father’s got Mas’r Max!
-Father hates Mas’r Max ’cos he won’t let him beat
-Mummy and me! Father’ll kill Mas’r Max away in
-the dark lane, ’cos&mdash;’cos Mas’r Max held Father to let
-Polly run!”</p>
-
-<p>“It can’t be true! Polly, are you certain you mean
-just what you say? Oh, what’s the use of asking her!
-I’ll do something on the chance&mdash;”</p>
-
-<p>Guy thought a moment, then, picking up the child,
-ran at his best speed up the road to Dr. Brenton’s
-house, now close at hand.</p>
-
-<p>“Me was comin’ here!” sobbed Polly, as Guy pelted
-in at the gate; “me was comin’ to tell Dokker! Polly
-love Dokker and Mas’r Max. Polly not let Mas’r Max
-be killed dead!”</p>
-
-<p>“You poor little brave thing!” muttered Guy, choking
-back a sob himself. “If anything has happened to
-Max, what will the Doctor do? He is in, I know. I
-saw him go home just half an hour ago. Where’s the<span class="pagenum" id="Page_267">[Pg 267]</span>
-bell? Ugh! how my hand shakes! I’m no better than
-this baby.”</p>
-
-<p>The Doctor was in, heard Guy’s story, and keeping
-over his voice and face a control which amazed his
-boy-visitor, questioned Polly so quietly and gently
-that he drew from her an account clear enough as to
-time and place, and connected enough as to fact, to
-convince himself and Guy that the little one told the
-truth. Then he called Janet, handed Polly into her
-care, and caught up his hat and a thick stick.</p>
-
-<p>Dr. Brenton and Guy ran down the road, side by
-side, at a level, steady trot. Guy kept respectful and
-sympathetic silence. He, like Polly, loved the good
-Doctor and Max.</p>
-
-<p>Suddenly Guy drew from his pocket a whistle, on
-which he blew a loud and shrill blast.</p>
-
-<p>“It’s the Altruists’ whistle, sir,” he explained briefly.
-“Of course we won’t wait, but if there are any of
-‘Ours’ about, they’ll turn up and help.”</p>
-
-<p>“Thanks, lad,” said the Doctor. “We’ll pray as we
-go that Max has escaped from that scoundrel.”</p>
-
-<p>“He wouldn’t try,” said Guy simply, “while Polly
-was about.”</p>
-
-<p>“You’re right,” said the Doctor, and they sped on.</p>
-
-<p>Guy’s whistle roused the echoes. Down the garden-paths
-and the shadowy drives of the larger dwellings
-of Woodend rushed a half-score of Altruists, responsive
-to the well-known signal, and eager to know what had
-brought it forth. For this particular whistle was never
-used save when opportunity offered for the Society’s
-members to justify their motto, “Help Others”. The<span class="pagenum" id="Page_268">[Pg 268]</span>
-running boys soon caught up the Doctor and Guy, and
-heard from the latter, in his breathless undertones,
-what the signal had meant. The lads felt themselves
-in sufficient force to deliver Max from any danger;
-and as the village road was now empty of all save
-stragglers hieing homeward, they attracted no particular
-attention.</p>
-
-<p>“There’s Harry the Giant!” exclaimed Frank Temple,
-who ran beside Guy just in the Doctor’s wake. “He
-might be of use&mdash;I’ll bring him.”</p>
-
-<p>The name of Max sufficed for Harry, who attached
-himself willingly to the little group of boys. Then
-in silence they followed the Doctor out of the village,
-along the uphill country road, and so into the long,
-dark lane, which Polly’s description had enabled Dr.
-Brenton to identify. Half-way up the lane they came
-upon Max, lying, as Baker had left him, in the deep
-shadow of the trees.</p>
-
-<p>All the lads waited silently while the father knelt
-down to examine his son.</p>
-
-<p>“I think he is alive, Guy,” said Dr. Brenton presently,
-while he turned to his young allies a white and
-agonized face; “if he is, that’s the most I can say&mdash;and
-I’m not sure yet. Come, you all cared for him;
-you shall help me to carry him home.”</p>
-
-<p>The boys pressed forward, but Harry, stepping
-quickly in front of them, stooped and raised Max
-carefully in his mighty arms.</p>
-
-<p>“By your leave, gen’lemen,” said the big, good-hearted
-fellow, “there’s none but me as shall carry
-Master Max.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_269">[Pg 269]</span></p>
-<p>And after that there was for Polly’s deliverer a long
-and dreamless night.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_XVI">CHAPTER XVI.<br />
-<small>WANTED&mdash;A NICE SOMEBODY.</small></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p>When Max again looked out on the world with
-seeing eyes, he was lying upon his own bed, a
-fact which for the moment puzzled him exceedingly.
-Because cool air and soft sunshine were coming in at
-the open window; and while it was yet day, Max had
-been wont to work. As he still scolded himself lazily
-for a good-for-nothing lie-abed, and almost resolved to
-rise that very minute, his blinking eyes caught sight
-of a dark mass which resolved itself slowly into the
-definite shape of humanity, and became the motionless
-figure of a man.</p>
-
-<p>“Dad!”</p>
-
-<p>The figure moved, rose, came forward with the
-painful caution of dreary suspense. Dr. Brenton had
-doubted his ears, and Max’s eyelids were together
-again. But gradually they parted, tardily but surely,
-and Max’s lips smiled.</p>
-
-<div class="figcenter illowp50" id="i-269" style="max-width: 28em;">
- <img class="w100" src="images/i-269.png" alt="" />
- <div class="caption"><p>M432</p>
-<p class="center">“THE FIGURE MOVED, ROSE, CAME FORWARD WITH THE
-PAINFUL CAUTION OF DREARY SUSPENSE.”</p></div>
-</div>
-
-<p>The boy heard a low-breathed murmur of thanksgiving.</p>
-
-<p>“Dad!”</p>
-
-<p>“Ah!&mdash;Max!...”</p>
-
-<p>Round the corner of a big screen near the door came
-the eager face of a boy. Just one peep at that other
-boyish face on the pillow, and then Austin’s vanished.<span class="pagenum" id="Page_270">[Pg 270]</span>
-A minute later its owner, on shoeless feet, was dancing
-a wild jig of enthusiasm on the landing outside. For
-the great London specialist, Sir Gerald Turner, had
-said that if, within a certain time, Max recovered consciousness,
-there might be a chance for his life. And
-Austin had firm faith in that “chance”.</p>
-
-<p>Sir Gerald had found it convenient to spend a
-country holiday with his brother, Betty’s father, and
-might be relied on to be within hail. Max’s case was
-interesting, and Sir Gerald liked Dr. Brenton. So now
-Austin, with one brief word to Janet, found his boots,
-dragged them on somehow, and flew to summon the
-famous physician. Sir Gerald came at a pace which
-tried Austin’s patience to the last degree; but as the
-man was not to be hurried, the boy ran in advance,
-and wondered as he went what it could feel like to
-give a verdict for life or death.</p>
-
-<p>Dr. Brenton came to meet his coadjutor, and led him
-upstairs. The two friends, speaking in whispers, passed
-out of Austin’s ken. Then the boy, studying his watch,
-learned that Sir Gerald could actually be heartless
-enough to keep him in horrible uncertainty for a good
-ten minutes, and wondered how London could produce
-and tolerate such a monster. The distant hum of voices
-heard murmuringly through Max’s window overhead
-was so intolerable that Austin covered his ears with his
-hands as he rocked to and fro on the doorstep. Thus
-he was taken by surprise when a hand was laid kindly
-on his shoulder, and a voice said gently:</p>
-
-<p>“Be comforted, my boy. Your playfellow is better:
-he is going to pull through.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_271">[Pg 271]</span></p>
-
-<p>Austin’s wild shout of joy made Max stir in his
-health-giving sleep; but after all it did no harm, and
-carried to a little knot of waiting Altruists the first
-glad prophecy of better things to come.</p>
-
-<hr class="tb" />
-
-<p>Max improved slowly, and at length reached a point
-of improvement beyond which he seemed unable to
-go. No one was more disturbed than he that this
-should be the case. His father was palpably uneasy
-at leaving him, and yet work must be attended to.
-His own pensioners were doubtless in need of him,
-though the entire body of Altruists had placed themselves
-unreservedly at his service.</p>
-
-<p>Through the cloudless days of a beautiful May the
-Doctor’s son struggled back to life, and learned afresh
-how sweet a thing it was. He never was lonely, for
-some boy or girl was always at hand to look after
-food and medicines, tell stories, and invite orders. On
-his own behalf Max was not exigent; but his comrades
-found out, during those days of vicarious work among
-the sick and sorry of Woodend, how busy a person
-“the young Doc” had become, and how many of his
-glad boyish hours must have been given freely to the
-helping of others.</p>
-
-<p>“Max was an Altruist long before we started our
-Society,” remarked Frances meditatively. “I don’t
-know how he managed to do all he did.”</p>
-
-<p>“‘Busy people always have most time,’” said Betty
-sententiously.</p>
-
-<p>“Will Max ever be busy again, I wonder?” questioned
-Florry. “Oh, poor Max!&mdash;if he doesn’t get<span class="pagenum" id="Page_272">[Pg 272]</span>
-well! I heard Dr. Brenton tell Papa that Max didn’t
-get on a bit, and that he had been so badly hurt.&mdash;Oh,
-Frances! wasn’t it cruel?”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes; but Max is a hero, and we’re proud of him.
-And he’s quite brave about it. If he fretted, he
-wouldn’t have half so good a chance; but since he’s
-plucky and quiet he will surely get well some day.
-Meanwhile, we can take care of all his ‘cases’.&mdash;I
-dressed a burn to-day,” finished Frances triumphantly.
-“The child had come to see Max&mdash;just fancy&mdash;and I
-took him in, and Max showed me how to do it.”</p>
-
-<p>“We’ll start an ambulance class, and beg Dr. Brenton
-to teach us,” said Betty. “I should like it. I’m
-going to be a doctor some day, and live in Harley
-Street, and be rich and famous, and cure all the people
-nobody else can cure;&mdash;I’ll be just like Uncle Gerald.”</p>
-
-<p>“And Florry will be rich and famous too,” sighed
-Frances; “she’ll write hooks and plays and be as
-great an author as you will be a doctor. Oh, dear! I
-sha’n’t be anybody particular. I’ll just have to stay at
-home and help Max with his easy cases.”</p>
-
-<p>“I can tell you something more about Max,” said
-Betty. “Uncle Gerald says Dr. Brenton ought to
-send him away yachting with somebody who would
-take great care of him, and then he would get well a
-great deal sooner. I’m on the look-out for a nice
-Somebody to do it. I’ve a cousin who has a yacht, and
-I wrote to him, and what do you think the wretch
-replied? ‘Catch me plaguing myself with an invalid
-boy!’ I sha’n’t speak to him when he comes here
-again.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_273">[Pg 273]</span></p>
-
-<p>“I wouldn’t,” said Florry, with equal determination.</p>
-
-<p>“He doesn’t know Max,” said Frances.</p>
-
-<p>“We will ask all the Altruists to ‘look out for a
-nice Somebody’ to take Max a sea-voyage,” said
-Florry. “I dare say we shall soon find someone.
-Now, good-bye, girls; it’s my turn to be nurse. I’ve a
-lovely story by Stanley Weyman to read to Max, and
-I’m aching to begin it.”</p>
-
-<p>If the care and service of his friends could have
-cured the sick boy he would have made a wonderfully
-quick recovery. As it was, they certainly helped him
-loyally through the long days of his pain and weakness;
-and the persistent cheerfulness of their prophecies
-as to his future coloured insensibly his own
-thoughts, and made them usually bright and always
-contented. Then, though the details of Baker’s capture
-by a band of Woodend villagers, and his exemplary
-punishment at their hands, were still withheld from
-him, he had the relief of knowing that the brutal rascal
-of Lumber’s Yard had been packed off to America,
-with a threat of legal proceedings should he dare to
-reappear in Woodend; and that Bell Baker, free of his
-tyranny, was developing into a good mother and tidy
-housewife. Max’s friends found her as much work as
-she could do; and the Altruists helped her judiciously
-with extra food and clothing for her little ones.</p>
-
-<p>Moreover, the Woodend gentlemen held a meeting,
-at which they said many pleasant things about the
-Doctor’s son, and many serious ones about the condition
-of the worst part of their village. Edward Carlyon
-gave his testimony; and it was resolved to<span class="pagenum" id="Page_274">[Pg 274]</span>
-attempt the purchase of Lumber’s Yard. This plan
-was actually carried out almost immediately; and a
-few months later the “Jolly Dog” and the surrounding
-wretched dwellings were pulled down, and Lumber’s
-Yard was no more. Instead, the proud villagers beheld
-a row of pretty cottages about an open green;
-and to the small colony was given, by universal vote,
-the name of young Max Brenton.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_XVII">CHAPTER XVII.<br />
-<small>LESSING OF LESSING’S CREEK.</small></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p>“Things are looking up, or else the world is coming
-to an end. Jim has a visitor.”</p>
-
-<p>“Truly?”</p>
-
-<p>“On my word of honour. I say, Frances, he’s such
-a quaint chap to look at.”</p>
-
-<p>“Somebody else is quaint to look at. I hope you
-weren’t in your shirt-sleeves when you answered the
-door?”</p>
-
-<p>“Well&mdash;hardly. I believe I wore a complete shirt,
-likewise a pair of breeks.”</p>
-
-<p>“Run away, boy. I’m busy.”</p>
-
-<p>“So am I&mdash;awful. But in the goodness of my
-heart I just looked in to bring you the news. The
-fellow told me his name was Tom Lessing, of Lessing’s
-Creek Farm, Douglas River, Australia. Pretty wide
-address. He asked for Jim, and said Jim would be
-sure to see him, so I sent him along to the smithy.<span class="pagenum" id="Page_275">[Pg 275]</span>
-But first, as I didn’t want to miss a chance, I inquired
-if he had happened to meet Mr. Walter Keith&mdash;thinking
-that he would have run across Cousin Walter as
-likely as not. But he hadn’t.”</p>
-
-<p>“That was remarkable. Australia, as you observed,
-is a wide address.”</p>
-
-<p>“Well, there was no harm in asking. I hope Jim
-will invite Tom Lessing, of Lessing’s Creek Farm, to
-dinner. I’d love to hear a backwoodsman talk. I’d
-love to go to Australia. Isn’t it odd of Jim not to
-long to be a colonist? He says he wouldn’t like it a
-bit.”</p>
-
-<p>“Cousin Walter hasn’t particularly enjoyed being a
-colonist, Master Adventurous.”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, that’s because he didn’t learn a trade before
-he went, and because he didn’t understand sheep-farming,
-and because he’s a bit of a duffer all round!
-Now, Jim’s got a kernel in his nut&mdash;”</p>
-
-<p>“Austin!”</p>
-
-<p>“Well, brains in his cranium, then. I’m off to peep
-in on Tom Lessing, of Lessing’s Creek Farm.”</p>
-
-<p>“No, dear, don’t. Perhaps he and Jim are old
-friends.”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes, they are. He said so. He said a jolly lot in
-two minutes, I can tell you.”</p>
-
-<p>“Then I wouldn’t pry, Austin. They may have a
-great deal to tell each other.”</p>
-
-<p>“Well, I won’t pry. I’ll just stroll past the smithy.”</p>
-
-<p>“I thought you were so fearfully busy?”</p>
-
-<p>“So I am. I’m busy keeping you posted up in the
-latest intelligence.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_276">[Pg 276]</span></p>
-
-<p>“Mamma wants some peas gathered. Get them for
-her, there’s a dear.”</p>
-
-<p>“None of your blarney! You want to watch over
-my manners by keeping me in sight. Not a bit!
-Tom Lessing, like a magnet, lures me to Lessing’s
-Creek Farm, Douglas River, Australia.”</p>
-
-<p>Austin walked with dignity out by the backdoor,
-but presently put his head in again, and remarked:</p>
-
-<p>“Of course I’ll gather the peas&mdash;enough for five!”</p>
-
-<hr class="tb" />
-
-<p>Mrs. Morland was seated shelling peas in the
-orchard,&mdash;it was a warm June morning,&mdash;when her
-stepson, walking quickly over the short, sweet-smelling
-grass, came to her side.</p>
-
-<p>“Can you spare a minute?” he asked with his old
-nervousness. The sight of his stepmother taking part
-in the day’s household work always increased his
-uneasy sense of his own shortcomings.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, yes! Have you anything to tell me, James?”</p>
-
-<p>“Just that an old friend has come to see me, and is
-still here. He’s waiting for me in the smithy. Tom
-Lessing and I used to be great chums once on a time,
-though his people were better off than mine. He
-went out to Australia four years ago, and he has done
-very well.” Mrs. Morland heard a slight sigh. “He
-always was a very capable chap, and he has a splendid
-farm out there now. I&mdash;I think the children would
-like him; he has seen such a lot. Please, would you
-mind very much if I kept him to dinner?”</p>
-
-<p>“Is he very rough? I do not mean to hurt you,
-James; but you know I have Frances to think of.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_277">[Pg 277]</span></p>
-
-<p>“I would not let a rough fellow come near the
-children,” said Jim in gentle reproach.</p>
-
-<p>“No&mdash;no. I am sure you would not. Then, pray
-keep your friend. I will help Frances to prepare
-something extra, and he shall be made welcome.”</p>
-
-<p>“Thank you very much,” said Jim gratefully.
-“Tom has come to England for a holiday, and he is
-going to take lodgings in Exham for a few days, so
-that we may see something of each other. I should
-not wish him to come here, Mrs. Morland,” added Jim
-simply, “if you were afraid for the children; but,
-indeed, Tom is a nice fellow, and I think you will not
-dislike him.”</p>
-
-<p>The last words proved true. Tom Lessing had not
-long been in Mrs. Morland’s presence before she had
-decided that she liked him very much. He was
-several years older than her stepson, and as big and
-strong as Jim was slight and active. He treated Jim’s
-“lady-folk” with courteous deference, and was evidently
-able to polish his “backwoodsman” manners
-for fit converse in an English home. The dinner
-passed off pleasantly, Jim and Austin distinguishing
-themselves as waiters. The visitor enjoyed everything,
-and behaved in an easy, natural fashion which
-had nothing vulgar about it. Mrs. Morland reflected
-that her stepson must have followed some wise instinct
-in the choice of his boyhood’s friends.</p>
-
-<p>That dinner was the first of several meals shared
-by Tom with his old chum, and his chum’s kindred.
-Privately, he declared that Jim was a lucky chap to
-have proved his right to claim relationship with such<span class="pagenum" id="Page_278">[Pg 278]</span>
-a bright, plucky little pair as his lately-discovered
-brother and sister; and then he added a few words in
-acknowledgment of Mrs. Morland’s courteous welcome,
-which made Jim happier than anything. Besides
-sharing meals, Tom found himself made free of the
-smithy, where he held exhaustive discussions with
-Jim, and of the orchard, where he romped with
-Austin, to the latter’s great content.</p>
-
-<p>During the old friends’ exchange of confidences and
-record of experiences, Jim was lured into expressions
-of feeling with regard to his kindred which made
-good-hearted Tom look on the lad with kindly and
-pitying eyes. With him, overwrought Jim felt he
-might venture to unbosom himself of his anxieties and
-ambitions concerning the future. Jim’s desired course
-of action tended in only one way&mdash;the proper maintenance,
-in ease and comfort, of his stepmother and
-sister, and the careful training of his brother with a
-view to Austin’s adoption of some honourable profession.
-While uttering his aspirations, Jim revealed to
-his attentive chum the reality of his pride in the girl
-and boy who depended on him, and his deep affection
-for them. Tom listened and pondered, and made up
-his mind. His liking for “young East” had always
-been something more than mere boyish comradeship;
-and the respect and sympathy with which he quietly
-noted Jim’s hard and continual effort to live up to his
-own high standard of duty now added to Tom’s former
-easy liking the deeper regard of his maturer years.</p>
-
-<hr class="tb" />
-
-<p>One morning Frances, wandering through the orchard<span class="pagenum" id="Page_279">[Pg 279]</span>
-for a breath of cool air, came suddenly on Jim,
-who was lying at full length on the bank in the
-shadow of the hedge, his head pillowed on his folded
-arms. There was something so forlorn in the lad’s
-attitude that Frances feared some fresh trouble had
-overtaken him; and she was not surprised that his
-face, when he raised it in answer to her call, was
-darkened by a deep dejection.</p>
-
-<p>“Jim&mdash;Jim! What is the matter? Now, it’s no
-use to try to hide things, Jim! You know it isn’t.
-Just tell me.”</p>
-
-<p>Jim dragged himself up to his sister’s level as she
-sat down beside him, and his eyes rested very wistfully
-on her inquiring face. So long and sad was his
-gaze that the girl grew yet more uncomfortable, and
-repeated her question insistently.</p>
-
-<p>“I’ve no bad news for you, Missy,” said Jim at last,
-with great effort. “None that you will find bad, at
-least. I have heard something, and I’ve been thinking
-it over; that’s all. If I weren’t a coward, it wouldn’t
-have wanted any thinking.”</p>
-
-<p>“Well, what is it, Jim?”</p>
-
-<p>“I will tell you presently, Missy. As well now as
-any time; only I’d like your mother and the lad to
-hear too.”</p>
-
-<p>“Jim,” said Frances, her brave voice quivering
-slightly, “you speak as though your news were
-bad.”</p>
-
-<p>“That’s just my selfishness,” muttered Jim; “I
-couldn’t see all at once the rights of things. I can see
-now.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_280">[Pg 280]</span></p>
-
-<p>“Come indoors and tell us all about it,” said Frances,
-trying to speak cheerfully; “not much news grows
-better by keeping.”</p>
-
-<p>“It could be only a matter of hours for this, anyway,”
-replied Jim gently; “and if your mother is at
-liberty and Austin is at home, I will do as you
-wish.”</p>
-
-<p>So Frances led the way, and the pair walked soberly
-to the little house which had become to both a
-cherished home.</p>
-
-<p>Jim waited at the back-door while his sister went
-to look for her mother and brother, and finding them
-both in the study, sharing the window-seat, and the
-task of snipping gooseberries, ran back to summon the
-“head of the family”.</p>
-
-<p>All the responsibility of headship was in the lad’s
-countenance as he entered the study in his sister’s
-wake. He stood silent while Frances, in brief fashion,
-explained the situation; but something in her stepson’s
-look caught and held Mrs. Morland’s attention,
-and made her suspect that a tragedy might underlie
-Jim’s unusual calmness. She could not guess how
-hard he had striven to reach the degree of composure
-necessary to satisfy his stepmother’s ideal of good
-breeding.</p>
-
-<p>“Yes, I’ve something to tell,” he said, when Frances
-paused, “and I hope it will mean a real difference to
-you all. I had no right to look forward to such a
-chance as I have had given me, and I know you’ll
-wonder at it too&mdash;”</p>
-
-<p>“James,” interrupted Mrs. Morland, with an acute<span class="pagenum" id="Page_281">[Pg 281]</span>
-glance, “you don’t look as though the chance were
-altogether welcome.”</p>
-
-<p>“That’s what I told him,” said Frances brightly.
-“He pretends to bring good news, but I believe he’s a
-deceiver.”</p>
-
-<p>Jim flushed slightly, and hung his head. “You must
-please forgive me,” he murmured, “if I seem ungrateful
-and selfish. Indeed, I want to see how everything’s
-for the best. I’ll be quick now, and tell my news.
-You know Tom Lessing has a fine place in Australia,
-and is making money fast. He has a lot of hands,
-and seems to pay them well; and he gives every one
-of them a share in his profits over and above their
-salaries. Tom is very kind, and&mdash;you’ve all been
-good and kind to him, for which we both thank
-you.”</p>
-
-<p>Though Jim spoke earnestly, there was an aloofness
-in his manner which touched all his listeners,
-and reminded them, with keen shame, what scanty
-cause he had, even now, to feel himself one of them.
-Frances impulsively moved a step nearer him, and
-stopped, overcome by the constraint she could not
-disguise; Austin sprang to his brother’s side, and
-pressed affectionately against him. Jim gently held
-him off, as though the lad’s caresses threatened his
-own self-control; but his hand kept the boy within
-reach, and once or twice passed tenderly over Austin’s
-tumbled curly head. If Mrs. Morland ever had
-doubted her stepson’s love for her children, the suspicion
-from that moment died away.</p>
-
-<p>“Because he is kind, and because you have been<span class="pagenum" id="Page_282">[Pg 282]</span>
-good to him,” continued Jim, “Tom has given me a
-chance. He has offered to take me back with him to
-Australia, and to find me a good place as one of his
-overseers. He says I’d soon learn enough to be of use,
-and he’d help me to get on. I should have two
-hundred and fifty a year; and as I’d live with him,
-he’d give me board and lodging too. So, since I
-shouldn’t want much for clothes, I could send nearly
-all my earnings home; and there would be grandfather’s
-money as well, and we would sell the smithy.
-I’ve been thinking you might have a little house in
-Woodend, and the children would go to school again,
-and by and by Austin would go to college. I hope
-you would be very happy.”</p>
-
-<p>The speaker’s lips trembled for just a second, in
-evidence of full heart and highly-strung nerves. Then
-Jim, with courageous eyes, looked across the room for
-comments and congratulations.</p>
-
-<p>“We should be very happy?” queried Frances; and
-this time she went close to her brother, and took his
-hand. “Oh, Jim!” she exclaimed, her eyes bright with
-tears; “don’t go away from us, dear Jim!”</p>
-
-<p>“You sha’n’t go away&mdash;so that’s all about it!”
-cried Austin, with a masterful toss of his fair head.
-“You sha’n’t oversee anybody, except us. It’s tommy-rot.”</p>
-
-<p>“We are happy now,” continued Frances in trembling
-haste. “We don’t want any more money, if
-we can’t have it without giving you up to Australia.
-What’s the use of having found you, Jim, if you go
-away again?”</p>
-
-<div class="figcenter illowp50" id="i-283" style="max-width: 28em;">
- <img class="w100" src="images/i-283.png" alt="" />
- <div class="caption"><p>M432</p>
-<p class="center">“AH! BUT YOU WOULD MAKE SUCH A MISTAKE IF YOU THOUGHT
-WE WOULD LET YOU GO.”</p></div>
-</div>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_283">[Pg 283]</span></p>
-
-<p>Boy and girl, on either side, were clinging tightly
-to him. Jim, trying to be calm&mdash;trying to be brave&mdash;looked
-desperately to his stepmother for her expected
-support. If she should quench Austin and Frances
-with some cynical reproof&mdash;if she should accept Jim’s
-final sacrifice with just a word of contemptuous indifference&mdash;surely
-his pride would help his judgment
-to keep fast hold of his failing courage.</p>
-
-<p>Mrs. Morland had already risen, and was coming
-towards him now with hands outstretched, and in her
-face the light of a motherly love to which Jim could
-not try to be blind.</p>
-
-<p>“Would you really do that for us?” she asked, smiling,
-though her voice was not quite steady. “Ah! but
-you would make such a mistake if you thought we
-would let you go. Frances is right;&mdash;we can do without
-wealth, but we can’t do without you!”</p>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_XVIII">CHAPTER XVIII.<br />
-<small>TO THE FAR SOUTH.</small></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p>“And so you want me to go back to Australia alone?
-But, my dear madam, consider. Though I say
-it, this is a really first-rate opening for Jim&mdash;and
-remember the advantage to your own children. You
-won’t think me impertinent, will you, for what may
-seem a cool sort of interference in your affairs? You
-and all your family have been so kind to me that I
-can’t help taking a warm interest in your children;<span class="pagenum" id="Page_284">[Pg 284]</span>
-and as for Jim&mdash;I think he’s first-rate. I quite admit
-that, in wanting him, I’ve a selfish regard for my own
-concerns.”</p>
-
-<p>“I don’t believe there’s an atom of selfishness about
-you, Mr. Lessing,” replied Mrs. Morland, speaking
-slowly and very sincerely. “I am not in the least
-offended by your frank speech, for I appreciate to the
-full all you say about my children. Among ‘my children’,
-you must please include Jim; and when I say
-that your opinion of him is also mine, I think you will
-see why I want to keep him with me. He is willing
-to endure exile for the sake of his sister and brother;
-but I no longer think, as I’m afraid I did once, that Jim
-ought to give all and receive nothing. Frances and
-Austin are not afraid of work, and are anxious to do
-all they can to ease the load which, as you know, at
-present lies chiefly on their brother. By and by they
-will relieve him more. No, Mr. Lessing, we can’t part
-with Jim. To be plain, we are indebted to you for
-teaching us how much we need him.”</p>
-
-<p>“Then that’s all right,” returned Tom heartily, “and
-glad am I to hear it. I didn’t take long to see that
-the foolish lad was breaking his heart because he
-fancied the young folks and you would just as soon
-be without him. So, thought I, let Jim put it to the
-test: if he’s right, he’ll do better to make a fresh start
-and learn to stand alone; if he’s wrong, he’ll be a
-happy fellow when he discovers it. There, you’ll
-forgive me, won’t you? I meant my offer straight
-enough, and I mean it still. It rests with you whether
-Jim has a way made clear for him, or whether he<span class="pagenum" id="Page_285">[Pg 285]</span>
-hasn’t. He won’t leave you and the children. Well
-and good: let you and the children come with him.
-A minute more&mdash;best allow me to say my say, and
-then you’ll find it easier to answer. My place out
-there is not so lonely that you need fear to be beyond
-civilization. There’s Douglas Town near at hand, with
-good schools and the rest, and plenty of nice folk of a
-sort you could make friends with. Then the air is dry
-and bracing&mdash;just the thing for your boy. Lastly,&mdash;and
-this is a bit personal, maybe,&mdash;if you and the young
-people came out with Jim, you’d find a home ready-made.
-The Creek Farm badly wants a mistress, and
-I’d be proud to see you reign there, and grateful too.
-I’m not a marrying man&mdash;now. I had my dream;&mdash;you’ll
-not think the worse of me, Mrs. Morland,&mdash;it’s
-over. But I can fancy what a difference it would
-make out yonder, if there were a kindly, gracious
-gentlewoman in authority. As for Miss Frances, she’d
-just be the light of the place. Last of all, I’d like to
-say that our exile&mdash;for so it is to every son of Old
-England&mdash;needn’t be for always. When Jim and I
-had made our pile,&mdash;and we’d try to be quick about
-it,&mdash;we’d all come home again; in time, maybe, for
-Austin to keep his terms at Oxford. Well, that’s all
-I need trouble you with for a first start; details can
-follow. I think you know enough to be able to decide.”</p>
-
-<hr class="tb" />
-
-<p>Mrs. Morland’s decision was not arrived at all at once,
-or without some serious deliberations with her “trio”.
-They were all old enough to comprehend both the
-advantages and disadvantages of the plan proposed by<span class="pagenum" id="Page_286">[Pg 286]</span>
-Lessing; but Austin’s delight at the prospect of becoming
-a “backwoodsman” was not to be damped by the
-assurance that in Australia, as in England, he would
-have to be just a schoolboy for a good while yet.
-The only regret of the two youngest of the family
-was the anticipation of a long parting from friends
-tried and true; but various circumstances rendered
-this outlook less dismal than it might have been.
-Florry Fane and her parents were going to the
-Normandy aunt for a lengthy stay; Guy Gordon and
-Frank Temple were bound for Harrow next term;
-Betty Turner and the First Violin were at the same
-date to become pupils of Miss Cliveden at Haversfield
-College.</p>
-
-<p>And Max? Well, Max’s movements were decided
-for him by Frances at the outset of the family deliberations.</p>
-
-<p>“A voyage to Australia! The very thing for Max!
-And we could keep him out there until he was quite
-well and strong, and bring him back in time for
-college with Austin!”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes, we must have Max,” declared Lessing, who
-had given a good many hours to the entertainment of
-Woodend’s petted “hero”, and accounted himself a
-favoured friend of the young Doctor and the old.
-“And why shouldn’t his father come too? I’d
-guarantee him plenty of practice: we’d give our ears
-for an English medical man out there. I’ll wager he’d
-make his fortune faster than any of us.”</p>
-
-<p>After that, Dr. Brenton joined in one or two of the
-councils, but his decision was arrived at more easily<span class="pagenum" id="Page_287">[Pg 287]</span>
-than Mrs. Morland’s. He had only Max to think of,
-and Sir Gerald said that a sea-voyage and a prolonged
-residence in a fine climate would certainly save Max
-for a useful maturity. The Doctor set his old dreams
-aside, and made a final draw on “Examinations”. If
-that hoarded fund would give his boy present ease and
-future vigour, he could afford to wait patiently and let
-the world slip by. Some day Max would find his life-work:
-what it might be his father no longer cared to
-anticipate. Enough to know that the crown of a worthy
-manhood must be the unfailing reward of a generous
-and unselfish youth.</p>
-
-<p>At last Mrs. Morland spoke.</p>
-
-<p>“Children, I think that we will go. Jim ought to
-have his chance, and we don’t wish to separate.
-That, after all, sums up everything for the present, so
-the question is answered easily enough.... Now,
-we must not keep back Mr. Lessing, and he is kindly
-anxious to take us with him. Besides, let us remember
-Max, whose hope of health depends, it seems, on a
-quick departure. We must help each other to make
-haste.”</p>
-
-<hr class="tb" />
-
-<p>We cannot here follow our three young Altruists
-into their busy lives across seas; but we know that
-they will ever be the best of comrades, and never
-better than when sharing willing labours in the service
-of all who need their aid.</p>
-
-<p>Frances’s motto, “Help Others”, was faithfully
-cherished in her old home. Woodend kept up
-constant communication with the Creek Farm, and<span class="pagenum" id="Page_288">[Pg 288]</span>
-still hoped some day to welcome the wanderers back.
-Meanwhile, a branch “Society of Altruists” was
-started in the new home in the far southern continent;
-and Antipodean school-fellows of Frances and
-Austin became oddly familiar with a certain corner
-of Old England, and with the girls and boys who
-worked and played together there.</p>
-
-<p class="center">THE END.</p>
-
-<p class="center">PRINTED BY BLACKIE AND SON, LIMITED.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_1">[Pg 1]</span></p>
-
-<div class="figcenter illowp50" id="i-c01" style="max-width: 28em;">
- <img class="w100" src="images/i-c01.png" alt="" />
-</div>
-</div>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="BLACKIE_SONS">BLACKIE &amp; SON’S
-BOOKS FOR YOUNG PEOPLE.</h2>
-
-<h3>BY G. A. HENTY.</h3>
-
-<p>“Mr. Henty’s stores of literary vivacity are inexhaustible, and boys will find
-their old favourite as full of instruction and of excitement as ever.”&mdash;<i>The Times.</i></p>
-
-<p class="center"><i>In crown 8vo, cloth elegant, olivine edges.</i></p>
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>With Frederick the Great</b>: A Tale of the Seven Years’
-War. By <span class="smcap">G. A. Henty</span>. With 12 page Illustrations by <span class="smcap">Wal
-Paget</span>, and Maps. 6<i>s.</i></p>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-<p>“The story is one of Mr. Henty’s best, and so cleverly is history interwoven
-with fiction that the boy who reads it will know as much about the <i>Seven Years’
-War</i> as many an adult student of Carlyle’s masterpiece.”&mdash;<i>Standard.</i></p>
-</div>
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>With Moore at Corunna</b>: A Tale of the Peninsular War.
-By <span class="smcap">G. A. Henty</span>. With 12 page Illustrations by <span class="smcap">Wal Paget</span>. 6<i>s.</i></p>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-<p>“A very spirited story, well worthy to be ranked with the best of Mr. Henty’s
-work. Terence O’Connor, up to the time of the opening of the tale, has done little
-but get into mischief, but as soon as he feels the responsibility of being one of Mr.
-Henty’s heroes, combines discretion with courage, not forgetting, however, to spice
-the mixture with a little fun.”&mdash;<i>Spectator.</i></p>
-</div>
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>The Tiger of Mysore</b>: A Story of the War with Tippoo
-Saib. By <span class="smcap">G. A. Henty</span>. With 12 Illustrations by <span class="smcap">W. H. Margetson</span>,
-and a Map. 6<i>s.</i></p>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-<p>“Mr. Henty not only concocts a thrilling tale, he weaves fact and fiction together
-with so skilful a hand that the reader cannot help acquiring a just and
-clear view of that fierce and terrible struggle which gave to us our Indian Empire.”&mdash;<i>Athenæum.</i></p>
-</div>
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>A Knight of the White Cross</b>: A Tale of the Siege of
-Rhodes. By <span class="smcap">G. A. Henty</span>. With 12 full-page Illustrations by
-<span class="smcap">Ralph Peacock</span>. 6<i>s.</i></p>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-<p>“Mr. Henty is a giant among boys’ writers, and his books are sufficiently
-popular to be sure of a welcome anywhere.... In stirring interest, this is
-quite up to the level of Mr. Henty’s former historical tales.”&mdash;<i>Saturday Review.</i></p>
-</div>
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>When London Burned</b>: A Story of Restoration Times and
-the Great Fire. By <span class="smcap">G. A. Henty</span>. With 12 page Illustrations
-by <span class="smcap">J. Finnemore</span>. 6<i>s.</i></p>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-<p>“No boy needs to have any story of Henty’s recommended to him, and parents
-who do not know and buy him for their boys should be ashamed of themselves.
-Those to whom he is yet unknown could not make a better beginning than with
-<i>When London Burned</i>.”&mdash;<i>British Weekly.</i></p>
-</div>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_cat2">[Pg 2]</span></p>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-<p class="center">“Schoolboys owe a deep debt of gratitude to Mr. Henty.”&mdash;<i>The Record.</i></p>
-</div>
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>At Agincourt</b>: A Tale of the White Hoods of Paris. By
-<span class="smcap">G. A. Henty</span>. With 12 page Illustrations by <span class="smcap">Wal Paget</span>. 6<i>s.</i></p>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-<p>“Mr. Henty’s admirers, and they are many, will accord a hearty welcome to
-the sturdy volume entitled At Agincourt.”&mdash;<i>Athenæum.</i></p>
-</div>
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>The Lion of St. Mark</b>: A Tale of Venice in the Fourteenth
-Century. By <span class="smcap">G. A. Henty</span>. With 10 page Illustrations by <span class="smcap">Gordon
-Browne</span>. 6<i>s.</i></p>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-<p>“Every boy should read <i>The Lion of St. Mark</i>. Mr. Henty has never produced
-any story more delightful, more wholesome, or more vivacious. From first to
-last it will be read with keen enjoyment.”&mdash;<i>Saturday Review.</i></p>
-</div>
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>By England’s Aid</b>: The Freeing of the Netherlands (1585-1604).
-By <span class="smcap">G. A. Henty</span>. With 10 page Illustrations by <span class="smcap">Alfred
-Pearse</span>, and 4 Maps. 6<i>s.</i></p>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-<p>“The story is told with great animation, and the historical material is most
-effectively combined with a most excellent plot.”&mdash;<i>Saturday Review.</i></p>
-</div>
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>With Wolf in Canada</b>: or, The Winning of a Continent.
-By <span class="smcap">G. A. Henty</span>. Illustrated with 12 page Pictures by <span class="smcap">Gordon
-Browne</span>. 6<i>s.</i></p>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-<p>“A model of what a boys’ story-book should be. Mr. Henty has a great power
-of infusing into the dead facts of history new life, and as no pains are spared by
-him to ensure accuracy in historic details, his books supply useful aids to study
-as well as amusement.”&mdash;<i>School Guardian.</i></p>
-</div>
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>Bonnie Prince Charlie</b>: A Tale of Fontenoy and Culloden.
-By <span class="smcap">G. A. Henty</span>. Illustrated with 12 page Pictures by <span class="smcap">Gordon
-Browne</span>. 6<i>s.</i></p>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-<p>“As good a narrative of the kind as we have ever read. For freshness of
-treatment and variety of incident, Mr. Henty has here surpassed himself.”&mdash;<i>Spectator.</i></p>
-</div>
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>For the Temple</b>: A Tale of the Fall of Jerusalem. By
-<span class="smcap">G. A. Henty</span>. With 10 page Illustrations by <span class="smcap">S. J. Solomon</span>, and
-a Coloured Map. 6<i>s.</i></p>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-<p>“Mr. Henty’s graphic prose pictures of the hopeless Jewish resistance to Roman
-sway adds another leaf to his record of the famous wars of the world. The book
-is one of Mr. Henty’s cleverest efforts.”&mdash;<i>Graphic.</i></p>
-</div>
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>True to the Old Flag</b>: A Tale of the American War of
-Independence. By <span class="smcap">G. A. Henty</span>. With 12 page Illustrations by
-<span class="smcap">Gordon Browne</span>. 6<i>s.</i></p>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-<p>“Does justice to the pluck and determination of the British soldiers. The son
-of an American loyalist, who remains true to our flag, falls among the hostile redskins
-in that very Huron country which has been endeared to us by the exploits
-of Hawkeye and Chingachgook.”&mdash;<i>The Times.</i></p>
-</div>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_3">[Pg 3]</span></p>
-
-<div class="figcenter illowp50" id="i-c03" style="max-width: 28em;">
- <img class="w100" src="images/i-c03.png" alt="" />
- <div class="caption"><p>TERENCE FINDS THAT THE <i>SEA-HORSE</i> HAS BEEN BADLY
-MAULED BETWEEN-DECKS.</p></div>
-</div>
-</div>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_4">[Pg 4]</span></p>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-<p>“Among writers of stories of adventure Mr. Henty stands in the very first
-rank.”&mdash;<i>Academy.</i></p>
-</div>
-
-<hr class="r5" />
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>The Young Carthaginian</b>: A Story of the Times of
-Hannibal. By <span class="smcap">G. A. Henty</span>. With 12 page Illustrations by <span class="smcap">C. J.
-Staniland, r.i.</span> 6<i>s.</i></p>
-<div class="blockquot">
-<p>“From first to last nothing stays the interest of the narrative. It bears us
-along as on a stream whose current varies in direction, but never loses its
-force.”&mdash;<i>Saturday Review.</i></p>
-</div>
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>Redskin and Cow-boy</b>: A Tale of the Western Plains. By
-<span class="smcap">G. A. Henty</span>. Illustrated by <span class="smcap">Alfred Pearse</span>. 6<i>s.</i></p>
-<div class="blockquot">
-<p>“It has a good plot; it abounds in action; the scenes are equally spirited and
-realistic. The pictures of life on a cattle ranche are most graphically painted,
-as are the manners of the reckless but jovial cow-boys.”&mdash;<i>Times.</i></p>
-</div>
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>The Lion of the North</b>: A Tale of Gustavus Adolphus.
-By <span class="smcap">G. A. Henty</span>. With 12 page Pictures by <span class="smcap">J. Schönberg</span>. 6<i>s.</i></p>
-<div class="blockquot">
-<p>“A praiseworthy attempt to interest British youth in the great deeds of the
-Scotch Brigade in the wars of Gustavus Adolphus.”&mdash;<i>Athenæum.</i></p>
-</div>
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>With Clive in India</b>: or, The Beginnings of an Empire.
-By <span class="smcap">G. A. Henty</span>. Illustrated by <span class="smcap">Gordon Browne</span>. 6<i>s.</i></p>
-<div class="blockquot">
-<p>“Those who know something about India will be the most ready to thank
-Mr. Henty for giving them this instructive volume to place in the hands of their
-children.”&mdash;<i>Academy.</i></p>
-</div>
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>In Greek Waters</b>: A Story of the Grecian War of Independence
-(1821-1827). By <span class="smcap">G. A. Henty</span>. With 12 page Illustrations
-by <span class="smcap">W. S. Stacey</span>, and a Map. 6<i>s.</i></p>
-<div class="blockquot">
-<p>“An excellent story, and if the proportion of history is smaller than usual, the
-whole result leaves nothing to be desired.”&mdash;<i>Journal of Education.</i></p>
-</div>
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>The Dash for Khartoum</b>: A Tale of the Nile Expedition.
-By <span class="smcap">G. A. Henty</span>. With 10 page Illustrations by <span class="smcap">J. Schönberg</span> and
-<span class="smcap">J. Nash</span>, and 4 Plans. 6<i>s.</i></p>
-<div class="blockquot">
-<p>“It is literally true that the narrative never flags for a moment; the incidents
-which fall to be recorded after the dash for Khartoum has been made and failed
-are quite as interesting as those which precede it.”&mdash;<i>Academy.</i></p>
-</div>
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>With Lee in Virginia</b>: A Story of the American Civil
-War. By <span class="smcap">G. A. Henty</span>. With 10 page Illustrations by <span class="smcap">Gordon
-Browne</span>, and 6 Maps. 6<i>s.</i></p>
-<div class="blockquot">
-<p>“The story is a capital one and full of variety. Young Wingfield, who is
-conscientious, spirited, and ‘hard as nails’, would have been a man after the
-very heart of Stonewall Jackson.”&mdash;<i>Times.</i></p>
-</div>
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>By Right of Conquest</b>: or, With Cortez in Mexico. By
-<span class="smcap">G. A. Henty</span>. With 10 page Illustrations by <span class="smcap">W. S. Stacey</span>. 6<i>s.</i></p>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-<p>“<i>By Right of Conquest</i> is the nearest approach to a perfectly successful historical
-tale that Mr. Henty has yet published.”&mdash;<i>Academy.</i></p>
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-</div>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_cat5">[Pg 5]</span></p>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-<p>“Mr. Henty is the king of story-tellers for boys.”&mdash;<i>Sword and Trowel.</i></p>
-</div>
-
-<hr class="r5" />
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>Through the Fray</b>: A Story of the Luddite Riots. By
-<span class="smcap">G. A. Henty</span>. With
-12 page Illustrations
-by <span class="smcap">H. M. Paget</span>. 6<i>s.</i></p>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-<p>“One of the best of the
-many good books he has
-produced, and deserves to
-be classed with his <i>Facing
-Death</i>.”&mdash;<i>Standard.</i></p>
-</div>
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>Captain Bayley’s
-Heir</b>: A Tale of
-the Gold Fields.
-By <span class="smcap">G. A. Henty</span>.
-Illustrated by <span class="smcap">H.
-M. Paget</span>. 6<i>s.</i></p>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-<p>“A Westminster boy who
-makes his way in the world
-by hard work, good temper,
-and unfailing courage.”&mdash;<i>St.
-James’s Gazette.</i></p>
-</div>
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>St. Bartholomew’s
-Eve.</b>
-By <span class="smcap">G. A. Henty</span>.
-Illustrated by <span class="smcap">H.
-J. Draper</span>. 6<i>s.</i></p>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-<p>“Is in Mr. Henty’s best
-style, and the interest
-never flags.”&mdash;<i>Journal of
-Education.</i></p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="figcenter illowp50" id="i-c05" style="max-width: 28em;">
- <img class="w100" src="images/i-c05.png" alt="" />
- <div class="caption"><p><i>Reduced Illustration
-from “With Frederick the Great”.</i></p></div>
-</div>
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>In Freedom’s Cause</b>: A Story of Wallace and Bruce. By
-<span class="smcap">G. A. Henty</span>. Illustrated by <span class="smcap">Gordon Browne</span>. 6<i>s.</i></p>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-<p>“His tale of the days of Wallace and Bruce is full of stirring action, and will
-commend itself to boys.”&mdash;<i>Athenæum.</i></p>
-</div>
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>With Cochrane the Dauntless</b>: A Tale of the Exploits
-of Lord Cochrane in South American Waters. By <span class="smcap">G. A. Henty</span>.
-With 12 page Illustrations by <span class="smcap">W. H. Margetson</span>. 6<i>s.</i></p>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-<p>“This tale we specially recommend; for the career of Lord Cochrane and his
-many valiant fights in the cause of liberty deserve to be better known than they
-are.”&mdash;<i>St. James’s Gazette.</i></p>
-</div>
-
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_cat6">[Pg 6]</span></p>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-<p>“Mr. Henty is one of the best of story-tellers for young people.”&mdash;<i>Spectator.</i></p>
-</div>
-
-<hr class="r5" />
-<p class="hanging2"><b>Beric the Briton</b>: A Story of the Roman Invasion. By
-<span class="smcap">G. A. Henty</span>. Illustrated
-by <span class="smcap">W. Parkinson</span>.
-6<i>s.</i></p>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-<p>“Mr. Henty has done his
-utmost to make an impressive
-picture of the haughty Roman
-character, with its indomitable
-courage, sternness, and
-discipline. <i>Beric</i> is good all
-through.”&mdash;<i>Spectator.</i></p>
-</div>
-<div class="figcenter illowp50" id="i-c06" style="max-width: 28em;">
- <img class="w100" src="images/i-c06.png" alt="" />
- <div class="caption"><p><i>Reduced Illustration from “Beric the Briton”.</i></p></div>
-</div>
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>By Pike and Dyke</b>:
-A Tale of the Rise of
-the Dutch Republic.
-By <span class="smcap">G. A. Henty</span>.
-With 10 page Illustrations
-by <span class="smcap">Maynard
-Brown</span>, and 4 Maps.
-6<i>s.</i></p>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-<p>“Told with a vividness and
-skill worthy of Mr. Henty at
-his best.”&mdash;<i>Academy.</i></p>
-</div>
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>Wulf the Saxon</b>:
-A Story of the Norman
-Conquest. By <span class="smcap">G.
-A. Henty</span>. Illustrated
-by <span class="smcap">Ralph Peacock</span>.
-6<i>s.</i></p>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-<p>“<i>Wulf the Saxon</i> is second to none of Mr. Henty’s historical tales, and we may
-safely say that a boy may learn from it more genuine history than he will from
-many a tedious tome.”&mdash;<i>The Spectator.</i></p>
-</div>
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>Through the Sikh War</b>: A Tale of the Conquest of the
-Punjaub. By <span class="smcap">G. A. Henty</span>. With 12 page Illustrations by <span class="smcap">Hal
-Hurst</span>, and a Map. 6<i>s.</i></p>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-<p>“We have never read a more vivid and faithful narrative of military adventure
-in India.”&mdash;<i>The Academy.</i></p>
-</div>
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>Under Drake’s Flag</b>: A Tale of the Spanish Main. By
-<span class="smcap">G. A. Henty</span>. Illustrated by <span class="smcap">Gordon Browne</span>. 6<i>s.</i></p>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-<p>“There is not a dull chapter, nor, indeed, a dull page in the book; the author
-has so carefully worked up his subject that the exciting deeds of his heroes
-are never incongruous or absurd.”&mdash;<i>Observer.</i></p>
-</div>
-
-<hr class="r5" />
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_cat7">[Pg 7]</span></p>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-<p>“G. A. Henty more than holds his own as the prince of story-tellers for boys.”&mdash;<i>St.
-James’s Gazette.</i></p>
-</div>
-<hr class="r5" />
-<p class="hanging2"><b>A March on London</b>: Being a Story of Wat Tyler’s Insurrection.
-By <span class="smcap">G. A. Henty</span>. With 8 page Illustrations by <span class="smcap">W. H.
-Margetson</span>. 5<i>s.</i></p>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-<p>“Mr. Henty, true as ever, tells a capital story, and keeps up to the high standard
-of interest which we have learnt to expect from him.”&mdash;<i>Spectator.</i></p>
-
-<p>“The story of Wat Tyler’s ever-famous insurrection is set forth with a degree
-of cunning and an eye for effect that may always be looked for in the work that
-comes from this practised hand. Mr. Henty deals with troublesome times and
-with characters that have left their mark on the pages of history. He is fresh,
-virile, and never dull, and this volume must needs add to his reputation.”&mdash;<i>Daily
-Telegraph.</i></p>
-</div>
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>On the Irrawaddy</b>: A Story of the first Burmese War.
-With 8 Illustrations by <span class="smcap">W. H. Overend</span>. Crown 8vo, cloth
-elegant, olivine edges, 5<i>s.</i></p>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-<p>“Altogether this is a capital story, and the descriptions of the Burmese cities
-are very good.”&mdash;<i>The Times.</i></p>
-
-<p>“Stanley Brook’s pluck is even greater than his luck, and he is precisely the
-boy to hearten with emulation the boys who read his stirring story.”&mdash;<i>Saturday
-Review.</i></p>
-</div>
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>Through Russian Snows</b>: A Story of Napoleon’s Retreat
-from Moscow. By <span class="smcap">G. A. Henty</span>. With 8 Illustrations by <span class="smcap">W. H.
-Overend</span>, and a Map. 5<i>s.</i></p>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-<p>“Julian, the hero of the story, early excites our admiration, and is altogether
-a fine character such as boys will delight in, whilst the story of the campaign is
-very graphically told.... Will, we think, prove one of the most popular boys’
-books this season.”&mdash;<i>St. James’s Gazette.</i></p>
-</div>
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>In the Heart of the Rockies</b>: A Story of Adventure in
-Colorado. By <span class="smcap">G. A. Henty</span>. Illustrated by <span class="smcap">G. C. Hindley</span>. 5<i>s.</i></p>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-<p>“Few Christmas books will be more to the taste of the ingenuous boy than <i>In
-the Heart of the Rockies</i>.”&mdash;<i>Athenæum.</i></p>
-
-<p>“Mr. Henty is seen here at his best as an artist in lightning fiction.”&mdash;<i>Academy.</i></p>
-</div>
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>One of the 28th</b>: A Tale of Waterloo. By <span class="smcap">G. A. Henty</span>.
-With 8 page Illustrations by <span class="smcap">W. H. Overend</span>, and 2 Maps. 5<i>s.</i></p>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-<p>“Written with Homeric vigour and heroic inspiration. It is graphic, picturesque,
-and dramatically effective ... shows us Mr. Henty at his best and
-brightest. The adventures will hold a boy of a winter’s night enthralled as he
-rushes through them with breathless interest ‘from cover to cover’.”&mdash;<i>Observer.</i></p>
-</div>
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>Facing Death</b>: or, The Hero of the Vaughan Pit. A Tale of
-the Coal Mines. By <span class="smcap">G. A. Henty</span>. With 8 page Pictures by
-<span class="smcap">Gordon Browne</span>. 5<i>s.</i></p>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-<p>“If any father, godfather, clergyman, or schoolmaster is on the look-out for a
-good book to give as a present to a boy who is worth his salt, this is the book we
-would recommend.”&mdash;<i>Standard.</i></p>
-</div>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_cat8">[Pg 8]</span></p>
-<hr class="r5" />
-<div class="blockquot">
-<p>“Ask for Henty, and see that you get him.”&mdash;<i>Punch.</i></p>
-</div>
-<hr class="r5" />
-<p class="hanging2"><b>The Cat of Bubastes</b>: A Story of Ancient Egypt. By
-<span class="smcap">G. A. Henty</span>. Illustrated by <span class="smcap">J. R. Weguelin</span>. 5<i>s.</i></p>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-<p>“The story, from the critical moment of the killing of the sacred cat to the
-perilous exodus into Asia with which it closes, is very skilfully constructed and
-full of exciting adventures. It is admirably illustrated.”&mdash;<i>Saturday Review.</i></p>
-</div>
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>Maori and Settler</b>: A Story of the New Zealand War. By
-<span class="smcap">G. A. Henty</span>. With 8 page Illustrations by <span class="smcap">Alfred Pearse</span>. 5<i>s.</i></p>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-<p>“It is a book which all young people, but especially boys, will read with
-avidity.”&mdash;<i>Athenæum.</i></p>
-
-<p>“A first-rate book for boys, brimful of adventure, of humorous and interesting
-conversation, and of vivid pictures of colonial life.”&mdash;<i>Schoolmaster.</i></p>
-</div>
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>St. George for England</b>: A Tale of Cressy and Poitiers.
-By <span class="smcap">G. A. Henty</span>. Illustrated by <span class="smcap">Gordon Browne</span>. 5<i>s.</i></p>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-<p>“A story of very great interest for boys. In his own forcible style the author
-has endeavoured to show that determination and enthusiasm can accomplish marvellous
-results; and that courage is generally accompanied by magnanimity and
-gentleness.”&mdash;<i>Pall Mall Gazette.</i></p>
-</div>
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>The Bravest of the Brave</b>: With Peterborough in Spain.
-By <span class="smcap">G. A. Henty</span>. With 8 full-page Pictures by <span class="smcap">H. M. Paget</span>. 5<i>s.</i></p>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-<p>“Mr. Henty never loses sight of the moral purpose of his work&mdash;to enforce the
-doctrine of courage and truth, mercy and lovingkindness, as indispensable to the
-making of an English gentleman. British lads will read <i>The Bravest of the
-Brave</i> with pleasure and profit; of that we are quite sure.”&mdash;<i>Daily Telegraph.</i></p>
-</div>
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>For Name and Fame</b>: or, Through Afghan Passes. By
-<span class="smcap">G. A. Henty</span>. Illustrated by <span class="smcap">Gordon Browne</span>. 5<i>s.</i></p>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-<p>“Not only a rousing story, replete with all the varied forms of excitement of a
-campaign, but, what is still more useful, an account of a territory and its inhabitants
-which must for a long time possess a supreme interest for Englishmen, as
-being the key to our Indian Empire.”&mdash;<i>Glasgow Herald.</i></p>
-</div>
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>A Jacobite Exile</b>: Being the Adventures of a Young Englishman
-in the Service of Charles XII. of Sweden. By <span class="smcap">G. A. Henty</span>.
-With 8 page Illustrations by <span class="smcap">Paul Hardy</span>, and a Map. 5<i>s.</i></p>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-<p>“Incident succeeds incident, and adventure is piled upon adventure, and at the
-end the reader, be he boy or man, will have experienced breathless enjoyment
-in a romantic story that must have taught him much at its close.”&mdash;<i>Army and
-Navy Gazette.</i></p>
-</div>
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>Held Fast for England</b>: A Tale of the Siege of Gibraltar.
-By <span class="smcap">G. A. Henty</span>. Illustrated by <span class="smcap">Gordon Browne</span>. 5<i>s.</i></p>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-<p>“Among them we would place first in interest and wholesome educational
-value the story of the siege of Gibraltar.... There is no cessation of exciting
-incident throughout the story.”&mdash;<i>Athenæum.</i></p>
-
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_cat9">[Pg 9]</span></p>
-<hr class="r5" />
-<p>“Mr. Henty’s books are always alive with moving incident.”&mdash;<i>Review of Reviews.</i></p>
-</div>
-<hr class="r5" />
-<p class="center"><i>In crown 8vo, cloth elegant.</i></p>
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>Condemned as a Nihilist</b>: A Story of Escape from Siberia.
-By <span class="smcap">G. A. Henty</span>. Illustrated by <span class="smcap">Walter Paget</span>. 5<i>s.</i></p>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-<p>“The best of this year’s Henty. His narrative is more interesting than many
-of the tales with which the public is familiar, of escape from Siberia. Despite
-their superior claim to authenticity these tales are without doubt no less fictitious
-than Mr. Henty’s, and he beats them hollow in the matter of sensations.”&mdash;<i>National
-Observer.</i></p>
-</div>
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>Orange and Green</b>: A Tale of the Boyne and Limerick.
-By <span class="smcap">G. A. Henty</span>. Illustrated by <span class="smcap">Gordon Browne</span>. 5<i>s.</i></p>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-<p>“The narrative is free from the vice of prejudice, and ripples with life as
-vivacious as if what is being described were really passing before the eye....
-Should be in the hands of every young student of Irish history.”&mdash;<i>Belfast News.</i></p>
-</div>
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>In the Reign of Terror</b>: The Adventures of a Westminster
-Boy. By <span class="smcap">G. A. Henty</span>. Illustrated by <span class="smcap">J. Schönberg</span>. 5<i>s.</i></p>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-<p>“Harry Sandwith, the Westminster boy, may fairly be said to beat Mr. Henty’s
-record. His adventures will delight boys by the audacity and peril they depict.
-The story is one of Mr. Henty’s best.”&mdash;<i>Saturday Review.</i></p>
-</div>
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>By Sheer Pluck</b>: A Tale of the Ashanti War. By <span class="smcap">G. A.
-Henty</span>. With 8 full-page Pictures by <span class="smcap">Gordon Browne</span>. 5<i>s.</i></p>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-<p>“Morally, the book is everything that could be desired, setting before the boys
-a bright and bracing ideal of the English gentleman.”&mdash;<i>Christian Leader.</i></p>
-</div>
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>The Dragon and the Raven</b>: or, The Days of King
-Alfred. By <span class="smcap">G. A. Henty</span>. With 8 page Illustrations by <span class="smcap">C. J.
-Staniland, r.i.</span> 5<i>s.</i></p>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-<p>“A story that may justly be styled remarkable. Boys, in reading it, will be
-surprised to find how Alfred persevered, through years of bloodshed and times
-of peace, to rescue his people from the thraldom of the Danes. We hope the
-book will soon be widely known in all our schools.”&mdash;<i>Schoolmaster.</i></p>
-</div>
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>A Final Reckoning</b>: A Tale of Bush Life in Australia.
-By <span class="smcap">G. A. Henty</span>. Illustrated by <span class="smcap">W. B. Wollen</span>. 5<i>s.</i></p>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-<p>“All boys will read this story with eager and unflagging interest. The episodes
-are in Mr. Henty’s very best vein&mdash;graphic, exciting, realistic; and, as in all Mr.
-Henty’s books, the tendency is to the formation of an honourable, manly, and
-even heroic character.”&mdash;<i>Birmingham Post.</i></p>
-</div>
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>The Young Colonists</b>: A Tale of the Zulu and Boer Wars.
-By <span class="smcap">G. A. Henty</span>. With 6 Illustrations by <span class="smcap">Simon H. Vedder</span>. 3<i>s.</i> 6<i>d.</i></p>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-<p>“Fiction and history are so happily blended that the record of facts quicken
-the imagination. No boy can read this book without learning a great deal of
-South African history at its most critical period.”&mdash;<i>Standard.</i></p>
-</div>
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>A Chapter of Adventures</b>: or, Through the Bombardment
-of Alexandria. By <span class="smcap">G. A. Henty</span>. With 6 page Illustrations
-by <span class="smcap">W. H. Overend</span>. 3<i>s.</i> 6<i>d.</i></p>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-<p>“Jack Robson and his two companions have their fill of excitement, and their
-chapter of adventures is so brisk and entertaining we could have wished it longer
-than it is.”&mdash;<i>Saturday Review.</i></p>
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-</div>
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_cat10">[Pg 10]</span></p>
-
-<h3>BY PROFESSOR A. J. CHURCH.</h3>
-</div>
-
-<p>“That prince of winning story-tellers, and master of musical English.”&mdash;<i>Expository
-Times.</i></p>
-
-<p class="center"><i>In crown 8vo, cloth elegant, olivine edges.</i></p>
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>Lords of the World</b>: A Tale of the Fall of Carthage and
-Corinth. By <span class="smcap">A. J.
-Church</span>. With 12
-page Illustrations by
-<span class="smcap">Ralph Peacock</span>. 6<i>s.</i></p>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-<p>“Mr. Church’s mastery
-of his subject and his literary
-skill are sufficiently
-complete to carry his adult
-readers with him. Some of
-the scenes are highly picturesque,
-and there is many
-an exciting adventure that
-sustains the reader’s curiosity
-in the fortunes of the
-hero, Cleanor. As a boys’
-book, <i>Lords of the World</i>
-deserves a hearty welcome.”&mdash;<i>Spectator.</i></p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="figcenter illowp50" id="i-c10" style="max-width: 28em;">
- <img class="w100" src="images/i-c10.png" alt="" />
- <div class="caption"><p><i>Reduced Illustration from “Lords of the World”.</i></p></div>
-</div>
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>Two Thousand
-Years Ago</b>: or,
-The Adventures of a
-Roman Boy. By Professor
-<span class="smcap">A. J. Church</span>.
-With 12 page Illustrations
-by <span class="smcap">Adrien
-Marie</span>. 6<i>s.</i></p>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-<p>“Adventures well worth
-the telling. The book is
-extremely entertaining as
-well as useful, and there is
-a wonderful freshness in
-the Roman scenes and characters.”&mdash;<i>The
-Times.</i></p>
-</div>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<h3>BY HERBERT HAYENS.</h3>
-</div>
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>Paris at Bay</b>: A Story of the Siege and the Commune. By
-<span class="smcap">Herbert Hayens</span>. With 8 page Illustrations by <span class="smcap">Stanley L.
-Wood</span>. 5<i>s.</i></p>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-<p>“The story culminates in the terrible struggle between the Versaillists and
-the men who follow the red flag. Mr. Hayens holds the balance with commendable
-impartiality. He loves to describe a good soldier on whichever side he may
-fight. Altogether <i>Paris at Bay</i> is of more than average merit.”&mdash;<i>Spectator.</i></p>
-</div>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_cat11">[Pg 11]</span></p>
-
-<h3>BY GEORGE MANVILLE FENN.</h3>
-</div>
-
-<p>“Mr. Fenn stands in the foremost rank of writers in this department.”&mdash;<i>Daily
-News.</i></p>
-
-<p class="center"><i>In crown 8vo, cloth elegant.</i></p>
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>Dick o’ the Fens</b>: A Romance of the Great East Swamp. By
-<span class="smcap">G. Manville Fenn</span>. Illustrated by <span class="smcap">Frank Dadd</span>. 6<i>s.</i></p>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-<p>“We conscientiously believe that boys will find it capital reading. It is full
-of incident and mystery, and the mystery is kept up to the last moment. It is
-rich in effective local colouring; and it has a historical interest.”&mdash;<i>Times.</i></p>
-</div>
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>Devon Boys</b>: A Tale of the North Shore. By <span class="smcap">G. Manville
-Fenn</span>. With 12 page Illustrations by <span class="smcap">Gordon Browne</span>. 6<i>s.</i></p>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-<p>“An admirable story, as remarkable for the individuality of its young heroes
-as for the excellent descriptions of coast scenery and life in North Devon. It is
-one of the best books we have seen this season.”&mdash;<i>Athenæum.</i></p>
-</div>
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>The Golden Magnet</b>: A Tale of the Land of the Incas. By
-<span class="smcap">G. Manville Fenn</span>. Illustrated by <span class="smcap">Gordon Browne</span>. 6<i>s.</i></p>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-<p>“There could be no more welcome present for a boy. There is not a dull page
-in the book, and many will be read with breathless interest. ‘The Golden Magnet’
-is, of course, the same one that attracted Raleigh and the heroes of <i>Westward
-Ho!</i>”&mdash;<i>Journal of Education.</i></p>
-</div>
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>In the King’s Name</b>: or, The Cruise of the <i>Kestrel</i>. By
-<span class="smcap">G. Manville Fenn</span>. Illustrated by <span class="smcap">Gordon Browne</span>. 6<i>s.</i></p>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-<p>“The best of all Mr. Fenn’s productions in this field. It has the great quality
-of always ‘moving on’, adventure following adventure in constant succession.”&mdash;<i>Daily
-News.</i></p>
-</div>
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>Nat the Naturalist</b>: A Boy’s Adventures in the Eastern
-Seas. By <span class="smcap">G. Manville Fenn</span>. With 8 page Pictures. 5<i>s.</i></p>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-<p>“This sort of book encourages independence of character, develops resource,
-and teaches a boy to keep his eyes open.”&mdash;<i>Saturday Review.</i></p>
-</div>
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>Bunyip Land</b>: The Story of a Wild Journey in New Guinea.
-By <span class="smcap">G. Manville Fenn</span>. Illustrated by <span class="smcap">Gordon Browne</span>. 4<i>s.</i></p>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-<p>“Mr. Fenn deserves the thanks of everybody for Bunyip Land, and we may venture
-to promise that a quiet week may be reckoned on whilst the youngsters have
-such fascinating literature provided for their evenings’ amusement.”&mdash;<i>Spectator.</i></p>
-</div>
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>Quicksilver</b>: or, A Boy with no Skid to his Wheel. By
-<span class="smcap">George Manville Fenn</span>. With 6 page Illustrations by <span class="smcap">Frank
-Dadd</span>. 3<i>s.</i> 6<i>d.</i></p>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-<p>“<i>Quicksilver</i> is little short of an inspiration. In it that prince of story-writers
-for boys&mdash;George Manville Fenn&mdash;has surpassed himself. It is an ideal book for
-a boy’s library.”&mdash;<i>Practical Teacher.</i></p>
-</div>
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>Brownsmith’s Boy</b>: A Romance in a Garden. By <span class="smcap">G.
-Manville Fenn</span>. With 6 page Illustrations. 3<i>s.</i> 6<i>d.</i></p>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-<p>“Mr. Fenn’s books are among the best, if not altogether the best, of the stories
-for boys. Mr. Fenn is at his best in <i>Brownsmith’s Boy</i>.”&mdash;<i>Pictorial World.</i></p>
-</div>
-<hr class="tb" />
-<p>⁂ For other Books by <span class="smcap">G. Manville Fenn</span>, see page 22.</p>
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Pagecat12">[Pg 12]</span></p>
-
-<h3>BY GEORGE MAC DONALD.</h3>
-</div>
-
-<p>“Dr. George Mac Donald is one of the cleverest of writers for children.”&mdash;<i>The
-Record.</i></p>
-
-<hr class="r5" />
-
-<p class="center"><i>In crown 8vo, cloth elegant.</i></p>
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>A Rough Shaking.</b> By <span class="smcap">George Mac Donald</span>. With
-12 page Illustrations by <span class="smcap">W. Parkinson</span>. 6<i>s.</i></p>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-<p>“One of the very best books for boys that has been written. It is full of
-material peculiarly well adapted for the young, containing in a marked degree
-the elements of all that is necessary to make up a perfect boys’ book.”&mdash;<i>Teachers’
-Aid.</i></p>
-</div>
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>At the Back of the North Wind.</b> By <span class="smcap">George Mac Donald</span>.
-With 75 Illustrations by <span class="smcap">Arthur Hughes</span>. 5<i>s.</i></p>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-<p>“The story is thoroughly original, full of fancy and pathos.... We stand
-with one foot in fairyland and one on common earth.”&mdash;<i>The Times.</i></p>
-</div>
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>Ranald Bannerman’s Boyhood.</b> By <span class="smcap">Geo. Mac Donald</span>.
-With 36 Illustrations by <span class="smcap">Arthur Hughes</span>. 5<i>s.</i></p>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-<p>“The sympathy with boy-nature in <i>Ranald Bannerman’s Boyhood</i> is perfect.
-It is a beautiful picture of childhood, teaching by its impressions and suggestions
-all noble things.”&mdash;<i>British Quarterly Review.</i></p>
-</div>
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>The Princess and the Goblin.</b> By <span class="smcap">George Mac Donald</span>.
-With 32 Illustrations. 3<i>s.</i> 6<i>d.</i></p>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-<p>“Little of what is written for children has the lightness of touch and play of
-fancy which are characteristic of George Mac Donald’s fairy tales. Mr. Arthur
-Hughes’s illustrations are all that illustrations should be.”&mdash;<i>Manchester Guardian.</i></p>
-</div>
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>The Princess and Curdie.</b> By <span class="smcap">George Mac Donald</span>.
-With 8 page Illustrations. 3<i>s.</i> 6<i>d.</i></p>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-<p>“There is the finest and rarest genius in this brilliant story. Upgrown people
-would do wisely occasionally to lay aside their newspapers and magazines to
-spend an hour with <i>Curdie</i> and the <i>Princess</i>.”&mdash;<i>Sheffield Independent.</i></p>
-</div>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<h3>BY ASCOTT R. HOPE.</h3>
-</div>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-<p>“Such is the charm of Mr. Hope’s narrative that it is impossible to begin one
-of his tales without finishing it.”&mdash;<i>St. James’s Gazette.</i></p>
-</div>
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>The Seven Wise Scholars.</b> By <span class="smcap">Ascott R. Hope</span>. With
-nearly 100 Illustrations by <span class="smcap">Gordon Browne</span>. 5<i>s.</i></p>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-<p>“As full of fun as a volume of <i>Punch</i>; with illustrations, more laughter-provoking
-than most we have seen since Leech died.”&mdash;<i>Sheffield Independent.</i></p>
-</div>
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>Stories of Old Renown</b>: Tales of Knights and Heroes.
-By <span class="smcap">A. R. Hope</span>. With 100 Illustrations by <span class="smcap">Gordon Browne</span>. 3<i>s.</i> 6<i>d.</i></p>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-<p>“A really fascinating book worthy of its telling title. There is, we venture to
-say, not a dull page in the book, not a story which will not bear a second reading.”&mdash;<i>Guardian.</i></p>
-</div>
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>Young Travellers’ Tales.</b> By <span class="smcap">Ascott R. Hope</span>. With
-6 Illustrations by <span class="smcap">H. J. Draper</span>. 3<i>s.</i> 6<i>d.</i></p>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-<p>“Possess a high value for instruction as well as for entertainment. His quiet,
-level humour bubbles up on every page.”&mdash;<i>Daily Chronicle.</i></p>
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-</div>
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_cat13">[Pg 13]</span></p>
-
-<h3>BY HARRY COLLINGWOOD.</h3>
-</div>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-<p>“As a story-teller Mr. Collingwood is not surpassed.”&mdash;<i>Spectator.</i></p>
-</div>
-
-<hr class="r5" />
-<p class="center"><i>In crown 8vo, cloth elegant.</i></p>
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>The Log of a Privateersman.</b> By <span class="smcap">Harry Collingwood</span>.
-With 12 page Illustrations by <span class="smcap">W. Rainey, r.i.</span> 6<i>s.</i></p>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-<p>“The narrative is breezy, vivid, and full of incidents, faithful in nautical
-colouring, and altogether delightful.”&mdash;<i>Pall Mall Gazette.</i></p>
-</div>
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>The Pirate Island.</b> By <span class="smcap">Harry Collingwood</span>. With
-8 page Pictures by <span class="smcap">C. J. Staniland</span> and <span class="smcap">J. R. Wells</span>. 5<i>s.</i></p>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-<p>“A capital story of the sea; indeed in our opinion the author is superior in some
-respects as a marine novelist to the better-known Mr. Clark Russell.”&mdash;<i>The Times.</i></p>
-</div>
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>The Log of the “Flying Fish”</b>: A Story of Aerial and
-Submarine Adventure. By <span class="smcap">Harry Collingwood</span>. With 6 page
-Illustrations by <span class="smcap">Gordon Browne</span>. 3<i>s.</i> 6<i>d.</i></p>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-<p>“The <i>Flying Fish</i> actually surpasses all Jules Verne’s creations; with incredible
-speed she flies through the air, skims over the surface of the water, and darts
-along the ocean bed. We strongly recommend our schoolboy friends to possess
-themselves of her log.”&mdash;<i>Athenæum.</i></p>
-</div>
-
-<p>⁂ For other Books by Harry Collingwood, see pages 22 and 23.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<h3 class="nobreak" id="BY_KIRK_MUNROE">BY KIRK MUNROE.</h3>
-</div>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-<p>“Captain Mayne Reid and Gustave Aimard find a worthy successor in Mr. Kirk
-Munroe.”&mdash;<i>St. James’s Gazette.</i></p>
-</div>
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>With Crockett and Bowie</b>: A Tale of Texas. By <span class="smcap">Kirk
-Munroe</span>. With 8 page Illustrations by <span class="smcap">Victor Perard</span>. 5<i>s.</i></p>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-<p>“Mr. Munroe has constructed his plot with undoubted skill, and his descriptions
-of the combats between the Texans and the Mexicans are brilliantly <i>graphic</i>.
-This is in every sense one of the best books for boys that has been produced this
-season.”&mdash;<i>Spectator.</i></p>
-</div>
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>Through Swamp and Glade</b>: A Tale of the Seminole
-War. By <span class="smcap">Kirk Munroe</span>. With 8 Illustrations by <span class="smcap">Victor
-Perard</span>. 5<i>s.</i></p>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-<p>“The hero of <i>Through Swamp and Glade</i> will find many ardent champions, and
-the name of Coachoochie become as familiar in the schoolboy’s ear as that of
-the headmaster.”&mdash;<i>St. James’s Gazette.</i></p>
-</div>
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>At War with Pontiac</b>: or, The Totem of the Bear. By
-<span class="smcap">Kirk Munroe</span>. With 8 Illustrations by <span class="smcap">J. Finnemore</span>. 5<i>s.</i></p>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-<p>“Is in the best manner of Cooper. There is a character who is the parallel of
-Hawkeye, as the Chingachgooks and Uncas have likewise their counterparts.”&mdash;<i>The
-Times.</i></p>
-</div>
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>The White Conquerors of Mexico</b>: A Tale of Toltec
-and Aztec. By <span class="smcap">Kirk Munroe</span>. With 8 Illustrations by <span class="smcap">W. S.
-Stacey</span>. 5<i>s.</i></p>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-<p>“Mr. Munroe gives most vivid pictures of the religious and civil polity of the
-Aztecs, and of everyday life, as he imagines it, in the streets and market-places
-of the magnificent capital of Montezuma.”&mdash;<i>The Times.</i></p>
-</div>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_cat14">[Pg 14]</span></p>
-
-<h3 class="nobreak" id="FINELY_ILLUSTRATED_BOOKS_FOR_CHILDREN">FINELY ILLUSTRATED BOOKS FOR CHILDREN.</h3>
-</div>
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>Red Apple and Silver Bells</b>: a Book of Verse for
-Children of all Ages. By <span class="smcap">Hamish Hendry</span>. With over 150
-charming Illustrations by Miss <span class="smcap">Alice B. Woodward</span>. Square
-8vo, cloth elegant, gilt edges, 6<i>s.</i></p>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-<p>“Mr. Hendry sees the world as children see it, and he writes charmingly
-and musically about it; many, indeed most, of his verses are delightful in
-all respects&mdash;childish, but not silly; funny, but not foolish; and sweet without
-being goody. Miss Woodward’s designs are just what the verses require, and
-they are carefully and delicately drawn and exquisitely finished after nature;
-consequently they are beautiful.”&mdash;<i>Athenæum.</i></p>
-</div>
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>Just Forty Winks</b>: or, The Droll Adventures of Davie Trot.
-By <span class="smcap">Hamish Hendry</span>. With 70 humorous Illustrations by <span class="smcap">Gertrude
-M. Bradley</span>. Square 8vo, cloth elegant, gilt edges, 5<i>s.</i></p>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-<p>“Daintily illustrated; <i>Just Forty Winks</i> is an eye-opener for the little ones,
-who will enjoy the amazing adventures of <i>Davie Trot</i> down the long lane that
-has so many turns in dreamland.”&mdash;<i>Punch.</i></p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-<p>“<i>Just Forty Winks</i> is full of high spirits and most excellent invention.”&mdash;<i>Spectator.</i></p>
-</div>
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>To Tell the King the Sky is Falling.</b> By <span class="smcap">Sheila E.
-Braine</span>. With over 80 quaint and clever Illustrations by <span class="smcap">Alice
-B. Woodward</span>. Square 8vo, cloth, decorated boards, gilt edges, 5<i>s.</i></p>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-<p>“It is witty and ingenious, and it has certain qualities which children are
-quick to perceive and appreciate&mdash;a genuine love of fun, affectionateness, and
-sympathy, from their points of view.”&mdash;<i>Bookman.</i></p>
-</div>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<h3 class="nobreak" id="BOOKS_FOR_GIRLS">BOOKS FOR GIRLS.</h3>
-</div>
-
-<hr class="r5" />
-<p class="center"><i>In crown 8vo, cloth elegant.</i></p>
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>Banshee Castle.</b> By <span class="smcap">Rosa Mulholland</span> (Lady Gilbert).
-With 12 page Illustrations by <span class="smcap">John H. Bacon</span>. 6<i>s.</i></p>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-<p>“One of the most fascinating of Miss Rosa Mulholland’s many fascinating
-stories.”&mdash;<i>Athenæum.</i></p>
-</div>
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>Giannetta.</b> By <span class="smcap">Rosa Mulholland</span> (Lady Gilbert). With
-8 page Illustrations by <span class="smcap">Lockhart Bogle</span>. 5<i>s.</i></p>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-<p>“One of the most attractive gift-books of the season.”&mdash;<i>The Academy.</i></p>
-</div>
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>A Girl’s Loyalty.</b> By <span class="smcap">Frances Armstrong</span>. With 8 page
-Illustrations by <span class="smcap">John H. Bacon</span>. 5<i>s.</i></p>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-<p>“There is no doubt as to the good quality of <i>A Girl’s Loyalty</i>. The book is
-one which would enrich any girl’s book-shelf.”&mdash;<i>St. James’s Gazette.</i></p>
-</div>
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>A Fair Claimant</b>: Being a Story for Girls. By <span class="smcap">Frances
-Armstrong</span>. Illustrated by <span class="smcap">Gertrude D. Hammond</span>. 5<i>s.</i></p>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-<p>“As a gift-book for big girls it is among the best new books of the kind. The
-story is interesting and natural, from first to last.”&mdash;<i>Westminster Gazette.</i></p>
-</div>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_cat15">[Pg 15]</span></p>
-
-<div class="figcenter illowp50" id="i-c15" style="max-width: 28em;">
- <img class="w100" src="images/i-c15.png" alt="" />
-</div>
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>Adventures in Toyland.</b>
-By <span class="smcap">Edith
-King Hall</span>. With 8
-page Pictures printed
-in Colour, and 70 Black-and-White
-Illustrations
-throughout the text, by
-<span class="smcap">Alice B. Woodward</span>.
-Crown 4to, decorated
-cloth boards, gilt edges,
-5<i>s.</i></p>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-<p>“One of the funniest as well
-as one of the daintiest books
-of the season. The Adventures
-are graphically described in a
-very humorous way.”&mdash;<i>Pall
-Mall Gazette.</i></p>
-
-<p>“The story is a capital
-‘make-believe’, and exhibits
-real knowledge on the part of
-both author and illustrator of
-what children want, as well as
-an unusual power of supplying
-it.”&mdash;<i>Literature.</i></p>
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-</div>
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_cat16">[Pg 16]</span></p>
-
-<h3 class="nobreak" id="BY_ROBERT_LEIGHTON">BY ROBERT LEIGHTON.</h3>
-</div>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-<p>“Mr. Robert Leighton has taken a place in the very front rank of the writers
-of stories for boys.”&mdash;<i>Daily Graphic.</i></p>
-</div>
-
-<hr class="r5" />
-<p class="center"><i>In crown 8vo, cloth elegant, olivine edges.</i></p>
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>The Golden Galleon</b>: A Narrative of the Adventures of
-Master Gilbert Oglander, under the gallant Sir Richard Grenville
-in the great sea-fight off Flores. By <span class="smcap">Robert Leighton</span>. With 8
-page Illustrations by <span class="smcap">William Rainey, r.i.</span> 5<i>s.</i></p>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-<p>“The story itself is a capital one, but the chief merit lies in the telling. It
-presents an excellent picture of life in England, both on land and sea, in the days
-of Elizabeth.”&mdash;<i>Standard.</i></p>
-</div>
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>Olaf the Glorious.</b> By <span class="smcap">Robert Leighton</span>. With 8 page
-Illustrations by <span class="smcap">Ralph Peacock</span>, and a Map. 5<i>s.</i></p>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-<p>“Is as good as anything of the kind we have met with. Mr. Leighton more
-than holds his own with Rider Haggard and Baring-Gould.”&mdash;<i>The Times.</i></p>
-</div>
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>The Wreck of “The Golden Fleece”</b>: The story of a
-North Sea Fisher-boy. By <span class="smcap">Robert Leighton</span>. With 8 page
-Illustrations by <span class="smcap">F. Brangwyn</span>. 5<i>s.</i></p>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-<p>“This story should add considerably to Mr. Leighton’s high reputation. Excellent
-in every respect, it contains every variety of incident. The plot is very
-cleverly devised, and the types of the North Sea sailors are capital.”&mdash;<i>The Times.</i></p>
-</div>
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>The Pilots of Pomona</b>: A Story of the Orkney Islands.
-By <span class="smcap">Robert Leighton</span>. Illustrated by <span class="smcap">John Leighton</span>. 5<i>s.</i></p>
-
-<div class="blockquot"><p>“A story which is quite as good in its way as <i>Treasure Island</i>, and is full of
-adventure of a stirring yet most natural kind. Although it is primarily a boys’
-book, it is a real godsend to the elderly reader.”&mdash;<i>Glasgow Evening Times.</i></p>
-</div>
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>The Thirsty Sword</b>: A Story of the Norse Invasion of
-Scotland (1262-63). By <span class="smcap">Robert Leighton</span>. With 8 page Illustrations
-by <span class="smcap">A. Pearse</span>. 5<i>s.</i></p>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-<p>“This is one of the most fascinating stories for boys that it has ever been our
-pleasure to read. From first to last the interest never flags.”&mdash;<i>Schoolmaster.</i></p>
-</div>
-
-<hr class="tb" />
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>The Clever Miss Follett.</b> By <span class="smcap">J. K. H. Denny</span>. With
-12 page Illustrations by <span class="smcap">Gertrude D. Hammond</span>. 6<i>s.</i></p>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-<p>“Just the book to give to girls, who will delight both in the letterpress and
-the illustrations. Miss Hammond has never done better work.”&mdash;<i>Review of
-Reviews.</i></p>
-</div>
-
-<hr class="tb" />
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>The Heiress of Courtleroy.</b> By <span class="smcap">Anne Beale</span>. With 8
-page Illustrations by <span class="smcap">T. C. H. Castle</span>. 5<i>s.</i></p>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-<p>“We can speak highly of the grace with which Miss Beale relates how the
-young ‘Heiress of Courtleroy’ had such good influence over her uncle as to win
-him from his intensely selfish ways.”&mdash;<i>Guardian.</i></p>
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-</div>
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_cat17">[Pg 17]</span></p>
-
-<h3><i>TWELFTH EDITION OF THE UNIVERSE.</i></h3>
-</div>
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>The Universe</b>: or, The Infinitely Great and the Infinitely Little.
-A Sketch of Contrasts in Creation, and Marvels revealed and
-explained by Natural Science. By <span class="smcap">F. A. Pouchet, m.d.</span> With
-272 Engravings on wood, of which 55 are full-page size, and 4
-Coloured Illustrations. <i>Twelfth Edition</i>, medium 8vo, cloth elegant,
-gilt edges, 7<i>s.</i> 6<i>d.</i>; also morocco antique, 16<i>s.</i></p>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-<p>“Dr. Pouchet’s wonderful work on <i>The Universe</i>, than which there is no book
-better calculated to encourage the study of nature.”&mdash;<i>Pall Mall Gazette.</i></p>
-
-<p>“We know no better book of the kind for a schoolroom library.”&mdash;<i>Bookman.</i></p>
-</div>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<h3 class="nobreak" id="BY_G_NORWAY">BY G. NORWAY.</h3>
-</div>
-
-<hr class="r5" />
-<p class="center"><i>In crown 8vo, cloth elegant.</i></p>
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>A Prisoner of War</b>: A Story of the Time of Napoleon
-Bonaparte. By <span class="smcap">G. Norway</span>. With 6 page Illustrations by <span class="smcap">Robt.
-Barnes, a.r.w.s.</span> 3<i>s.</i> 6<i>d.</i></p>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-<p>“More hairbreadth escapes from death by starvation, by ice, by fighting, &amp;c.,
-were never before surmounted.... It is a fine yarn.”&mdash;<i>The Guardian.</i></p>
-</div>
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>A True Cornish Maid.</b> By <span class="smcap">G. Norway.</span> With 6 page
-Illustrations by <span class="smcap">J. Finnemore</span>. 3<i>s.</i> 6<i>d.</i></p>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-<p>“There is some excellent reading.... Mrs. Norway brings before the eyes
-of her readers the good Cornish folk, their speech, their manners, and their ways.
-<i>A True Cornish Maid</i> deserves to be popular.”&mdash;<i>Athenæum.</i></p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-
-<p>⁂ For other Books by <span class="smcap">G. Norway</span> see p. 23.</p>
-</div>
-
-<hr class="tb" />
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>Under False Colours</b>: A Story from Two Girls’ Lives.
-By <span class="smcap">Sarah Doudney</span>. Illustrated by <span class="smcap">G. G. Kilburne</span>. 4<i>s.</i></p>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-<p>“Sarah Doudney has no superior as a writer of high-toned stories&mdash;pure in
-style and original in conception; but we have seen nothing from her pen equal
-in dramatic energy to this book.”&mdash;<i>Christian Leader.</i></p>
-</div>
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>With the Sea Kings</b>: A Story of the Days of Lord Nelson.
-By <span class="smcap">F. H. Winder</span>. Illustrated by <span class="smcap">W. S. Stacey</span>. 4<i>s.</i></p>
-
-<div class="blockquot"><p>“Just the book to put into a boy’s hands. Every chapter contains boardings,
-cuttings out, fighting pirates, escapes of thrilling audacity, and captures by corsairs,
-sufficient to turn the quietest boy’s head. The story culminates in a vigorous
-account of the battle of Trafalgar. Happy boys!”&mdash;<i>The Academy.</i></p>
-</div>
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>Dr. Jolliffe’s Boys</b>: A Tale of Weston School. By <span class="smcap">Lewis
-Hough</span>. With 6 page Pictures. 3<i>s.</i> 6<i>d.</i></p>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-<p>“Young people who appreciate <i>Tom Brown’s School-days</i> will find this story a
-worthy companion to that fascinating book.”&mdash;<i>Newcastle Journal.</i></p>
-</div>
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>Dora</b>: or, A Girl without a Home. By Mrs. <span class="smcap">R. H. Read</span>. With
-6 page Illustrations by <span class="smcap">Paul Hardy</span>. 3<i>s.</i> 6<i>d.</i></p>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-<p>“It is no slight thing, in an age of rubbish, to get a story so pure and healthy
-as this.”&mdash;<i>The Academy.</i></p>
-</div>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_cat18">[Pg 18]</span></p>
-
-<h3 class="nobreak" id="BY_DR_GORDON_STABLES_RN">BY DR. GORDON STABLES, R.N.</h3>
-</div>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-<p>“In all Dr. Gordon Stables’ books for boys we are sure to find a wholesome tone,
-plenty of instruction, and abundance of adventure.”&mdash;<i>Saturday Review.</i></p>
-</div>
-
-<hr class="r5" />
-<p class="center"><i>In crown 8vo, cloth elegant.</i></p>
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>The Naval Cadet.</b> By <span class="smcap">Gordon Stables, c.m., m.d., r.n.</span>
-With 6 page Illustrations by <span class="smcap">William Rainey, r.i.</span> 3<i>s.</i> 6<i>d.</i></p>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-<p>“A really interesting travellers’ tale, with plenty of fun and incident in it.”&mdash;<i>Spectator.</i></p>
-
-<p>“Love and war and ‘gun-room fun’ combine to make the history of <i>The Naval
-Cadet</i> a very readable book.”&mdash;<i>Literature.</i></p>
-</div>
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>For Life and Liberty.</b> By <span class="smcap">Gordon Stables, c.m., m.d., r.n.</span>
-With 8 Illustrations by <span class="smcap">Sydney Paget</span>, and a Map. 5<i>s.</i></p>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-<p>“The story is lively and spirited, with abundance of blockade-running, hard
-fighting, narrow escapes, and introductions to some of the most distinguished
-generals on both sides.”&mdash;<i>The Times.</i></p>
-</div>
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>To Greenland and the Pole.</b> By <span class="smcap">Gordon Stables, c.m.,
-m.d., r.n.</span> With 8 page Illustrations by <span class="smcap">G. C. Hindley</span>, and a Map.
-5<i>s.</i></p>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-<p>“His Arctic explorers have the verisimilitude of life. It is one of the books of
-the season, and one of the best Mr. Stables has ever written.”&mdash;<i>Truth.</i></p>
-</div>
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>Westward with Columbus.</b> By <span class="smcap">Gordon Stables, c.m.,
-m.d., r.n.</span> With 8 page Illustrations by <span class="smcap">A. Pearse</span>. 5<i>s.</i></p>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-<p>“We must place <i>Westward with Columbus</i> among those books that all boys
-ought to read.”&mdash;<i>The Spectator.</i></p>
-</div>
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>’Twixt School and College</b>: A Tale of Self-reliance. By
-<span class="smcap">Gordon Stables, c.m., m.d., r.n.</span> Illustrated by <span class="smcap">W. Parkinson</span>. 5<i>s.</i></p>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-<p>“One of the best of a prolific writer’s books for boys, and inculcates the
-virtue of self-reliance.”&mdash;<i>Athenæum.</i></p>
-</div>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<h3 class="nobreak" id="BY_HUGH_ST_LEGER">BY HUGH ST. LEGER.</h3>
-</div>
-
-<hr class="r5" />
-<p class="hanging2"><b>An Ocean Outlaw</b>: A Story of Adventure in the good ship
-<i>Margaret</i>. With Illustrations by <span class="smcap">William Rainey, r.i.</span> 4<i>s.</i></p>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-<p>“We know no modern boys’ book in which there is more sound, hearty, good-humoured
-fun, or of which the tone is more wholesome and bracing than Mr. St.
-Leger’s.”&mdash;<i>National Observer.</i></p>
-</div>
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>Hallowe’en Ahoy!</b> or, Lost on the Crozet Islands. By
-<span class="smcap">Hugh St. Leger</span>. With 6 Illustrations by <span class="smcap">H. J. Draper</span>. 4<i>s.</i></p>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-<p>“One of the best stories of seafaring life and adventure which have appeared
-this season. No boy who begins it but will wish to join the <i>Britannia</i> long
-before he finishes these delightful pages.”&mdash;<i>Academy.</i></p>
-</div>
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>Sou’wester and Sword.</b> By <span class="smcap">Hugh St. Leger</span>. With 6
-page Illustrations by <span class="smcap">Hal Hurst</span>. 4<i>s.</i></p>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-<p>“As racy a tale of life at sea and war adventure as we have met with for some
-time.... Altogether the sort of book that boys will revel in.”&mdash;<i>Athenæum.</i></p>
-</div>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_cat19">[Pg 19]</span></p>
-
-<h3 class="nobreak" id="BY_CHARLES_W_WHISTLER">BY CHARLES W. WHISTLER.</h3>
-</div>
-
-<p>“Historical tales are always welcome when they are told by such a prince of
-story-tellers as Mr. <span class="smcap">Charles W. Whistler</span>.”&mdash;<i>The Record.</i></p>
-
-<hr class="r5" />
-<p class="center"><i>In crown 8vo, cloth elegant.</i></p>
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>King Olaf’s Kinsman</b>: A Story of the Last Saxon Struggle
-against the Danes. By <span class="smcap">Charles W. Whistler</span>. With 6 page
-Illustrations by <span class="smcap">W. H. Margetson</span>. 4<i>s.</i></p>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-<p>“Mr. Whistler’s story is in fine an excellent one&mdash;worthy to rank with some of
-R. L. Stevenson’s tales for boys.”&mdash;<i>St. James’s Gazette.</i></p>
-</div>
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>Wulfric the Weapon-Thane</b>: The Story of the Danish
-Conquest of East Anglia. By <span class="smcap">Charles W. Whistler</span>. With
-6 Illustrations by <span class="smcap">W. H. Margetson</span>. 4<i>s.</i></p>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-<p>“A picturesque and energetic story. A worthy companion to his capital story,
-<i>A Thane of Wessex</i>. One that will delight all active-minded boys.”&mdash;<i>Saturday
-Review.</i></p>
-</div>
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>A Thane of Wessex</b>: Being the Story of the Great Viking
-Raid of 845. By <span class="smcap">Charles W. Whistler</span>. With 6 Illustrations
-by <span class="smcap">W. H. Margetson</span>. 3<i>s.</i> 6<i>d.</i></p>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-<p>“The story is told with spirit and force, and affords an excellent picture of the
-life of the period.”&mdash;<i>Standard.</i></p>
-</div>
-
-<hr class="tb" />
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>Grettir the Outlaw</b>: A Story of Iceland. By <span class="smcap">S. Baring-Gould</span>.
-With 6 page Illustrations by <span class="smcap">M. Zeno Diemer</span>. 4<i>s.</i></p>
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>A Champion of the Faith</b>: A Tale of Prince Hal and the
-Lollards. By <span class="smcap">J. M. Callwell</span>. With 6 page Illustrations by
-<span class="smcap">Herbert J. Draper</span>. 4<i>s.</i></p>
-
-<hr class="tb" />
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>Meg’s Friend.</b> By <span class="smcap">Alice Corkran</span>. With 6 page Illustrations
-by <span class="smcap">Robert Fowler</span>. 3<i>s.</i> 6<i>d.</i></p>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-<p>“One of Miss Corkran’s charming books for girls, narrated in that simple
-and picturesque style which marks the authoress as one of the first amongst
-writers for young people.”&mdash;<i>The Spectator.</i></p>
-</div>
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>Margery Merton’s Girlhood.</b> By <span class="smcap">Alice Corkran</span>. With
-6 page Pictures by <span class="smcap">Gordon Browne</span>. 3<i>s.</i> 6<i>d.</i></p>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-<p>“Another book for girls we can warmly commend. There is a delightful
-piquancy in the experiences and trials of a young English girl who studies
-painting in Paris.”&mdash;<i>Saturday Review.</i></p>
-</div>
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>Down the Snow Stairs</b>: or, From Good-night to Good-morning.
-By <span class="smcap">Alice Corkran</span>. Illustrated by <span class="smcap">Gordon Browne</span>. 3<i>s.</i> 6<i>d.</i></p>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-<p>“A gem of the first water, bearing upon every page the mark of genius. It is
-indeed a Little Pilgrim’s Progress.”&mdash;<i>Christian Leader.</i></p>
-</div>
-<hr class="tb" />
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>Gold, Gold, in Cariboo.</b> By <span class="smcap">Clive Phillipps-Wolley</span>.
-With 6 page Illustrations by <span class="smcap">G. C. Hindley</span>. 3<i>s.</i> 6<i>d.</i></p>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-<p>“We have seldom read a more exciting tale. There is a capital plot, and
-the interest is sustained to the last page.”&mdash;<i>The Times.</i></p>
-</div>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_cat20">[Pg 20]</span></p>
-
-<h3 class="nobreak" id="BY_ANNIE_E_ARMSTRONG">BY ANNIE E. ARMSTRONG.</h3>
-</div>
-
-<hr class="r5" />
-<p class="center"><i>In crown 8vo, cloth elegant.</i></p>
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>Violet Vereker’s Vanity.</b> By <span class="smcap">Annie E. Armstrong</span>.
-With 6 page Illustrations by <span class="smcap">G. Demain Hammond, r.i.</span> 3<i>s.</i> 6<i>d.</i></p>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-<p>“A book for girls that we can heartily recommend, for it is bright, sensible,
-and with a right tone of thought and feeling.”&mdash;<i>Sheffield Independent.</i></p>
-</div>
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>Three Bright Girls</b>: A Story of Chance and Mischance.
-By <span class="smcap">Annie E. Armstrong</span>. Illustrated by <span class="smcap">W. Parkinson</span>. 3<i>s.</i> 6<i>d.</i></p>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-<p>“Among many good stories for girls this is undoubtedly one of the very best.”&mdash;<i>Teachers’
-Aid.</i></p>
-</div>
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>A Very Odd Girl</b>: or, Life at the Gabled Farm. By <span class="smcap">Annie
-E. Armstrong</span>. Illustrated. 3<i>s.</i> 6<i>d.</i></p>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-<p>“The book is one we can heartily recommend, for it is not only bright and
-interesting, but also pure and healthy in tone and teaching.”&mdash;<i>The Lady.</i></p>
-</div>
-<hr class="tb" />
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>The Captured Cruiser.</b> By <span class="smcap">C. J. Hyne</span>. Illustrated by
-<span class="smcap">Frank Brangwyn</span>. 3<i>s.</i> 6<i>d.</i></p>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-<p>“The two lads and the two skippers are admirably drawn. Mr. Hyne has
-now secured a position in the first rank of writers of fiction for boys.”&mdash;<i>Spectator.</i></p>
-</div>
-<hr class="tb" />
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>Afloat at Last</b>: A Sailor Boy’s Log of his Life at Sea. By
-<span class="smcap">John C. Hutcheson</span>. 3<i>s.</i> 6<i>d.</i></p>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-<p>“As healthy and breezy a book as one could wish to put into the hands of
-a boy.”&mdash;<i>Academy.</i></p>
-</div>
-<hr class="tb" />
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>Brother and Sister</b>: or, The Trials of the Moore Family.
-By <span class="smcap">Elizabeth J. Lysaght</span>. 3<i>s.</i> 6<i>d.</i></p>
-
-<hr class="tb" />
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>Storied Holidays</b>: A Cycle of Red-letter Days. By <span class="smcap">E. S.
-Brooks</span>. With 12 page Illustrations by <span class="smcap">Howard Pyle</span>. 3<i>s.</i> 6<i>d.</i></p>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-<p>“It is a downright good book for a senior boy, and is eminently readable from
-first to last.”&mdash;<i>Schoolmaster.</i></p>
-</div>
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>Chivalric Days</b>: Stories of Courtesy and Courage in the
-Olden Times. By <span class="smcap">E. S. Brooks</span>. With 20 Illustrations. 3<i>s.</i> 6<i>d.</i></p>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-<p>“We have seldom come across a prettier collection of tales. These charming
-stories of boys and girls of olden days are no mere fictitious or imaginary sketches,
-but are real and actual records of their sayings and doings.”&mdash;<i>Literary World.</i></p>
-</div>
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>Historic Boys</b>: Their Endeavours, their Achievements, and
-their Times. By <span class="smcap">E. S. Brooks</span>. With 12 page Illustrations. 3<i>s.</i> 6<i>d.</i></p>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-<p>“A wholesome book, manly in tone; altogether one that should incite boys to
-further acquaintance with those rulers of men whose careers are narrated. We
-advise teachers to put it on their list of prizes.”&mdash;<i>Knowledge.</i></p>
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-</div>
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_cat21">[Pg 21]</span></p>
-
-<h3 class="nobreak" id="BY_EDGAR_PICKERING">BY EDGAR PICKERING.</h3>
-</div>
-
-<hr class="r5" />
-<p class="center"><i>In crown 8vo, cloth elegant.</i></p>
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>A Stout English Bowman.</b> By <span class="smcap">Edgar Pickering</span>. With
-6 page Illustrations by <span class="smcap">Walter S. Stacey</span>. 3<i>s.</i> 6<i>d.</i></p>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-<p>“A vivid romance of the times of Henry III. In drawing the various pictures
-of this age of chivalry Mr. Pickering has caught the true spirit of the period, and
-never once does he forget that he is writing the sayings and doings of a past
-age.”&mdash;<i>Public Opinion.</i></p>
-</div>
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>Two Gallant Rebels.</b> By <span class="smcap">Edgar Pickering</span>. With 6 Illustrations
-by <span class="smcap">W. H. Overend</span>. 3<i>s.</i> 6<i>d.</i></p>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-<p>“There is something very attractive about Mr. Pickering’s style.... Boys
-will relish the relation of those dreadful and moving events, which, indeed, will
-never lose their fascination for readers of all ages.”&mdash;<i>The Spectator.</i></p>
-</div>
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>In Press-Gang Days.</b> By <span class="smcap">Edgar Pickering</span>. With 6
-Illustrations by <span class="smcap">W. S. Stacey</span>. 3<i>s.</i> 6<i>d.</i></p>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-<p>“It is of Marryat we think as we read this delightful story; for it is not
-only a story of adventure with incidents well conceived and arranged, but the
-characters are interesting and well-distinguished.”&mdash;<i>Academy.</i></p>
-</div>
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>An Old-Time Yarn.</b> By <span class="smcap">Edgar Pickering</span>. Illustrated
-by <span class="smcap">Alfred Pearse</span>. 3<i>s.</i> 6<i>d.</i></p>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-<p>“And a very good yarn it is, with not a dull page from first to last. There is a
-flavour of <i>Westward Ho!</i> in this attractive book.”&mdash;<i>Educational Review.</i></p>
-</div>
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>Silas Verney</b>: A Tale of the Time of Charles II. By <span class="smcap">Edgar
-Pickering</span>. With 6 page Illustrations by <span class="smcap">Alfred Pearse</span>. 3<i>s.</i> 6<i>d.</i></p>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-<p>“Altogether this is an excellent story for boys.”&mdash;<i>Saturday Review.</i></p>
-</div>
-
-<hr class="tb" />
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>His First Kangaroo</b>: An Australian Story for Boys. By
-<span class="smcap">Arthur Ferres</span>. Illustrated by <span class="smcap">Percy F. S. Spence</span>. 3<i>s.</i> 6<i>d.</i></p>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<h3>BLACKIE’S NEW THREE-SHILLING SERIES.</h3>
-</div>
-
-<p class="center"><i>In crown 8vo. Beautifully illustrated and handsomely bound.</i></p>
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>Highways and High Seas</b>: By <span class="smcap">F. Frankfort Moore</span>.
-With 6 page Illustrations by <span class="smcap">Alfred Pearse</span>. 3<i>s.</i></p>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-<p>“This is one of the best stories Mr. Moore has written, perhaps the very best.
-The exciting adventures are sure to attract boys.”&mdash;<i>Spectator.</i></p>
-</div>
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>Under Hatches</b>: or, Ned Woodthorpe’s Adventures. By
-<span class="smcap">F. Frankfort Moore</span>. Illustrated by <span class="smcap">A. Forestier</span>. 3<i>s.</i></p>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-<p>“The story as a story is one that will just suit boys all the world over. The
-characters are well drawn and consistent.”&mdash;<i>Schoolmaster.</i></p>
-</div>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_cat22">[Pg 22]</span></p>
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>The Missing Merchantman.</b> By <span class="smcap">Harry Collingwood</span>.
-With 6 page Illustrations by <span class="smcap">W. H. Overend</span>. 3<i>s.</i></p>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-<p>“One of the author’s best sea stories. The hero is as heroic as any boy could
-desire, and the ending is extremely happy.”&mdash;<i>British Weekly.</i></p>
-</div>
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>Menhardoc</b>: A Story of Cornish Nets and Mines. By <span class="smcap">G.
-Manville Fenn</span>. Illustrated by <span class="smcap">C. J. Staniland, r.i.</span> 3<i>s.</i></p>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-<p>“The Cornish fishermen are drawn from life, and stand out from the pages in
-their jerseys and sea-boots all sprinkled with silvery pilchard scales.”&mdash;<i>Spectator.</i></p>
-</div>
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>Yussuf the Guide</b>: or, The Mountain Bandits. By <span class="smcap">G. Manville
-Fenn</span>. With 6 page Illustrations by <span class="smcap">J. Schönberg</span>. 3<i>s.</i></p>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-<p>“Told with such real freshness and vigour that the reader feels he is actually
-one of the party, sharing in the fun and facing the dangers.”&mdash;<i>Pall Mall Gazette.</i></p>
-</div>
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>Patience Wins</b>: or, War in the Works. By <span class="smcap">George Manville
-Fenn</span>. With 6 page Illustrations. 3<i>s.</i></p>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-<p>“Mr. Fenn has never hit upon a happier plan than in writing this story of
-Yorkshire factory life. The whole book is all aglow with life.”&mdash;<i>Pall Mall Gazette.</i></p>
-</div>
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>Mother Carey’s Chicken.</b> By <span class="smcap">G. Manville Fenn</span>. With
-6 page Illustrations by <span class="smcap">A. Forestier</span>. 3<i>s.</i></p>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-<p>“The incidents are of thrilling interest, while the characters are drawn with
-a care and completeness rarely found in a boys’ book.”&mdash;<i>Literary World.</i></p>
-</div>
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>Robinson Crusoe.</b> With 100 Illustrations by <span class="smcap">Gordon
-Browne</span>. 3<i>s.</i></p>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-<p>“One of the best issues, if not absolutely the best, of Defoe’s work which has
-ever appeared.”&mdash;<i>The Standard.</i></p>
-</div>
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>Perseverance Island</b>: or, The Robinson Crusoe of the 19th
-Century. By <span class="smcap">Douglas Frazar</span>. With 6 page Illustrations. 3<i>s.</i></p>
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>Gulliver’s Travels.</b> With 100 Illustrations by <span class="smcap">Gordon
-Browne</span>. 3<i>s.</i></p>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-<p>“Mr. Gordon Browne is, to my thinking, incomparably the most artistic,
-spirited, and brilliant of our illustrators of books for boys, and one of the most
-humorous also, as his illustrations of ‘Gulliver’ amply testify.”&mdash;<i>Truth.</i></p>
-</div>
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>The Wigwam and the War-path</b>: Stories of the Red
-Indians. By <span class="smcap">Ascott R. Hope</span>. With 6 page Illustrations. 3<i>s.</i></p>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-<p>“Is notably good. It gives a very vivid picture of life among the Indians,
-which will delight the heart of many a schoolboy.”&mdash;<i>Spectator.</i></p>
-</div>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_cat23">[Pg 23]</span></p>
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>The Loss of John Humble</b>: What Led to It, and What
-Came of It. By <span class="smcap">G.
-Norway</span>. With 6 page
-Illustrations by <span class="smcap">John
-Schönberg</span>, 3<i>s.</i></p>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-<p>“Full of life and adventure.
-The interest of the story is sustained
-without a break from first
-to last.”&mdash;<i>Standard.</i></p>
-</div>
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>Hussein the Hostage.</b>
-By <span class="smcap">G. Norway</span>.
-With 6 page Illustrations
-by <span class="smcap">John
-Schönberg</span>. 3<i>s.</i></p>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-<p>“<i>Hussein the Hostage</i> is full
-of originality and vigour. The
-characters are lifelike, there
-is plenty of stirring incident,
-and the interest is sustained
-throughout.”&mdash;<i>Journal of Education.</i></p>
-</div>
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>Cousin Geoffrey and
-I.</b> By <span class="smcap">Caroline
-Austin</span>. With 6 page
-Illustrations by <span class="smcap">W.
-Parkinson</span>. 3<i>s.</i></p>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-<p>“Miss Austin’s story is bright,
-clever, and well developed.”&mdash;<i>Saturday
-Review.</i></p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="figcenter illowp50" id="i-c23" style="max-width: 28em;">
- <img class="w100" src="images/i-c23.png" alt="" />
- <div class="caption"><p><i>Reduced Illustration from “Cousin Geoffrey”.</i></p></div>
-</div>
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>Girl Neighbours</b>: or, The Old Fashion and the New. By
-<span class="smcap">Sarah Tytler</span>. Illustrated by <span class="smcap">C. T. Garland</span>. 3<i>s.</i></p>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-<p>“One of the most effective and quietly humorous of Miss Sarah Tytler’s stories.
-It is very healthy, very agreeable, and very well written.”&mdash;<i>The Spectator.</i></p>
-</div>
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>The Rover’s Secret</b>: a Tale of the Pirate Cays and Lagoons
-of Cuba. By <span class="smcap">Harry Collingwood</span>. With 6 page Illustrations by
-<span class="smcap">W. C. Symons</span>. 3<i>s.</i></p>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-<p>“<i>The Rover’s Secret</i> is by far the best sea story we have read for years, and is
-certain to give unalloyed pleasure to boys.”&mdash;<i>Saturday Review.</i></p>
-</div>
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>The Congo Rovers</b>: A Story of the Slave Squadron. By
-<span class="smcap">Harry Collingwood</span>. With 6 page Illustrations. 3<i>s.</i></p>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-<p>“No better sea story has lately been written than the <i>Congo Rovers</i>. It is as
-original as any boy could desire.”&mdash;<i>Morning Post.</i></p>
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-</div>
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_cat24">[Pg 24]</span></p>
-
-<h3 class="nobreak" id="BLACKIES_HALF-CROWN_SERIES">BLACKIE’S HALF-CROWN SERIES.</h3>
-</div>
-
-<hr class="tb" />
-<p class="center"><i>Illustrated by eminent Artists. Crown 8vo, cloth elegant.</i></p>
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>A Daughter of Erin.</b> By <span class="smcap">Violet G. Finny</span>.</p>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-<p>“Extremely well written; the characters are cleverly drawn and the individual
-interest sustained to the end. It is a book we can thoroughly recommend, not
-only to girls, but to all who like a well-written healthy toned story.”&mdash;<i>St. James’s
-Gazette.</i></p>
-</div>
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>Nell’s School-days.</b> By <span class="smcap">H. F. Gethen</span>.</p>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-<p>“A simple and natural picture of young life, and inculcates in an unostentatious
-way lessons of thoughtfulness and kindness.”&mdash;<i>Spectator.</i></p>
-</div>
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>The Luck of the Eardleys.</b> By <span class="smcap">Sheila E. Braine</span>.</p>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-<p>“One of the cleverest books we have read for a long time. The authoress combines
-wit, humour, and pathos in a delightful manner, and understands how to
-portray character, for all her men, women, boys and girls glow with life and
-colour”&mdash;<i>The Record.</i></p>
-</div>
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>Picked up at Sea</b>: or, The Gold Miners of Minturne Creek.
-By <span class="smcap">John C. Hutcheson</span>.</p>
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>The Search for the Talisman</b>: A Story of Labrador.
-By <span class="smcap">Henry Frith</span>.</p>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-<p>“We pity the boy who cannot read every page of this capital story.”&mdash;<i>School
-Guardian.</i></p>
-</div>
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>Marooned on Australia.</b> By <span class="smcap">Ernest Favenc</span>.</p>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-<p>“A remarkably interesting and well-written story of travel and adventure in
-the Great Southern Land.”&mdash;<i>School Guardian.</i></p>
-</div>
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>The Secret of the Australian Desert.</b> By <span class="smcap">Ernest
-Favenc</span>.</p>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-<p>“We recommend the book most heartily; it is certain to please boys and
-girls, and even some grown-ups.”&mdash;<i>Guardian.</i></p>
-</div>
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>My Friend Kathleen.</b> By <span class="smcap">Jennie Chappell</span>.</p>
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>A Girl’s Kingdom.</b> By <span class="smcap">M. Corbet-Seymour</span>.</p>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-<p>“The story is bright, well told, and thoroughly healthy and good.”&mdash;<i>Ch. Bells.</i></p>
-</div>
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>Laugh and Learn</b>: The Easiest Book of Nursery Lessons
-and Nursery Games. By <span class="smcap">Jennett Humphreys</span>.</p>
-<div class="blockquot">
-<p>“One of the best books of the kind imaginable, full of practical teaching in
-word and picture, and helping the little ones pleasantly along a right royal road
-to learning.”&mdash;<i>Graphic.</i></p>
-</div>
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>Reefer and Rifleman</b>: A Tale of the Two Services. By
-Lieut.-Col. <span class="smcap">Percy-Groves</span>.</p>
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>A Musical Genius.</b> By the Author of the “Two Dorothys”.</p>
-<div class="blockquot">
-<p>“It is brightly written, well illustrated, and daintily bound, and can be strongly
-recommended as a really good prize-book.”&mdash;<i>Teachers’ Aid.</i></p>
-</div>
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>For the Sake of a Friend</b>: A Story of School Life. By
-<span class="smcap">Margaret Parker</span>.</p>
-<div class="blockquot">
-<p>“An excellent school-girls’ story.”&mdash;<i>Athenæum.</i></p>
-</div>
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_cat25">[Pg 25]</span></p>
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>Things Will take a Turn.</b> By <span class="smcap">Beatrice Harraden</span>.
-With 44 Illustrations
-by <span class="smcap">John H. Bacon</span>.</p>
-<div class="blockquot">
-<p>“Perhaps the most brilliant
-is <i>Things Will Take a
-Turn</i>.... It is a delightful
-blending of comedy and
-tragedy, with an excellent
-plot.”&mdash;<i>The Times.</i></p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="figcenter illowp50" id="i-c25" style="max-width: 28em;">
- <img class="w100" src="images/i-c25.png" alt="" />
- <div class="caption"><p><i>From “Things will Take a Turn”.</i> (<i>Reduced.</i>)</p></div>
-</div>
-
-<hr class="tb" />
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>Under the Black
-Eagle.</b> By <span class="smcap">Andrew Hilliard</span>.</p>
-<div class="blockquot">
-<p>“The rapid movement of
-the story, and the strange
-scenes through which it passes,
-give it a full interest of surprise
-and adventure.”&mdash;<i>Scotsman.</i></p>
-</div>
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>A Golden Age.</b> By
-<span class="smcap">Ismay Thorn</span>. Illustrated
-by <span class="smcap">Gordon
-Browne</span>.</p>
-<div class="blockquot">
-<p>“Ought to have a place of
-honour on the nursery shelf.”&mdash;<i>The
-Athenæum.</i></p>
-</div>
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>Hal Hungerford.</b> By <span class="smcap">J. R. Hutchinson, b.a.</span></p>
-<div class="blockquot">
-<p>“Altogether, <i>Hal Hungerford</i> is a distinct literary success.”&mdash;<i>Spectator.</i></p>
-</div>
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>The Secret of the Old House.</b> By <span class="smcap">E. Everett-Green</span>.</p>
-<div class="blockquot">
-<p>“Tim, the little Jacobite, is a charming creation.”&mdash;<i>Academy.</i></p>
-</div>
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>White Lilac</b>: or, The Queen of the May. By <span class="smcap">Amy Walton</span>.</p>
-<div class="blockquot">
-<p>“Every rural parish ought to add <i>White Lilac</i> to its library.”&mdash;<i>Academy.</i></p>
-</div>
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>The Whispering Winds</b>, and the Tales that they Told.
-By <span class="smcap">Mary H. Debenham</span>. With 25 Illustrations by <span class="smcap">Paul Hardy</span>.</p>
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>Miriam’s Ambition.</b> By <span class="smcap">Evelyn Everett-Green</span>.</p>
-<div class="blockquot">
-<p>“Miss Green’s children are real British boys and girls.”&mdash;<i>Liverpool Mercury.</i></p>
-</div>
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>The Brig “Audacious”.</b> By <span class="smcap">Alan Cole</span>.</p>
-<div class="blockquot">
-<p>“Fresh and wholesome as a breath of sea air.”&mdash;<i>Court Journal.</i></p>
-</div>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_cat26">[Pg 26]</span></p>
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>Jasper’s Conquest.</b> By <span class="smcap">Elizabeth J. Lysaght</span>.</p>
-<div class="blockquot">
-<p>“One of the best boys’ books of the season.”&mdash;<i>Schoolmaster.</i></p>
-</div>
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>Little Lady Clare.</b> By <span class="smcap">Evelyn Everett-Green</span>.</p>
-<div class="blockquot">
-<p>“Reminds us in its quaintness of Mrs. Ewing’s delightful tales.”&mdash;<i>Liter. World.</i></p>
-</div>
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>The Eversley Secrets.</b> By <span class="smcap">Evelyn Everett-Green</span>.</p>
-<div class="blockquot">
-<p>“Roy Eversley is a very touching picture of high principle.”&mdash;<i>Guardian.</i></p>
-</div>
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>The Hermit Hunter of the Wilds.</b> By <span class="smcap">G. Stables, r.n.</span></p>
-<div class="blockquot">
-<p>“Will gladden the heart of many a bright boy.”&mdash;<i>Methodist Recorder.</i></p>
-</div>
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>Sturdy and Strong.</b> By <span class="smcap">G. A. Henty</span>.</p>
-<div class="blockquot">
-<p>“A hero who stands as a good instance of chivalry in domestic life.”&mdash;<i>The
-Empire.</i></p>
-</div>
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>Gutta-Percha Willie.</b> By <span class="smcap">George Mac Donald</span>.</p>
-<div class="blockquot">
-<p>“Get it for your boys and girls to read for themselves.”&mdash;<i>Practical Teacher.</i></p>
-</div>
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>The War of the Axe</b>: or, Adventures in South Africa. By
-<span class="smcap">J. Percy-Groves</span>.</p>
-<div class="blockquot">
-<p>“The story is well and brilliantly told.”&mdash;<i>Literary World.</i></p>
-</div>
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>The Lads of Little Clayton.</b> By <span class="smcap">R. Stead</span>.</p>
-<div class="blockquot">
-<p>“A capital book for boys.”&mdash;<i>Schoolmaster.</i></p>
-</div>
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>Ten Boys.</b> By <span class="smcap">Jane Andrews</span>. With 20 Illustrations.</p>
-<div class="blockquot">
-<p>“The idea is a very happy one, and admirably carried out.”&mdash;<i>Practical Teacher.</i></p>
-</div>
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>A Waif of the Sea</b>: or, The Lost Found. By <span class="smcap">Kate Wood</span>.</p>
-<div class="blockquot">
-<p>“Written with tenderness and grace.”&mdash;<i>Morning Advertiser.</i></p>
-</div>
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>Winnie’s Secret.</b> By <span class="smcap">Kate Wood</span>.</p>
-<div class="blockquot">
-<p>“One of the best story-books we have read.”&mdash;<i>Schoolmaster.</i></p>
-</div>
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>Miss Willowburn’s Offer.</b> By <span class="smcap">Sarah Doudney</span>.</p>
-<div class="blockquot">
-<p>“Patience Willowburn is one of Miss Doudney’s best creations.”&mdash;<i>Spectator.</i></p>
-</div>
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>A Garland for Girls.</b> By <span class="smcap">Louisa M. Alcott</span>.</p>
-<div class="blockquot">
-<p>“These little tales are the beau ideal of girls’ stories.”&mdash;<i>Christian World.</i></p>
-</div>
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>Hetty Gray</b>: or, Nobody’s Bairn. By <span class="smcap">Rosa Mulholland</span>.</p>
-<div class="blockquot">
-<p>“Hetty is a delightful creature&mdash;piquant, tender, and true.”&mdash;<i>World.</i></p>
-</div>
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>Brothers in Arms.</b> By <span class="smcap">F. Bayford Harrison</span>.</p>
-<div class="blockquot">
-<p>“Sure to prove interesting to young people of both sexes.”&mdash;<i>Guardian.</i></p>
-</div>
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>Stimson’s Reef</b>: A Tale of Adventure. By <span class="smcap">C. J. Hyne</span>.</p>
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>Miss Fenwick’s Failures.</b> By <span class="smcap">Esmé Stuart</span>.</p>
-<div class="blockquot">
-<p>“A girl true to real life, who will put no nonsense into young heads.”&mdash;<i>Graphic.</i></p>
-</div>
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>Gytha’s Message.</b> By <span class="smcap">Emma Leslie</span>.</p>
-<div class="blockquot">
-<p>“This is the sort of book that all girls like.”&mdash;<i>Journal of Education.</i></p>
-</div>
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>A Little Handful.</b> By <span class="smcap">Harriet J. Scripps</span>.</p>
-<div class="blockquot">
-<p>“He is a real type of a boy.”&mdash;<i>The Schoolmaster.</i></p>
-</div>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_cat27">[Pg 27]</span></p>
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>Hammond’s Hard Lines.</b> By <span class="smcap">Skelton Kuppord</span>.</p>
-<div class="blockquot">
-<p>“It is just what a boy would
-choose if the selection of a
-story-book is left in his own
-hand.”&mdash;<i>School Guardian.</i></p>
-</div>
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>Dulcie King</b>: A Story
-for Girls. By <span class="smcap">M.
-Corbet-Seymour</span>.</p>
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>Nicola</b>: The Career of
-a Girl Musician. By
-<span class="smcap">M. Corbet-Seymour</span>.</p>
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>Hugh Herbert’s Inheritance.</b>
-By
-<span class="smcap">Caroline Austin</span>.</p>
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>Jack o’ Lanthorn</b>:
-A Tale of Adventure.
-By <span class="smcap">Henry Frith</span>.</p>
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>A Rough Road</b>: or,
-How the Boy Made a
-Man of Himself. By
-Mrs. <span class="smcap">G. Linnæus
-Banks</span>.</p>
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>The Two Dorothys.</b>
-By Mrs. <span class="smcap">Herbert
-Martin</span>.</p>
-<div class="blockquot">
-<p>“A book that will interest
-and please all girls.”&mdash;<i>The
-Lady.</i></p>
-</div>
-<div class="figcenter illowp50" id="i-c27" style="max-width: 28em;">
- <img class="w100" src="images/i-c27.png" alt="" />
- <div class="caption"><p><i>Reduced Illustration from, “A Girl in Spring-time”.</i></p></div>
-</div>
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>My Mistress the Queen.</b> By <span class="smcap">M. A. Paull</span>.</p>
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>The Stories of Wasa and Menzikoff.</b></p>
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>Stories of the Sea in Former Days.</b></p>
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>Tales of Captivity and Exile.</b></p>
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>Famous Discoveries by Sea and Land.</b></p>
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>Stirring Events of History.</b></p>
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>Adventures in Field, Flood, and Forest.</b></p>
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>A Cruise in Cloudland.</b> By <span class="smcap">Henry Frith</span>.</p>
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>Marian and Dorothy.</b> By <span class="smcap">Annie E. Armstrong</span>.</p>
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>Gladys Anstruther.</b> By <span class="smcap">Louisa Thompson</span>.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_cat28">[Pg 28]</span></p>
-
-<h3>BLACKIE’S TWO-SHILLING SERIES.</h3>
-</div>
-
-<hr class="tb" />
-<p class="center"><i>Illustrated by eminent Artists. Crown 8vo, cloth elegant.</i></p>
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>Tommy the Adventurous.</b> By <span class="smcap">S. E. Cartwright</span>.</p>
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>Some Other Children.</b> By <span class="smcap">H. F. Gethen</span>.</p>
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>That Merry Crew.</b> By <span class="smcap">Florence Coombe</span>.</p>
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>Sir Wilfrid’s Grandson.</b> By <span class="smcap">Geraldine Mockler</span>.</p>
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>Sydney’s Chums</b>: A Story of East and West London. By
-<span class="smcap">H. F. Gethen</span>.</p>
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>Daddy Samuels’ Darling.</b> By the Author of “The Two
-Dorothys”.</p>
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>May, Guy, and Jim.</b> By <span class="smcap">Ellinor Davenport Adams</span>.</p>
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>A Girl in Spring-time.</b> By Mrs. <span class="smcap">Mansergh</span>.</p>
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>In the Days of Drake.</b> Being the Adventures of Humphrey
-Salkeld. By <span class="smcap">J. S. Fletcher</span>.</p>
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>Wilful Joyce.</b> By <span class="smcap">W. L. Rooper</span>.</p>
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>Proud Miss Sydney.</b> By <span class="smcap">Geraldine Mockler</span>.</p>
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>Queen of the Daffodils.</b> By <span class="smcap">Leslie Laing</span>.</p>
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>The Girleen.</b> By <span class="smcap">Edith Johnstone</span>.</p>
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>The Organist’s Baby.</b> By <span class="smcap">Kathleen Knox</span>.</p>
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>School Days in France.</b> By <span class="smcap">An Old Girl</span>.</p>
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>The Ravensworth Scholarship.</b> By Mrs. <span class="smcap">Henry Clarke</span>.</p>
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>Sir Walter’s Ward</b>: A Tale of the Crusades. By <span class="smcap">William
-Everard</span>.</p>
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>Raff’s Ranche</b>: A Story of Adventure among Cow-boys and
-Indians. By <span class="smcap">F. M. Holmes</span>.</p>
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>The Joyous Story of Toto.</b> By <span class="smcap">Laura E. Richards</span>.</p>
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>Our Dolly</b>: Her Words and Ways. By Mrs. <span class="smcap">R. H. Read</span>.</p>
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>Fairy Fancy</b>: What she Heard and Saw. By Mrs. <span class="smcap">Read</span>.</p>
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>New Light through Old Windows.</b> By <span class="smcap">Gregson Gow</span>.</p>
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>Little Tottie, and Two Other Stories.</b> By <span class="smcap">Thomas Archer</span>.</p>
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>Naughty Miss Bunny.</b> By <span class="smcap">Clara Mulholland</span>.</p>
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>Adventures of Mrs. Wishing-to-be.</b> By <span class="smcap">Alice Corkran</span>.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_cat29">[Pg 29]</span></p>
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>An Unexpected Hero.</b> By <span class="smcap">Eliz. J. Lysaght</span>.</p>
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>The Bushranger’s Secret.</b> By Mrs. <span class="smcap">Henry Clarke, m.a.</span></p>
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>The White Squall.</b> By <span class="smcap">John C. Hutcheson</span>.</p>
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>The Wreck of the “Nancy Bell”.</b> By <span class="smcap">J. C. Hutcheson</span>.</p>
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>The Lonely Pyramid.</b> By <span class="smcap">J. H. Yoxall</span>.</p>
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>Bab</b>: or, The Triumph of Unselfishness. By <span class="smcap">Ismay Thorn</span>.</p>
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>Brave and True</b>, and other Stories. By <span class="smcap">Gregson Gow</span>.</p>
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>The Light Princess.</b> By <span class="smcap">George Mac Donald</span>.</p>
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>Nutbrown Roger and I.</b> By <span class="smcap">J. H. Yoxall</span>.</p>
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>Sam Silvan’s Sacrifice.</b> By <span class="smcap">Jesse Colman</span>.</p>
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>Insect Ways on Summer Days</b> in Garden, Forest, Field,
-and Stream. By <span class="smcap">Jennett Humphreys</span>. With 70 Illustrations.</p>
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>Susan.</b> By <span class="smcap">Amy Walton</span>.</p>
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>A Pair of Clogs.</b> By <span class="smcap">Amy Walton</span>.</p>
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>The Hawthorns.</b> By <span class="smcap">Amy Walton</span>.</p>
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>Dorothy’s Dilemma.</b> By <span class="smcap">Caroline Austin</span>.</p>
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>Marie’s Home.</b> By <span class="smcap">Caroline Austin</span>.</p>
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>A Warrior King.</b> By <span class="smcap">J. Evelyn</span>.</p>
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>Aboard the “Atalanta”.</b> By <span class="smcap">Henry Frith</span>.</p>
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>The Penang Pirate.</b> By <span class="smcap">John C. Hutcheson</span>.</p>
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>Teddy</b>: The Story of a “Little Pickle”. By <span class="smcap">John C. Hutcheson</span>.</p>
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>A Rash Promise.</b> By <span class="smcap">Cecilia Selby Lowndes</span>.</p>
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>Linda and the Boys.</b> By <span class="smcap">Cecilia Selby Lowndes</span>.</p>
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>Swiss Stories for Children.</b> From the German of <span class="smcap">Madam
-Johanna Spyri</span>. By <span class="smcap">Lucy Wheelock</span>.</p>
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>The Squire’s Grandson.</b> By <span class="smcap">J. M. Callwell</span>.</p>
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>Magna Charta Stories.</b> Edited by <span class="smcap">Arthur Gilman, a.m.</span></p>
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>The Wings of Courage</b>; <span class="smcap">and The Cloud-Spinner</span>.
-Translated from the French of <span class="smcap">George Sand</span>, by Mrs. <span class="smcap">Corkran</span>.</p>
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>Chirp and Chatter</b>: Or, <span class="smcap">Lessons from Field and Tree</span>.
-By <span class="smcap">Alice Banks</span>. With 54 Illustrations by <span class="smcap">Gordon Browne</span>.</p>
-
-<p class="hanging2"><b>Four Little Mischiefs.</b> By <span class="smcap">Rosa Mulholland</span>.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_cat30">[Pg 30]</span></p>
-
-<h3>LIBRARY OF FAMOUS BOOKS FOR
-BOYS AND GIRLS.</h3>
-</div>
-
-<p class="center"><i>Illustrated. Crown 8vo, cloth extra, 1s. 6d. each.</i></p>
-
-<ul><li><b>The Rifle Rangers.</b> By Captain <span class="smcap">Mayne Reid</span>.</li>
-<li><b>Macaulay’s Essays on English History.</b></li>
-<li><b>Autobiographies of Boyhood.</b></li>
-<li><b>Holiday House.</b> By <span class="smcap">Catherine Sinclair</span>.</li>
-<li><b>Log-book of a Midshipman.</b></li>
-<li><b>Parry’s Third Voyage.</b></li>
-<li><b>Passages in the Life of a Galley-Slave.</b></li>
-<li><b>The Downfall of Napoleon.</b> By <span class="smcap">Sir Walter Scott</span>.</li>
-<li><b>What Katy Did.</b> By <span class="smcap">Susan Coolidge</span>.</li>
-<li><b>What Katy Did at School.</b></li>
-<li><b>Wreck of the “Wager”.</b></li>
-<li><b>Miss Austen’s Northanger Abbey.</b></li>
-<li><b>Miss Edgeworth’s The Good Governess.</b></li>
-<li><b>Martineau’s Feats on the Fiord.</b></li>
-<li><b>Marryat’s Poor Jack.</b></li>
-<li><b>The Snowstorm.</b> By Mrs. <span class="smcap">Gore</span>.</li>
-<li><b>Life of Dampier.</b></li>
-<li><b>The Cruise of the Midge.</b> <span class="smcap">M. Scott.</span></li>
-<li><b>Lives and Voyages of Drake and Cavendish.</b></li>
-<li><b>Edgeworth’s Moral Tales.</b></li>
-<li><b>Marryat’s The Settlers in Canada.</b></li>
-<li><b>Michael Scott’s Tom Cringle’s Log.</b></li>
-<li><b>Natural History of Selborne.</b></li>
-<li><b>Waterton’s Wanderings in S. America.</b></li>
-<li><b>Anson’s Voyage Round the World.</b></li>
-<li><b>Autobiography of Franklin.</b></li>
-<li><b>Lamb’s Tales from Shakspeare.</b></li>
-<li><b>Southey’s Life of Nelson.</b></li>
-<li><b>Miss Mitford’s Our Village.</b></li>
-<li><b>Two Years Before the Mast.</b></li>
-<li><b>Children of the New Forest.</b></li>
-<li><b>Scott’s The Talisman.</b></li>
-<li><b>The Basket of Flowers.</b></li>
-<li><b>Marryat’s Masterman Ready.</b></li>
-<li><b>Alcott’s Little Women.</b></li>
-<li><b>Cooper’s Deerslayer.</b></li>
-<li><b>The Lamplighter.</b> By Miss <span class="smcap">Cummins</span>.</li>
-<li><b>Cooper’s Pathfinder.</b></li>
-<li><b>The Vicar of Wakefield.</b></li>
-<li><b>Plutarch’s Lives of Greek Heroes.</b></li>
-<li><b>Poe’s Tales of Romance and Fantasy.</b></li>
-</ul>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<h3>BLACKIE’S EIGHTEENPENNY SERIES.</h3>
-</div>
-
-<p class="center"><i>Illustrated. Crown 8vo, cloth elegant.</i></p>
-
-<ul>
-<li><b>Holidays at Sandy Bay.</b> By <span class="smcap">E. S. Buchheim</span>.</li>
-<li><b>Best of Intentions.</b> By <span class="smcap">Geraldine Mockler</span>.</li>
-<li><b>An Africander Trio.</b> By <span class="smcap">Jane H. Spettigue</span>.</li>
-<li><b>A Chum Worth Having.</b> By <span class="smcap">Florence Coombe</span>.</li>
-<li><b>Penelope and the Others.</b> By <span class="smcap">Amy Walton</span>.</li>
-<li><b>The “Saucy May”.</b> By <span class="smcap">Henry Frith</span>.</li>
-<li><b>The Little Girl from Next Door.</b> By <span class="smcap">Geraldine Mockler</span>.</li>
-<li><b>Uncle Jem’s Stella.</b> By Mrs. <span class="smcap">Martin</span>.</li>
-<li><b>The Ball of Fortune.</b> By <span class="smcap">C. Pearse</span>.</li>
-<li><b>The Family Failing.</b> By <span class="smcap">D. Dale</span>.</li>
-<li><b>Warner’s Chase.</b> By <span class="smcap">Annie S. Swan</span>.</li>
-<li><b>Climbing the Hill.</b> By <span class="smcap">Annie S. Swan</span>.</li>
-<li><b>Into the Haven.</b> By <span class="smcap">Annie S. Swan</span>.</li>
-<li><b>Down and Up Again.</b> By <span class="smcap">Gregson Gow</span>.</li>
-<li><b>Madge’s Mistake.</b> By <span class="smcap">Annie E. Armstrong</span>.</li>
-<li><b>The Troubles and Triumphs of Little Tim.</b> By <span class="smcap">Gregson Gow</span>.</li>
-<li><b>The Happy Lad.</b> By <span class="smcap">B. Björnson</span>.</li>
-<li><b>A Box of Stories.</b> By <span class="smcap">H. Happyman</span>.</li>
-<li><b>The Patriot Martyr</b>, and other Narratives of Female Heroism.</li>
-<li><b>Olive and Robin.</b> By <span class="smcap">Mrs. Martin</span>.</li>
-<li><b>Mona’s Trust.</b> By <span class="smcap">P. Leslie</span>.</li>
-</ul>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_cat31">[Pg 31]</span></p>
-
-<p class="center"><i>With Illustrations.&emsp;In crown 8vo, cloth elegant.</i></p>
-
-<div class="figcenter illowp50" id="i-c31" style="max-width: 28em;">
- <img class="w100" src="images/i-c31.png" alt="" />
- <div class="caption"><p><i>Reduced Illustration
-From “A Chum Worth Having”.</i></p></div>
-</div>
-
-<ul>
-<li><b>Little Jimmy</b>: A Story of Adventure.
-By Rev. <span class="smcap">D. Rice-Jones, m.a.</span></li>
-
-<li><b>Pleasures and Pranks.</b> By <span class="smcap">Isabella
-Pearson</span>.</li>
-
-<li><b>In a Stranger’s Garden.</b> By <span class="smcap">Constance
-Cuming</span>.</li>
-
-<li><b>Yarns on the Beach.</b> By <span class="smcap">G. A.
-Henty</span>.</li>
-
-<li><b>A Soldier’s Son.</b> By <span class="smcap">Annette Lyster</span>.</li>
-
-<li><b>Mischief and Merry-making.</b> By
-<span class="smcap">Isabella Pearson</span>.</li>
-
-<li><b>Tom Finch’s Monkey.</b> By <span class="smcap">J. C.
-Hutcheson</span>.</li>
-
-<li><b>Miss Grantley’s Girls.</b> By <span class="smcap">Thos.
-Archer</span>.</li>
-
-<li><b>The Pedlar and his Dog.</b> By <span class="smcap">Mary
-C. Rowsell</span>.</li>
-
-<li><b>Littlebourne Lock.</b> By <span class="smcap">F.
-Bayford Harrison</span>.</li>
-
-<li><b>Wild Meg and Wee Dickie.</b>
-By <span class="smcap">Mary E. Ropes</span>.</li>
-
-<li><b>Grannie.</b> By <span class="smcap">Elizabeth J.
-Lysaght</span>.</li>
-
-<li><b>The Seed She Sowed.</b> By
-<span class="smcap">Emma Leslie</span>.</li>
-
-<li><b>Unlucky</b>: A Fragment of a
-Girl’s Life. By <span class="smcap">Caroline
-Austin</span>.</li>
-
-<li><b>Everybody’s Business.</b> By
-<span class="smcap">Ismay Thorn</span>.</li>
-
-<li><b>Tales of Daring and Danger.</b>
-By <span class="smcap">G. A. Henty</span>.</li>
-
-<li><b>The Seven Golden Keys.</b> By
-<span class="smcap">James E. Arnold</span>.</li>
-
-<li><b>The Story of a Queen.</b> By
-<span class="smcap">Mary C. Rowsell</span>.</li>
-
-<li><b>Edwy</b>: or, Was he a Coward?
-By <span class="smcap">Annette Lyster</span>.</li>
-
-<li><b>The Battlefield Treasure.</b>
-By <span class="smcap">F. Bayford Harrison</span>.</li>
-
-<li><b>Joan’s Adventures at the
-North Pole.</b> By <span class="smcap">Alice
-Corkran</span>.</li>
-
-<li><b>Filled with Gold.</b> By <span class="smcap">J. Perrett</span>.</li>
-
-<li><b>Our General.</b> By <span class="smcap">Elizabeth
-J. Lysaght</span>.</li>
-
-<li><b>Aunt Hesba’s Charge.</b> By
-<span class="smcap">Elizabeth J. Lysaght</span>.</li>
-
-<li><b>By Order of Queen Maude.</b>
-By <span class="smcap">Louisa Crow</span>.</li>
-
-<li><b>The Late Miss Hollingford.</b>
-By <span class="smcap">Rosa Mulholland</span>.</li>
-
-<li><b>Our Frank.</b> By <span class="smcap">Amy Walton</span>.</li>
-
-<li><b>A Terrible Coward.</b> By <span class="smcap">G.
-Manville Fenn</span>.</li>
-
-<li><b>Town Mice in the Country.</b> By
-<span class="smcap">M. E. Francis</span>.</li>
-
-<li><b>Phil and his Father.</b> By <span class="smcap">Ismay
-Thorn</span>.</li>
-
-<li><b>Prim’s Story.</b> By <span class="smcap">L. E. Tiddeman</span>.</li>
-
-</ul>
-
-<p>⁂ <i>Also a large selection of Rewards at 1s., 9d., 6d., 3d., 2d., and 1d. A
-complete list will be sent post free on application.</i></p>
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_cat32">[Pg 32]</span></p>
-
-<h3>BLACKIE’S<br />
-SCHOOL AND HOME LIBRARY.</h3>
-</div>
-
-<p>Under the above title the publishers have arranged to issue, for
-School Libraries and the Home Circle, a selection of the best and most
-interesting books in the English language. The Library includes lives
-of heroes, ancient and modern, records of travel and adventure by sea
-and land, fiction of the highest class, historical romances, books of
-natural history, and tales of domestic life.</p>
-
-<p>The greatest care has been devoted to the get-up of the Library.
-The volumes are clearly printed on good paper, and the binding made
-specially durable, to withstand the wear and tear to which well-circulated
-books are necessarily subjected.</p>
-
-<p class="center"><i>In crown 8vo volumes.&emsp;Strongly bound in cloth.&emsp;Price 1s. 4d. each.</i></p>
-
-<ul>
-<li><b>Dana’s Two Years before the Mast.</b></li>
-<li><b>Southey’s Life of Nelson.</b></li>
-<li><b>Waterton’s Wanderings in S. America.</b></li>
-<li><b>Anson’s Voyage Round the World.</b></li>
-<li><b>Lamb’s Tales from Shakspeare.</b></li>
-<li><b>Autobiography of Benjamin Franklin.</b></li>
-<li><b>Marryat’s Children of the New Forest.</b></li>
-<li><b>Miss Mitford’s Our Village.</b></li>
-<li><b>Scott’s Talisman.</b></li>
-<li><b>The Basket of Flowers.</b></li>
-<li><b>Marryat’s Masterman Ready.</b></li>
-<li><b>Alcott’s Little Women.</b></li>
-<li><b>Cooper’s Deerslayer.</b></li>
-<li><b>Parry’s Third Voyage.</b></li>
-<li><b>Dickens’ Old Curiosity Shop.</b> 2 vols.</li>
-<li><b>Plutarch’s Lives of Greek Heroes.</b></li>
-<li><b>The Lamplighter.</b></li>
-<li><b>Cooper’s Pathfinder.</b></li>
-<li><b>The Vicar of Wakefield.</b></li>
-<li><b>White’s Natural History of Selborne.</b></li>
-<li><b>Scott’s Ivanhoe.</b> 2 vols.</li>
-<li><b>Michael Scott’s Tom Cringle’s Log.</b></li>
-<li><b>Irving’s Conquest of Granada.</b> 2 vols.</li>
-<li><b>Lives of Drake and Cavendish.</b></li>
-<li><b>Michael Scott’s Cruise of the Midge.</b></li>
-<li><b>Edgeworth’s Moral Tales.</b></li>
-<li><b>Passages in the Life of a Galley-Slave.</b></li>
-<li><b>The Snowstorm.</b> By Mrs. Gore.</li>
-<li><b>Life of Dampier.</b></li>
-<li><b>Marryat’s The Settlers in Canada.</b></li>
-<li><b>Martineau’s Feats on the Fiord.</b></li>
-<li><b>Marryat’s Poor Jack.</b></li>
-<li><b>The Good Governess.</b> By Maria Edgeworth.</li>
-<li><b>Northanger Abbey.</b> By Jane Austen.</li>
-<li><b>The Log Book of a Midshipman.</b></li>
-<li><b>Autobiographies of Boyhood.</b></li>
-<li><b>Holiday House.</b> By Catherine Sinclair.</li>
-<li><b>Wreck of the “Wager”.</b></li>
-<li><b>What Katy Did.</b> By Miss Coolidge.</li>
-<li><b>What Katy Did at School.</b> By Do.</li>
-<li><b>Scott’s Life of Napoleon.</b></li>
-<li><b>Essays on English History.</b> By Lord Macaulay.</li>
-<li><b>The Rifle Rangers.</b> By Captain Mayne Reid.</li>
-</ul>
-
-<p class="center"><i>Detailed Prospectus and Press Opinions will be sent post free on Application.</i></p>
-
-<hr />
-
-<p>“The Library is one of the most intelligent enterprises in connection with
-juvenile literature of recent years.... A glance at the list proves that
-the editing is in the hands of some one who understands the likings of
-healthy boys and girls.... One of the healthiest juvenile libraries in
-existence.”&mdash;<b>Bookman.</b></p>
-
-<hr class="tb" />
-<p class="center">
-LONDON:<br />
-BLACKIE &amp; SON, <span class="smcap">Limited</span>, 50 OLD BAILEY, E.C.
-</p>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-<div class="chapter transnote">
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="Transcribers_Notes">
-Transcriber's Notes
-</h2>
-
-<p>A number of typographical errors were corrected silently.</p>
-
-<p>Cover image is in the public domain.</p>
-
-<p>Caption for illustration "The figure moved, rose, came forward with the
-painful caution of dreary suspense" was incorrect in original image and
-was changed to match the text.</p>
-
-</div>
-<div style='display:block; margin-top:4em'>*** END OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK A GIRL OF TO-DAY ***</div>
-<div style='text-align:left'>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Updated editions will replace the previous one&#8212;the old editions will
-be renamed.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Creating the works from print editions not protected by U.S. copyright
-law means that no one owns a United States copyright in these works,
-so the Foundation (and you!) can copy and distribute it in the United
-States without permission and without paying copyright
-royalties. Special rules, set forth in the General Terms of Use part
-of this license, apply to copying and distributing Project
-Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works to protect the PROJECT GUTENBERG&#8482;
-concept and trademark. Project Gutenberg is a registered trademark,
-and may not be used if you charge for an eBook, except by following
-the terms of the trademark license, including paying royalties for use
-of the Project Gutenberg trademark. If you do not charge anything for
-copies of this eBook, complying with the trademark license is very
-easy. You may use this eBook for nearly any purpose such as creation
-of derivative works, reports, performances and research. Project
-Gutenberg eBooks may be modified and printed and given away--you may
-do practically ANYTHING in the United States with eBooks not protected
-by U.S. copyright law. Redistribution is subject to the trademark
-license, especially commercial redistribution.
-</div>
-
-<div style='margin:0.83em 0; font-size:1.1em; text-align:center'>START: FULL LICENSE<br />
-<span style='font-size:smaller'>THE FULL PROJECT GUTENBERG LICENSE<br />
-PLEASE READ THIS BEFORE YOU DISTRIBUTE OR USE THIS WORK</span>
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-To protect the Project Gutenberg&#8482; mission of promoting the free
-distribution of electronic works, by using or distributing this work
-(or any other work associated in any way with the phrase &#8220;Project
-Gutenberg&#8221;), you agree to comply with all the terms of the Full
-Project Gutenberg&#8482; License available with this file or online at
-www.gutenberg.org/license.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; font-size:1.1em; margin:1em 0; font-weight:bold'>
-Section 1. General Terms of Use and Redistributing Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.A. By reading or using any part of this Project Gutenberg&#8482;
-electronic work, you indicate that you have read, understand, agree to
-and accept all the terms of this license and intellectual property
-(trademark/copyright) agreement. If you do not agree to abide by all
-the terms of this agreement, you must cease using and return or
-destroy all copies of Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works in your
-possession. If you paid a fee for obtaining a copy of or access to a
-Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic work and you do not agree to be bound
-by the terms of this agreement, you may obtain a refund from the person
-or entity to whom you paid the fee as set forth in paragraph 1.E.8.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.B. &#8220;Project Gutenberg&#8221; is a registered trademark. It may only be
-used on or associated in any way with an electronic work by people who
-agree to be bound by the terms of this agreement. There are a few
-things that you can do with most Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works
-even without complying with the full terms of this agreement. See
-paragraph 1.C below. There are a lot of things you can do with Project
-Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works if you follow the terms of this
-agreement and help preserve free future access to Project Gutenberg&#8482;
-electronic works. See paragraph 1.E below.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.C. The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation (&#8220;the
-Foundation&#8221; or PGLAF), owns a compilation copyright in the collection
-of Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works. Nearly all the individual
-works in the collection are in the public domain in the United
-States. If an individual work is unprotected by copyright law in the
-United States and you are located in the United States, we do not
-claim a right to prevent you from copying, distributing, performing,
-displaying or creating derivative works based on the work as long as
-all references to Project Gutenberg are removed. Of course, we hope
-that you will support the Project Gutenberg&#8482; mission of promoting
-free access to electronic works by freely sharing Project Gutenberg&#8482;
-works in compliance with the terms of this agreement for keeping the
-Project Gutenberg&#8482; name associated with the work. You can easily
-comply with the terms of this agreement by keeping this work in the
-same format with its attached full Project Gutenberg&#8482; License when
-you share it without charge with others.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.D. The copyright laws of the place where you are located also govern
-what you can do with this work. Copyright laws in most countries are
-in a constant state of change. If you are outside the United States,
-check the laws of your country in addition to the terms of this
-agreement before downloading, copying, displaying, performing,
-distributing or creating derivative works based on this work or any
-other Project Gutenberg&#8482; work. The Foundation makes no
-representations concerning the copyright status of any work in any
-country other than the United States.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E. Unless you have removed all references to Project Gutenberg:
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.1. The following sentence, with active links to, or other
-immediate access to, the full Project Gutenberg&#8482; License must appear
-prominently whenever any copy of a Project Gutenberg&#8482; work (any work
-on which the phrase &#8220;Project Gutenberg&#8221; appears, or with which the
-phrase &#8220;Project Gutenberg&#8221; is associated) is accessed, displayed,
-performed, viewed, copied or distributed:
-</div>
-
-<blockquote>
- <div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
- This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and most
- other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no restrictions
- whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it under the terms
- of the Project Gutenberg License included with this eBook or online
- at <a href="https://www.gutenberg.org">www.gutenberg.org</a>. If you
- are not located in the United States, you will have to check the laws
- of the country where you are located before using this eBook.
- </div>
-</blockquote>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.2. If an individual Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic work is
-derived from texts not protected by U.S. copyright law (does not
-contain a notice indicating that it is posted with permission of the
-copyright holder), the work can be copied and distributed to anyone in
-the United States without paying any fees or charges. If you are
-redistributing or providing access to a work with the phrase &#8220;Project
-Gutenberg&#8221; associated with or appearing on the work, you must comply
-either with the requirements of paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 or
-obtain permission for the use of the work and the Project Gutenberg&#8482;
-trademark as set forth in paragraphs 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.3. If an individual Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic work is posted
-with the permission of the copyright holder, your use and distribution
-must comply with both paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 and any
-additional terms imposed by the copyright holder. Additional terms
-will be linked to the Project Gutenberg&#8482; License for all works
-posted with the permission of the copyright holder found at the
-beginning of this work.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.4. Do not unlink or detach or remove the full Project Gutenberg&#8482;
-License terms from this work, or any files containing a part of this
-work or any other work associated with Project Gutenberg&#8482;.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.5. Do not copy, display, perform, distribute or redistribute this
-electronic work, or any part of this electronic work, without
-prominently displaying the sentence set forth in paragraph 1.E.1 with
-active links or immediate access to the full terms of the Project
-Gutenberg&#8482; License.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.6. You may convert to and distribute this work in any binary,
-compressed, marked up, nonproprietary or proprietary form, including
-any word processing or hypertext form. However, if you provide access
-to or distribute copies of a Project Gutenberg&#8482; work in a format
-other than &#8220;Plain Vanilla ASCII&#8221; or other format used in the official
-version posted on the official Project Gutenberg&#8482; website
-(www.gutenberg.org), you must, at no additional cost, fee or expense
-to the user, provide a copy, a means of exporting a copy, or a means
-of obtaining a copy upon request, of the work in its original &#8220;Plain
-Vanilla ASCII&#8221; or other form. Any alternate format must include the
-full Project Gutenberg&#8482; License as specified in paragraph 1.E.1.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.7. Do not charge a fee for access to, viewing, displaying,
-performing, copying or distributing any Project Gutenberg&#8482; works
-unless you comply with paragraph 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.8. You may charge a reasonable fee for copies of or providing
-access to or distributing Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works
-provided that:
-</div>
-
-<div style='margin-left:0.7em;'>
- <div style='text-indent:-0.7em'>
- &bull; You pay a royalty fee of 20% of the gross profits you derive from
- the use of Project Gutenberg&#8482; works calculated using the method
- you already use to calculate your applicable taxes. The fee is owed
- to the owner of the Project Gutenberg&#8482; trademark, but he has
- agreed to donate royalties under this paragraph to the Project
- Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation. Royalty payments must be paid
- within 60 days following each date on which you prepare (or are
- legally required to prepare) your periodic tax returns. Royalty
- payments should be clearly marked as such and sent to the Project
- Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation at the address specified in
- Section 4, &#8220;Information about donations to the Project Gutenberg
- Literary Archive Foundation.&#8221;
- </div>
-
- <div style='text-indent:-0.7em'>
- &bull; You provide a full refund of any money paid by a user who notifies
- you in writing (or by e-mail) within 30 days of receipt that s/he
- does not agree to the terms of the full Project Gutenberg&#8482;
- License. You must require such a user to return or destroy all
- copies of the works possessed in a physical medium and discontinue
- all use of and all access to other copies of Project Gutenberg&#8482;
- works.
- </div>
-
- <div style='text-indent:-0.7em'>
- &bull; You provide, in accordance with paragraph 1.F.3, a full refund of
- any money paid for a work or a replacement copy, if a defect in the
- electronic work is discovered and reported to you within 90 days of
- receipt of the work.
- </div>
-
- <div style='text-indent:-0.7em'>
- &bull; You comply with all other terms of this agreement for free
- distribution of Project Gutenberg&#8482; works.
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.9. If you wish to charge a fee or distribute a Project
-Gutenberg&#8482; electronic work or group of works on different terms than
-are set forth in this agreement, you must obtain permission in writing
-from the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the manager of
-the Project Gutenberg&#8482; trademark. Contact the Foundation as set
-forth in Section 3 below.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.F.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.F.1. Project Gutenberg volunteers and employees expend considerable
-effort to identify, do copyright research on, transcribe and proofread
-works not protected by U.S. copyright law in creating the Project
-Gutenberg&#8482; collection. Despite these efforts, Project Gutenberg&#8482;
-electronic works, and the medium on which they may be stored, may
-contain &#8220;Defects,&#8221; such as, but not limited to, incomplete, inaccurate
-or corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other
-intellectual property infringement, a defective or damaged disk or
-other medium, a computer virus, or computer codes that damage or
-cannot be read by your equipment.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.F.2. LIMITED WARRANTY, DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES - Except for the &#8220;Right
-of Replacement or Refund&#8221; described in paragraph 1.F.3, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the owner of the Project
-Gutenberg&#8482; trademark, and any other party distributing a Project
-Gutenberg&#8482; electronic work under this agreement, disclaim all
-liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including legal
-fees. YOU AGREE THAT YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE, STRICT
-LIABILITY, BREACH OF WARRANTY OR BREACH OF CONTRACT EXCEPT THOSE
-PROVIDED IN PARAGRAPH 1.F.3. YOU AGREE THAT THE FOUNDATION, THE
-TRADEMARK OWNER, AND ANY DISTRIBUTOR UNDER THIS AGREEMENT WILL NOT BE
-LIABLE TO YOU FOR ACTUAL, DIRECT, INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR
-INCIDENTAL DAMAGES EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH
-DAMAGE.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.F.3. LIMITED RIGHT OF REPLACEMENT OR REFUND - If you discover a
-defect in this electronic work within 90 days of receiving it, you can
-receive a refund of the money (if any) you paid for it by sending a
-written explanation to the person you received the work from. If you
-received the work on a physical medium, you must return the medium
-with your written explanation. The person or entity that provided you
-with the defective work may elect to provide a replacement copy in
-lieu of a refund. If you received the work electronically, the person
-or entity providing it to you may choose to give you a second
-opportunity to receive the work electronically in lieu of a refund. If
-the second copy is also defective, you may demand a refund in writing
-without further opportunities to fix the problem.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.F.4. Except for the limited right of replacement or refund set forth
-in paragraph 1.F.3, this work is provided to you &#8216;AS-IS&#8217;, WITH NO
-OTHER WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, INCLUDING BUT NOT
-LIMITED TO WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTABILITY OR FITNESS FOR ANY PURPOSE.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.F.5. Some states do not allow disclaimers of certain implied
-warranties or the exclusion or limitation of certain types of
-damages. If any disclaimer or limitation set forth in this agreement
-violates the law of the state applicable to this agreement, the
-agreement shall be interpreted to make the maximum disclaimer or
-limitation permitted by the applicable state law. The invalidity or
-unenforceability of any provision of this agreement shall not void the
-remaining provisions.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.F.6. INDEMNITY - You agree to indemnify and hold the Foundation, the
-trademark owner, any agent or employee of the Foundation, anyone
-providing copies of Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works in
-accordance with this agreement, and any volunteers associated with the
-production, promotion and distribution of Project Gutenberg&#8482;
-electronic works, harmless from all liability, costs and expenses,
-including legal fees, that arise directly or indirectly from any of
-the following which you do or cause to occur: (a) distribution of this
-or any Project Gutenberg&#8482; work, (b) alteration, modification, or
-additions or deletions to any Project Gutenberg&#8482; work, and (c) any
-Defect you cause.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; font-size:1.1em; margin:1em 0; font-weight:bold'>
-Section 2. Information about the Mission of Project Gutenberg&#8482;
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Project Gutenberg&#8482; is synonymous with the free distribution of
-electronic works in formats readable by the widest variety of
-computers including obsolete, old, middle-aged and new computers. It
-exists because of the efforts of hundreds of volunteers and donations
-from people in all walks of life.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Volunteers and financial support to provide volunteers with the
-assistance they need are critical to reaching Project Gutenberg&#8482;&#8217;s
-goals and ensuring that the Project Gutenberg&#8482; collection will
-remain freely available for generations to come. In 2001, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation was created to provide a secure
-and permanent future for Project Gutenberg&#8482; and future
-generations. To learn more about the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation and how your efforts and donations can help, see
-Sections 3 and 4 and the Foundation information page at www.gutenberg.org.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; font-size:1.1em; margin:1em 0; font-weight:bold'>
-Section 3. Information about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation is a non-profit
-501(c)(3) educational corporation organized under the laws of the
-state of Mississippi and granted tax exempt status by the Internal
-Revenue Service. The Foundation&#8217;s EIN or federal tax identification
-number is 64-6221541. Contributions to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation are tax deductible to the full extent permitted by
-U.S. federal laws and your state&#8217;s laws.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-The Foundation&#8217;s business office is located at 809 North 1500 West,
-Salt Lake City, UT 84116, (801) 596-1887. Email contact links and up
-to date contact information can be found at the Foundation&#8217;s website
-and official page at www.gutenberg.org/contact
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; font-size:1.1em; margin:1em 0; font-weight:bold'>
-Section 4. Information about Donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Project Gutenberg&#8482; depends upon and cannot survive without widespread
-public support and donations to carry out its mission of
-increasing the number of public domain and licensed works that can be
-freely distributed in machine-readable form accessible by the widest
-array of equipment including outdated equipment. Many small donations
-($1 to $5,000) are particularly important to maintaining tax exempt
-status with the IRS.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-The Foundation is committed to complying with the laws regulating
-charities and charitable donations in all 50 states of the United
-States. Compliance requirements are not uniform and it takes a
-considerable effort, much paperwork and many fees to meet and keep up
-with these requirements. We do not solicit donations in locations
-where we have not received written confirmation of compliance. To SEND
-DONATIONS or determine the status of compliance for any particular state
-visit <a href="https://www.gutenberg.org/donate/">www.gutenberg.org/donate</a>.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-While we cannot and do not solicit contributions from states where we
-have not met the solicitation requirements, we know of no prohibition
-against accepting unsolicited donations from donors in such states who
-approach us with offers to donate.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-International donations are gratefully accepted, but we cannot make
-any statements concerning tax treatment of donations received from
-outside the United States. U.S. laws alone swamp our small staff.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Please check the Project Gutenberg web pages for current donation
-methods and addresses. Donations are accepted in a number of other
-ways including checks, online payments and credit card donations. To
-donate, please visit: www.gutenberg.org/donate
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; font-size:1.1em; margin:1em 0; font-weight:bold'>
-Section 5. General Information About Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Professor Michael S. Hart was the originator of the Project
-Gutenberg&#8482; concept of a library of electronic works that could be
-freely shared with anyone. For forty years, he produced and
-distributed Project Gutenberg&#8482; eBooks with only a loose network of
-volunteer support.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Project Gutenberg&#8482; eBooks are often created from several printed
-editions, all of which are confirmed as not protected by copyright in
-the U.S. unless a copyright notice is included. Thus, we do not
-necessarily keep eBooks in compliance with any particular paper
-edition.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Most people start at our website which has the main PG search
-facility: <a href="https://www.gutenberg.org">www.gutenberg.org</a>.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-This website includes information about Project Gutenberg&#8482;,
-including how to make donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation, how to help produce our new eBooks, and how to
-subscribe to our email newsletter to hear about new eBooks.
-</div>
-
-</div>
-</body>
-</html>
diff --git a/old/66382-h/images/colophon.png b/old/66382-h/images/colophon.png
deleted file mode 100644
index 3d3b9dd..0000000
--- a/old/66382-h/images/colophon.png
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/66382-h/images/cover.jpg b/old/66382-h/images/cover.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 0255697..0000000
--- a/old/66382-h/images/cover.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/66382-h/images/drop-h.png b/old/66382-h/images/drop-h.png
deleted file mode 100644
index ffc57d4..0000000
--- a/old/66382-h/images/drop-h.png
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/66382-h/images/i-002.png b/old/66382-h/images/i-002.png
deleted file mode 100644
index 273eead..0000000
--- a/old/66382-h/images/i-002.png
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/66382-h/images/i-009.png b/old/66382-h/images/i-009.png
deleted file mode 100644
index e71e79d..0000000
--- a/old/66382-h/images/i-009.png
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/66382-h/images/i-058.png b/old/66382-h/images/i-058.png
deleted file mode 100644
index ef7177c..0000000
--- a/old/66382-h/images/i-058.png
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/66382-h/images/i-091.png b/old/66382-h/images/i-091.png
deleted file mode 100644
index e197bc4..0000000
--- a/old/66382-h/images/i-091.png
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/66382-h/images/i-197.png b/old/66382-h/images/i-197.png
deleted file mode 100644
index ba123d1..0000000
--- a/old/66382-h/images/i-197.png
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/66382-h/images/i-269.png b/old/66382-h/images/i-269.png
deleted file mode 100644
index d119cf8..0000000
--- a/old/66382-h/images/i-269.png
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/66382-h/images/i-283.png b/old/66382-h/images/i-283.png
deleted file mode 100644
index 65a2b92..0000000
--- a/old/66382-h/images/i-283.png
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/66382-h/images/i-c01.png b/old/66382-h/images/i-c01.png
deleted file mode 100644
index c4f1e00..0000000
--- a/old/66382-h/images/i-c01.png
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/66382-h/images/i-c03.png b/old/66382-h/images/i-c03.png
deleted file mode 100644
index 203ce89..0000000
--- a/old/66382-h/images/i-c03.png
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/66382-h/images/i-c05.png b/old/66382-h/images/i-c05.png
deleted file mode 100644
index b50866b..0000000
--- a/old/66382-h/images/i-c05.png
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/66382-h/images/i-c06.png b/old/66382-h/images/i-c06.png
deleted file mode 100644
index 081000b..0000000
--- a/old/66382-h/images/i-c06.png
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/66382-h/images/i-c10.png b/old/66382-h/images/i-c10.png
deleted file mode 100644
index 4dba348..0000000
--- a/old/66382-h/images/i-c10.png
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/66382-h/images/i-c15.png b/old/66382-h/images/i-c15.png
deleted file mode 100644
index 70b5926..0000000
--- a/old/66382-h/images/i-c15.png
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/66382-h/images/i-c23.png b/old/66382-h/images/i-c23.png
deleted file mode 100644
index 1a68bd0..0000000
--- a/old/66382-h/images/i-c23.png
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/66382-h/images/i-c25.png b/old/66382-h/images/i-c25.png
deleted file mode 100644
index 9294aa3..0000000
--- a/old/66382-h/images/i-c25.png
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/66382-h/images/i-c27.png b/old/66382-h/images/i-c27.png
deleted file mode 100644
index 8b906f0..0000000
--- a/old/66382-h/images/i-c27.png
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/66382-h/images/i-c31.png b/old/66382-h/images/i-c31.png
deleted file mode 100644
index 283e4a4..0000000
--- a/old/66382-h/images/i-c31.png
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ